Volume I - Reference Corporation
Transcription
Volume I - Reference Corporation
THE MIDDLE EAST ABSTRACTS AND INDEX Volume 22E(i) Kurdistan and the Kurds 1999 PDF edition: 2011 Editor James Joseph Sanchez, PhD, MLS, MA Research Assistants: Valerie Caquias; Leslie Ford; Esther Snow; Ramzi Baroud; Grace Britz ____________________________________________ Reference Corporation Aristarchus Knowledge Industries Seattle, Washington PDF edition: 2011 www.referencecorp.com Middle East Abstracts & Index. Volume 22E(i): 1999 © 1999 Reference Corporation Post Office Box 45610, Seattle, WA 98145 1-800-435-8222 All rights reserved. No part of this publication may be reproduced in any manner whatsoever without written permission from this publisher. Volume 22E(i-ii) Kurdistan and the Kurds Table of Contents Page Volume 22E(i) Introduction .......................................................... Note on Record Structure ................................. Journals Scanned ............................................... Kurdistan and the Kurds .................................... iii iv vi 1 Volume 22E(ii) Kurdistan and the Kurds .................................... Author Index ......................................................... Corporate Index .................................................. Named Persons Index ....................................... Subject Index ..................................................... 581 1124 1131 1153 1163 Volume 22A: Volume 22B: Volume 22C: Volume 22D: Volume 22E: (index for 22A-22B) (index for 22C) (index for 22D) (index for 22E) Near East Israel-Palestine Central Asia-Inner Asia Maghreb-Sahel-Horn Kurdistan and the Kurds Introduction The MIDDLE EAST: ABSTRACTS AND INDEX is an index to materials on the Middle East based on the concept of drawing together a wide range of material geographically, rather than on the more traditional method of separate indices for individual disciplines. A geographic approach is of particular importance in the Middle East because it is an area where there is a great interaction between disciplines. Politics, economics, and history are inextricably intertwined with sociology, psychology and education. Fields of interest included are: Anthropology, Archeology, Art, Business, Current Affairs, Economic Development, Education, History, Language, Literature, Politics and Government, and Sociology. Religion and philosophy are cited when they relate historically, politically or sociologically. This broad coverage will provide the scholar and researcher with an invaluable reference tool. A list of the journals scanned for this Volume begins on page iv (in the A, C and D volumes). Abstracts have been provided for most major journal articles. In addition to journal article citations, other entries include editorials, government documents, research reports, press releases, annual reports, speeches, statements, interviews and news conferences, doctoral dissertations and some theses, statistics, and current monographs. In the case of doctoral dissertations, the complete abstract as printed in Dissertation Abstracts International along with the purchasing information is provided. This publication is divided into five volumes, with four volumes produced in the spring of each year: in each volume citations are organized by state: Volume 22A: Volume 22B: Volume 22C: Volume 22D: Near East Israel-Palestine Central Asia-Inner Asia Maghreb-Sahel-Horn Beginning with Volume 20, an additional E volume is produced each fall providing a bibliography for selected topics: these bibliographies will be cumulative but will typically include 75% new entries. Planned E volumes include: Volume 21E: Oil, Natural Gas and Petrochemical Industries (CD-ROM) Volume 22E: Kurdistan and the Kurds (1998) (1999) In each section, all classes of materials are listed in a single listing, arranged alphabetically by author. A detailed, easy to use index is provided for each of Authors, Corporations, Named People and Subjects. A thesaurus for the indexing of this volume is available in a separate volume, the Thesaurus of Subject & Geographic Descriptors. We welcome the submissions of pertinent materials for indexing. James Joseph Sanchez, PhD, MLS ii Note on Record Structure The titles for each record in the bibliography have several elements, illustrated in the typical title-field presented below: 12884. Shahak, Israel. Shahak Report 69: Two Israeli Policies: Towards the Kurds and Saddam Hussein: Part 1. Israel, April 9, 1991. [96H-19011] [19910409] Index number: The index number “12884” is assigned for purposes of the indexing for the volumes: Author, Corporate, Named Persons and Subject. 12884. Shahak, Israel. Shahak Report 69: Two Israeli Policies: Towards the Kurds and Saddam Hussein: Part 1. Israel, April 9, 1991. [96H-19011] [19910409] Author: the individual or corporate author of each document is provided. When no author is stated, the record is tagged with “Anonymous” authorship. 12884. Shahak, Israel. Shahak Report 69: Two Israeli Policies: Towards the Kurds and Saddam Hussein: Part 1. Israel, April 9, 1991. [96H-19011] [19910409] Title: The bibliographic citation of the title, including the full name of the document, notation on whether there are individual parts, sections or chapters presented in separate records. The title includes place of publication, publisher, and date of publication. 12884. Shahak, Israel. Shahak Report 69: Two Israeli Policies: Towards the Kurds and Saddam Hussein: Part 1. Israel, April 9, 1991. [96H-19011] [19910409] Accession number: The Reference Corporation accession number is provided to allow retrieval of the document across all reference products produced in our abstracting and documentation products, whether in book form, in on-line databases, and on CD-ROMs. This is followed by the eight-digit date which is searchable in electronic formats. Particles: (Appearing at the end of each record.) [=] This particle indicates that the fulltext of a document is included. [TXT] This particle indicates that the abstract includes substantively all information provided in the source document. iii Kurdistan and the Kurds 10000. AID. Congressional Presentation, FY 1995: Part 173: Sustainable Development and Humanitarian Assistance: Humanitarian Assistance: Introduction. District of Columbia: AID, February 28, 1994. [95H-04803] [19940228] The United States has a long and generous tradition of providing assistance to the victims of man-made and natural disasters. The USAID request for funding for FY 1995 consists of International Disaster Assistance -- $170 million, including $20 million for a new Transition Initiative. Through the US Department of Agriculture, we are requesting $773 million for PL-480 Title II activities: $383 million for emergency food aid and $390 million for regular development programs. Humanitarian assistance programs for refugees are administered by the Department of State through the Migration and Refugee Assistance Appropriation and the Emergency Refugee and Migration Assistance Fund and are discussed in a separate Congressional Budget Presentation. US funding for emergency humanitarian assistance has increased dramatically in recent years. During the 1980s, the median annual level for international disaster assistance was approximately $51 million. In FY 1993, the total was $219 million. Between FY 1989 and FY 1993, emergency feeding programs, including both Title II and Sec 416(b) surplus commodities, increased from $205.8 million to $590.7 million. This surge in requirements results in large measure from the increasing number of complex emergencies which the world now confronts -- complex because they involve political and even military conflict which impedes the delivery of relief assistance to innocent civilians. Moreover, these man-made disasters are proving very difficult to resolve, so relief requirements can continue for years, rather than the few months of emergency needs which is typical for natural disasters. Bosnia, Sudan, Somalia, Angola, Liberia and Northern Iraq are all examples of this form of disaster. Even natural disasters now appear to have greater impact. As populations grow and people crowd into urban slums and onto marginally viable and unsafelands, the toll from natural disasters such as earthquakes, floods and prolonged drought increases along with the costs of humanitarian response. In providing assistance to meet this growing challenge, USAID will continue to give top priority to saving lives and minimizing human suffering. However, it is also important to recognize the interdependence of USAID's humanitarian and development objectives and to develop new assistance instruments to support both. Recent experience has provided four lessons that will guide our programs of humanitarian assistance. First, humanitarian assistance is integral to the process of promoting sustainable development. Emergency humanitarian assistance relieves suffering and stabilizes nations that have experienced man-made and natural disasters. Longer-term humanitarian assistance such as maternal and child feeding programs can provide a social safety net to relieve the worst aspects of poverty as development takes place. Typical humanitarian crises such as famine, civil conflict, chronic poverty and the inability to respond effectively to natural disasters increasingly result directly from failures of development. Humanitarian assistance is a necessary stop-gap response that helps nations recover to the point where they can address the larger issues of development. The transition from disaster or civil conflict is itself a crisis. From the political point of view, it is best to address such crises early, before famine and social disorder become established and the momentum of civil conflict becomes irresistible, and before the cost of reconstruction grows geometrically. From the development point of view, it is best to arrest conflict and buttress institutions before social structures collapse. Second, increasing attention must be given to preparation for man-made and natural disasters and to prevention or mitigation of their effects. Prevention, especially of man-made disasters, requires attention to policy, planning and strengthening local capacities. Disaster preparation also demands careful examination of relief efforts and recovery plans and the assumptions on which they are based -- before disaster strikes. Local politics and government policies are the hidden components of all disasters, even natural ones, for they can ease the impact of calamity or make it worse. USAID's field missions, with their close working relationships with host governments, play an invaluable leadership role in helping governments in vulnerable developing countries prepare for disasters and in designing projects that fully reflect the threat from natural and man-made disasters. Third, the United States cannot bear the burden alone. We must collaborate with other donors and encourage them to contribute their share of the spiraling costs of relief. Multilateral leadership, especially from the United Nations, is frequently essential to resolve underlying conflicts peacefully and to prevent discord from turning into crisis and societal breakdown. Fourth, USAID's humanitarian activities mandate cooperation at home and abroad. The United States must use its resources carefully and forge partnerships with other providers of humanitarian assistance from the United States, the international donor community and the developing nations themselves. US private voluntary organizations (PVOs), in particular, are essential to successful programs of humanitarian assistance. Indigenous nongovernmental organizations (NGOs) and the local private sector can also be critical partners in formulating and implementing participatory, community-level programs for disaster prevention, mitigation, preparedness, rehabilitation and reconstruction. In the aftermath of disaster, their involvement is essential to the restoration of infrastructure, social services, food security, and local political institutions. Moreover, longer-term rehabilitation and recovery programs to achieve sustainable growth at the national level must build upon grass-roots activities that involve and empower local communities and individuals. These lessons have clear relevance to relief programs following natural disasters. They also suggest the importance of effectively addressing so-called transitional situations - those cases where countries try to emerge from a national conflict, a significant political transition or a major national disaster such as a prolonged drought. For these countries, the timely provision of assistance can help revitalize society, reinforce institutions, and establish or preserve national order. These countries have special needs that are not addressed by traditional disaster relief or long-term programs of sustainable development: for example, the re-integration of dislocated populations, including demobilized soldiers; restoration of elementary security and infrastructure; and the creation of political institutions. Transitional nations often are poised simultaneously for either growth or chaos. Given the opportunity and the risks -especially from the failure to act quickly and effectively -- the donor community must try to respond. Humanitarian assistance is not an end in itself, but an integral part of an overall strategy for sustainable development. By helping nations acquire the means to prepare for and respond to disasters, and by helping them return to the path of economic and social development, USAID can measurably contribute to a more peaceful and prosperous world. [=] 10001. ARGK. "The Beginning Of The Formation Of People's Power." Statement From The Headquarters Of The ARGK On The Occasion Of The 11th Anniversary Of The Armed Liberation Struggle In Kurdistan (Including the Kurdistan War Balance: 8/15/19948/15/1995). People's Liberation Army of Kurdistan (ARGK) August 8, 1995. Translated from Kurdistan Rundbrief 18/95. [99H-16918] [19950808] On August 15, we will enter the 12th year of fighting in our national liberation struggle against Turkish colonial fascism, which is seeking to eradicate our people from history. We greet our people and all humanity on this 11th anniversary of our national liberation 1 Kurdistan and the Kurds struggle, which is one of the most legitimate and humane struggles in history, directed against one of the most barbaric regimes in the entire world. Our national liberation struggle, which began on 8/15/1984 with a few propaganda groups, reached the stage of 'Serhildan' (popular uprising) by the early 1990s following a long phase of guerrilla warfare. Today, our experienced and powerful guerrilla army has reached the stage when liberated zones will be established. The past year was very significant, both in terms of the fiascos which the enemy suffered, as well as the aspects of our own development. The year 1994 was a year of intensive and heavy war. The colonial fascist Turkish Republic was forced to rely on major assistance from its allies, particularly Germany and the United States. Our guerrilla forces waged heroic resistance against the massive counterrevolutionary attacks and not only were able to keep the national reality of Kurdistan alive in the face of these brutal assaults, but they also transformed last year into a year of some of the most significant developments our national liberation struggle has seen so far. Last year, the PKK, which leads our struggle and our people's liberation army, carried out its 5th Party Congress. The realization of such a meeting with a long period of preparation shows the high level which our national liberation struggle has reached, destroying all of the plans which the enemy had made. Another significant development last year was the fact that there wasn't only heavy fighting between our guerrilla forces and the fascist Turkish army in northwest Kurdistan, but in south Kurdistan as well. The military operation which was launched by the Turkish army during Newroz has created a situation of war in south Kurdistan which continues to exist in different forms. This Turkish attack has helped to unify north and south Kurdistan, and steps are now being taken by our forces to create joint military strategy and tactics in all regions of Kurdistan. The resistance by our forces against the Turkish attacks in south Kurdistan turned their operation into a failure and the Turkish army became bogged down in south Kurdistan. In this way, the revolution in north Kurdistan is being transported to the south and is influencing the population there. The people of south Kurdistan are on the side of our revolution and they support it. South Kurdistan has become an important strategic region for us and it is controlled by our guerrilla forces. Thus, a new revolutionary phase has begun in south Kurdistan. This phase in south Kurdistan, just like in north Kurdistan, is the beginning of the formation of people's power. That is the reality in Kurdistan today. The imperialists and colonialists, who have realized that this reality does not fit with their interests, have gathered together collaborationist forces with the aim of halting revolutionary developments. But these dangerous counterrevolutionary measures will be defeated by us. We have not been blind to these plans, and our revolutionary positions, which we have struggled for, will destroy these plots and we will teach the necessary lessons to all those who planned them. In conjunction with the 5th Congress of the PKK, the stage which was developed in northwest Kurdistan in the spring and summer of this year is on the path to victory for our progressive struggle. We have inflicted serous blows on the fascist Turkish army in the region between the Zagros mountains and Dersim, and between the Taurus mountains and Serhat. As our guerrilla struggle in northern and central areas becomes further anchored, we are rapidly approaching victory in Botan and the Zagros region. Now is the time when we will seek to establish liberated zones and people's power based on the line of victory. The balance of the last year of fighting is proof of this. Kurdistan War Balance: 8/15/1994-8/15/1995: During the past year in Kurdistan, there were 3281 armed encounters in the form of attacks, ambushes, assaults, executions, mine actions, and battles between Turkish army troops and our guerrilla forces. We know of Turkish casualties for about two-thirds of these encounters, but the results of the other one-third are unknown to us. Of the casualty figures known to us, a total of 6493 Turkish soldiers were killed, including 209 officers, 19 lower-ranking officers, 74 special team commandos, and 6191 normal soldiers. In addition to these, 1099 village guards, including 9 village guard chiefs, and 285 agents and contra-guerrillas were killed. Therefore, a total of 7877 enemy forces were killed, and an unknown number were wounded. During the same time period, we took 365 enemy forces prisoner, including 1 lieutenant, 1 lower-ranking officer, 11 soldiers, 5 sentries, 303 village guards, and 44 agents and contra-guerrillas. We also confiscated the following military equipment from the Turkish army during the past year: 10 heavy machine guns; 101 medium machine guns; 18 sniper rifles; 594 infantry weapons; 122868 rounds of ammunition; 14 mortars; 54 flame throwers; 27 rocket launchers; 195 rockets; 6 grenade launchers; 256 hand grenades; 56 radios; 12 flare guns; 34 night vision glasses; 97 binoculars; 1194 mines; and 2 mine detectors. During the past year, we completely destroyed the following: 2 airplanes; 6 helicopters; 10 tanks; 72 panzers; 204 army vehicles; 1 MIT vehicle; 146 village guard vehicles; 69 state vehicles; 59 pieces of construction equipment; 1 radar facility; and 2 radar stations. We also damaged 2 helicopters, 1 train, and 28 state buildings. Our forces also carried out 11 acts of sabotage (bombings) against the KerkukYumurtalek oil pipeline. Since 8/15/1994, we have completely destroyed 4 enemy military installations and forced the enemy to abandon and flee from another 8. Since Newroz 1995, a total of 73 villages have been forcibly evacuated by the Turkish army, 43 of these in south Kurdistan and the other 30 in north Kurdistan, and 73 rural villagers have been killed by Turkish troops, 47 in south Kurdistan and 26 north Kurdistan. In the year that has passed since 8/15/1994, 1286 of our fighters have fallen as martyrs in confrontations with Turkish forces. Another 399 have been wounded. In addition to these martyrs, 6 popular militia members have fallen and 14 of our fighters were wounded and taken prisoner by the Turkish army. During the past year, we have consistently proven that our army, which has developed through 11 years of struggle, is an unbeatable force which can secure the survival and defence of our people. We now find ourselves at the starting point of creating our lasting victory. May the history of the struggle of our people stride forward with many new August 15 advances! [=] 10002. ARGK. ARGK Balance Of The War In Kurdistan, 1997: "The Enemy Lost 8439 Men..." People's Liberation Army of Kurdistan (ARGK), January 1, 1998. [99H-16916] [19980101] On 1/1/1998, the Press Office of the Headquarters of the People's Liberation Army of Kurdistan (ARGK) released its balance for the war in Kurdistan in 1997: From the period of 1/1/1997-1/1/1998, there were a total of 2306 armed clashes between the ARGK, the Turkish military, and KDP peshmergas. The ARGK carried out 540 ambushes and 216 raids on enemy targets. There were also 24 attacks, 451 firefights, 97 acts of sabotage, 98 roadblocks, and 272 other actions. The results of 1542 of the total 2306 clashes are mostly or partially known to the ARGK. The results of the other 764 clashes are unknown. The enemy lost a total of 8439 men. The Turkish military lost 74 officers, 2759 soldiers, and 78 police agents. Among the 2713 collaborators killed were 597 village guards and 78 KDP commanders. The number of enemies wounded was more than double the total killed. During the year, 5 helicopters, including 2 Super Cobra attack helicopters, were shot down and 315 military vehicles were destroyed. Another 6 military vehicles were confiscated by our forces. The Turkish military carried out 615 air raids in South and North Kurdistan. The Turkish military carried out 262 operations. Our forces 2 Kurdistan and the Kurds lost 986 heroic guerrilla fighters. Our forces confiscated the following weapons and equipment: 21 20-mm anti-aircraft cannons; 18 mortars and grenade launchers; 82 heavy machineguns; 86 heavy rocket launchers; 14 light rocket launchers; 14 MG-3 machineguns; 401 handgrenades; 609 AK-47 Kalaschnikow assault rifles; 145 G-3 rifles; 78 radios; 241 mines; 485 rockets; 6 mine detectors. (Source: Kurdistan-Rundbrief, No.3, Vol.11, 10.2.1998) [=] the conspiracy has not ended. This conspiracy is comprehensive. It does not only target the leadership of the PKK, the PKK and the Kurdish people, but also the people of the Middle Eastern. The PKK is the first on the slate. There are various reasons for this. We should be aware that after this [the PKK], they will develop other parts of the plot. Although the US and Israel deny any involvement in this plot [against Mr. Ocalan], it is obvious that they are directly responsible for it. This plot was carried out by them. Turkey does not have such capability or power. Turkey does not have the power to go and conduct an operation like this in Kenya. We know Turkey very well. It is a window dressing to say that Turkey went to Kenya and conducted this operation. The basics of this operation were carried out by the US and by Israel. Also, these two states involved some other countries and personalities in this plot. For example, they used Russia, Greece, Kenya and even some traitor Kurds too. But in essence, this conspiracy is the work of the US and Israel. This is clear. This plot was carried out in violation of all international laws. It is a piracy. This plot targets the will of our people. The honor of our people was trampled on. They [kidnappers] behaved very despicably. No one should expect us, or demand from us, to behave indifferently against these plotters. This is very clear. Generally speaking, it was the [disinterested] attitude of Europe that paved the way to this plot. Because our Chairman came to Europe, stretched his hand to Europe, insisted on a political solution [to Kurdish question]. Unfortunately Europe did not shake the hand of our party leadership, pretended not to see. In this sense, Europe acted hypocritically, did not play its positive role. If Europe had behaved honorably, this plot would not have ended like this. Europe's hypocrisy played an important role in the hands of the conspirators. In this sense, at least, Europe should see its role in this plot. Europe has both a historical and a current responsibility in the existing reality [of the Kurds]. At least, it should see its role [in the Kurdish tragedy] and not make a mistake from now on. It should protect our leader's right to life. Europe should fulfill its legal and moral responsibilities. Especially Italy should do its utmost to fulfill its responsibility since our leader sought asylum in that country. Not only Italy, but all European states and governments should pressure Turkey in this regard. At least, they should safeguard our leader's right to life. Likewise, his interrogation should be safeguarded within the framework of the international law. If he is to be interrogated, he should be interrogated under the guaranties of an international court. Turkey is a fascist state. Even Europe knows that Turkey will never conduct a fair trial. Also, Europe can sense what is awaiting our leader. Given such fears, Europe has the responsibility to guarantee our leader's right to life and his right to a fair trial in an international court. If these forces [states] do not fulfill these responsibilities, then, no international law can bind us, shall bind us. Because, it would be a great injustice to us if Europe expects us to be loyal to international laws when so many international laws have been violated by so many acts of piracy [in the kidnapping of our leader]. We have obeyed the international laws. Our Chairman signed the Geneva Conventions - Europe knows this fact. But, as reward for this compliance, our leader was greeted with an act of piracy. Europe remained silent about this. It must accept its responsibility by all means. Our people know the plotters of this conspiracy, they will know them even better. But knowing them is not enough, our people should use their rights to defend themselves. Our people face a vicious aggression. They face annihilation. The honor of our people is violated. Therefore, our people have a legitimate right to defend themselves. However, our people should do so within the boundaries of democracy, lawfully. The Turkish republic and some European powers are striving to provoke the Kurds to go beyond the lawful boundaries. This is in their interests because these powers are trying to cover up for their conspiracy. We Kurds should not be duped 10003. ARGK. Former ARGK Commander Surrenders To The KDP. People's Liberation Army Of Kurdistan (ARGK) (Artesa Rizgariya Gele Kurdistan). Translated from 'Kurdistan-Rundbrief' 7/11, April 7, 1998. [99H-16915] [19980407] Semdin Sakik, a former commander of the People's Liberation Army of Kurdistan (ARGK), surrendered himself to the KDP on March 16, 1998. In the Turkish media, this event was played up as evidence of the collapse of the Kurdistan Workers Party (PKK), and reports of Sakik's defection were published in Turkish papers just as the annual Newroz celebrations were set to begin in Kurdistan. In Kurdish circles close to the PKK, however, the event was relatively unimportant. Semdin Sakik had been a controversial figure in the movement for some time. Among other things, he was responsible for the attack which brought an end to the PKK's first unilateral cease-fire in 1993, and he was responsible for other mistakes as well. In recent weeks, after he refused to change his conduct, he was removed of all of his positions of command and told he could leave and go wherever he wanted. Now he is with the KDP, who may hand him over to the Turkish military. On the evening of Newroz, Kani Yilmaz, the former European spokesman of the National Liberation Front of Kurdistan (ERNK), spoke about Semdin Sakik on the Kurdish satellite channel MED-TV: "In the ranks of the guerrilla, Sakik had for years been disobeying orders and had become a thorn in the side of the PKK. His flight from the movement is the flight of a worthless personality who has become a traitor. The Turkish state and the Turkish intelligence service have been working for a long time to get their hands on Sakik, that's why they chose to announce this news at this particular time with such a degree of media hype. But for the PKK, the event is of little significance." [=] 10004. ARGK. Statement From Commander Cemal Bayik: Victory, Sooner Or Later, Will Be Ours! People's Liberation Army Of Kurdistan (ARGK). UK: MED-TV, February 17, 1999. [99H-16913] [19990217] (The following is the statement of Cemal Bayik, a member of the Central Committee of the Kurdistan Workers Party (PKK) and one of the commanders of the ARGK which were broadcast on Med-TV's Major News Bulletin on February 17, 1999.) In the name of all our freedom fighters, I bow with respect to the memory of our people massacred by the Israeli murderers. I hope Germany pays attention to this massacre and does not hush up this crime. A conspiracy had been initiated against our leader on October 9, 1998. However, due to the great strivings of our leader it was preempted. As you know, this conspiracy succeeded quite recently. It is not an accident that the conspiracy was developed and was set to work right after the Washington agreement [between Jalal Talabani and Mesud Barzani]. This conspiracy is directly related to that agreement. The coalition between England, Israel, Turkey and the US initiated a new intervention into the Middle East. This intervention targeted the PKK movement and its leader first and foremost. In a sense, with the agreement in Washington, this intervention was put to work. They tried to eliminate our leader on October 9, but our leader blocked the attempt at that time. What has happened these few days is the result of that conspiracy. This is highly significant. Even though, they took the first step in this intervention, in this plot and succeeded, 3 Kurdistan and the Kurds into this. We should not allow it. Our people should indeed strive to protect their democratic rights, their honor, their national rights, but within the boundaries of the law. Our people in [Europe] have some rights and they should be used in the most correct manner. The Kurdish youth have the most responsibility. They should prove that they are loyal to Apo. The youth can play a dynamic role in defending the honor of our people. Especially in the metropolitan cities of Turkey and in our homeland. They should lead the Kurdish uprisings (serhildans). The youth have these sacred tasks. All evidence points out that it is the youth, the young people who shoulder these tasks. Our people are proud of our youth and that pride will never vanish. We will call your attention to another issue. Some of our people immolate themselves. This is dead wrong. This act surely makes our enemies happy. Therefore, stop this act at once. You should remember that our Chairman forbade self-immolation. Don't immolate yourselves! If you are serious about defending yourselves, serious about defending your honor against your enemies, then, immolating oneself is not the way at all. To the contrary, you should organize yourselves and use every right in your disposal to defend yourselves against your enemies. This way only, shall you have a chance to stand against your enemy. Don't think even about any other way. The most appropriate way of putting up a stand against them is to become an Apo yourself. This was the wish of our leader. He had brought it to your attention in the past. That is what you should do. Great tasks are awaiting our people in each part of Kurdistan. Our people have risen and are claiming, owning their leader. This is indeed an honorable mobilization. No force on earth can stand in the path of this awakening and should not try it. Our people will use every avenue to realize their legitimate rights. Our people should resist against the aggressors. They should never take a step back. To take a step back is death for our people, it will spell doom for our people. Never forget this! Always keep it in mind. However, as I have already mentioned, be aware of the provocations of the enemy when you take a stand. Make sure that you remain within the boundaries of the laws, be extra-careful not to slip into unlawfulness. You must follow the directives and instructions of our party. Yes, you have your initiative and you do have the right to resist. But must use this initiative correctly, lawfully. The enemy attacks us without mercy. He wants to pilfer our homeland, rob our identity and end our life. He considers these to be too much for us. Indeed, if we have an iota of dignity, self-respect, and sense of honor, we have to defend our homeland, our identity and our life. We should not let our honor be debased. We must use every right in our disposal to resist to the end. Until now, our leadership exerted extraordinary efforts to prevent a Turkish-Kurdish war among the civilians. However, such restraint was rewarded by [the Turkish State] with this piracy. From now on, no one can restrain our people like him. But at times, even our Chairman was strained in his efforts to curb our people [in the face of atrocities of the Turkish forces]. He had warned the people on several occasions. Our party shows the same care, however, the most recent event [kidnapping] burst the seams of the patience of our people. It seems like, they are in a reactive mode. One should understand this. Kurdish people are not responsible for all that is happening, those who have imposed genocide and annihilation on the Kurds, those powers that have trampled on their honor are the real culprits. In no way shall we be held responsible for the events, we are not responsible for them. The Turkish officials are drunk with victory. They are telling us we should turn ourselves in, that we are in a dead end. Again, persons like Dogu Ergil [a Kemalist, social scientist] expect that we will disperse, dissolve ourselves. There are some collaborators who expect this too. They will receive a single response from us: They will be disappointed. Those who sow the wind, will harvest the storm. They will always receive a response. They will wait in vain. They will harvest the storm. I would like to stress a point here: They should not touch a single hair of our leader. We are warning them. If they harm our leader, they will have to bear the consequences. They must respect our leader. No one should miscalculate or take a wrong step. They should remember that every PKK militant, every Kurd with some honor is a fedai [self-sacrificer for a cause]. Never forget that. No one should play with the honor of our people any more. No one can gamble over the blood of our numerous martyrs, not even dare. Our people and friends should have faith in our party, in our army and in our front. Even though we lost a great leader, this does not mean that our party and army is weakened. Our party, our army and our front are on their feet. This is obvious. No one should worry about this. Fears like, "can the party survive, will the revolution continue, what will happen now, can something go wrong," are irrelevant. Such fears are void. There is absolutely nothing to worry about. The current unity in our party, the loyalty to its Chairman is stronger than ever. I can state with confidence that, in the coming days, it will be even much stronger. Every patriot should have confidence in this. Taking the likelihood of an event like this, Chairman Apo took all the measures so insure the continuity of the party and the struggle in his absence. Today every Kurd is a candidate to become an Apo. The Kurdish people and Apo are unified. Now, every Kurd is an Apo. I have some messages to the people of Europe, to the democratic and patriotic circles and to the Greek people. The European people, the Greek people, all of the revolutionary and democratic segments should know that the protests were against the powers involved in this plot [kidnapping]. We have nothing but friendship for the European and the Greek people. Our response was directed against those who hatched the plot. That is what it was. They played with the dignity of a nation, they toyed with its will. The plotters want to darken the future of the Kurds. We are sure you understand this and you will support us. We expect this. We expect that you will take a stand against these conspirators and call them to account. The Kurds are an oppressed nation, they are a dispossessed nation. All values that the Kurds possess are trampled upon. We are trying to pull the humanity and the honor of the Kurds from underneath the feet of the oppressors. We hope you see it this way too. In this context, you should support Kurdish people. We invite everyone, the democrats and the socialists, the human rights activists to be in solidarity with our people. There should be no place for conspirators and plots in our world. We would like to shout this out loud! We invite all the powers that claim to be for humanity to prove their humanity. Otherwise, humanity will be deeply wounded. Everyone should support the just struggle of the Kurdish people, to preserve their humanity from this disgrace. Our people stood up for their leader; they rose up to regain their humanity. We salute this. As freedom fighters, we will put forth all we have to be worthy of this. Victory, sooner or later, will be ours. It will be our people's. Long Live Our National Leader Chairman Ocalan! Long Live Our Struggle For Freedom And Independence! (Cemal Bayik, People's Liberation Army of Kurdistan (ARGK), February 17, 1999.) [=] 10005. ARGK. Statement From Commander Osman Ocalan: Enough Is Enough. Take Your Hands Off Our People. Do Not Force Us To Use Our Right To Self-Defense! People's Liberation Army Of Kurdistan (ARGK), February 17, 1999. [99H-16914] [19990217] In The Name Of The Central Committee Of The Kurdistan Workers Party (PKK) And Commanders Of The People's Liberation Army Of Kurdistan (ARGK): This is our call to our people in North Kurdistan, East Kurdistan, South Kurdistan and (mini) South Kurdistan, to our people in the metropoles and abroad, to all democratic forces and 4 Kurdistan and the Kurds human right organizations: The October 9th international conspiracy aimed at our leadership has reached a new dimension with the hijacking of our leader to Turkey. First and foremost, the actions taken against our leadership are the prime examples of international piracy; they are flagrant violation of international law and basic humanitarian rules. The behavior of countries that champion "human rights" vis a vis the Turkish attacks on our leadership is disgraceful. Our peoples desire to express their longing for peace and freedom has been blocked. Our leadership came to Europe to pursue peace. As the leader of people threatened by genocide, people who have sacrificed everything for an honorable and just existence, he extended the hand of peace and asked that this hand be shaken. However, those who talk of human rights and democracy have adamantly refused the hand of peace, they have instead engaged in acts of piracy that violate all norms of international law and humanity in the pursuit of our leadership. Clearly, this conspiracy is directed at our people. This is a conspiracy by imperialist forces sworn to deny our people the right to live in freedom and peace they so deserve. The western powers have demonstrated unequivocally that their petty interests supersede the rights of people to live in peace and freedom. They want us to submit to the Turkish genocide machine, like the lambs in slaughterhouse. The attacks on our leadership is a significant element of genocide directed towards our people. Obviously our people should react to this genocide. Freedom can be attained only through struggle against the imperialist interests. Let it be clear: The imperialists and the reactionary forces around the world has sacrificed our people's quest for peace and freedom to their dirty interests. They desecrated all human values (for the sake of Turkey). What will be the response of our people? Without a doubt, the wishes of imperialists and the reactionaries will not be realized. Kurdish people, both inside the country and abroad, will intensify their struggle for freedom as directed by our leadership. The hopes of imperialists and reactionaries will be dashed. As for any people, freedom is our birthright. Freedom from genocide is our natural right. No one can take away these rights from us. No economic or political interest can justify infringement on our right to freedom and peace. The imperialists are asking us to consent to genocide. What a folly! The Kurds live for freedom, for honor and dignity. Let no less be expected! Our people shall continue their struggle for freedom under the leadership of Chairman Apo. Life shall become unbearable for the Turkish state. Our party, army and liberation front will accomplish these objectives in the name of our people. We will extract a heavy price from the Turkish State for the act of piracy against our leadership. Every Kurd, in particular, those living in the country and the metropoles should take whatever action they deem appropriate on this basis. They should employ all the means available to them. We will not bow to enemy, we will only fight it. The Kurds living abroad should not put themselves on fire, they should put the enemy on fire. They should avoid the armed violence, but use every legitimate avenue to defend their national rights and the leadership. Let no one interfere with this struggle. The US is extremely hostile to our people. We have refrained from any hostile act against the United States. The more we refrained from hostile acts against this country, the more intense American hostility towards our people has became. The American authorities have shamelessly justified the act of piracy by Turkey. All this in pursuit of its dirty interests. The Zionist State of Israel, ever concerned about its dirty interests, has joined Turkey in denying our people their legitimate aspirations. Israel armed the Turkish army and cooperated with Turkey in all international matters. We wish not to make enemies with the Israeli people. However, the harder we tried not to make enemies with the Israeli people, the more Israel served Turkey, a criminal enterprise, in oppressing our people. In addition, Germany, Italy, Russia and in particular Greece have taken part in the conspiracy against our people. The Greek foreign minister, Mr. Pangolos, has gone so far as to insult our people. Neither the Greek government, nor its representatives have any right to insult our people; they may only apologize to our people for their misdeeds. The threat (by the Greek government) to hand over the Kurds in Greece to Turkey just illustrates how bizarre this regime has become. Greeks are honorable, trustworthy people; they appreciate friendship. They will not be tools to the misguided policies of the Greek government. We call on the Greek people, Greek patriots and democratic forces in Greece to stand tall against the present government's dark intentions. Furthermore, we call on all forces taking part or providing support for crimes against Kurdish nation to desist from this behavior. You have over the centuries supported suppression of Kurds by the Ottomans and later Turkey. Enough is enough. Take your hands off our people. Do not force us to use our right to self-defense! We call on the forces of democracy and peace and defenders of human rights to stop their silent approval of the slaughter our people are facing. We further call on them to stand against the abduction of our leadership by Turkey, a state best known for torture and murder. It is a basic requirement of being a human that you should raise your voice against Turkish piracy. Be reminded that humanity is not about material interest! Only a neutral, international tribunal may try our leadership. The Turkish state has no right to judge our people or our leadership. The only one to account for its actions is Turkey. The Turkish State has murdered hundreds of thousands of Kurds, expelled millions from their lands and forced them into poverty. It is the Turkish state that must account for its crimes. Neither our leadership, nor members of our party and army, not even a single Kurd is accountable to Turkish state. We insist that Turkey account to our people for its crimes. Our party is in unison with all its members and our army is in unison with all its fighters. We are ready, able and willing to apply directives our leadership fully. We will extract a heavy price from the Turkish state for the conspiracy it has engaged in against our leadership. Let no representative of the Turkish state have peace at home. We call on our people in the metropoles to act on this basis. We call on our people to keep in mind that the only honorable life available to us, the Kurds is to fight for freedom. The party central committee and army command ask that you be prepared to act on this basis. Your actions should be intensified and sustained. We reiterate that our leadership can not be asked to account, only the barbaric Turkish state, the murderer's state, may account for its crimes. We will intensify and expand our war efforts, taking all necessary actions against the Turkish state. The best way to defend our leadership is to intensify our struggle, our war on this basis. Once again we call on our people in Europe to refrain from armed violence, but use all legitimate tools available them to advance Kurdish national rights. We reiterate that our party, army and people will run to victory on chairman Apo's road. (Osman Ocalan, People's Liberation Army of Kurdistan (ARGK), February 17, 1999.) [=] 10006. ARGK; Kurdistan Information Centre (UK). ARGK Command Camp Press Release. ARGK Command Base, July 4, 1997. Translated from Turkish original by Kurdistan Information Centre, London, July 1997. [99H-16917] [19970704] A successful operation was concluded on July 3, 1997 against the manufacturing centre for the Turkish army's weapons of mass destruction at Kirikkale Machine & Chemical Plant by the Urban Attack Detachment operating under the command of our base camp. We exercised our lawful right to self-defence in designating the Kirikkale Machine & Chemical Plant as a target being the source of the manufacture of weapons of mass destruction which the occupying forces of the Turkish army deploy in 5 Kurdistan and the Kurds their so-called "bombs which will turn the mountains into plains". The bombs which have been used most recently in the invasion of south Kurdistan, the slaughter of our people and to destroy the environment of our homeland have for years been manufactured at that site. The weapons produced by this same plant since it first opened have caused the utter destruction of 3000 of our villages, the slaughter of thousands of our civilians and numerous extra-judicial killings in violation of the Geneva Convention to which Turkey is a signatory, and in infringement of the laws governing armed conflict being unlawfully deployed in an internal war. This particular type of operation was carried out against a specific military target in order to eliminate the direct threat of death which this plant has posed to our peoplethese many long years, and the operation was successful. From this operation it must be taken in the nature of a warning that even before the newly-forming government starts work, it is evident that an opportunity for a solution must be found in order to prevent the escalation of the conflict. Failing this in the same way that we have proven successful against military targets our ARGK Urban Revenge Unit possesses the necessary strength and preparedness to undermine both the economy as well as the tourism industry. We do not want to escalate the war. But it is only natural in view of the scale of force being brought against us that our own response should be effective. Unless there is some understanding, if these operations do not cease, if the war should carry on as at present, and the government fail to take positive steps we will respond even more effectively and will expand our organisational capacity within the army and security forces, just as this last operation illustrates. Our action has also proven successful because it is at the same time carried out in the spirit of revenge necessitated by the courageous death in selfsacrifice of Zilan, a great commander, the massacres of defenceless civilians in south Kurdistan executed by the fascist Turkish army in collaboration with the treacherous KDP, and with the tacit support of the United States and Israel, and for the lives of those who were deliberately burnt to death in Sivas. It is the other side which is responsible for the escalation of the war in deliberate defiance of our appeal for peace and despite the fact that we are prepared to commence a political dialogue. They seek to create an even more dangerous situation and status quo in the south of our country. We are warning the government quite openly. The Turkish people must also be aware that we will not remain silent in the face of such a dirty and vile war. These bombs are being bought with the money which at the same time as it squeezes the life out of the Turkish people are daily deployed to wipe out the Kurdish people whether in the mountains or in the villages. In this same sense, this latest operation may serve as a warning that the next blow will be to tourism, the economy and the full scale escalation of the war. [=] prepared to pay any price to protect our future and our rights. It has been decided that as long as our people are denied all of their legitimate rights, and until Chairman Apo has won his freedom, the struggle against the Turkish state will be continued and intensified in every field, until we reach our goal. According to this, our army and our people are in a legitimate phase of action. Every region of Turkey is now a region of war. This means that even the tourist regions of the Turkish state are included. For this reason, these sensitive and historical days must not be confused with others. In order to prevent harm to human lives, tourists from around the world, but especially from Europe, should not travel to Turkey. The affected states should warn their citizens, and the tourism industry should not organize trips to Turkey, since the lives of tourists could be put at risk. Should tragic events occur, because the proper authorities fail to heed our warnings, we cannot be held responsible. Therefore we take this opportunity to inform the press and the international public, and all foreign citizens who are considering their travel plans. (People's Liberation Army of Kurdistan (ARGK) March 15, 1999.) (Source: Solidariteitsgroep Turkije-Kurdistan; Translated by Arm The Spirit). [=] 10008. Abbas, Zainab; Hyman, Nicholas; Blake, Cecile [editor]; AbuOsba, Saleh K. [editor]. Libya In Perspective: Scholars' View of a Revolutionary Nation: Part 25: Washington's Oil Weapon. S.L.: Ministry of Information, N.D. [1987]. [99H-08043] [19870101] The Sirte agression was part of a stridently chauvinist and bellicose mood among the policy makers of the world's most powerful industrialised nation. Even towards his western allies, such as West Germany and Britain, Reagan appeared ''Bellicose''1 in his announcements regarding the practicality of "limited" nuclear war. Towards the Middle East and the Third World as a whole, his incipient racism was mixed with a pseudomoralising "Americanism." To saddle Reagan with all the responsibility for this "return to Nixonism" however, ignores Carter's slide into similarly crude and interventionist attitudes, in terms both of rhetoric as well as practice. (The aborted "hostage rescue" mission in Iran is considered by many observers as having been intended to bring about a change of government in Iran). Already in 1977, a sympathetic historian commented on Carter's foreign policies: "So much of Washington politics is conducted at the top of one's voice. . . But the Carter administration seems to be setting new records for noise". Washington was ready to resurrect the gamut of anachronistic pressures. This included military brinkmanship, the encouragement and virtual creation of surrogate client regimes to threaten the recalcitrant Third World (as in Sudan, Egypt, Somalia and other Washington-backed, repressively ruled societies), and compelling US companies to attempt pressure on governments with which the US was not at war. Public opinion wanted "patriotic reporting," to judge from the Newsweek reader who thanked "God the Reagan Administration has the guts to stand up to those two bit Arab nations with their demented dictators."Washington's orchestration of anti'Libyan prejudice was coupled with menacing language—such as the statement by one Reagan strategist: 'We don't necessarily want to kill Qaddafi, we just want to tie him up.'" But more experienced and responsible figures on the United States' political scene did not fail to draw attention to the similarities between the Gulf of Tonkin in 8/1964 which led to the catastrophe of the Vietnam war. The former chairman of the United States Foreign Relations Committee, J. William Fulbright, noted that Sirte was in the same league of lawlessness as Israel with its Baghdad reactor attack. "In recent months there have been many reports in Newsweek and other media that the United States wishes to and is planning to remove Qaddafi by one means or another, and the scenario appears to be unfolding. . .It is of great importance to all people to know how the United States uses its power and how its 10007. ARGK; Solidariteitsgroep Turkije-Kurdistan. Communique: Every Region Of Turkey Is Now A Region Of War! People's Liberation Army Of Kurdistan (ARGK). Amsterdam: Solidariteitsgroep Turkije-Kurdistan, March 15, 1999. [99H-16912] [19990315] After our national leader, Chairman Apo, was kidnapped and handed over to the Turkish state in an international conspiracy which violated all forms of international law, we as a people find ourselves in a new and very special phase of the history of our struggle. On the one hand, every force whose interests do not match those of the USA, Israel, Turkey, and certain European states are accused of terrorism, although these states, by means of an act of terror and piracy, have sought to completely darken our free future. On the other hand, all of our rights and our future, personified in the person of Chairman Apo, are to be destroyed. But we, the Kurdish people, the Kurdish youth, and the militant forces of the ARGK, are 6 Kurdistan and the Kurds purpose is conceived by others," he went on to say. Because US Forces "were deliberately provocative" in their "dramatic use of superior power," Fulbright reminded Americans that "since David confronted Goliath, small and weak people have identified with the underdog." Fulbright warned that "this enthusiastic use of superior force against the background of our reluctance, if not refusal, to negotiate arms reductions with the Russians, and our acceptance with no serious objections of the raids on Lebanon and Baghdad, with American planes, may well lead other nations, our friends included, to believe that we are no longer interested in negotiation rather than confrontation, as we profe sed to be in the era of 'peaceful coexistence' in the early 1970s. . " Fulbright may have been opposed to the use of brutal force, but he certainly did not challenge the general American pattern of using pressure to achieve the United States' goals in the Third Wor}d and elsewhere. His allusion to Washington's desire to "remove" Libya's radical politial sysem "by one means or another" is a symptom of a widening of Reagan's foreign interventionism from basic military bullying to time-honored methods of economic blackmail. Indicative of such a turn in Reagan strastegy was the inclusion of Richard Milhous Nixon in Washington's funeral party for Sadat's obsequies. A commentator felt "revulsion. . . at Mr. Nixon's pre ence" in Cairo, with "everyone acting as if he was respectable." Nixon used this triumphant return to the international political stage to advise an oil boycott of Libya. Though "nothing abashes him, no shame will ever keep Mr. Nixon from an occasion to play statesman," the insensitivity of "Reagan and his people to the symbolism involved is surprising. . tit is not, after all, as if Washington needed to be reminded of what he is." The commentator saw in the tacit rehabilitation of Nixon, as evidenced by the Cairo presence the present administration's desire to retum to the imperial style of presidency favored by the earlier Republicanadministration. According to that view, the President should and can act unilaterally at home and abroad, avoiding the bother of Congressional approval and public discussion... "Abroad the most far-reaching example was Mr. Nixon's assertion that he had the right to bombard Cambodia in the absence of any declaration of war, treaty of Congressional authorisation . . . Mr. Nixon's desire to act alone and by surprise depended on secrecy and often involved secret action by the Central Intelligence Agency. . . At his urgent orders the agency plotted to keep Salvador Allende from his elected office in Chile. "Those past examples of abuse, of overreaching in assertion. of...power, all find echoe in the Reagan administration...This pattern— the desire to bypass Congress and the public—is the same." Sirte was the fruit of "a striking practice of this administration. . . to make enormous commitments without asking Congress first. The President did that with Saudi Arabia when he said casually at a press conference, "we will not permit it to be an Iran:' Then...Haig said. . . that the current US role in Egypt is absolutely vital to our interests in the region and we would treat it accordingly. . ." Does that mean that we are pledged to resist a change of policy by the Egyptians themselves? Resist by American arms? Libya was an obstacle to the revamped dreamworld of American power. "Bright Star" and earlier military exercises came from the same range of destabilising measures as the oil companies' moves urged by Washington. In fact, Felleke Gedle Giorgis, Ethiopian Foreign Minister, spoke of "Bright Star" maneuvres in Egypt, Sudan, Somalia and Oman as intended to "endanger" Ethiopia and her government. He maintained that "the governments of Ethiopia, Libya and South Yemen are constantly threatened with being overthrown by the United States. . . It is this threat and provocation that necessitated the three countries to work together." But United States military pressures—either in the form of practical aggression as in Sirte, or as threats and symbolic occupations as in "Bright Star" did not seem sufficient to bring about the desired results. Nixon's resurgence, in a way symbolised the moment when those in Washington—who would have preferred to win with a clear show of military superiority—decided it was time to reactivate all the old bag of dirty undercover tricks, political and economic If the military alone could not bring about the downfall of the Libyan regime, then some help from within, that is, economic and commercial destabilisation might achieve the goal. Already in 5/1980, "when the remaining diplomats were withdrawn from the US Embassy in Tropoli after the ouster of four Libyan envoys from Washington," the State Department had warned "that US companies should remove US citizens from Libya." The same warning was reissued just after the Sirte incident. Some US employees of Exxon had decided to take Washington's advice and leave Libya by mid-August. Yet there were valid "assurances by the Libyan government" that it would "continue to protect American citizens living there." Though Exxon was "making arrangements" in late August "for the evacuation of 'a number' of dependents of its American employees," other "US oil companies with operations in Libya said their employees. . twill remain." Thus Marathon oil explicitly poured cold water on allegations of post-Sirte chaos or xenophobia in Libya. A Marathon "official. . .Charles Webster" said that employees "reported 'pretty much of a normal situation' in the country following the aerial clash," and insisted that "Marathon currently had no intention to evacuate its employees." The same went for Occidental Petroleum. "The situation right now has cooled, and it may not warrant an evaluation of our people" said a spokesman for the group. He was "maintaining contact with the US State Department concerning events in Libya." Conoco's spokesman also insisted that "our operations over there are normal." Some 2200 "oil company employees and their dependents," without official US representation since 5/1980, had enjoyed—according to Marathon's Webster "protection . . . typical of the security provided by the Libyans to all foreigners living in their country." The sober continuity of the US firms' operations in Libya was not, however, in conformity with the "scenario" Fulbright had warned against.Thus, the companies' commercial and realistic refusal to heed Washington's advice of 1980 was resented by, say, Henry Schuler. This Washington energy consultant, former US Foreign Service officer and oil company executive, wanted Washington to force companies to abandon "Business as usual, regardless of whether that business is pumping Libya's oil, liquifying her gas, clamouring for construction contracts, investing her petrodollars, meeting her import and technology requirements . . . or grasping for any other piece of that...pie." Schuler compared the "unusual bureaucratic and corporate courage" required for such dislocatory presures on Libya as the then imminent Exxon pullout, to "Sadat's personal favour. . . in accepting the dying Shah." The comparison explicitly resented Libya's "aura of invincibility," even after Sirte, and realised the brittle hold the postSadat regime in Egypt has upon the realities of the region. "If America is to instill courage . . . in the new Egyptian government . . . the United States and its allies must break the commercial links" which Libya in Schuler's view relied upon. Though the "allies" outside the Middle East, supposed to be enlisted in Washington's multi-pronged attack against Libya, remained invisible in terms of concerted pressures, the following detail heralded the Exxon pullout. The Reagan administration, urged Schuler, needed to put "some muscle behind its request to American companies to withdraw several thousand American personnel from Libya:' Seeming to bemock the companies' concern to behave responsibly, rather than dance to the bigoted whims of the particular "national hate week" Washington now sought to propel into the minds of the publis Schuler 7 Kurdistan and the Kurds described the companies' claim that they needed "an unequivocal order before they risk the shutdown of Libya's petroleum industry, an embargo on its exports to the United States, the nationalisation of their remaining assets and the possible putting into jeopardy of their personnel: "It is far from certain that they would be happy with such a clarification, but it should be recognised that the State department is equally unwilling and reluctant to accept responsibility and perhaps government liability. So the companies ignore" the State Department's "widely publicised request:' Relishing the imagined prospect of a "hostage situation" with Libya, probably because such an improbable development would not only confirm anti-Arab prejudices but also afford new prospects of military pressures on Libya, Schuler called for a declaration from Washington that US passports were "invalid for Libya:' The "withdrawal of personnel would be designed. . . to give the administration greater freedom of action" in "future provocations:' whether Washington's or Tripoli's "provocations" were meant, was unclear. The withdrawal Schuler advocated "would likely prompt an embargo of shipments" of oil to the US. In contradiction to such pleas for an end to US companies' involvement in Libya, Occidental obtained a new "contract concession" from Libya. The profitability of the ''complicated'' contract" meant, according to an Occidental spokesman in Los Angeles, that apparently "even in a weak market, the company could make money on the lower cost oil:' Quite obviously the alarmist picture sketched by Schuler and by Washington had little connection with the reality as perceived by an American company with experience in Libya herself. Until Exxon's evidently officially inspired move in November, it was clear that after Sirte, "Americans living in Libya—mostly employffl of US oil companies—do not seem to have been affected, nor has Libya made any attempt to cut off oil supplies to the United States." The likelihood of US pressures falling short of outright military intervention was greater after the solidarity other countries expressed with the victim of the Sirte attack began to register in Washington. Important in this connection, as a probable factor in the modification of Washington's inverventionist fever, was the promise by Chadli Bendjedid, the President of Algeria, that Libya would receive "full military backing" from Algeria: "We have affirmed that in the event of an aggression on Libya, Algeria will intervene with its military potential on the side of our people in Libya:' More support for Libya came from South Yemen President, Ali Nasser Mohammed, who said his country would "not remain with folded arms should the fraternal Libyan people face an aggression." [=] to Assad would result in the creation of "hot-confrontation lines" in the Middle East, including the setting up of permanent bases and arsenals in Israel. At the Benghazi meeting, there was a strong similarity in tone between the speeches of Qaddafi, Assad and Yasser Arafat. Qaddafi stated that "in view of the interventionism and the military and economic pressures Washington blatantly applied to the region, we are compelled to defend ourselves and our existence by stepping up our moves:' The report then quoted the PLO chairman's affirmation in the light of Sirte that "struggle is our only course as we face the imperialist onslaught by the US and its agent." The term "its agent" here referred to the Egyptian regime. The essentially defensive meeting in Benghazi, took account of what David Hirst, "just returned from Tripoli" called "a risk of super power involvement": "the Reagan administration seems now more than ever inclined to attribute its Middle East setbacks not to the inherent shortages of its won proteges and policies but to local and Soviet adversaries who profit from them." Hirst found that "no one in Libya doubts that since he took office Reagan has been out to get 'Qaddafi. It alarms and annoys European diplomats. . .as well as American oil companies:' The latter, "resisting administration pressures to reduce their presence in Libya, are reasonably hopeful that, at the end of the day" a new oil price agreement would be reached with Libya, such as Occidental had signed by the start of October. Though Washington probably has not given up all ideas of usin' surrogate forces in a war against Libya, the risk of an Egyptian at tack boomeranging—as General Shazli, the exiled Egyptian leade, suggested it would—was enough to put such a project temporarily on ice. Chances that the Egyptian army might, in fact turn against the present ruling clique and 'liberate' its own country rather than let itself be involved in adventure beyond its borders, must have seemed too high to the Reagan administration. At the same time, the Sudanese regime's pyrotechnics about "attacks on Libya" were at variance with that regime's paranoid isolation from its own people and given Sudan's economic problems making for an extremely volatile situation, Washington could not expect to use Nimeiri and get away with it either. The longest shot Washington could go for was another power outside the region. France was the only serious candidate for such a role. A report from Paul Webster in Paris stated that "some of France's leading secret agents in Africa are to be sacked as a result of a suspected plot to discredit President Mitterrand... "The sacking will take place within a general shake up of the foreign intelligence service, the SDECE, to reinforce a badly-faulted counterespionage section. . . In private meetings, President Mitterrand is making no secret of the fact that there was a deliberate attempt by French agents to draw him into a trap which could have led to warfare between France and Libya. There are reports of "indisciplined and hostile agents" inside the SDECE, while the President is said to have admitted that agents had 'got out of control'. "Fabricated" reports were intended, in Mitterrand's opinion, "to exploit the tense situation in the area and provide a pretext for a war against Libya that Egypt and Sudan would have joined in. It is believed that the agents" now sacked "supported both the military policies of President Giscard and the confrontation tactics with Libya favoured by the United States:' A form of misreporting from the section responsible for reporting from Africa, thus nearly managed to precipitate a proxy war against Libya, according to the "new chiefs of the SDECE appointed by the socialist government to replace men appointed either by the Gaullists or. . .Giscard." Not irresponsible reporting but irresponsible policies on Washington's part, were at the root of Libya's dangerous position. The various attempts to embroil France and 'agent' regimes in the region with Libya were from the same stable of US assumptions as Sirte. At that time, the Soviet 10009. Abbas, Zainab; Hyman, Nicholas; Blake, Cecile [editor]; AbuOsba, Saleh K. [editor]. Libya In Perspective: Scholars' View of a Revolutionary Nation: Part 26: Washington's Oil Weapon. S.L.: Ministry of Information, N.D. [1987]. [99H-08044] [19870101] The concern between "Syria, Southern Yemen, Algeria, Libya and the Palestine Liberation Organization, plus an Iranian representative" was over "ways of countering the latest US-Israeli strategic cooperation plan." The report of the fifth meeting, held in Libya, of the SteadfastnessandConfrontationFront (created in 12/1977) carried the implication that the Front would bless the "treaty of friendship and cooperation concluded with Ethiopia" by Libya and South Yemen. The state of watchfulness evident on the part of Libya and other states threatened by US interventionism, probably encouraged Washington's strategists to go for an economic, rather than steppedup military package of pressures. Qaddafi said at the meeting that the US and Israel had "exceeded the limits" by what President Hafez Assad of Syria reportedly described as "the strategic cooperation agreement reached at talks between.. .Reagan and. . .Begin (which) placed the United States in direct confrontation with the Arabs." This, according 8 Kurdistan and the Kurds Agency, Tass, commenting on the incident, said that "Washington was trying to install military bases throughout the world in order to organise 'various provorative manuevres and show of strength." These bases threatened, above all, the security and independence of developing countries." Tass pilloried "what it termed the international terrorism style of Washington's 'interference' policy. The unfavourable international reaction to Sirte took diverse forms. The cumulative effect seems to have forced Washington's most hawkish elements to stay their hands. If a Moscow commentary might have been expected to disapprove of the aggression against Libya, the swift declarations of other states including Jordan and Italy, confirmed the isolation of US interventionism from the main currents of world opinion. In Italy, "the specially convened session of the Italian Senate's Defence and Foreign Affairs Commission, called "to debate the neutron bomb and the placing of Cruise missiles in Sicily", spoke for "a public opinion deeply disturbed by. . .the 'war of one minute'. . .The shock also went deep because Italy has been trying to maintain a reasonable relationship with Libya, in keeping with the active Italian presence in the central Mediterranean:' There were signs that the Italiangovernment, despite Washington's use of Naples and other base facilities, agreed with Soviet post-Sirte concentration on "the enormous dangers of a permanent presence of American air and naval forces on the territories and in the territorial waters of countries thousands of miles away from the United States." The day after Sirte, a report from Amman described the setting up of "a special committee. . . to discuss a boycott on American products in Jordan," in retaliation "for hostile United States policy towards the Arabs:' The chairman of the new committee "said the 150-member committee had been elected to represent all political, economic, social and professional bodies." Across the Mediterranean, Secretary-General Chedli Klibi of the Arab League drew attention in Tunis to the "particular" irresponsibility of the United States, "as permanent member of the United Nations Security Council:' Klibi's statement denounced US behaviour against Libya, as "the consequences of these maneuvres constitute a violation of the integrity and security of an Arab state." The discrediting of Washington's gunboat diplomacy, primarily outside the United States but also to some extent in it own media via such venerable political figures as Fulbright, quoted above, together with the collapse of Egyptian, Sudanese and possibly French surrogate accords on behalf of the United States, forced Reagan and his men to set in motion the other, less conspicuous, destabilisation option, namely economic blackmail. In this context, the belief held in Washington that the "oil battle" and the "energy crisis" were open and shut cases of American victory, (gained with the help of Saudi 'moderation' relative to the freezing or effective lowering of world oil prices), the Reagan administration's fallback strategy of putting pressure on the American oil companies becomes more plausible, once military intervention had been excluded—for practical rather than ethical reasons. Yet Washington's strategy for smashing Libya and other nonaligned countries, while simultaneously rendering "OPEC. . . about as important to the American economy as a Turkish bazaar" seems a rather bizarre concoction, even if the initial assumptions were not wishful thinking on the parts of Reagan and Co. (as the Wall Street Journal rather suspected). Thus even American commentators— among those who lacked the Reagan-Nixon prejudices—noticed Libya's restraint over the mutually profitable relationship with US Oil companies. America's blind faith in an eternally pro-US Saudi Arabia, was questioned by Stanley Hoffman, with Libya's pragmatic yet also radical attitude no doubt affecting his answer: "Are we committed to the royal family or to the flow of oil? If it is to the oil, how can we know in advance that a new regime would shut it off?" In the event, Hoffman argued, neither Libya nor "Angola's revolutionary regime have stopped the flow of oil to the West. A revolutionary force would have an obvious interest in proclaiming that it would meet American, Western European and Japanese needs." "A commitment to the present regime" in Riyadh, implied by Carter and made blatant by Reagan's "guarantees" of 10/1/1981 that he "would not permit another Iran" in Saudi Arabia, "condemns us to shoring up a government whose future may be doomed by irreversible social and political developments. A more legitimate commitment, to economic security, should induce us to put a certain distance between the regime and ourselves, and to cultivate contacts with possible opposition forces" in Saudi Arabia. But Reagan's new second hand mouthpiece, Richard Milhous Nixon, perhaps flying a kite for his admirers at the helm of US policy, proposed cutting Libyan oil exports by an "economic quarantine". Echoing, unconsciously no doubt the rhetoric Axis leaders used of British military forces in Libya and elsewhere in Northern Africa during World War II, Nixon personalised the US crusade against Libya and non-alignment. Qaddafi, asserted the sage of Watergate, was "an international outlaw:' "More than just a desert rat" he is "a threat to every friend of America." Putting policy guidelines into the mouth of an unnamed and possibly imaginary regional top shot, Nixon added: "One Mid East leader put it to me bluntly, 'Why doesn't the West quit buying oil from Qaddafi?" The United States is moving in that direction. We should urge our NATO allies and Japan to do so." While the attempts at an oil embargo seem part of a deeply political and global strategic onslaught against Libya, other measures show the irrational and racist basis US official hatred of Libya and Muammar Qaddafi. Thus a minor storm broke out over Libyan "plans to build a 25-storey United Nations mission." For some reason a variety of American politicians ranging from the rumbunctious Senator Daniel Moynihan to New York Mayor Edward Koch, seemed to think that such a building was too tall for the world capital of skyscrapers. Meanwhile there arose an overbearing confusion between US power and the location of the UN in New York, as a ban on a Libyan— Abdel-Ati Obeidi—travelling from the UN General Assembly to Washington to make a speech was imposed. With a note of regret that those international norms could not be overthrown by US fiat, "the State Department noted that the United States is obliged to allow foreign officials entry for the United Nations. But the spokesman said this did not necessarily extend to permission to travel in the United States. . " General Haig's heavy hand was visible in US withdrawal of notification from Ford Aerospasce by Congress. The deal in uestion was the provision of "equipment for the Arabsat telephone communications satellite being built by Aerospatiale of France for a consortium of 21 Arab and African countries and the PLO." Reportedly, the inclusion of Libya, South Yemen and the PLO lay at the heart of Haig's withdrawal of the go-ahead for the sale. Such measures, evidently, could only harm US exporters' efforts throughout Asia and Africa. Meanwhile differences arose among the Powers in Washington as to how to implement the oil boycott against Libya. Reagan wanted to force improbable "worldwide" compliance with the American scheme, whereas Nixon, who seems to have learned some realism during his years in the wilderness, suggested that the US should go it alone. Reagan said, "There are plenty of customers. . . no one country could affect them by having a boycott." The comment came after a "flurry of reports that punitive measures against Libya were under discussion in Congress and by the Administration." But these differences between the President and the ex-President seemed to be academic In practice there is identity of views between Reagan and Nixon. "Retaliation" for what, no one has ever made very clear, unless being Libyan is in itself a crime, as in some versions of antisemitism prior to 1945—was "in mind." 9 Kurdistan and the Kurds Occidental and other oil companies would be asked "for their cooperation," though Exxon seems to have been out of line with the other companies in its voluntary compliance with Washington's desire to "punish" anothff country. If even Nixon ruled out military intervention as potentially too hazardous for Washington, the range of destabilising measures available short of aggression is considerable. Libya, in the foreseeable future, is likely to feel the weight of US displeasure, even if—like Nasser's Egypt after Suez—it is bound to emerge from the involuntary experience with enhanced satus in the eyes of the world and eventually even of US public opinion. [=] occupation of Mesopotamia. The mandatory system was a farce which had been forced on Britain by the US. It led to an uprising in 1920 in which, according to the estimate of Colonel T. E. Lawrence, 10000 Arabs were killed. The appointment of Faisal as king in 1921 and the grant of autonomy to the Kurds failed to prevent further revolutionary outbreaks in 1922 and 1927. The British wanted to enter into a treaty with Iraq because they preferred it to the mandate; but there was strong opposition to a treaty also, as the Arab national movement was growing. [From: "Part V: Iraq: 1917-1930", in A.R.C. Bolton,Soviet Middle East Studies: An Analysis and Bibliography. New York: June 1959. p. 2.] [=] 10010. Abdulla, J.J.; E.N. McCarus, E.N. Kurdish Readers. Three Volumes. Ann Arbor, Mich.: University of Michigan, 1967. [86H00416] [19670101] Volume One: Newspaper Kurdish. Volume Two: Kurdish Essays. Volume Three: Kurdish Short Stories. Kurdish in original scripts, with additional transcriptions. 10014. Acar, Ozgen; Kaylan, Melik. "Something Like The Mafia", in Connosseur, October 1990. p. 134. [91H-56037] [19901001] Edip Telli and Fuat Uzulmez in Munich are central figures in the trade in antiquities from Turkey, but there are many other operators. Other operators include the Kolasins, the Deres, the Aydiners and Sami Gulener's gang. Gulener runs a national network in Turkey for Telli, and he has numerous local agents that collect antiquities found throughout the country. Smuggled goods are taken in Bulgaria, and from there are transshipped to Munich. The better peices are takne by discoverers into the Grand Bazaar in Istanbul for a higher price, and the result is that telli acquires lower quality goods. he has tried to block the Istanbul based groups from selling into Western European markets, but use of hit men and informing the Turkish police on his competitors, But Sait Aydiner operates a gallery in Canada, and Selim Dere now operates a gallery in New York. All these families come from Mardin, in southeastern Turkey, even if it was the Kurdish ethnicity that allowed the Tellis their start. [TXT] 10011. Abdulla, J.J.; McCarus, E.N. Kurdish basic Course. Dialect of Sulaimania, Iraq. Ann Arbor, Mich.: University of Michigan Press, 1967. 500p. [86H-00415] [19670101] In romanized script. 10012. Abramowitz, Morton; Fuller, Graham E. [editor]; Lesser, Ian O. [editor]. "Preface", in Turkey's New Geopolitics: From Balkans to Western China. A Rand Study. Boulder, Colo.: Westview Press, 1993. pp. vii-xii. [94H-26733] [19930101] The collapse of the USSR has transformed the geopolitical environment of Turkey: a reexamination of Turkey is urgently needed. While the immidate Turkish goal is greater integration into Europe, it seems unlikely that this goal can be accomplished in the foreseeable future. The end of the 400 year Russian military threat probably portends and erosion of the Turkish role in and interest in NATO. However, Turkey has now emerged as the strongest state in its region (despite the PKK (Kurdistan Workers Party) insurgency): now, for most Turkish elite, the real question is whether to remain focused on Anatolia or to adopt a more wide-ranging regional role. Turkey is likely to adopt a growing international role in the Balkans (especially due to the question of Bosnia), the Middle East and Central Asia: Turkey has a concern over a revived Iraq due to the Turkish role in the Persian Gulf War, has come into conflict with Iran over Azerbajan, has continuing problems with Syrian and Iranian support for the PKK [sic: perhaps he means Syria and Iraq], and faces growiung contention over water resources with Iraq and Syria. The Turkish-US relationship will grow as Turkey becomes more isolated from Europe. Turkey will face a growing menace from Kurdish nationalism, both by the PKK in Turkey and by Kurds in Iraq (many Turks would prefer a strong Iraq led by Saddam Hussein to a partitioned Iraq that creates a Kurdish state on the Turkish border). Finally, the threat of Muslim fundamentalism in Turkey is a minor one. 10015. Acar, Ozgen; Kaylan, Melik. "The Turkish Connection; An Investigative Report on the Smuggling of Classical Antiquities; The Statue's Price in Turkey $7000, in New York $540000", in Connosseur, October 1990. pp. 130, 132-137.[91H-56036][19901001] Turkey is the largest source of classical antiquities to the West, and every item is illegally exported. There are more classical sites in Turkey than in Greece, and these sites include Halicarnassus and Ephesus, and most major Byzantine centers. The International Foundationfor Art Research estimates the annual illegal traffic in antiquities is $2 billion, and half is classical antiquities. The Turkish part of that is unknown, but certainly is hundreds of millions of dollars. Edip Telli, a Turkish Kurd based in Munich (where he has the Gryphos gallery), is one of the largest smugglers of classical treasures from Turkey: his major sales have included the Decadrachm Hoard to William Koch of Boston for $3.5 million, the Lydian Hoard to the Metropolitan Museum of Art; and Byzantine treasures to Dumbarton Oaks. Fuat Uzulmez, a Turkish Syriac, has emerged as a second major antiquities dealer in Munich (with his Artemis gallery). Telli entered the trade from smuggling consumer goods into Turkey, while Fuat comes from a Grand Bazaar family in Istanbul. Bruce McNall, who is now out of business, was a major dealer for the smuggled antiquities in Los Angeles, having sold at least on several major pieces to the Getty Museum there; another retired supplier of smuggled antiquities to Getty is Elie Borowski. After the disappearance of the Decadrachm Hoard, Turkish police sought the arrest of Telli in Germany. The trade is also littered with murders, with at least ten recent murders associated with the smuggling. Reportedly, Telli became the major dealer after a mafia like war with George Zacos the former, rather scholarly dominant dealer in smuggled antiquities. Telli uses murder to keep his organization in line, such as Sami Gulener, who strayed to the rival Nihat Kolasin gang of antiquities racketeers in Istanbul. When Mahboubian Gallery showed contraband sculptures in London, news 10013. Abuzyam, V. "Angliyskiy Imperializm i Irak (British Imperialism and Iraqi)", in Mirovoye Khozyaystvo i Mirovaya Politika, 1928. pp. 78-83. [97H-03421] [19280101] An examination of the situation in Iraq arising out of parliament's refusal to ratify the treaty of 1927 between the British government and King Faisal. Britain regarded Iraq as a market and as a plantation. She was interested in Iraq because this country protected the Persian Gulf; contained important air and land communications; constituted a buffer against revolutionary propaganda which came in great waves from the Soviet East; was a counterpoise to the aspirations of France and the threat from the Wahhabis, and contained the Mosul oilfield which, although still undeveloped, promised to be extensive. Arab nationalist aspirations had been aroused by the British only to be dashed to the ground by the Sykes-Picot agreement and Britain's eventual 10 Kurdistan and the Kurds reporters were threatened with death if they reported on the pieces. Turkey is now fighting to regain the Lydian Hoard from the Metropolitan, and the fate of numerous identified Turkish art treasures depends on this court decision. introduced in Turkey's policy towards the Kurds, it was illegal to speak of or write about such things as the Kurdish people, Kurdish language or Kurdish culture. As Abdullah Ocalan (Ujalan), leader of the PKK, put it, "The Turks have been thinking that Kurdistan is in the graveyard [and] that the Kurds have no history." Moreover, Turkish Kurdistan is the least developed region in Turkey, with unemployment rampant and incomes very low. These difficulties are compounded by the fact that for the last eight years, the region has been a virtual battleground, with the Turkish army and security forces committing some of the most flagrant human rights violations. But does a solution to the misery and suffering of the Kurdish people lie in marxism, which is relegated to the museums of history in its erstwhile strongholds? The answer is an unqualified no. The Kurdish question is just one problem of a web of problems that has been plaguing the region for some time. Secularism and the nation-State system cannot provide solutions. Indeed, they lie at the root of the problem. Under the Uthmaniyyah khilafah there was a single Kurdish people living side by side with their brothers-in-faith: Arabs, Turks, and others. With the emergence of three western-controlled nation-States--Syria, Turkey and Iraq--the Kurds find themselves a fragmented, marginalized and tormented people. The obvious solution to the so-called Kurdish question is to let them have their own nation-State, like everybody else. But apart from the practical difficulties--daunting by any standard--of persuading Iraq, Turkey and Syria to grant the Kurds a measure of self-determination, it is by no means guaranteed that a Kurdish nation-State will alleviate the misery and suffering of the Kurdish people, especially if such a nation-State were anchored on such dubious and suspect foundations as Ocalan's marxism, which, as he himself has conceded, is difficult to understand. One "would need a thousand witnesses to understand what kind of marxist I am," he is quoted to have said recently. The tragedy of the Kurdish people, like that of many other Muslims, is the fact that their struggle against injustice and subordination is being led by their own worst enemies--secularists and atheists. Ocalan, who claims that in the process of struggle he would be building a new Kurdish man, is in fact struggling for the same principles as Ataturk fought for, banishing Islam from the life of its followers, Kurdish or Turkish. He is a product of an atheist elite begun by Ataturk and his followers, against which such men as Sheikh Sa'id Pirani, himself a Kurd, warned and fought. In one of his fatwas against the creeping kufr which Kemalism entailed, Sheikh Sa'id Pirani, who was martyred on 6/28/1925 while leading a jihad against Ataturk, wrote: "This atheist government will make us atheist like themselves. Jihad against them is an obligation." To settle accounts with their oppressors, whether Arabs or Turks, the Kurdish people ought to do away with manifestly discredited ideologies such as Ocalan's marxism, and instead adopt the pristine Islamic principles of men of jihad and taqwa like Sheikh Pirani. They must also cement their ties with their natural allies, the Islamic movements in Turkey, Iraq, Syria and elsewhere. United in Islam, Turks and Kurds could work wonders. The eviction of the crusaders from the heartland of Islam, especially from Al-Quds, in the Middle Ages was achieved under Turko-Kurdish leadership. Mahmud Zanki and his son Nuraddin, who were Turks, gave the crusaders their first battering blows, recovering such cities as Edessa (AlKuha). The work they began was completed by the greatest Kurd in history, sultan Salah al-Din Ayyoubi, the liberator of Al-Quds. There is no reason why similar feats cannot again be performed under the banner of Islam. [=] 10016. Adam, Deria. "Focus: Between the Turkish Hammer and Iraqi Rock: Plight of the Kurdish People", in Crescent International, May 1-15, 1992. p. 4. [97H-21352] [19920501] The suffering and misery of the Kurdish people received another sinister twist in late March when clashes between Turkish security forces and Kurdish demonstrators claimed more than 50 lives in three days from 3/2225/1992. It was one of the bloodiest confrontations in the eight-year campaign waged by the marxist Kurdistan Workers' Party, who are clamouring for an independent Kurdish State encompassing not only Kurdish-populated regions of Turkey but also Iraq Kurdistan and parts of Iran and Syria. This campaign, which began in 1984, has so far cost more than 3,000 lives, mostly Kurdish civilians caught in the crossfire between the State terror-machine of Kemalist Turkey and an equally brutal atheist guerrilla group for whom even schools are legitimate targets. Turkish politicians have used the Kurdish question as a convenient means of scoring political points against each other. Pres. Turgut Ozal, whose Motherland Party was swept from power by prime minister Suleiman Demirel's True Path Party, began fanning the flames in an interview with the Turkish newspaper Milliyet by calling for the stamping out and bloody suppression of Kurdish agitation. Suleiman Demirel tried to externalize the issue of existing Kurdish grievances and agitation, by launching air-attacks against Kurdish bases in northern Iraq and by sending warning signals to Turkey's Arab neighbors in the form of reinforcements at the Iraq border. Ironically, the Iraqi army began shelling Kurdish areas in northeastern Iraq, forcing people to flee their homes at almost the same time as Turkish planes were bombarding the area. Sometimes they hit areas where there were no guerrilla bases. Safeen Dizayee, the Ankara representative of the Kurdistan Democratic Party (KDP-Iraqi opposition Kurdish group) has said that one attack came within 13 miles of the Iraqi village of Barzan, threatening nearby civilian settlements. The fact that two regional powers are hounding the same people, often targeting the same places, attests to the host of unresolved issues and problems in the region that are the direct consequences of the collapse of the Islamic State at the beginning of the century and the emergence of the nation-State system, which has fuelled some of the most obnoxious ethnic conflicts on nationalist lines--a sort of strife virtually unknown in the Muslim polity before the imposition of the nation-State concept. This is essentially a European idea alien to Islam, inflicted on the Muslim body-politics as part of the western colonial onslaught on the lands of Islam. The Kurdish people have suffered at the hands of many. In fact, they have endured some of the most appalling cases of human rights violations in this century. Iraqi Pres. Saddam Hussain has systematically and relentlessly destroyed their villages and towns, burned their crops and livestock, deported their able-bodied young to parched deserts in the south of the country, and in the 1980s attempted the "final solution" to the Kurdish question. Codenamed operation Al-Anfal, Saddam unleashed his terror machine on the Kurds in an outright genocide, gassing the Kurdish city of Halabja in 1988, which instantly killed 5,000 people. This was just one incident among many in Saddam's attempt to wipe out the Kurds. Turkey has not yet gassed its Kurds--10 million strong and about 20% of the total population of Turkey--but has attempted to liquidate the Kurdish character in more ways than one. Since 1920s, when Kemal Ataturk put down Kurdish uprisings with exceptional cruelty, secular Kemalist Turkey has behaved as if the Kurds never existed. And until last year, when some cosmetic dressings were 10017. Aeppel, Timothy. "German Minister Gerhard Stoltenberg Resigns In Wake of Tank Scandal", in Wall Street Journal, April 1, 1992. p. A8. [92H-10340] [19920401] Defense Minister Stoltenberg 11 Kurdistan and the Kurds has resigned in the wake of a scandal over his approval of tank shipments to Turkey. The German government has moved to distance itself from the Turkish crackdown on the Kurds by halting arms shipments. Diplomatic relations with Turkey have deteriorated, with Ankara calling the German arms ban similar to the policies of 'Hitler's Germany'. phonological processes such as deletion, substitution, and insertion are given. Chapter Four demonstrates the predictability of stress in terms of morphology. Chapter Five describes syllable structure in MSK and Chapter Six gives general conclusions. [Reprinted with permission of Dissertation Abstracts.] [=] 10021. Ahmed, Hisham H. "Thinking About Palestine: The Disabled Intifada, Part 2" in Al-Fajr Jerusalem Palestinian Weekly, March 8, 1993. pp. 4, 15. [93H-29041] [19930308] One afternoon, I witnessed a dispute between two families living in Bethlehem over the rental of an apartment. After an agreement was arrived at between the two parties, as to the cost and date of availability, one of the sons of the family, who had previously been living in the apartment, insisted that they would not vacate unless more money was paid and their furniture bought by the renting family. He created the problem just hours before the apartment was to be made available for the new residents. What a scene it was! On another day, the father of a good friend of mine, whom I have known for over 12 years, had a heart attack while at work. I went to visit him in the hospital. Talking to him, I realized that his heart attack must have been caused by some problems he had encountered. Without asking him about the reasons for the heart attack, I urged him to take it easy. I remained curious, however, about the reasons for the stress in his life. I tried to probe his friend on the subject, initially to no avail. At long last, however, my friend relented and disclosed these facts: 'Our neighbors, with whom we used to have strong social ties, have recently been causing us some serious problems, and they made it clear that they would not cease until we paid them 1000 Jordanian dinars, which we really did not have. We had to borrow the money and in spite of all this they kept threatening to do something bad to my father or to the house. We paid them the money, but the problems are not over yet. Worst of all is the fact that they knew that we are Kurds and that we do not have any support system in the society, as others might. The society is facing gangsterism at its worst and unless you have some people to defend you against the greedy, some harm mught be inflicted upon you. Where elese can we go, as Kurds? We always felt Palestinian and acted Palestinian.' It was painful enough to observe the dispute between the two families regarding the rental of the apartment. But it was even more tormenting to know that the sense of solidarity in Palestinian society is being endangered, as the story of my Kurdish friend unambiguously domonstrates. [=] 10018. Aeppel, Timothy. "Kurds Seek Attention For Iraq's 'Other' War. Facing Reported Onslaught, Group Appeals For Notice at United Nations Talks", in Christian Science Monitor, September 2, 1988. p. 11. Includes map. [88H-12093] [19880902] 10019. Agasi, N. M. Review of A. Shamide, The Workers' and Trade Union Movement in Iran (1941-1946) [In Azerbaijanian] (Baku, 1961, 180 pp.). Narodny Aziia i Afriki (Peoples of Asia & Africa), No. 3, 1962. pp. 207-208. [99H-12155] [19630301] The book includes a criticism of Iranian and American works, and gives background on the economy of the country and working class struggle before the war. It is not shown clearly enough that the working class had become an independentforcecapable of playing a leading role in the national liberation movement. The formation and work of the Popular Party of Iran is described, as is the Central Council of Trade Unions, and revisionists and opportunists are scored. Considerable attention is given the surge of the national liberation movement in Iranian Azerbaijan and Kurdistan in 1945-1946. [Reprinted from Soviet Periodical Abstracts: Asia, Africa and Latin America (SPAAALA) (Formerly Selective Soviet Annotated Bibliographies), Vol. 2 (3/4), March 1963. Editors: Anita Navon, Ina Schlesinger. Slavic Languages Research Institute, White Plains, NY.] 10020. Ahmad, Abdul-Majeed Rashid. The Phonemic System Of Modern Standard Kurdish. Dissertation. University Of Michigan (0127), 1986. pp. 169. DAI 47/03A, p.924; Publication:AAC8612458. [93H-24230] [19860101] Modern Standard Kurdish (MSK) is a written form of Kurdish adopted by the Iraqi Kurds to establish a standard written Kurdish substituting for the various Kurdish dialects spoken in Iraqi Kurdistan. MSK is based on the Sulaimani dialect, a sub-dialect of Southern Kirmanji (Sorani). Written documents published in Iraq after 1970 are the main source for this study. The documents include books and articles listed in the bibliography. They are written by the speakers of various Kurdish dialects. I used myself as the only principle reader, i.e., I was not able to find other readers of MSK in the United States; therefore, this initial study should be followed by additional studies. This study is based on the reading aloud of newly published documents and dozens of spectrograms. My native Kurdish dialect is the Bibani dialect of the Kirkuk Altun Kopri area. Since MSK is based on Sulaimani dialect, the sound system of MSK corresponds partially but not entirely to the dialect of Sulaimani. Differences between MSK and both Sulaimani and Bibani dialect are presented. The environments for allophonic variations such as vowel length in different environments, and phonological changes such as substitution, deletion, and insertion are described. The ranges of vowel length are given based on spectrograms. Chapter One is a historical sketch of the written form of Kurdish in Iraqi Kurdistan. Pre-MSK is introduced from the early period of written Kurdish when there was no Standard Kurdish until 1958 when The Republic of Iraq was established, and the standardization period evolved following its establishment around 1970. The evolution of Arabic script as adopted for Kurdish is discussed. Chapter Two introduces Kurdish vowels and gives rules for phonological change. In Chapter Three consonants are presented. Allophonic features such as voicing, and devoicing, of consonants are described and rules for 10022. Ahmed, Hisham H. "Thinking About Palestine: The Disabled Intifada, Part 3" in Al-Fajr Jerusalem Palestinian Weekly, March 8, 1993. pp. 4, 15. [93H-29042] [19930308] It was only now, after 12 years of friendship, that I learned that one of my Palestinian friends was Kurdish. This in itself is not of importance. It is the sense that the society is on the verge of breaking apart that is of the utmost significance. During my visit, one story after the other unfolded and the lawlessness became more and more apparent. It should be remembered that the people in the occupied territories have been undergoing an incalculable degree of frustration and despair -- economically, psychologically, socially and politically. Destitution is indeed the norm, due to the constant opression by the occupiers. After five years of curfews, killings and imprisonments, the people have found themselves unable to release their frustration satisfactorily on the occupying authorites and thus have embarked on a process of psychological transference if anger upon each other. Palestinian society has tried to shake off the occupation, but the occupation has become more entrenched. In the process, it has succeeded in turning the Uprising in its favor. It is Palestinians who 12 Kurdistan and the Kurds are hurt by stone-throwing and tire burning, not the occupiers. This was quite evident throughout my stay and many people have begun to sense it. The Intifada, which initially mobilized an unarmed population in its entirety, has now backfired. It is my view that Palestinian society is currently in urgent need of taking a rest. This is not to suggest that the struggle needs to be terminated. It is to say that unless Palestinian society is strengthened from within, and unless creative renewal is introduced, the size of the disaster will be impossible to imagine. The regular half-day commercial strikes and the frequent fullday strikes do not hurt the Israeli economy, but they do bring about stagnation in the Palestinian economy. Suspension of classes on university campuses, while meant to express students' solidarity with a given group in the society, is an outmoded form of resistance which disrupts the process of modernization in the society. A critical reevaluation of the methodology and substance of the struggle is urgently needed now, and it is the Palestinian leadership along with the intelligentsia which bear the responsibility. The people under occupation need a semblance of normalcy if the future is not to become totally unpredictable. [=] Arabia and Egypt, among others) is not meant to cripple the rulers in Damascus as much as to have them sever their relations with Islamic Iran. Before his departure for Washington on 7/8/1996, the new Israeli prime minister, Benjamin Netanyahu, said that if Syria did not play ball, there were additional "measures" that could be brought to bear - a euphemism for imposing sanctions. The new Israeli prime minister was saying that he could order US president Bill Clinton to impose sanctions against Syria! We can also decode Republican presidential candidate Bob Dole's words to mean as much when he says, "Despite the shuttle diplomacy of the Clinton administration, president Asad of Syria has not demonstrated peaceful intentions. Syria continues to occupy Lebanon, continues to harbor terrorists, and continues its close alliance with Iran." Dole and his foreign policy advisors are not concerned with a Syrian administration and policy that kills the Islamic preference of its people. But when the Syrian government for matters of hard bargaining and dare-devil deceptions of destiny applies its wits to survive the brutal exchanges of the Middle Eastern diplomacy, the US as the guarantor of zionist Israel has to do something to budge Damascus out of its dual diplomacy. For Syria this has meant the inadmissibility of fifth columnists into Lebanon which translates into gains for the Islamic-based parties. It also means staking bets on Palestinian "rejectionists" which translates into offering domicile to what is turning into a popular Islamic resistance represented by Islamic Jihad and Hamas. Similarly, Syria holds onto a source of much-needed support from Iran - petroleum sold to Syria at concessionary prices - and arm the proxies in Lebanon. All of these turn out to be "security threats" to Israel. So Washington tells Damascus via Ankara, Amman, Tel Aviv and Riyadh that you cannot play both sides of the game indefinitely. Meanwhile, Washington and Tel Aviv never fail to impress on all and sundry their mutual and ever-lasting love and care for each other. It is reported that the Federal Bureau of Investigation (FBI) is planning to open an office in Tel Aviv. The American public is led to believe that the FBI is concerned with federal crimes in the US. That is only if ones geographical information is incomplete; the fact is that Israel is as much American as New York or California. The FBI is not concerned about the Russian Jewish mafia that operates in Israel and has established its crime syndicates all over the "land of the free." It is the "Islamic terrorists" of Hamas and Islamic Jihad, who are not involved in American affairs since they are committed to the liberation of their own homeland (Palestine) who have become the FBI's concern. This mutual love affair is capped by the report from the Jewish Telegraph Agency that henceforth "American Jewish soldiers will no longer have to subsist on non-kosher meals in the field, if they so choose. The US military announced...that 'Meals Religious Kosher' will be available through the regularly military supply lines. The military has contracted a [Jewish] private company to produce as many as 200000 meals a year for three years.... Officials estimate that thousands of observant Jews serve in the armed forces." With the zionist-Jewish appetite to scheme, kill and then eat kosher with all the facilities available to and from American administrations we find Allah's Words most accurate: "Verily, as for those who suppress aught of the revelation which Allah has bestowed from on high, and barter it away for a trifling gain - they but fill their bellies with fire. And allah will not speak to them on the Day of Resurrection, nor will He cleanse them [of their sins]; and grievous suffering awaits them." (AlQuran 2:174) [=] 10023. Al-Asi Muhammad. "US Proxies Tell Syria to Make Up Its Mind", in Crescent International, July 16-31, 1996. p. 4. [97H-17272] [19960731] Whatever the merits or otherwise of the Iranian-Syrian alliance - and this can be argued in light of the Hizbullah and Islamic resistance in Lebanon and the offices and operational center of the "rejectionist factions" of the Palestinian movement based in Damascus - there has been a growing rift between Damascus and Ankara in recent days. This escalating tension on the artificial "legal" borders between Syria and Turkey has drawn in forces from both sides.Accompanied by minor cross-border skirmishes, these are pregnant with serious consequences. Such developments bode ill for the popular reservoir of the Turkish and Syrian peoples' growing common hostility towards the Israeli penetration of the northern regions; i.e., Anatolia, Kurdistan, Central Asia and even the (Persian) Gulf and (Arabian) Peninsula. Three other developments must be borne in mind. In 5/1996, a series of explosions in Syria alarmed the US state department sufficiently to issue an advisory to its citizens stationed there. The Turkish military's ongoing assault on the Kurds in eastern Turkey and northern Iraq has hardly raised any eyebrows in the west. And the escalation in the Turkish military's onslaught on the Kurds coincided with the military agreement signed with the zionist entity in 2/1996. It appears that the zionist-American sponsors of the "peace process" are fed up with the "now you see it, now you don't" tactics of Syria's dual diplomacy. A few months ago, it was the government in Tehran that showed its indignation at Syrian indulgence in the zionist-American sponsored peace process. Tehran's newspapers at the time carried scathing attacks against Syrian capitulation to zionist interests. Iranian vice president Hasan Habibi cancelled a trip to Damascus. It took a personal letter from Syrian president Hafez el-Asad to smooth things over with the Iranians concerning his expedition into the "peace process." This dual diplomacy of the Syrian government has now touched, it seems, a raw nerve in the zionist-American bureaucracy. If tensions rise between Syria and Turkey, both the US and Israel will have ample "justifications" to jump into the fray on the side of Ankara. Syria is accused of a number of misdeeds: harboring "terrorists"; involvement in counterfeit US currency transactions; and that it is a base for drug smuggling into the US. Both the US and Israel are also armed with bilateral "defense cooperation agreements" with Turkey, a NATO ally to boot. This pact of the devil among front-line zionist-based or supported States (Israel, the US, Turkey, Jordan, Greece, Saudi 10024. Al-Khalil, Samir [Iraqi dissident and expatriate]. "Real Victory Requires An Allied Military Liberation of Iraq", in San Diego Union, March 31, 1991. p. C5. [91H-16325] [19910331] The insurgencies that have emerged in Iraq after the ceasefire mark the Persian Gulf War as the greatest watershed in regional history since the collapse of the 13 Kurdistan and the Kurds Ottoman Empire. If the United States does not intervene to use these rebellions, neighboring countries will use the rebellions. Allied forces must work with the rebels, the US Army must march into Baghdad,. refugees should be allowed to cross into Kuwait, and the United States should reshape Iraq. To fail to select a futuyre for Iraq will create instability in the region for decades. that a man would never marry a women who had been his girlfriend. Women marry with little sexual experience and traditionally were trained to fear their own sexuality (although that is easing now); Iraqi men often are just as ignorant of sex and for many newly weds sex is traumatic, alienating and unpleasant. For almost half the women interviewed sex is simply a marital duty and few of the women interviewed enjoyed sex. In recent years, women are coming to expect a greater degree of equality in the relationship with their husband. Yet the normal expectations of Iraqi women about marriage, and the traditional manner in which most partners are selected, strongly argue against companionshipandfriendship being the major part of a marriage. Many wopmen noted how difficult it was to engage their husband's in conversation on other than matters of household or the children: husband's are viewed as outsiders and women normally have stronger ties to their brothers than to their husbands. Iraqi women rarely engage in the normal leisure activities of women in the West: reading and painting [sic?]; women are mainly occupied with housework, which is largely performed by women in Iraq. While all manner of household appliances are widespread in the affluent Iraqi society (so widespread that it is hard to determine whether a family is middle class just by its possessions, since such appliances are also common in the working class), domestic servants are very rare now. While economic development has pushed many women into the workplace, many women feel that fulltime housewives have higher status than women who work outside the home. Women do not perceive independence to be an option since it ends any likelihood of future marriage. Few women thought Western style "women's liberation" was genuine liberation since it entailed, they argued, little more than sexual freedom for which there are very high trade-offs; some noted that even the activities of the General Federation of Iraqi Women were sometimes seen as rather bold. "In Iraq, women's oppression within the family is fairly universal", and neither widespread access to education or a strong presence in the workplace has made any difference in this "universal oppression". 10025. Al-Khayyat, Sana. Honor and Shame: Women in Modern Iraq. London: Saqi Books, 1990. [97H-19981] [19900101] This study of Iraqi women is written by an Iraqi women who has training as a sociologist, allowing both insider and outsider perspectives to be taken; the study is based on in-depth interviews with Iraqi women (interviewing Muslim Arbs, Muslim Kurds and Muslim Turkomans, and Christian Arabs; while the attituders and lives of all the Muslims were very similar, the Christians were much more conservative). (By contrast, she notes the observation of a well-educated Iraqi man who states: "Why are you wasting time with those stupid women? What can they tell you?... If you insist on adopting this method, select a few educated men and interview them; they would tell you all you need to know about women".) Iraq is a patriarchal society reinforced by Bedouin tribal values that became normative during the four centuries of Ottoman rule up to WWI; the society uses both bedouin social values and Islamic ideology to control women. In Iraq today education is compulsary for both sexes at the primary level (11-12 years), and in urban areas most girls go on to secondary education and many to universities. Many traditionally male areas such as engineering are open to women. Most jobs are open to women from bus and truck drivers to doctors, university professors and executive positions in Ministries; such opportunities broadened during the labor shortages of the Iran-Iraq War; there are few women in top decisionmaking positions however. The compulsary national literacy program includes fines for any adult that does not learn to read. The conduct of women in Iraqi society is governed by the concept Arab concept of honor, and of shame; the sexual conduct of a woman can bring shame on all her kin (because her male kin have responsibility for her conduct); immodesty can bring shame on kin as well. Gossip may bring shame on a woman wrongly, so many women suffer from guilt without necessarily having committed any shameful act. The predominantly agarian nature of Iraqi society, where the inability of girls to work in the fields as well as boys, has "fuel[ed] the historical hatred of women"; while girls are see as weak, boys are seen as strong (a common rebuke for a boy is "do not act like a girl"). The birth of daughter is traditionally seen as an inadequacy, and the burden of preserving the honor of the girl (and her virginity) is an additional burden. For some of the women, their childhood was scarred by domestic violence, their father's beat their mothers: this was usually associated with alcoholism by the women, which added the sense that the behavior was un-Islamic (and thus reinforcing rather that subverting Islamic norms). The more general education of Iraqi women has not dramatically changed the manner in which they raise their children. Marriage is almost universal in Iraq: people want children and grandparents want grandchildren. Marriage is seen as the joining of two families rather than of two people: traditional marriages are arranged and the couple meets on the wedding day. Modern marriages in which both partners select the other are becoming more common. In Iraqi society it is very common for cousins to marry, with favoired cousins being father's brothers children. Love is still seen by many Iraqis as an impediment to happy marriage: until the 1940s, if a man was known to love a woman this would preclude an arranged marriage. Many women do not believe marriages for love can be successful; modern affairs by student couples on university campuses are viewed as a mere 'hobby' and most women believe 10026. Al-Rubaiy, Abdul A. "The Failure of Political Integration in Iraq. The Education of the Kurdish Minority", in Intellect, 102(2357), April 1974. pp. 440-444. [86H-00236] [19740401] The history of he educational programs provided by the central government to the Kurdish minority in Iraq is reviewed. The programs have sought the greater integration of the Kurds into the national culture, but with limited success. 10027. Al-Samir, Faisal. "Guidance Minister Calls for Unity", in Iraqi Review-Weekly English Supplement to Ittihad Al-Shaab, August 16, 1959. p. 4. [97H-10559] [19590816] [Dr. Faisal al-Samir, the Minister of Guidance, made a statement which he said was wholly inspired by the instructions of the Premier, Abdul Karim Qassim. The following is a summary of the statement.] Among other things, the Revolution of 7/14/1958, aimed at emancipating the people of Iraq from the fetters of the old regime. The ruling oligarchy had usurped freedoms and persecuted all sincere patriots during forty years of monarchical rule. It was their oppression and repression which prompted our army, headed by Abdul Karim Qassim and supported by the broad masses of the people, to initiate the 7/14/1958 Revolution and establish the Republic. The Revolution was, therefore, a national liberational revolution which aimed at achieving full independence, on the one hand, and a sound democratic rule under which freedom, general rights and stability are secured, on the other. It was hoped that cooperation and unity of the ranks for preserving the gains of the Revolution and further developing our society would be strictly observed by all. It is only then that a better 14 Kurdistan and the Kurds living standard can be secured for our people. If all sincere patriots close their ranks and unite in the service of the Republic and the people, the rich resources of our country and will enable us to achieve this objective easily. Our Revolution proceeded in the right direction; it released all patriotic forces, restored freedom of association and the press and helped the formation of vocational organizations for students, youth intellectuals, workers, peasants and women. All these organizations and associations were helped, morally and materially, by the Leader of the country himself. The purpose of this experiment, which was the first of its kind in the Arab countries, was to help to cement the unity of the people and raise efficiency. Besides, these organizations, it was hoped, would help in the settlement of the problems cropping up in their own sphere; and, above all, participate in active defence of the Republic, if needed. Unfortunately, however, a number of mistakes were made which led to side battles. At any rate, mistakes can always be averted. All the peoples have, in their battle of liberation, committed such mistakes; but, by virtue of reconsideration and correction of mistakes, they have always eventually found the right direction leading to a better future. The policy of our Republic, as formulated by the Leader, aims at allowing all the adherents of any one organization to help in raising standards in their occupation for the service of the entire people without any bias to one particular party. We proceed on the assumption that the individual reserves the right to have his own opinion, religion and ideology, subject to concern for the higher interests of the country, respect for the opinion of others and abstaining from aggression and disorder. Freedom never was the source of violent clashes and disunity whenever rightly understood. The kind of democracy we want for our country must ensure security, order and peaceful co-existence of all within the frame of public interests. We must all, as in the developed countries, eliminate arrogance. The common aims about which there is bound to be a consensus of opinion are supporting the national rule for which our people have fought for hundreds of years; uniting the ranks against imperialism; participating in constructing a civilized society in which freedom and well-being for all prevails; observing the Interim Constitution and all the statements and declarations made by the Leader, concerning the unity of Arabs, Kurds and other minorities in Iraq, brotherly relations with sister Arab countries for the benefit of all Arabs and establishing relations with all friendly countries on the basis of mutual advantage, with persistent work for freedom and peace and against aggression. The Iraqi Press can play an important role in this respect. We are now undergoing a great national experiment on which the very future of our country depends. This is the reason why the Press is required to stick to the patriotic course which has assumed greater importance in this critical situation when the need for the unity of the ranks is no more felt. When the Leader, in his last press conference demanded the cessation of quibbling, abstention from the use of obscene language and the adoption of constructive criticism, he had all the newspapers in mind. We urge all the papers to reconsider their attitudes and never lose sight of what the Leader has said. Our Press, which is really representative of the people, can help educate our people by waging a battle against the aftermath of the old regime. Freedom of the Press is ensured to all; the Leader has repeatedly asserted that the only real censor of the Press must be conscience itself. This affords our Press a good opportunity to prove that they really are worthy of the freedom which the Leader bestows on them. The policy of our national government, emanating from the interests of the entire people, does not discriminate for reasons of religion or political leanings. We repeat, once again, that the Government promotes the rights of individuals and of the public and will not permit the aggression of one against the other. The citizens are brothers who must unite in times of hardship against imperialists and greedy elements. The Government will certainly severely punish all trouble makers without regard for nationality or politics; it will also crush all conspirators whether from inside or outside. All citizens are required to concentrate on productive work for the service of the Iraqi Republic which must remain the torch of freedom and liberation to illuminate the path for all peoples fighting for independence, freedom and national sovereignty. [=] 10028. Alaniz, Yolanda. "Part 5: A Look At Leninist Theory", in The Indian-Sandanista War in Nicaragua. Freedom Socialist Publications [5018 Rainier Ave South, Seattle WA 98118; tel: 206-722-2453], April 9, 1986. [94H-29920] [19860409] Lenin spelled out the criteria of nationhood for us: Nations are historically evolved; they constitute a stable and distinct community with their own language, their own common culture, and their own territory and economy--like that of the Indios, which differs markedly from the still capitalist economy of the rest of Nicaragua. Native people were aware of these criteria long before Lenin wrote them down. Throughout the history of revolutionary struggles, the question of nationhood has had to be dealt with. And true Leninists and Marxists have supported the fundamental democratic right to self-determination--the right of subject nations to choose whether or not to separate into independent states: i.e., the right to political secession. Lenin said that the right to selfdetermination does not mean that oppressed nations must or should separate. It means the people of an oppressed nation have the absolute right to choose secession or not. The right to self-determination is the final guarantee that a nation can attain full equality; if the nation cannot achieve its rights within the larger state, it can secede to achieve its goals. ("The Chicano Struggle: a Racial or a National Movement?" Freedom Socialist, Autumn 1984, p. 4.) History has shown that nations have chosen secession only when forced to by extreme oppression within the larger state. If their economic and political rights are respected and guaranteed, small nations choose to partake of the economic and cultural advantages offered by political union with a larger state entity. (Ibid.) Sandinistas take heed. Why did Lenin believe in these principles? Because a successful revolution requires unity of the workers of all nations. Without the unity of the entire international working class, of the different nations, of different cultures, of people of different languages, of men and women, of hetero- and homosexuals, of youth and the elders, there will be no international revolution--there will be no successful revolution in the interest of the working class. Without this unity, governments divide and conquer. When a chauvinistic attitude prevails, an attitude that says, "My culture is better than yours," the resulting divisions within the working class weaken the movement against imperialism. The Sandinistas' reason for not granting the Indios autonomy is that they are only an "ethnic group." But, efforts to portray the Indians as an "ethnic group" cannot change the truth. The Indians are a nation; they have the right to separate if they so choose. Lenin was very clear on the obligations of socialists towards oppressed nations: "Socialist parties which did not show...that they would liberate the enslaved nations and build up relations with them on the basis of a free unity--and a free union is a false phrase without the right to secede-- would be betraying socialism." Lenin practiced what he preached. Virtually the last political struggle of his life was conducted against Stalin's Sandinistastyle "integration" of the Georgian Republic into the Federation of Soviet Socialist Republics. Marxists who hedge on the right of sovereignty are issuing an invitation to anti-Marxism among people who belong on the revolutionary side. This is what is currently happening in Nicaragua. The Sandinistas are saying in essence that the right to autonomy is a counterrevolutionary demand! This is an 15 Kurdistan and the Kurds anti-socialist and antiMarxist position, and one that is bound to drive some Indios who should be natural allies of the revolution to join the other side. The Sandinistas, by not granting Indian nations their right to autonomy--to control their land and resources--are driving some of the Indians to pick up arms against the Sandinistas in self-defense, or--even though the majority of MISURASATA are not on the contra side--to join the counterrevolutionaries. If the Sandinistas had reached out and said "We agree with your demand, we recognize you as a nation, we support you all the way, we recognize that you hav e had hundreds and hundreds of years of being oppressed as a nation; we will be better than Somoza; we will grant you your democractic rights"--if the Sandinistas had done this from the beginning--the Indios would have joined with them in a united front against those who want to break the revolution. And both sides need this kind of unity. The Sandinistas still need to say this. They need to change their policy towards the Indian Nations of Nicaragua immediately. Not to grant the demand of autonomy, land and resources to the Indios will result in cultural genocide. This is how serious this issue is. Without land the Indios do not have a basis for their culture--they will cease to exist. Ask any Indian. Most Native Americans in this country I am sure would agree. That is why historically Indians have fought like hell for their land, even if it meant they were the last ones left to fight. The Sandinistas have said they have been wrong and have erred in the past five years, but they have made only very little concessions, concessions on words, yes; concessions on terms, yes, but when it comes right down to it they are still making the same mistakes that have cost lives. For example, in 1981, MISURASATA was asked to come back to the Sandinistas with a study of land ownership and a map of Indian lands, and, in the meantime, the Sandinistas agreed to stop further Indian land seizures. Matters looked hopeful. But the Sandinistas broke their agreement. They opened Sumo land to logging, they started to relocate the Indians by force, and, one week before the Indian land study was to be presented to the Nicaraguan government, the Sandinistas arrested all Indian leaders and declared them "separatists," outlawed MISURASATA, and killed four Indians in a church. Thus began the Indian-Sandinista War in Nicaragua. As a result some dissident youth joined the contras in Honduras. And MISURASATA picked up arms in self-defense and started to fight back. How do we help resolve this conflict? What do we say to our Indian brothers and sisters? And what do we say to our Sandinista compaeras and companeros? We say to our Indian brothers and sisters, we unconditionally support your democratic right to autonomy and your demand to control your own lives, your own territory and your own resources. And we support you in putting pressure on the Sandinista government to change their Indian policy. And we are with you in support of the revolution. We say to our Sandinista companeros, for the sake of the revolution, for all our sakes, grant the Indios their democratic rights. After all, isn't a Marxist revolution above all a democratic struggle? It is a struggle to bring full democracy to all of the people, and nothing less will do. History shows that where full democratic rights of nations are not given, disaster follows for the revolution. In the Spanish Civil War, when the Republican government recognized the Basque people's right as a distinct nation to secede from Spain, they won an ally against the fascist Franco. But when they refused to recognize the right of Spanish Morocco to independence, they lost the Moroccans to Franco's side. The Moroccan troops fought with Franco, and with Morocco as a base, he won the civil war. When Iran began its revolution, thousands of women marched into the streets to demand their democratic rights, only to be told they were counterrevolutionaries and CIA agents. The Kurds, a national minority in Iran, were pushed into conflict with revolutionaries who refused to live up to basic democratic principles ofself-determination. Iran became a bastion not of democratic socialism but of Islamic fundamentalism. The Sandinistas' undemocratic treatment of the Indios only feeds the fires of US and contra counterrevolutionary propaganda among Indian people and all over the world. I think that's why I am so angry at the Sandinistas in a really personal way. Because they discredit the Marxist revolutionary struggle. As a Marxist I expected more than the Sandinistas have given to the Indians. And if the people cannot expect and demand equality and nationhood under a Marxist government, why the hell should they change it? Why should they replace one oppressor with another? Why should they replace capitalism with socialism? Why? Why, if they cannot expect better treatment, especially on the issue of democracy? Nicaragua's revolution is not unique in the questions that it has raised, questions that affect us. These are historical questions that any revolution and any vanguard party must answer. They concern the revolutionary state's orientation to nations, to women, to gays, to racism, to the church and to the economic structure. And the correct answers will determine the destiny of the revolution. It is better for revolutionaries to extend democracy all the way, rather than face those people who should be on the revolutionary side on the other side of the barricades. It is best to make the revolution international as Trotsky and Lenin said, rather than confine socialism to one country and try to run it bureaucratically, as Stalin did. It is best to claim the goals of Marxism in opposition to the institution of religion, for these two opposites can not be combined. And it is best, when starting a revolution, to know what it means to make it successful. And in the case of Nicaragua, what it means is unity. Unity--the kind of unity obtained only by democracy. We all have a stake in the Nicaraguan Revolution, and we hope the Sandinistas fully accomplish it; that they are successful, because their success will belong to all of us. QUE VIVA LA REVOLUCION DE LOS INDIGINOUS, DE LAS MUJERS, Y DE LOS TRABAJADORES! [=] 10029. Albright, Madeleine K. "Strengthening the Coordination of Humanitarian Emergency Assistance Madeleine K. Albright, US Permanent Representative to the United Nations; Statement before the UN General Assembly, New York City, 11/19/1993", in US Department of State Dispatch, December 6, 1993. [94H-30789 ] [19931206] Mr. President, I welcome the opportunity to address the General Assembly today regarding the pressing subject of humanitarian assistance. The community of nations should do all it reasonably can to relieve the suffering resulting from natural and human-causeddisaster. But meeting this responsibility is growing more difficult. Devastation wrought by nature's fury is more than matched by the fury and folly of humankind. Ethnic and other subnational conflicts have created unprecedented demands for UN help. The number of displaced persons and refugees—the international homeless—is at an all-time high. The fabric of the international relief system has been stretched taut. Over the years, UN agencies with a relief role have saved countless lives. There are enormous grounds for pride in what has been accomplished. But when we contemplate current and future challenges, there are no grounds for complacency. A look around the world tells us that the infectious consequences of conflict continue to spread. Africa alone is home to a dozen ongoing insurgencies and 6 million refugees. Fighting in the Caucasus has prompted Iran to set up refugee camps inside Azerbaijan. Armenia faces a second harsh winter cut off from adequate supplies of food, water, and power. Hundreds of thousands are threatened in Georgia and Tajikistan. More than 2 million Afghans and 1 million Iraqi Kurds remain in need. And in Bosnia the war continues, and the suffering grows worse. The quantity of resources 16 Kurdistan and the Kurds available to respond to those emergencies has not kept pace with rising demand. There is a risk of donor fatigue and, potentially, even donor collapse. Already, the gap between needs and responses in many locations is enormous. All this makes efficiency a matter of much more than bureaucratic interest. Let us never forget that the stakes are not statistics or politics or camera placements and news stories. Rather, what is at stake is life or death for blameless children and grandparents and mothers and fathers. Their fate depends upon our choices. My government believes that the UN system must choose to become more efficient and professional in coordinating its disaster relief programs. The effort to reform UN humanitarian programs extends back at least to the creation of the UN Disaster Relief Office in 1972. UNDRO was supposed to improve coordination, eliminate duplication, and put someone clearly in charge. It didn't. So two years ago, we created a Department of Humanitarian Affairs, or DHA, with new tools to do the same jobs and more. Although DHA's efforts have been spread thin by the new wave of humanitarian emergencies, its work has begun to take root. Consolidated appeals have been established. The Central Emergency Revolving Fund has helped speed aid to victims. The Inter-Agency Standing Committee could become an effective coordinating forum for UN agencies and humanitarian organizations. The effectiveness of these tools will be enhanced further as the conclusions reached at ECOSOC this past summer are implemented. As I will describe in greater detail, my government is prepared to help bolster DHA in conjunction with reforms within that department. We are pleased that Under Secretary General Eliasson is taking steps to increase the efficiency and effectiveness of DHA, and we fully support him in this effort. We also believe that DHA capabilities need to be reinforced in three critical areas. First, DHA must have the recognized leadership role, the authority, and the resources to ensure that the UN's rapid response to emergencies is properly coordinated. DHA must be the party responsible for systems-wide performance in the delivery of humanitarian assistance in complex emergencies. Second, DHA must have a modern information system encompassing all emergency requirements. This includes providing data on assessed needs and tracking the capabilities and contributions of agencies and donors in response to those needs. The United States already provides funds for the International Emergency Readiness and Response Information System. As part of a joint initiative with Japan, the United States is now prepared to make two new commitments as DHA implements its reforms. We will give DHA the equipment necessary to establish a modern information network system in New York which can be linked to Geneva and the field. And we will provide five portable satellite communications earth stations for links with field offices in emergencies. The total value of this new US contribution exceeds $500000. We are pleased that the Government of Japan is able to join us in contributing to this critical information function, and we invite others to do so as well. Third, and finally, DHA needs the resources necessary to coordinate a rapid response by the UN to an emergency where insufficient capacity exists in the field. DHA must determine when field deployments are required, including its own when necessary, and must be responsible for seeing that sufficient resources are put in place. Accordingly, we urge that DHA be given access to the interest earned by the Central Emergency Revolving Fund for this purpose until a permanent solution is found. Let me also mention the role Under Secretary General Eliasson has played. He has established a new department in the midst of an unprecedented increase in humanitarian emergencies. He has worked to help those at risk, whether from drought in Southern Africa, from civil violence in the wintry hills of Georgia, or from other forms of catastrophe. So I am particularly pleased to announce today these new contributions to support DHA. I would also like to address myself to the UN humanihrian agencies which I hope are represented here today. As I have said, you all have our gratitude for your dedication and extraordinary hard work. However, the United States believes that DHA is not the only part of the UN humanihrian system that needs to be strengthened. We urge the UN humanitarian agencies tocooperate with DHA and to accept its leadership in coordinating responses to complex emergencies. That may require some loss of customary independence, but it will result in major gains in overall effectiveness. It is also vital that the Under Secrehry General for Humanitarian Affairs ensure that the humanihrian dimension is incorporated into the planning and execution of political and peace-keepingmissions. Thedelivery of emergency relief is often among the primary purposes of such a mission. It is both necessary and appropriate, therefore, that the UN of ficial responsible for humanitarian affairs be involved in developing and implementing the response. Such an integrated approach should ensure that the peacekeeping, political, and humanitarian elements of UN operations do not work at cross purposes. The role of the Secrehry General is also critical. In the end, his leadership will determine whether the UN system coordinates smoothly in responding to humanitarian crises and whether it does not. We urge him to take up this challenge forcefully. The DHA planning effort must also emphasize early intervention. Droughts may be inevitable, but famines resulting from drought are not. Human conflicts are inevitable, but destructive wars resulting from such conflicts are not. Early intervention requires good information, which means UN departments and agencies must pool their data. It requires a willingness on the part of the UN to respond quickly and appropriately to threatened emergencies. And it requires decisive leadership both from UN officials and from member states. Finally, planning for disaster relief must emphasize the continuum between emergency help and develop ment ever we respond to an emergency, we should begin preparing for the day when the primary mission changes from relief to recovery. Today, there is no better example of this need than Somalia. I, myself, saw that relief efforts in that country have saved hundreds of thousands of lives. Agricultural lands once ravaged by violence are now under cultivation. Children who seemed to have no futures are now returning to school. Basic health needs are being given attention. Somalia is entering the recovery phase. The test now is whether Somalis are willing and able to take the steps that will make an enduring recovery possible. The conference scheduled for November 29 in Addis Ababa is a key opportunity. If Somali leaders demonstrate their own commitment to peace, which is the prerequisite for development, international donors will respond. If they fail to do so, the space for effective international action will diminish. The United States is prepared to lead by example. At the Addis Ababa conference, we will announce an assistance package to Somalia of approximately $100 million in new and programmed funds. These funds will be used for humanitarian assistance and rehabilitation projects in those regions where progress on political reconciliation and security has been made. These funds will be available if, and only if, Somalis make real progress in creating a secure environment and reconciling politically. We urge other donors to participate actively in this effort. The international relief system is under grave strain. We should respond by strengthening DHA and by emphasizing the kind of comprehensive approach that complex emergencies demand. We must also work together to overcome the obstacles created by political and military conflict to the delivery of emergency relief Although it is sometimes difficult to separate the humanitarian from other components of a peace-keeping mission, there is a difference. A combatant force may well refuse to cease hostilities, to disarm or to 17 Kurdistan and the Kurds demobilize out of a legitimate concern for survival. But there is nothing legitimate about using force to starve or freeze innocent civilians. There is nothing legitimate about denying medical aid so that children lie screaming as legs are amputated without anesthesia. There is nothing legitimate about extorting food or other supplies meant for humanitarian relief. There is, in short, nothing legitimate about denying access to the means of human survival. This issue of access for relief convoys and aircraft will be especially critical in Bosnia this winter. For many, it may mean the difference between mere hardship and certain death. The Bosnian people are weaker today than they were last year. Their capacity to endure hardship has beensapped. If fighting continues, the number in need will be far greater and the gravity of their need far more severe than last winter. The international community is responding. The Sarajevo airlift has now gone on longer than the Berlin airlift 45 years ago. Pilots from 20 countries have flown more than 6000 flights over 500 days. America alone has contributed more than $400 million to the relief effort. The US Department of Defense has developed a new food ration that is high in nutrition; it can survive a 10000 foot airdrop and requires no water or fuel for preparation. And 80% of the airdrops in Bosnia have been from American planes. UN agencies have made plans for this winter. So have the nongovernmental organizations. We are all prepared and preparing to do more. The US is prepared to make a major contribution to address needs during the upcoming winter in Bosnia, and we hope this will encourage other donors to make similar contributions. We congratulate Mrs. Ogata on achieving an agreement between the parties in Bosnia to ensure the delivery of humanitarian assistance by suspending hostilities and allowing free and unconditional access to those in need. We must strive to convince those of all factions and nations, in former Yugoslavia and elsewhere, not to interfere with the delivery of emergency aid. One of our great challenges is to establish the principle that the UN has a nonviolable right to deliver humanitarian relief and that the victims of violence have an equal right to receive it. In closing, I want to thank you once again for the opportunity to discuss these issues with you today. Because of the very great challenges we face, it is as important as it has ever been that we work together to advance our common goals. Because the need is so great, our efforts, too, must be great. We must rise above institutional jealousies and move beyond the promise of reform to the reality of change. And we must keep the faith that each child fed, each refugee housed, each family reunited will inspire others to join with us in reducing the toll of tragedy in this troubled world. [=] grounds for complacency. A look around the world tells us that the infectious consequences of conflict continue to spread. Africa alone is home to a dozen ongoing insurgencies and 6 million refugees. Fighting in the Caucasus has prompted Iran to set up refugee camps inside Azerbaijan. Armenia faces a second harsh winter cut off from adequate supplies of food, water, and power. Hundreds of thousands are threatened in Georgia and Tajikistan. More than 2 million Afghans and 1 million Iraqi Kurds remain in need. And in Bosnia the war continues, and the suffering grows worse. The quantity of resources available to respond to those emergencies has not kept pace with rising demand. There is a risk of donor fatigue and, potentially, even donor collapse. Already, the gap between needs and responses in many locations is enormous. All this makes efficiency a matter of much more than bureaucratic interest. Let us never forget that the stakes are not statistics or politics or camera placements and news stories. Rather, what is at stake is life or death for blameless children and grandparents and mothers and fathers. Their fate depends upon our choices. My government believes that the UN system must choose to become more efficient and professional in coordinating its disaster relief programs. The effort to reform UN humanitarian programs extends back at least to the creation of the UN Disaster Relief Office in 1972. UNDRO was supposed to improve coordination, eliminate duplication, and put someone clearly in charge. It didn't. So two years ago, we created a Department of Humanitarian Affairs, or DHA, with new tools to do the same jobs and more. Although DHA's efforts have been spread thin by the new wave of humanitarian emergencies, its work has begun to take root. Consolidated appeals have been established. The Central Emergency Revolving Fund has helped speed aid to victims. The Inter-Agency Standing Committee could become an effective coordinating forum for UN agencies and humanitarian organizations. The effectiveness of these tools will be enhanced further as the conclusions reached at ECOSOC this past summer are implemented. As I will describe in greater detail, my government is prepared to help bolster DHA in conjunction with reforms within that department. We are pleased that Under Secretary General Eliasson is taking steps to increase the efficiency and effectiveness of DHA, and we fully support him in this effort. We also believe that DHA capabilities need to be reinforced in three critical areas. First, DHA must have the recognized leadership role, the authority, and the resources to ensure that the UN's rapid response to emergencies is properly coordinated. DHA must be the party responsible for systems-wide performance in the delivery of humanitarian assistance in complex emergencies. Second, DHA must have a modern information system encompassing all emergency requirements. This includes providing data on assessed needs and tracking the capabilities and contributions of agencies and donors in response to those needs. The United States already provides funds for the International Emergency Readiness and Response Information System. As part of a joint initiative with Japan, the United States is now prepared to make two new commitments as DHA implements its reforms. We will give DHA the equipment necessary to establish a modern information network system in New York which can be linked to Geneva and the field. And we will provide five portable satellite communications earth stations for links with field offices in emergencies. The total value of this new US contribution exceeds $500000. We are pleased that the Government of Japan is able to join us in contributing to this critical information function, and we invite others to do so as well. Third, and finally, DHA needs the resources necessary to coordinate a rapid response by the UN to an emergency where insufficient capacity exists in the field. DHA must determine when field deployments are required, including its own when necessary, 10030. Albright, Madeleine K. "Strengthening the Coordination of Humanitarian Emergency Assistance Madeleine K. Albright, US Permanent Representative to the United Nations; Statement before the UN General Assembly, New York City, 11/19/1993", in US Department of State Dispatch, December 6, 1993. [94H-30789 ] [19931206] Mr. President, I welcome the opportunity to address the General Assembly today regarding the pressing subject of humanitarian assistance. The community of nations should do all it reasonably can to relieve the suffering resulting from natural and human-causeddisaster. But meeting this responsibility is growing more difficult. Devastation wrought by nature's fury is more than matched by the fury and folly of humankind. Ethnic and other subnational conflicts have created unprecedented demands for UN help. The number of displaced persons and refugees—the international homeless—is at an all-time high. The fabric of the international relief system has been stretched taut. Over the years, UN agencies with a relief role have saved countless lives. There are enormous grounds for pride in what has been accomplished. But when we contemplate current and future challenges, there are no 18 Kurdistan and the Kurds and must be responsible for seeing that sufficient resources are put in place. Accordingly, we urge that DHA be given access to the interest earned by the Central Emergency Revolving Fund for this purpose until a permanent solution is found. Let me also mention the role Under Secretary General Eliasson has played. He has established a new department in the midst of an unprecedented increase in humanitarian emergencies. He has worked to help those at risk, whether from drought in Southern Africa, from civil violence in the wintry hills of Georgia, or from other forms of catastrophe. So I am particularly pleased to announce today these new contributions to support DHA. I would also like to address myself to the UN humanihrian agencies which I hope are represented here today. As I have said, you all have our gratitude for your dedication and extraordinary hard work. However, the United States believes that DHA is not the only part of the UN humanihrian system that needs to be strengthened. We urge the UN humanitarian agencies tocooperate with DHA and to accept its leadership in coordinating responses to complex emergencies. That may require some loss of customary independence, but it will result in major gains in overall effectiveness. It is also vital that the Under Secrehry General for Humanitarian Affairs ensure that the humanihrian dimension is incorporated into the planning and execution of political and peace-keepingmissions. Thedelivery of emergency relief is often among the primary purposes of such a mission. It is both necessary and appropriate, therefore, that the UN of ficial responsible for humanitarian affairs be involved in developing and implementing the response. Such an integrated approach should ensure that the peacekeeping, political, and humanitarian elements of UN operations do not work at cross purposes. The role of the Secrehry General is also critical. In the end, his leadership will determine whether the UN system coordinates smoothly in responding to humanitarian crises and whether it does not. We urge him to take up this challenge forcefully. The DHA planning effort must also emphasize early intervention. Droughts may be inevitable, but famines resulting from drought are not. Human conflicts are inevitable, but destructive wars resulting from such conflicts are not. Early intervention requires good information, which means UN departments and agencies must pool their data. It requires a willingness on the part of the UN to respond quickly and appropriately to threatened emergencies. And it requires decisive leadership both from UN officials and from member states. Finally, planning for disaster relief must emphasize the continuum between emergency help and develop ment ever we respond to an emergency, we should begin preparing for the day when the primary mission changes from relief to recovery. Today, there is no better example of this need than Somalia. I, myself, saw that relief efforts in that country have saved hundreds of thousands of lives. Agricultural lands once ravaged by violence are now under cultivation. Children who seemed to have no futures are now returning to school. Basic health needs are being given attention. Somalia is entering the recovery phase. The test now is whether Somalis are willing and able to take the steps that will make an enduring recovery possible. The conference scheduled for November 29 in Addis Ababa is a key opportunity. If Somali leaders demonstrate their own commitment to peace, which is the prerequisite for development, international donors will respond. If they fail to do so, the space for effective international action will diminish. The United States is prepared to lead by example. At the Addis Ababa conference, we will announce an assistance package to Somalia of approximately $100 million in new and programmed funds. These funds will be used for humanitarian assistance and rehabilitation projects in those regions where progress on political reconciliation and security has been made. These funds will be available if, and only if, Somalis make real progress in creating a secure environment and reconciling politically. We urge other donors to participate actively in this effort. The international relief system is under grave strain. We should respond by strengthening DHA and by emphasizing the kind of comprehensive approach that complex emergencies demand. We must also work together to overcome the obstacles created by political and military conflict to the delivery of emergency relief Although it is sometimes difficult to separate the humanitarian from other components of a peace-keeping mission, there is a difference. A combatant force may well refuse to cease hostilities, to disarm or to demobilize out of a legitimate concern for survival. But there is nothing legitimate about using force to starve or freeze innocent civilians. There is nothing legitimate about denying medical aid so that children lie screaming as legs are amputated without anesthesia. There is nothing legitimate about extorting food or other supplies meant for humanitarian relief. There is, in short, nothing legitimate about denying access to the means of human survival. This issue of access for relief convoys and aircraft will be especially critical in Bosnia this winter. For many, it may mean the difference between mere hardship and certain death. The Bosnian people are weaker today than they were last year. Their capacity to endure hardship has been sapped. If fighting continues, the number in need will be far greater and the gravity of their need far more severe than last winter. The international community is responding. The Sarajevo airlift has now gone on longer than the Berlin airlift 45 years ago. Pilots from 20 countries have flown more than 6000 flights over 500 days. America alone has contributed more than $400 million to the relief effort. The US Department of Defense has developed a new food ration that is high in nutrition; it can survive a 10000 foot airdrop and requires no water or fuel for preparation. And 80% of the airdrops in Bosnia have been from American planes. UN agencies have made plans for this winter. So have the nongovernmental organizations. We are all prepared and preparing to do more. The US is prepared to make a major contribution to address needs during the upcoming winter in Bosnia, and we hope this will encourage other donors to make similar contributions. We congratulate Mrs. Ogata on achieving an agreement between the parties in Bosnia to ensure the delivery of humanitarian assistance by suspending hostilities and allowing free and unconditional access to those in need. We must strive to convince those of all factions and nations, in former Yugoslavia and elsewhere, not to interfere with the delivery of emergency aid. One of our great challenges is to establish the principle that the UN has a nonviolable right to deliver humanitarian relief and that the victims of violence have an equal right to receive it. In closing, I want to thank you once again for the opportunity to discuss these issues with you today. Because of the very great challenges we face, it is as important as it has ever been that we work together to advance our common goals. Because the need is so great, our efforts, too, must be great. We must rise above institutional jealousies and move beyond the promise of reform to the reality of change. And we must keep the faith that each child fed, each refugee housed, each family reunited will inspire others to join with us in reducing the toll of tragedy in this troubled world. [=] 10031. Albright, Madeleine K. Use of Force in a Postold War World Madeleine K. Albright. Address at the National War College, National Defense University, Fort McNair, Washington, DC, September 23, 1993. [95H-07367] [19930923] To me, this auditorium—this military institution—is the right place to discuss the Clinton Administration's foreign policy goals and address that most crucial of topics: the use of military force in the post-Cold War world. I believe that our national dialogue must ensure that this nation's foreign policy is clearly understood by those who might be asked to risk their lives in its behalf. And policy-makers must not only explain but listen—take the time to hear the concerns and answer the questions of our military 19 Kurdistan and the Kurds personnel. For almost half a century, whenever we talked foreign policy, we did so within a Cold War context. A whole new vocabulary was established of containment and deterrence, throw weights and missile gaps, subversion and domino theories. And US military action was almost always related— directly or indirectly—to the Soviet threat. The world was a chessboard, and the two superpowers moved the pieces. But then our chess rival left the table. The game has changed and the rules to the new one are still being written. Most of us do not for a minute mourn the Cold War era. But now there are those from all parts of the political spectrum for whom the new world is more confusing than gratifying. They can conceive of no threats to America that are not Cold War threats. They look at that empty chair on the other side of the chess table and counsel us to sit back, put our feet up, and lose interest in the outside world. Obviously, America is safer and more secure than it was. Anyone who feels nostalgia for the Cold War ought to have his or her head examined. But anyone who concludes that foreign adversaries, conflicts, and disasters do not affect us misreads the past, misunderstands the present, and will miss the boat in the future. Indeed, President Clinton has talked often about the similarity between this historical moment and the early days of the Truman Administration immediately following World War II. Then, as now, a new President saw a dramatically altered world, sought to redefine America's interests in that new world, and acted to protect those interests from a rising tide of isolationist thinking. And then, as now, the President's decisions were based on an analysis of new threats, a recognition of our enduring interests, and the imperative of engagement. So what are these new threats, and what should be America's response? The Cold War is gone, but weapons of mass destruction are not. The possible aggressive use of such weapons remains perhaps the greatest threat to international peace and our security. Revelations about Iraq's weapons programs should have shocked even the most complacent among us. Besides Iraq, serious proliferation threats exist from states that fear the future, like North Korea; states that have fallen prey to the extremes of intolerance, such as Iran; and states that are engulfed by regional tension, such as in South Asia. Beyond the destructive weapons, there are the destructive hatreds. Less than 2 months ago, the FBI apprehended a group with apparent foreign connections planning to blow up the building in which I work. The recent Middle East agreement is sure to enrage further those whose insecurities and extremism have made them blind to the promise of peace and open to the use of terror. The terrorist threat is aggravated by advances in technology and by the availability of weapons of every description. I know we remain vulnerable to terrorism, and I know it can affect our most vital of interests— our fathers, mothers, spouses, daughters, and sons. We also face increasing ethnic and subnational violence. Wherever we turn, someone is fighting or threatening to fight someone else. These disputes may be far removed from our borders, but in today's global village, chaos is an infectious disease. Although violence in a failed state such as Somalia may seem trivial to some, when combined with unrest in Sudan, Rwanda, Liberia, Bosnia, Georgia, and so on, our attention and our interests— whether political or humanitarian— cannot help but be engaged. When a democratic government was ousted in Haiti, drug trafficking skyrocketed, repression increased, and the risk of a massive new influx of refugees to America grew. In Somalia, we have indications that a tactical alliance may be forming between Aideed's faction, terrorists based in Sudan, and the Government of Iran. The current violence in Azerbaijan threatens to bring Turkey, Iran, and Russia into conflict in ways that could well threaten our interests directly. And the possibility remains that the war in former Yugoslavia will spread to neighboring regions and nations, swelling further the flow of refugees, straining the economic vigor of Europe, and threatening the security of key European allies. There is also a moral dimension to these conflicts, dramatized most hauntingly by the brave people of Sarajevo and Mostar but embodied, as well, by the millions of others who suffer the depredations of violence off camera, out of sight, every day. Obviously, neither we nor anyone else can right every wrong, nor would it make sense for us to try. But let us never become so preoccupied with dayto-day concerns that we lose sight of our own most basic interest, which is the preservation not simply of American leadership but of American purpose. Ten days ago, in Washington, I attended a lunch to celebrate the signing of an agreement between Israel and the PLO—a day I will remember all my life. I will remember, in particular, a comment by Israeli Foreign Minister Shimon Peres about America's purpose. When the history books are written, he said: Nobody will understand the United States, really: You have so much force, and you didn't conquer the land of anybody; you have so much power, and you didn't dominate another people; you have problems of your own, and you have never turned your back on the problems of others. We should be proud that so much of the world sees America the way Foreign Minister Peres sees America, for our leadership today rests on the same solid foundation of principles and values—the same enlightened selfinterest—that has made service to America from Valley Forge to Desert Storm a badge not only of courage but of honor. As Secretary Christopher and National Security Adviser Tony Lake have said this week, American foreign policy has four overarching goals: first, to strengthen the bonds among those countries that make up the growing community of major market democracies; second, to help emerging democracies get on their feet; third, to reform or isolate the rogue states that act to undermine the stability and prosperity of the larger community; and, fourth, to contain the chaos and ease the suffering in regions of greatest humanitarian concern.Taken together, our strategy looks to the enlargement of democracy and markets abroad. To achieve these goals, some say we must make rigid choices between unilateral and multilateral, global and regional, force and diplomacy. But that is not true. We have the flexibility in this new era to steer a reasoned course between the counsel of those who would have us intervene everywhere and of those who see no American purpose anywhere. We have a full range of foreign policy tools with which to work, and we will choose those that will be most effective in each case. As America's permanent representative to the United Nations, I have made it clear that we remain committed to the cause of peace and to the principle of resolving conflicts without violence whenever that is possible. The end of the Cold War has provided us with new and important opportunities in this regard. Cooperation, not confrontation, is now the norm at the UN Security Council. As a result of our assertive diplomacy, we have been able to muster global support for sanctions against Libya for shielding the alleged saboteurs of Pan Am 103, against Iraq for its continued failure to meet its obligations following the Persian Gulf war, and against Haiti prior to the agreement reached recently to restore democratic rule. The use of sanctions has also arisen in the case of Angola, where our goal is to encourage an armed opposition group to abide by the results of a free election, and, of course, in Serbia, where they have drastically weakened the economy of an aggressor state. Diplomacy will always be America's first choice, and the possibilities for diplomatic achievements today are ample. But history teaches us that there will always be times when words are not enough, when sanctions are not enough, when diplomacy is not enough. The foremost mission of our government— its constitutional duty— is to protect our nation's territory, people, and way of life. We cannot fulfill that mission unless we have both the capacity to use force effectively and the will to do so when necessary. When neither our ability to fight nor our resolve to fight are in doubt, 20 Kurdistan and the Kurds we can be most certain not only of defeating those who threaten us but of deterring those who are tempted to take such action. Under the leadership of Secretary Aspin, I am confident that we will maintain military forces that are modern, versatile, ready, and strong. It is Department of Defense policy to maintain a military capable enough, in concert with local allies, to fight and win two major regional wars. The existence of such a force—and the credible threat to use it—is the surest way to prevent our interests from being threatened in the first place. For years, a debate has raged about whether it is necessary to spell out a set of specific circumstances—a checklist— describing when America will or will not contemplate the use of military force. This Administration has wisely avoided the temptation to devise a precise list of the circumstances under which military force might be used or of repeating the State Department's mistake concerning Korea 43 years ago when it defined too narrowly the scope of America's interests and concerns. Too much precision in public, however wellintentioned, can impinge on the flexibility of the commander in chief or generate dangerous miscalculations abroad. But let no one doubt that this President is willing to use force— unilaterally when necessary. Last June, the President ordered a strike against Saddam Hussein's military intelligence headquarters in response to Iraq's plot to kill former President Bush. We didn't seek anyone's permission to carry out that raid. We didn't ask anyone's help. We did it using our own forces exercising our own right of selfdefense.The President said in his inaugural speech that America would act militarily with others when possible but "alone when we must." That commitment was true then; it is true today. In the future, if America's vital economic interests are at risk—as they were in the Gulf, or if the lives of American citizens are in danger—as they were in Panama, or if terrorists need to be tracked down—as when President Reagan ordered the use of force to apprehend the hijackers of the Achillle auLro, President Clinton will not hesitate to act as a commander in chief must act to protect America and Americans. The President's inaugural statement also indicated that we support the use of force on a multilateral basis when it is in our interests to do so. As Secretary Christopher put it, we see "multilateralism as a means, not an end." No one understands the potential advantages of multilateralism better than the United States. That's why we proposed NATO and helped create the United Nations. The underlying thesis of the post-World War II strategy of containment, the legacy of such leaders as President Truman, General Marshall, and General Eisenhower, was that American strength is made even greater when cemented by strong alliances and joint endeavors with other nations in pursuit of common objectives. The history of the Persian Gulf over the past 3 years is a classic modern example of this. I know that some of you here today helped to plan and execute operations during that war, including perhaps the most decisive air operation in history, along with the complex passage to the front lines of large combat units from different countries with different languages. I salute you for your skill and professionalism in this most effective coalition campaign. In the Gulf, American leadership benefited greatly from the support of other states before, during, and after the war. UN sanctions strengthened our cause politically, allied support spread the burden militarily, and contributions from Arab states, Germany, and Japan reduced the costs of the war and its aftermath financially. The end of the Cold War has opened up another avenue for multilateral cooperation that had long been limited by the US-Soviet rivalry—and that is UN peace-keeping. In recent years, there has been a dramatic increase in requests for UN assistance in resolving ethnic and other conflicts. The statistics by now are familiar: more peace-keeping operations in the past years than in the previous 43; a sevenfold increase in troops; a tenfold increase in budget; and a dramatic but immeasurable increase in danger and complexity. At their best, UN peace-keeping operations can be very effective. Obviously, they cannot be a substitute for fighting or winning our own wars, nor should we allow the existence of a collective peacekeeping capability to lessen our own military strength. But UN efforts have the potential to act as a "force multiplier" in promoting the interests in peace and stability that we share with other nations. As I said earlier, territorial disputes, armed ethnic conflicts, civil wars, and the total collapse of governmental authority in some states are now among the principal threats to world peace. The UN is playing a constructive role in many such situations by mediating disputes, obtaining cease-fires, and, in some cases, achieving comprehensive peace agreements. This often requires the presence of UN peacekeepers or observers either to help arrange a peace or to help keep it. Past UN peace missions have achieved important goals in places as diverse as the Middle East, Namibia, El Salvador, and Cambodia. To the extent that future peace-keeping missions succeed, they will lift from the shoulders of American servicemen and servicewomen and the taxpayers a great share of the burden of collective security operations around the globe. Particularly when circumstances arise where there is a threat to international peace that affects us but does not immediately threaten our citizens or territory, it will be in our interests to proceed in partnership with the UN or other appropriate groupings to respond to the threat involved and, hopefully, eliminate it. In such cases, we will benefit not only from the burdensharing aspects but from the ability to invoke the voice of the community of nations in behalf of a cause that we support. At the same time, as America's representative to the UN, I know that UN capabilities have not kept pace with its responsibilities—and I have discussed this problem on many prior occasions. Those who support the goals of the UN do it no favors if they fail to speak out when its reach begins repeatedly to exceed its grasp. The UN emerged from 40 years of Cold War rivalry overweight and out of shape. Today, UN peace-keepers need reformedbudgetprocedures, more dependable sources of military and civilian personnel, better training, better intelligence, better command and control, better equipment, and more money. These limitations are not inherent; they are correctable, and the Administration is doing its part to see that they are corrected. We believe, for example, that the UN decision-making process on peacekeeping must be overhauled. When deciding whether or not to support a UN peace-keeping or peace-making resolution, we are insisting that certain fundamental questions be asked before, not after, new obligations are undertaken. These questions include the following: (a) Is there a real threat to international peace and security—whether caused by international aggression; or by humanitarian disaster accompanied by violence; or by the sudden, unexpected, and violent interruption of an established democracy? (b) Does the proposed peace-keeping mission have clear objectives, and can its scope be clearly defined? (c) Is a cease-fire in place, and have the parties to the conflict agreed to a UN presence? (d) Are the financial and human resources that will be needed to accomplish the mission available to be used for that purpose? (e) Can an end point to UN participation be identified? These questions illustrate the kind of consistent criteria—which do not now exist—that we are proposing that the UN take into account when contemplating new peace-keeping operations. And we are preparing guidelines for American participation that will promise greatest assistance in specialized areas such as logistics, training, intelligence, communications, and public affairs. And although the Administration has not yet fully completed its review of our policy toward UN peacekeeping, I can assure you of one thing: This Administration believes that whether an operation is multilateral or unilateral, whether the troops are US or foreign, young men and 21 Kurdistan and the Kurds women should not be sent in harm's way without a clear mission, competent commanders, sensible rules of engagement, and the means required to get the job done. The credibility of UN peace operations should hinge not on how many missions there are but on the quality of planning, the degree of professionalism demonstrated, and the extent to which mission objectives are achieved. America under President Clinton will be a strong supporter of the UN. We take seriously President Truman's pledge to the first UN General Assembly that America will work to help the UN "not as a temporary expedient but as a permanent partnership." At the same time, we understand that there are limits to what that partnership can achieve for the United States. Adlai Stevenson used to refer to the UN as the "meeting house of the family of man," which it is, but it is a very large family. It is the ultimate committee. It reflects the broadest possible diversity of viewpoints. As Americans, we command enormous influence there because of our power and the power of our ideals. But we cannot rely on the UN as a substitute guarantor for the vital interests of the United States. The Berlin Wall would be upright today if we had relied on the UN to contain communism. That ceremony on the front lawn of the White House 2 weeks ago would never have taken place if America had subcontracted to others the job of helping Israel to survive. Sending American military forces into dangerous situations is the most difficult decision any President can make. History teaches us that public support for such decisions is essential and that in each such circumstance Americans are entitled to the facts. The Administration has welcomed and takes very seriously the Senate's recent request to review our policy in Somalia. We have also begun, and will continue, a regular series of close consultations with the Congress and a dialogue with the public on our policy toward Bosnia. I have spoken at length in public speeches and congressional testimony about both issues, and both are about to enter a new phase. Bosnia may be witness to a negotiated peace that will present the international community with its most daunting peace-keeping task ever. Yesterday, the Security Council approved a resolution setting out clearly that the UN's principal goal in Somalia is to bring about the political reconciliation of that long-suffering country, in part through the establishment of basic civic institutions, such as a functioning judiciary and police. In the weeks ahead, we will continue our consultations on Somalia, Bosnia, and the full range of national security and peace-keeping issues. Now, let me summarize my message here today. The world has changed, and the Cold War national security framework is now obsolete. The Clinton Administration is fashioning a new framework that is more diverse and flexible than the old—a framework that will advance American interests, promote American values, and preserve American leadership. We will choose the means to implement this framework on a case-by-case basis, relying on diplomacy whenever possible, on force when absolutely necessary. If American servicemen and servicewomen are sent into combat, they will go with the training, the equipment, the support, and the leadership they need to get the job done. Recognizing that global solutions are required to global problems, the tools that America will use to carry out its foreign policy will be both unilateral and multilateral. Other nations and institutions can and should be asked to bear a substantial part of the burden of advancing common interests. We have strong reason to help build a United Nations that is increasingly able and effective. But America will never entrust its destiny to other than American hands. Finally, in keeping with a bipartisan tradition that stretches back a halfcentury, America will remain engaged in the world. It was 50 years ago this month that the Republican congressional leadership, mindful of what America's periodic tendency toward isolationism had done to the League of Nations, first went on record in support of an international organization "to prevent military aggression and attain permanent peace." Senator Arthur Vandenberg sponsored that resolution, in his words: To end the miserable notion . . . that the Republican Party will return to its foxhole when the last shot in this war has been fired and will blindly let the world rot in its own anarchy. Under the Clinton Administration, our nation will not retreat into a postCold War foxhole. Under the President's leadership, we will be called upon to work together, Republican and Democrat, civilian and military, public official and private citizen, to protect America and build a better world. [=] 10032. Aldhous, Peter. "Iraqi Refugee: From Hillside To Laboratory", in Nature, May 23, 1991. p. 262. [91H-37853] [19910523] Riadh Dinha Francis was in a refugee camp on the Iraqi-Turkish border two weeks ago. Now he is in Sheffield, following an appeal on British Channel 4 and an effort by British scientists. Francis completed his doctorate at Sheffield in 1985, and returned to Salahaddin University in Erbil. Francis, with 6000-7000 students at the university, fled when the Iraqi Army advanced to put down Kurdish guerrillas. Francis also noted that truckloads of equipment were delivered to the university from Kuwait after the invasion of Kuwait. 10033. Alemdar, Zeynap. "Libyan Visit Dismays Turks; Premier Sets Off Furor With Plan To Call on Qadhafi", in Seattle Times, October 2, 1996. p. A9. [96H-33685] [19961002] The efforts of new PM Necmettin Erbakan to improve relations with his Islamic neighbors is reaping criticism at home and uncertain results abroad. The multi-billion dollar natural gas deal with Iran has been criticized. And a diplomatic swing through Egypt, Libya and Nigeria, left Erbakan criticized by the US for even meeting with Libya and criticized by Libya for not protecting Kurdish human rights. Qadhafi has recently been quoted observing that the Turks were 'butchers of the Kurds... [adding] They had once slaughtered the Arabs as well'. Denounced by the US for even talking with the Libyans, Necmettin's domestic opposition joked that Necmettin should visit Taliban-ruled Kabul next. Turkish newspapers also note that the planned visit to Nigeria will also damage Turkey's international reputation. His supporters are dismayed that Erbakan has note ended the defense pact with Israel, and has backed the US Northern No-Fly Zone over Iraq. [TXT] 10034. Alemdar, Zeynap. "Turkey's Military Warns Against Islamic Radicalism; The Army, Protector of the Nation's Modern Secular Traditions, Pressures the Government to Curb Its Pro-Islamic Policies", in Oregonian (Portland), June 12, 1997. p. A7. [97H-13543] [19970612] Gen. Fevzi Turkeri states: "Radical Islamic activities have gained momentum towards civil uprising. The basic principles of the Turkish Republic cannot be changed, will not be changed... Political islam works closely with Iran and some other Islamic countries to pull Turkey into an endless darkness, away from Western civilization." He stated that Turkey has at least 30 radical Islamic groups that are allied with Kurdish secessionists: "Kurdish separatist terrorism and radical Islam are Number One threats to the country". He stated that Turkish law required the army to protect the nation. [TXT] 10035. Alemdar, Zeynep. "Turks To Ease Law Limiting Expression?", in Seattle Times, November 9, 1994. p. A11. [95H02313] [19941109] About 100 Turks, 70 journalists and about 30 academics, have been jailed under the strict freedom-of-expression limits. Economic prof. Fikret Baskaya, for example, is jailed for his assertion that Turkish policy vis-a-vis the Kurds has been 'chauvinistic'. Yasar Topcu, an opponent of expanding permissible speech and member of the True Path party, notes: 'Intellectuals 22 Kurdistan and the Kurds should not have the right to harm the sovereignty and integrity of the country of be allowed to support terrorism'. [TXT] statement has also been made by the Stuttgart committee of the "Kurdish Political Detainees Support Group" condemning Germany's Kurdish policy and the recent attacks by police on Kurds in Stuttgart. Ozgur Politika, 2/20/1996. [=] 10036. Alkeilani, Mohamed. A Record Of Ten Months In Iraq. World Trade Union Movement (English Translation of Vsemirnoe Profsoiuznoe Dvizhenie) (WFTU), No. 12, December1963. pp. 26-28. [99H-03159] [19640601] An account of repression and terror under the Baathist regime. It is in power because of the manoeuvers of the Iraq Petroleum Company, which engineered the coup to protect the interests of the imperialist trusts on whom it depends. The company is particularly concerned because of the large oil deposits in Kurdistan, which is exploited by the IPC, the feudalists and the big bourgeoisie; these are the groups profiting by the regime. The Baathists flirt with CENTO to get help in crushing the Kurds. However, resistance is growing all over. [Reprinted from Soviet Periodical Abstracts: Asia, Africa and Latin America (SPAAALA) (Formerly Selective Soviet Annotated Bibliographies), Vol. 4 (1), June 1964. Editors: Anita Navon, Ina Schlesinger. Slavic Languages Research Institute, White Plains, NY.] 10040. American Kurdish Information Network; AKIN. "'Massacre Evidence Points to State'", in AKIN News, February 1996. [99H09061] [19960201] A delegation comprising Professor Laurence Lustgarten from Southampton University, British historian-writer David McDowell and Caroline Nolan from the Kurdish Human Rights Project have completed their investigations in Siirt, Guclukonak, Van and Diyarbaki r. The delegation visited the region in order to investigate on the spot the post-election situation and human rights violations. The delegation met relatives of those who lost family members in the Guclukonak massacre and said: "The evidence given by the relatives of those who died points to the state as perpetrator." The delegation said they had been constantly followed by police and troops and obtained evidence from people who had been detained that was contrary to statements made by the authorities." In our report we will ask the Turkish authorities to answer our q uestions concerning this claim." Ozgur Politika, 2/12/1996. [=] 10037. Allen, Arthur. "Conflict Over Southeastern Turkey Heats Up On german Soil; Violence Continues For a Second Day and Erupts in Karlsruhe, Where Turks Attack Kurds Occupying a Consulate", in Oregonian (Portland), June 26, 1993. p. A4. [93H-30270] [19930626] 10041. American Kurdish Information Network; AKIN. "'Our Hope Is Peace'", in AKIN News, April 1996. [99H-09085] [19960401] Bekir Ozturk, the father of Tevfik Ozturk, who was one of two soldiers captured by the PKK in a raid on an encampment of the Mobile Commando Units in Semdinli district on 7/4/1995, said he had applied to all official bodies but stated that they had not shown any interest in his son, adding: "They only say 'we're trying' they don't say anything else. They have abandoned them to their fate. If they want to do something let them respond to the cease-fire." Bekir Ozturk added: "The last time I spoke to my son he said he was being sent to Semdinli. All the troops sent with him were Kurdish. This was a conscious thing. They want to pit Kurd against Kurd." Ozturk said that after his son had been captured a reporter from Milliyet newspaper had interviewed him but had distorted what he had said. Milliyet published the story under the title: "I'm willing to sacrifice three more sons". Ozturk said: "I definitely didn't say anything like that. Tevfik is my youngest son. My other three sons have done their military service. I've no other sons to send to such a war. I want to call on the PKK. Release my son and the other soldiers or at least let us speak to them once on the phone. The authorities have not staunched our tears, perhaps you can." Ozgur Politika, 2/19/1996. [=] 10038. Allen, Robin. "Iran In Summit Clash With Arab States", in Financial Times, December 11, 1997. p. 6. [98H-17472] [19971211] There was a clash of opinions between Iran and GCC states over peace making and security at the Organization of the Islamic Conference meeting in Tehran. Disputes inclue the "land-for-peace" formula in Israel-Palestine talks, Turkish military incursions into northern Iraq, protests by Arab Gulf states on then Iranian occupation of three disputed islands, and Iranian attempts to persuade Arab states to end their military alliances with the US. All 55 attending states blamed Israel for stalling the peace process; several, including Egypt, Jordan, Syria and Palestine were uneasy with the Iranian characterization of land-for-peace as a "losing proposition". There was also fierce debate on whether to condemn Turkey for new incursions into Iraq. Separately, Kofi Annan, rejected a proposal that the Organization of the Islamic Conference be granted a permanent seat on the Security Council, noting that membership in the UN was "not based on religion or anything of that kind" [sic: except in the instance of the Vatican City and the Jewish State]. 10042. American Kurdish Information Network; AKIN. "'Solidarity Committee with Kurdish Political Prisoners' Founded in Germany", in AKIN News, December 1995. [99H-09053] [19951201] A committee aiming to provide solidarity, visits, legal assistance, and other needs to Kurdish political prisoners in Germany has been set up in Stuttgart. The committee issued a press release stating that in the last two years close to 100 Kurds had been remanded in custody, 41 still being in prison, 7 of whom have been charged under Paragraph 129(a) of the German Penal Code for alleged membership of a terrorist organization. Ozgur Politika, 12/6/1995. [=] 10039. American Kurdish Information Network; AKIN. "'Germany Trying To Prevent Newroz Celebrations'", in AKIN News, April 1996. [99H-09087] [19960401] At a press conference in Stuttgart the day before yesterday Green Party councilor and lawyer Roland Kugler and 4 Kurds condemned police attacks on Kurds. In Stuttgart in particular earlier this month 98 Kurdish people were detained in one day and held for 24 hours without charge. In Germany in general the police have been on the alert since the German media reported that "the PKK will attack German and Turkish concerns", based on statements from the Federal Criminal Department and the Institution for the Protection of the Constitution. At the press conference the Kurds listed the reasons for the police attacks as follows: "Germany is supporting Turkey in its efforts to break the PKK cease-fire, and trying to prevent Newroz activities and celebrations by banning them in advance." The Kurds also called for the bans on the PKK, ERNK and other Kurdish associations and bodies to be lifted. Roland Kugler said: "All Kurdish demonstrations have been peaceful. On most occasions aggression has come from the German police." A 10043. American Kurdish Information Network; AKIN. "'We Will Wait a Little Longer'", in AKIN News, April 1996. [99H-09092] [19960401] PKK President Abdullah Ocalan stated that they would extend the unilateral cease-fire a little longer, but said that the fact that they had not received a response reduced the cease-fire's chances of success. Abdullah Ocalan participated by telephone in a live debate on MED TV in which Kurdistan Parliament in Exile President, Yashar Kaya, HADEP President, Murat Bozlak, Dr. Haluk Gerger, Islamist 23 Kurdistan and the Kurds politician Hasan Mezarci, journalist Cihan Eren and French journalist Jean Francois were present in the studio while former MP Abdulmelik Firat, Mahir Kaynak and families of Turkish soldiers held by the PKK participated by telephone. Ocalan said: "This government is so weak it cannot even say 'I am opposed to the cease-fire, my position on the Kurdish question is as follows'" "I have sent Mesut Yilmaz a letter and addressed him via TV. He must reply to the letter. (...) If he does not respond we will intensify the war. If the Turkish peoplesuffer no one will be able to hold us responsible. We are showing the way to achieve a resolution of the issue. If they don't want to speak to us there are many Kurdish individuals that may be consulted. We will make the necessary contribution to this. (...) If this does not take place then the war will escalate from Newroz onw ards." Ozgur Politika, 3/19/1996. [=] 10046. American Kurdish Information Network; AKIN. "America Arms Turkey's Repression", in AKIN News, December 1995. [99H09044] [19951201] Turkey lags behind only Israel and Egypt in receipt of American military aid. Washington has approved $7.8 billion in military sales to Turkey in the last decade, and has provided grants or loans to cover most of it. This year, unless dramatic events take place in the current House-Senate conference, Turkey will get $320 million in American credits to finish production - in Turkey - of F16 fighters planes. Washington now provides 85% of Turkey's arms imports and 90% of its military aid. Despite the efforts of Senator Patrick Leahy, Democrat of Vermont, and Rep. John Porter, Republican of Illinois, to curtail aid, Congress has not yet managed to block or place conditions on substantial amounts of Turkish military aid. The New York Times, 10/17/1995. [=] larges t number of votes in four southeastern provinces by campaigning for a peaceful solution to the Kurdish nationalist uprising. Many Kurds in that area will see their own preferred candidates excluded from parliament in favor of others who won fewer votes. This can only strengthen the feeling that there is no way to assert a Kurdish identity in Turkey, except by armed struggle. Kurdish Priorities: The Kurdish issue, along with inflation and unemployment, is one of the priorities Mr. Necmettin Erbakan, the Refah leader, says he would like to pursue in a coalition government. He has not spelt out how he would solve it, and his economic ideas such as exchange controls and the gradual abolition of interest on bank loans would hardly improve the economy. But it is perhaps a pity that he will not be given the chance to try. Instead Turkey is likely to live through a further period of political instabilit y, with a divided, fractious and probably corrupt governing coalition whose only apparent raison d'être will be to keep Mr. Erbakan out of power. To have a hope of success, the ruling parties must confront the economic problems that have created the condi tions for Refah's success. Turks Fearful Of Future After Gains By Islamists: The kind of measures needed to correct the country's chronic economic ills, including runaway inflation, a huge budget deficit and an inflated public sector, will in the short term generate the sort of discontent that the Islamists, as the country's main opposition party, would feed off. To leave economic decline unchecked could yield the same result. Many political experts believe that the only way to do the job without strengthening the Islamists would be to engage them directly in the recovery process. The logic of checking the rise of political Islam by shutting out Refah is also flawed in that it assumes that the party is the only propagator of Islamic ideology. There is also a strong element of hypocrisy in the claims of Mrs. Ciller and Mr. Yilmaz t o be the great defenders of secularism in Turkey. Both their parties have their fair share of openly pro-Islamic deputies. Even the left-wing parties occasionally flirt with the shadowy 'tarikats' (Islamic brotherhoods), which, despite being banned by Ata turk, continue to wield considerable political influence. Mrs. Ciller makes frequent references to Allah and the Koran in speeches - and for good reason. In many ways the election results show the depth of the identity crisis which Turkey is going throu gh. Only 13 women will sit in the new 550-member Turkish parliament after Sunday's legislative elections, which a pro-Islamic party won by a slim margin. The Daily Telegraph, December 27, 1995 Keep The Monsters In Their Box: Hardly a month goes by without an election where the principal concern is not that voters might be intimidated but that the people might freely elect, under impeccable democratic conditions, the "wrong party". The amount of time and effort spent by Wester n nations, far from immune themselves to such tendencies, in trying to prevent the "wrong" people getting into power is well illustrated by the European Parliament's decision this week to approve the Customs Union with Turkey. Basically, we want to bribe the Turks into not voting for Refah, the Islamist party, in this month's elections. The vote went through in spite of the fact that the Turks have found no solution to their Kurdish problem other than military suppression. Europe's capacity to influence Ankara's policy on the Kurds will probably now diminish. In effect, we decided keeping Refah out was more important than what is happening to the Kurds. The Guardian, 2/16/1995. [=] 10047. American Kurdish Information Network; AKIN. "Bleak Outlook for Turkey", in AKIN News, February 1996. [99H-09065] [19960201] Two weeks ago the European Parliament swallowed its scruples over human rights and voted to approve the customs union between Turkey and the EU, which thus comes into force next week. More serious is the expulsion of HADEP, the party which won the 10048. American Kurdish Information Network; AKIN. "Calls for Release of Firat", in AKIN News, February 1996. [99H-09057] [19960201] A broad campaign has been launched for the release of former Erzurum MP Abdlmelik Firat, who is in custody in Bayrampasha prison in Istanbul. Firat, who has been remanded in custody after a statement was made by a defector from the PKK, has 10044. American Kurdish Information Network; AKIN. "12-Year Sentence for Journalist", in AKIN News, February 1996. [99H-09071] [19960201] Hasan Ozgun, the Diyarbakir representative of the closed down 'Ozgur Gundem' newspaper, was sentenced to 12 years imprisonment at a hearing in the Diyarbakir State Security Court on January 16. Mr. Ozgun was found guilty under Paragraph 168 Article 2 of t he Turkish Penal Code for "being a member of an armed gang, the PKK". Hasan Ozgun, who has been in custody in Diyarbakir prison since 12/9/1993, read an 11-page defense in which he rejected the accusations made against him. He said :"The charges ag ainst me are based on materials taken from our office and letters written by the families of detainees in Mardin prison. These letters are not evidence, they are material for news stories". Ozgur Politika, 1/18/1996. [=] 10045. American Kurdish Information Network; AKIN. "45000 Troops On Turkish-Iraqi Border", in AKIN News, April 1996. [99H09089] [19960401] Since the beginning of February a total of around 45000 troops have been deployed on the south Kurdistan (Iraq) border. The soldiers and heavy weaponry have been positioned along the border between Cukurca and Sirnak. A military unit is also reported to have joined the battalion in Semdinli town in Hakkari province and in the town of Eruh in Siirt province soldiers have been housed in schools, resulting in the suspension of classes. Troops are also reported to have been moved into a students hostel in Tunceli. Students staying in the hostel have been given military ID cards in order to gain access to the building. Ozgur Politika, 2/23/1996. [=] 24 Kurdistan and the Kurds heart and eye problems and requires constant medical attention. The Erzincan State Security Court, which issued the arrest warrant for Mr. Firat, is demanding he be transferred to Gumushane or Erzurum prison. The 547 prisoners in Bayrampasha prison are preparing to cal l on the European Parliament and other international organizations to make representations to secure Abdulmelik Firat's release. Detainee's doctors among the prisoners are keeping a 24-hour watch on Firat, who is constantly passing blood in his urine. La wyers from the Social Law Research Foundation (TOHAV) have called for Mr. Firat to be given a medical examination to determine what conditions he needs for medical supervision and treatment. Meanwhile, Altan Tan and officials from Mazlum - Der (Associatio n of Oppressed) are collecting signatures on a petition calling for Firat's release which will subsequently be sent to President Suleyman Demirel. Ozgur Politika, 2/9/1996. [=] and around Divrigi, Zara, Hafik, Imranli, and Ulas in Sivas province have been bombarded by the Turkish air force using US supplied Cobra attack helicopters. The people living in these villages are Kurdish Alewites, f ollowers of a moderate Islamic faith considered too liberal by fundamentalists and too supportive of the Kurdish liberation movement by the Turkish state authorities. According to a CHP report, Turkish troops have arrested almost 500 villagers and 75 village leaders in the last four months. These new attacks on the Kurds of Sivas, coming at a time when the PKK has adhered to a unilateral cease-fire, show that the Turkish government is determined to resolve the Kurdish question by way of force alone. KIC Press Release, 2/12/1996. [=] 10052. American Kurdish Information Network; AKIN. "EU Retreat on Turkish Rights", in AKIN News, April 1996. [99H-09078] [19960401] EU member states have secretly watered down provisions on human rights and democracy in Turkey which formed an intrinsic part of a 375 million ECU aid package for the Ankara government. Mr. Alex Falconer, MEP for mid Scotland and Fife, last we ek wrote to the 15 EU foreign ministries in protest at the altered text, expressing outrage that member states' parliaments and citizens were being by-passed by the council. "How bad will things have to get before all member states agree any action against Turkey? Mr. Falconer said that many MEP's had only agreed to support the customs union with Turkey last month on the understanding that their human rights concerns could be accommodated in the text on financial aid. Financial Times, 1/31/1996. [=] 10049. American Kurdish Information Network; AKIN. "Charges of Brutality and Torture By Security Forces Persist", in AKIN News, April1996.[99H-09075][19960401] On January 8, Metin Goktepe was covering the funeral of two men allegedly beaten to death a few days earlier in a demonstration at Umraniye Prison. Police raided the funeral and detained hundreds of mourners along with Metin Goktepe. According to journali sts who witnessed the scene, Goktepe showed his press card but was beaten and dragged away to Eyup Sports Center, where he was taken into the basement for interrogation and where other detainees heard him crying out. The next day Metin Goktepe, aged 27, w as found dead in a tea garden in Eyup. A few months earlier Sayfettin Tepe, writer for `Yeni Politika' was detained by police and taken to Bitlis Security Directorate. A week later he was found dead in his prison cell. The police alleged he committed sui cide. His relatives claimed that an autopsy showed he could not have hung himself as the police claimed. Investigations have been called for in all of these cases and in many more in Turkey, where charges of brutality and torture by security forces persi st. Few of the cases against the police, however, have been prosecuted. From Chair's Letter, Center to Center, newsletter of the Writers in Prison, Committee of International PEN, January 1996. [=] 10053. American Kurdish Information Network; AKIN. "Eleven Villagers Burnt Alive", in AKIN News, February 1996. [99H-09066] [19960201] Not long after the pictures of Turkish soldiers posing with the severed heads of guerrillas had been published in the world's press, another atrocity has been perpetrated by the Turkish army. According to local sources, operations have been stepped up in recent days against villages in the Guclukonak district of Sirnak province. Ali Nas, a former village guard, and his relative Ramazan Nas, from Cevrimli village, Beytullah Ilhan and Abdullah Ilhan from Gumusyazi village, Nurettin Baykara (former village guard), Halit Kaya and Ahmet Kaya (former village guard) from Yatagankaya village and Mehmet Oner and three villagers whose names have not been established from Kocyandi village were detained. They were accused of voting for HADEP in the recent elections a nd of assisting guerrillas, and then taken to the village of Taskonak which was emptied in autumn 1995. After being interrogated by a unit of Gendarme NCOs, the villagers were put in a minibus belonging to a person called Beshir (surname not known) and se nt back towards Guclukonak. However, on leaving the village the minibus was stopped by troops and the villagers were made to get out and were tied to the vehicle, which was then set alight by the soldiers and the eleven men were burnt alive. It is reporte d that another minibus driver witnessed the incident and that when the driver Beshir went to Kocyandi village and explained what had happened the incident became known. Villagers from Kocyandi went to Guclukonak and asked the military authorities what had happened. They were told that "the PKK set up a road block and killed your relatives," and were sent back to their village. Local sources stated that cosmetic operations were launched immediately, helicopters being called up to bombard the area in order to give the impression that there were guerrilla units in the area. The governor of the Emergency Law region made a statement claiming the PKK had burnt the 11 villagers. Why This Massacre? Kurdish sources point to the timing of the massacre, emphasizing that the atrocity photos had a great effect all over the world. "T he Turkish state perpetrated this massacre, blaming it on the PKK, in order to 10050. American Kurdish Information Network; AKIN. "Deserter Substantiates Allegations Against Turkey", in AKIN News, December 1995. [99H-09051] [19951201] New evidence has arisen which suggests that German weapons are being used by Turkey in its fight against the Kurds: a Kurdish asylum-seeker in Bremen claims he was in a special unit of the Turkish army in 1991/92 and that he rode in a former East German panzer when deployed against Kurds. The federalgovernment has denied that panzers supplied as part of a military agreement with Turkey were ever used against Kurds. HansEberhard Schultz, lawyer for the 28-year-old Kurd, said in an interview with the Frankfurter Rundschau that his client was a soldier stationed in Mardin at the time. With an East German BTR-60 panzer, he fired at the mountains when shots from alleged rebels were heard. He said BTR-60 panzers were also used during attacks on Kurdish villages. In 1992, the man deserted from the army while on vacation so that he would no longer have to fire upon his own people. Frankfurter Rundschau, 9/22/1995. [=] 10051. American Kurdish Information Network; AKIN. "Despite the Ceasefire, The Turkish Army Continues to Destroy Kurdish Villages", in AKIN News, April 1996. [99H-09081] [19960401] The destruction of Kurdish villages in southeastern Turkey which began in the early 1990s continues today, in spite of the unilateral cease-fire by the Kurdish side which started on 12/15/1995. According to reports reaching our office throughout rec ent weeks, close to 100 villages in 25 Kurdistan and the Kurds deflect criticism aimed at itself. The aim of this massacre is to distort the agenda," they said. Kurdish circles pointed out that it was interesting that such provocations sho uld occur at a time when the PKK has declared a cease-fire. Ozgur Politika, 1/17/1996. [=] 10057. American Kurdish Information Network; AKIN. "Is Turkey Preparing To Invade The South (North Iraq)?", in AKIN News, February 1996. [99H-09054] [19960201] While the PKK's unilateral cease-fire continues the Turkish army has begun a troop build up on the south Kurdistan border. This build up brings forth the question "Is Turkey preparing to invade south Kurdistan before Newroz?" The day before yesterday almost 50 military vehicles, 9 coach loads of soldiers, 13 refrigerated trucks and 3 large trucks carrying equipment arrived in Sirnak via Nusaybin. Troops are also reported to have been deployed on the Iraqi border near Cukurca, where troops from the Hakkari Mountain Commando Brigade and Van Commando Brigade were brought in by air on 8 February. Ozgur Politika, 2/15/1996. [=] 10054. American Kurdish Information Network; AKIN. "Esber Yagmurdereli Faces Imprisonment Until 2018", in AKIN News, April 1996. [99H-09076] [19960401] Esber Yagmurdereli is facing over 23 years in prison after a court hearing in 12/1996. Yagmurdereli, who has been blind since he was 10, has already spent 13 years in prison after an unfair trial. International PEN calls for a reduction of Esber Yag murdereli's sentence. It is also calling for the abolition of Article 8 under which many writers have been imprisoned for writing about the Kurds. The recent amendment to the law only reduces the maximum prison sentence under the Article from five years to three. Several writers were released or commuted following the amendment which was introduced to secure a customs deal with the European Union. The EU had complained about Turkey's record on freedom of expression. Just two months after the customs deal was passed journalist Metin Goktepe was found dead after being detained by police. Send appeals for Esber Yagmurdereli's sentence to be dropped to: Justice Minister Mr. Firus, Cilingiroglu, Adalet Bakanligi, 06659 Ankara, Turkey Center to Center newsletter, January 1996. [=] 10058. American Kurdish Information Network; AKIN. "Journalist Beaten To Death in Custody", in AKIN News, February 1996. [99H09070] [19960201] It has been learned that 'Evrensel' reporter Metin Goktepe, who was detained at the funerals of Riza Boybas and Orhan Ozen, two prisoners killed in Urmaniye prison, was in fact, despite the denials of the authorities, beaten to death by police. Metin Gokt epe went to the funerals on January 9 along with 'Cumhuriyet' reporter Kerem Ilgaz and 'Yeni Yuzyil' reporter Murat Inceoglu. Murat Inceoglu explained what happened: "I was present when Metin was detained. The three of us were going to the mosque where th e funerals were to take place. Police stopped us at a checkpoint and asked for yellow press cards. We explained that not all journalists possessed yellow cards and showed the cards issued to us by our newspapers. However two high ranking police officers i nsisted on seeing yellow press cards. So we decided to wait in a cafe. Then I saw that Metin was being taken away by the police. They also took Kerem but immediately let him go." The police took Metin Goktepe to Eyup Sports Hall, and according to eye witn esses he was taken away from the hall where hundreds of people were being held, being beaten as he went. The next morning someone who had just been released rang 'Evrensel' saying: "I was in detention. Your reporter was beaten to death. I heard the voices . He was shouting: 'Don't hit me, you'll kill me. I'm Murat Goktepe.'" One of the newspaper's lawyers, Kamil Tekin Surek, had this to say: "We rang Eyup police station when we heard our reporter had been badly beaten. The police said they'd released Metin . Later the police rang us to say he'd been found dead in a tea garden. The police either took him there after killing him or when he was on the point of dying." 'Evrensel' editor Ihsan Caralan made a statement in which he said: "Metin Goktepe was delibe rately detained and murdered in order to intimidate the opposition press...This intimidation will not be able to prevent us continuing the struggle to expose and publish realities." Interior Minister Teoman Unusan stated that Metin Goktepe had been detain ed along with approximately 1000 people by the police who took measures in order to stop "persons wishing to take advantage of the situation" and prevent new incidents occurring. He said, "There were some people detained but no instances of injury or dea th." Ozgur Politika, 1/11/1996. [=] 10055. American Kurdish Information Network; AKIN. "Former DEP MPs in Court", in AKIN News, February 1996. [99H-09059] [19960201] Former DEP MPs Sedat Yurtdas, Sirri Sakik, Ahmet Turk and independent Mahmut Alinak have appeared in the Ankara State Security Court (DGM) for a retrial due to the decision of the Yargitay (High Court) to quash the original verdict of the DGM concerning t he former MPs. The former deputies, who are not in custody, were accompanied in court by foreign observers and former deputy M. Emin Sever. Sedat Yurtdas spoke after the defense lawyers, recalling that DGM Chief Prosecutor Nusret Demiral joined the MHP (Nationalist Acti on Party) after retiring adding: "Demiral said to Trkes 'from now on I will call you Bashbug (leader)'. This demonstrates the mentality that tried us." The case was adjourned to a later date. Ozgur Politika, 2/10/1996. [=] 10056. American Kurdish Information Network; AKIN. "Is South Kurdistan On The Verge of Occupation", in AKIN News, February 1996. [99H-09055] [19960201] (From a front page editorial in Ozgur Politika) At a time when the PKK has declared a cease-fire the Turkish army is continuing military operations without a break. Now it is building up its forces in the region generally and along the South Kurdistan bor der in particular The timing of this deployment is of great significance. At this time meetings between Iraq and Syria on the question of water are going on. The two countries have stated that "they will have to resort to different means." Saddam has ann ounced he will renew supplies of electricity to the Kurds and called on the Kurdish leaders to start talks. Iran has announced it will organize a conference in opposition to the Kurdish summit being promoted by Syria, Jordan, Israel, Turkey and the US Now let us return to Turkey's preparations for occupation. KDP sources say that Turkey is exerting pressure on them to assist a reoccupation of south Kurdistan that would take place before Newroz (March 21), and that this time Turkey is planing a long-term stay. It seems unlikely that the KDP will assist Turkey in its aim, but this does not mean that certain narrow circles will not help. It appears likely that developments in the region will be prominent on the agenda in the near future. Ozgur Politika, 2/15/1996. [=] 10059. American Kurdish Information Network; AKIN. "Kurdish Activists in Turkey Vow To Keep Up Their Fight", in AKIN News, February 1996. [99H-09064] [19960201] Kurdish activists in Turkey vowed to keep up their fight for Kurdish rights despite not getting enough votes to qualify for parliament at general elections last weekend. "Our struggle. . . will include efforts at the personal and institutional levels to find a solution to the Kurdish problem," Sedat Yurtdas, a candidate for the People's Democracy Party (HADEP) in Sunday's polls, told a news conference. HADEP, which champions greater rights for Kurds and a negotiated end to an 11-year Kurdish rebellion, took around 30 percent of the votes in the mainly-Kurdish 26 Kurdistan and the Kurds southeast but failed to pass a national threshold of 10 percent. Political analysts say the 10 percent barrier meant millions of voters were disenfranchised. "This system will get more damaged by k eeping us out of parliament," said Yurtdas, one of 13 Kurdish MPs who were accused of separatism and thrown out of parliament last year. He said HADEP candidates regarded themselves as having been elected and would behave as MPs. He did not elaborate. Reuters, 12/27/1995. [=] stated that rights won by hunger strikes had been usurped by governors and prison officers who did not feel the need to conceal the fact that they were MHP supporters. The prisoners gave details of repression in the prison. In one incident "soldiers entered a block on the pretext of a "circumcision check". When the inmates objected the prison officers said: 'The soldiers just want to find out whether you areArmenians or not. They will just have a look. It will only take 5 minutes.' The soldiers then ripped off the detainees' clothes and checked their genital organs." HADEP Igdir candidate M. Nuri Gunes, who was recently released from Erzurum prison, said he had been in the prison for nearly two months with the political detainees. Gunes said that the prison was like "a bomb ready to explode at any moment." Ozgur Politika, 2/12/1996.[=] 10060. American Kurdish Information Network; AKIN. "Kurdistan Parliament In Exile Met in Moscow", in AKIN News, December 1995. [99H-09050] [19951201] The Kurdistan Parliament in Exile met in Moscow for a three-day session organized by a Russian parliamentary committee, its third session since its inauguration on 4/12/1995. "We are guests of the Russian parliament," Darwich Hasso, a KPE member, said. A committee of the state Duma (Russian lower house) had organized the session at their request. "No one can exercise pressure on us here. In addition, Russians and Kurds have historically been very close," Hasso said. The parliament last met for a four-day session in Vienna, Austria, in August. The elected 65-seat assembly draws its members from all exiled Kurds. Turkey protested to Russia about the meeting. "This development has cast a shadow over Turkish-Russian relations and we see this as something injurious," foreign ministry spokesman Omer Akbel said in a statement. Reuters, 10/31/1995. [=] 10064. American Kurdish Information Network; AKIN. "MO Calls For Release of Soldiers", in AKIN News, April 1996. [99H-09086] [19960401] Van Refah Party MP Fetullah Erbas and writer Ismail Nacar held a press statement in the Turkish Grand National Assembly to call for the release of soldiers held by the PKK. Erbas said that the families of lieutenant Mustafa Ozulkuler and soldiers Ibrahim Yaylaci, Ramazan Celik, Ismail Basaran, Tuncay Kavaklioglu, Hakan Pusat, Mehmet Sikilgan and Tevfik Ozturk were yearning to be reunited with their children. Erbas said: "We, as the deputies of the people, have to do all we can in order to reduce the pain of our citizens." Ozgur Politika, 2/19/1996. [=] 10061. American Kurdish Information Network; AKIN. "Kurds in Hakkiari Live on Food From the Rubbish Dump", in AKIN News, April 1996. [99H-09084] [19960401] In Hakkari the population has risen from 35000-80000 due to migration. The CHP (Republican People's Party) major of Hakkari, Abduhraman Keskin, said that every morning there were at least 50 people at the dump waiting for the trucks in the hope of finding something to eat "There are 30-40 provided in one house. No aid has been provided on account of this rising population due to migration." The major added that if aid was not forthcoming within a week he would apply to various aid organizations in Europe. Hurriyet, 2/10/1996. [=] 10065. American Kurdish Information Network; AKIN. "Membership Is The Goal", in AKIN News, April 1996. [99H-09079] [19960401] For Turkey, the customs union is only a means to achieving EU membership. Mrs. Ciller told her hosts at the EU's Madrid summit, shortly after the European parliament approved the customs union, that the struggle will continue until Turkey is a full member ." Human rights are the largest single problem in Turkey's relations with Europe. Mrs. Green warned that "If Turkey wants to be included in the (European) family it must subscribe to the same norms and values as the rest of Europe in terms of human right s and democracy." "Disappearances", torture, murder by unknown assailants often linked to security forces-are common. Turkey's human rights association counted more than 400 such cases last year. About 10-20 combatants and civilians die every day in southeastern Turkey, scene of an 11 year conflict between government forces and guerrillas of the Kurdistan Workers Party (PKK). But prosecutors continue bringing cases against journalists, writers, Kurdish nationalists and opposition politicians. Financial Times, 2/22/1996. [=] 10062. American Kurdish Information Network; AKIN. "MHP Candidate Caught with 40 Kilos of Heroin", in AKIN News, April 1996. [99H-09088] [19960401] Businessman Ali Riza Gurbuz, who was a candidate in Izmir for the MHP (Nationalist Action Party) at the last elections, was arrested in Zurich following a police raid on a garage last Saturday during which 40 kilos of pure heroin and 150 kilos of a chemic al substance used in heroin production were seized. Ali Riza Gurbuz is claimed to have borrowed 70 billion lira from the Yugoslav mafia to help finance the MHP's election campaign and to have been unable to repay the money. He is also alleg ed to be involved in arms smuggling and money laundering in addition to drugs smuggling. MHP leader Alparslan Turkes said Ali Riza Gurbuz may be expelled from the party and added: "We don't look into our members' past. We are not an intelligence organizat ion." Ozgur Politika, 2/22/1996. [=] 10066. American Kurdish Information Network; AKIN. "Military Operation in Cukurca", in AKIN News, April 1996. [99H-09073] [19960401] In spite of the unilateral cease-fire called by the Kurdistan Workers Party (PKK) on 12/15/1995, Turkish troops have begun their third military operation in the district Cukurca at the border of Turkish Iraqi Kurdistan. The operation is being conducted by the "Hakkari Mountain Brigadier Command" that made the headlines earlier this months as the "atrocity unit" that posed with the severed heads of Kurdish guerrillas. (The European). While a number of F16 fighter planes have bombed the area on a lar ge scale, there have yet not been any clashes with PKK guerrillas since the operation started. It is alleged that the aim of the operation is to station a higher contingent of military in the area. DEM News Agency, 2/13/1996. [=] 10063. American Kurdish Information Network; AKIN. "MHP Running Erzurum Prison", in AKIN News, February 1996. [99H09062] [19960201] Inmates in Erzurum prison, which has been the scene of brutality over the last two years leading to the death of one prisoner and the injury and permanent disablement of dozens, have made a statement detailing the influence of the MHP (Nationalist Action Party) on the running of the prison. The prisoners stated that; "The MHP determine the prison prosecutor, governors and other officials. It gets rid of those personnel that are not close to the party. . . The legal authorities should investigate the archi ves of the local press in which provocative news stories have appeared." The detainees 10067. American Kurdish Information Network; AKIN. "New Award For Leyla Zana", in AKIN News, December 1995. [99H-09045] [19951201] Leyla Zana was awarded the annual Bruno-Kreisky Human Rights Award which was received on her behalf by lawyers 27 Kurdistan and the Kurds for the Democracy Party (DEP). In the past year, Leyla Zana has received the Aachen Peace Prize and the Rose Peace Prize. Ozgur Politika, 10/1/1995. [=] account of my membership in the PKK and ERNK, something which I am proud of. The brutal Turkish army, police, special forces, and paramilitary gangs have ruined my country. President Abdullah Ocalan and the Kurdistan Workers Party seek peace and have issued calls for dialogue and a political solution in order to prevent further bloodshed. Turkey's response has been to destroy villages, depopulate the country, and resort to killing and torture. I am being held in the most restrictive conditions and I expect this situation to come to an end even if it costs me my life. I shall continue to defend the legitimate demand for freedom of my people, who are experiencing such pain. You are friends of my people and humanity, I hope you will step up your efforts on our behalf." Kurdistan Information Centre, 10/26/1995. [=] 10068. American Kurdish Information Network; AKIN. "Newroz in Kurdistan", in AKIN News, April 1996. [99H-09090] [19960401] At around 11 am yesterday (21 March) about 3000 people lit a fire in the Kurucesme neighborhood of Diyarbakir and told police wanting the road to be kept clear and the fire to be extinguished, "This is our festival. We are going to celebrate it, we haven 't stopped the traffic". The police then moved towards the people in armored cars. The crowd responded by building a barricade and stoning the armored cars. Police reinforcements then charged the people, attacking them with truncheons and rifle butts. Lat ife Aksoy (60), Sait Cetinkaya (13) and Mizam Azin (24) were injured. The injured were taken to hospital after receiving first aid from the German delegation. The people continued to celebrate Newroz despite a second police attack, shouting "Long live Newroz", Long Live Serok Apo" and "Long live the PKK". Groups of 1000 and 2000 people also celebrated Newroz in other parts of Diyarbakir. 25 people were detained by police. In Bismil Newroz was celebrated by people who set light to tyres in the Sentepe and Akpinar neighborhoods. Celebrations continued with fires in other neighborhoods. There were no arrests. There were also celebrations in Silvan, where tight security precautions were taken, and in Kulp, where a similar situation was reported. Fires were lit in two places in the town of Lice yesterday (21 March), where the previous night an Italian delegation had been denied access to the town. In Hazro fires where lit in two places distant from the town center where police armored vehicles were positione d on the streets. In Cinar town the people ignored the state supported celebration and held their own. In Mardin celebrations were held mainly in the HADEP office. Fires were lit to celebrate Newroz in Kiziltepe and Nusaybin, where the situation was calm. Celebrations in Batman began with the singing of "Ey Raqip" (Kurdish National Anthem) and continued with students throwing their ties onto the fire in protest at the state's hypocritical celebration of Newroz. A student named Abdulvahap Zeybek was detain ed at Fatih high school for burning his blazer. 5 students were also detained in the 19 May neighborhood during celebrations. Fires lit in Siirt during celebrations were extinguished by police and tyres confiscated. Arrests are also reported. Celebrations were not permitted in the Baykan and Kurtalan districts of Siirt province where people refused to attend state organized celebrations. However it is reported that the people held their own celebrations in the back streets. In Sirnak, where all vehicle ty res had been confiscated in the last three weeks, no celebration was allowed. Ozgur Politika, 3/22/1996. [=] 10070. American Kurdish Information Network; AKIN. "PKK Chair Abdullah Ocalan Declares A Unilateral Cease-Fire", in AKIN News, December 1995. [99H-09043] [19951201] On the Kurdish MED-TV programme shown on 12/14/1995, PKK Chair Abdullah Ocalan responded to the European Parliament's appeal for the Turkish government and Kurdish representatives to find a "non-violent and political solution" to the conflict by declaring a unilateral cease-fire. Here we publish the edited text of his speech translated from Turkish. If the approaching elections in Turkey are to have any meaning, if a solution to the Kurdish question, from which all problems originate, is to be found, if we are talking about a role for politics, if politics is to find a sensible solution to problems, if terrorism, and consequently, the PKK is being held responsible for both the economic stagnation and redundancy of politics, we wish to take this opportunity to explain what we want to do about a resolution of the Kurdish question and how we see our responsibilities. We respect the decision taken by the European Parliament yesterday concerning the finding of a political solution through dialogue with the PKK and other concerned bodies. To help put this decision into effect and fulfill our responsibilities, we have also decided to bring about an end to the long conflict between the Kurdish parties in South Kurdistan and declared a unilateral cease-fire and halt our military actions in Turkey. In order to demonstrate that the war waged by Turkey, which has caused such great distress to both the Kurdish and Turkish peoples, cannot resolve these problems, and that it is pointless to continue such a war which closes the door to all developments, we consider it is of crucial importance to take such a step and declare a cease-fire. Conditions Of The Cease-Fire: This cease-fire has nothing to do with the fact that it is now winter or with any military weakness. We have accomplished considerable military development in South Kurdistan and we have established firm guerrilla bases in many strategic areas of Kurdistan. We are the strongest guerrilla movement in the south and the only one in the north, there can be no doubt about that. Our decision to declare a cease-fire is not a sign of military weakness and we have not lost strength politically either. As can be seen in the resolution of the European Parliament, we have entered a period of growing strength in which we have developed relations with many countries. We have broken the isolation despite their efforts to prevent this. Turkey, on the other hand, has found itself in a tight corner due to the war it is waging. Anyone with the slightest common sense can see that neither Turkey's domestic or foreign policy is functioning any longer on account of the Kurdish question, human rights, and similar issues. For this reason, we have decided to take this political step which we believe also serves the interests of the Turkish people. At the end of 1995, we could resolve this war with a political solution. If the Turkish army does not attempt to destroy us, we will not undertake military operations in either Kurdistan or Turkey. We will try to implement this unilateral cease-fire as of tomorrow. If the Turkish forces attempt to destroy us, we will defend 10069. American Kurdish Information Network; AKIN. "October 26 Demonstration To Free Kani Yilmaz", in AKIN News, December 1995. [99H-09048] [19951201] On October 26, the anniversary of his arrest, about 700 Kurds gathered outside No. 10 Downing Street in Londonto demand the release of ERNK European Representative Kani Yilmaz. John Austin-Walker MP, Nejdet Buldan, member of the Kurdistan Parliament in Exile, and Halkevi chairman Nafiz Bostanci delivered a protest letter from the Kurdish community in London to Prime Minister John Major. Here we also print Kani Yilmaz's message on the occasion of the first anniversary of his arrest: "As you are already familiar with my case you will be aware of the way in which political interests have directed the course of events. The clearest expression of this is the way Britain detained me without any justification and Germany demanded that I be put on trial without any evidence. In the German indictment it clearly states that I have no connection with the incidents mentioned but wants me tried on 28 Kurdistan and the Kurds ourselves and also broaden our use of the right of retaliation. We are particularly well-intentioned on this point. If military operations are curtailed and if this convinces us, then we will be able to intensify this process. I re-iterate, this is not a sign of weakness. On the contrary it is a sign of our confidence in ourselves and of our intention to accelerate the search for a political solution, which is our preference. We hope this point will be well understood in Turkey by the parties involved in the election and the general public. People should realize that if they are deceived and say "they are finished, they are calling a truce because they have been weakened", they will only intensify their predicament. It should be the duty of every Turkish patriot and democrat to oppose this war, which is being promoted by a few generals and governors who do not want to lose their posts and a handful of warmongers who profit from it. The Role Of The Customs Union: Turkey has now joined the Customs Union. Therefore the European Parliament is bound to take responsibility for the resolutions it has passed. If the European Parliament does not want war and is sincere on the question of a political solution, it should take steps along the lines of its resolution. It should exert its political and economic weight in particular. It should make its financial aid dependent on democratization. If it cannot do this, it must realize that every penny will be spent on the dirty war. The European Parliament must not allow itself to be used by Turkey. If they cannot ensure that Turkey accepts the cease-fire, their financial gains will be used to slaughter our people. We are aware that Turkey is in a difficult situation. Regardless of whether Turkey wishes to use the excuse of having to negotiate with so-called "terrorists", the decisive question is, as the whole world knows, does Turkey really want a political resolution to the Kurdish question or not. If I am a 'terrorist', or the PKK is 'terrorist', there are other Kurdish circles which are not. If they won't talk to us then let them talk with those Kurds who have nothing to do with 'terror'. What about meeting with these Kurdish circles? Are they terrorists too? The Situation In Turkey And The Election: The early general election in Turkey is being held in winter conditions. In Kurdistan in particular the electoral process will be difficult to accomplish. Another fact is that close to three million Kurdish voters have been forced to leave their constituencies. We have witnessed three elections like this: in 1987, 1991, and now 1995. These dates have been consciously chosen in order to slow down demands for democratization and a peaceful resolution of the Kurdish question. In the past it was forbidden to participate in the elections with a Kurdish identity, but in 1991 some Kurdishdeputies entered parliament through various alliances and blocs. As you know, these Kurdish MPs were not allowed to participate in the assembly. Therefore this election, too, is far from being democratic. Yet despite this, we have decided to support the "Labor, Peace, and Freedom Bloc", representing the Kurdish and Turkish peoples' democratic preference, in order to defeat the efforts of the warlords and not leave the field to them. Despite the repression, opinion polls show the Bloc is leading in Kurdistan. It is also clear that in Turkey, workers, Alevis, and public servants are showing interest in this front. We believe that in spite of the lack of preparation, these elections will provide an opportunity for democratic forces to make an impression. There are two fronts in this election. One is the war front, the other is the peace and freedom front. We want everyone in favor of democracy, peace, and freedom to support this front, and for people to expose the war front. Those who have supported it until now, if only unwittingly, must realize the truth and make their preferences known for peace, labor, and freedom on December 24. Will Turkey accept the call for a cease-fire? I do not think the militarist government in Turkey will consider our call for a cease-fire with a cool head. In any case, as I emphasized earlier, our aim is not to invite this government to take up the challenge. If it responds, this will be positive, but if it doesn't, the present deep crisis will deepen further as a result of the election. Our call is aimed more at the public in Turkey, the majority of whom do not trust the political parties and have not yet decided which one to support in the elections. We expect the people of Turkey to realize what is going on. A dirty war is being waged against our peoples. We want the Turkish people to see through the lies that are being propagated by means of the accusations of "terrorism". This is why we are declaring a unilateral cease-fire. It is of the utmost importance to demonstrate clearly that we approach the Kurdish question within the borders of Turkey and also that we wish to achieve a settlement through democratic methods. The Turkish people are being bombarded by psychological propaganda. In the runup to the elections, some of the parties have stated they will adopt a new stance. For example, Mesut Yilmaz has begun to speak like Ozal during in his last period. He says he will resolve the question in four years. Although Yilmaz's track record does not give grounds for such a hope, we cannot just claim he is insincere and ignore him. If he does not take the Kurdish question to a resolution, he will be finished as he was four years ago. Yilmaz should learn from the example of the CHP (Republican People's Party). The CHP has had it because of its hypocritical Kurdish policy. We will expose Erbakan and demonstrate that he will not be able to trick people by misusing the Islamic identity. We have also made this call in order to force people to think in the ten days before the election. May people speak out more courageously and express the need for a political solution. We have made our call so that the people may make their preference in favor of peace, labor, and freedom, not militarism. The Responsibility Of The EU And The European States: Europe is a party to the war in Kurdistan. Germany, Britain, and France in particular are providing a considerable amount of military and economic aid to Turkey. In the beginning, the European Parliament tied Turkey's membership (in the Customs Union) to a political resolution of the Kurdish question and democratization in general. However, the MEPs were unable to resist the pressure of their governmentsandabandoned their initial opposition. I say to them: Turkey is now a member of the Customs Union and it is showing absolutely no regard for human rights and democracy. It doesn't even recognize a people's identity and it is carrying out a war of genocide. Why are you giving such limitless support to the Turkish regime? This is what must be explained. You, too, have now taken the war in Kurdistan under your control. From now on, this conflict will be played out predominantly between ourselves and Europe. Europe should not underestimate us. It must not lay the blame on the PKK in a partial manner as it has up to now. We do not want to be hostile to Europe but Europe must at least not violate its own principles and understanding of democracy. They need Turkey's market but human rights violations should concern Europe as much as economic interests. If this does not materialize then not only Islamic fundamentalism but all the peoples of the Middle East, first and foremost the Kurdish people, will understand your real aims and take initiatives that will really put you in difficulties. This should not be understood as a threat. If you continue to give unlimited support to Turkish militarism, we will have the right to make our own decisions. If this cease-fire does not receive a response then Europe will not be able to view Turkey as a market or tourist paradise. It must realize that it will be transformed into a hell. I must state once again that we are able to make comprehensive plans for war just as we can make serious plans for peace. International Dimension: There is a definite international dimension to our cease-fire. The USA, Europe, and some other countries have made proposals for a solution. Iran is also a power in the region and is renewing its Kurdish policy. There is also a strong chance of developing our relations with Russia. We have received signals along these lines. We are still deliberately being labeled as 29 Kurdistan and the Kurds terrorists. We wish to demonstrate who is the real terrorist, who wants a political solution and peace and who insists on war and massacre. It is also evident that there is a link between the cease-fire in the north and that in the south. All these developments prove that a new period has begun, during which the balance of forces will change. We have therefore developed a policy accordingly. The cease-fire is not just a short term tactic. It is a tactic to pave the way for the strategy of peace and democracy and a political solution. But we will not accept unconditional surrender. The other side must at least enter into a political dialogue. Why do they refuse talking to us? I only want to put our aims to the people in Turkey. If the people don't accept us, I will honor their decision. Why is this fact ignored? Those who understand democracy should realize this. They should also understand that the repression suffered by the Kurds also affects the Turks. The life and wealth of our peoples should not be sacrificed to the interests of warmongers and bureaucrats. If the European Parliament cannot convince Turkey to end the war, it means that the $3 billion in aid it has provided will constitute a significant war fund and that it will be a partner to the war being waged against our people. Up to now, individual European countries have been financing the war. As of now the European Parliament will be party to the conflict. Since the European Parliament accepted Turkey as a member it must take responsibility for what Turkey does, and it must take action to stop the war. We want peace and political dialogue. -- Abdullah Ocalan, Chair of the PKK, MED-TV, 12/14/1995. [=] You know that in this war there have over the years been many sacrifices in prisons, in the mountains and abroad. Thousands of martyrs and heroic acts of resistance have given birth to a reborn freedom loving nation. In Newroz celebrations, they expressed themselves with the spirit of Newroz and our martyrs have created a new breed of people and a new type of homeland. A decision made at an opportune time leads people to victory, to their promised land. However downtrodden, dispossessed and exploited this nation is , it regains a new lease on life with dignity. The proper decision is that of facing death with honor, with dignity. And out of this encounter comes a life of freedom for the nation. Based on this premise, we want to inform our people that we a re decidedly resolute. All of our people, all Kurdistan, and all of the oppressed should know that however small our number may be, however powerful the enemy may be the power emanating from the decision we made at Newroz will be sufficient to overcome all the enemies in the world. Today, we want to resolve the Kurdish question through peaceful political and democratic means. And it has been three months since we stopped the war for this purpose. Also we sent a letter to Turkey's new Prime Minister in the last few days. Without responding to these initiatives, they are preparing for war behind the scene and killing innocent people everyday. In some villages, they kill Kurdish patriots and dump their bodiesalong the roads. They want to intimidate our people. They pretend not to hear our calls for peace and friendship as they continue with their war. Today, we want to celebrate the fraternity of all nations. We wanted to celebrate Newroz together with all people of the Middle East. However, we saw that the enemy is determined to deprive our people of their rights and freedoms. We want to enter into a dialogue, but they do not respond. We called for a dialogue to explain a few matters, but Turkish Prime Minister claims he has heard nothing, has received no letters. It is impossible for the letter not to have reached him in a whole week in this day of a dvanced communications technology. He simply doesn't want to hear our calls for a dialogue. They want to carry on their dirty war . Our people should know that we will not remain idle as the enemy marches on us. We have had a Newroz festivity. Nowadays, they want to take Newroz from us, too. "It is ours. It's been ours for a thousand years. The Kurds have no festivity to celebrate." they say. "Come let's celebrate Newroz, it is a Turkish festivity.", they proclai m. They are taking our life, our liberty, our history and want to take whatever else we have. This is a terrible cruelty. Now let us think hard and reach a national decision. Faced with an enemy who is marching on you, an enemy who rejects your peace init iatives, you too must do something. I can now say to all people of Kurdistan: Mazlum Dogan sacrificed his own life for a life with dignity for the people. We have 15000 guerrillas in the mountains. We have more than 10000 resisters in enemy's prisons. A ll these come to the decision made by Mazlum Dogan who on a Newroz night rejected a life stripped of dignity and honor and chose death for a life with honor and freedom. We must never keep the significance of his deed out of sight. Mazlum Dogan is a contemporary Kawa and an heroic fighter. We cannot deny this. Through our 15 years of struggle, this noble decision has become one that is shared by our people as a whole. It is not the first time I am saying it: The enemy is aiming at our genocide through i ts oppressive measures and edicts. In Kurdistan and not just north Kurdistan but throughout Kurdistan the enemy is perpetrating the harsh cruelties first inflicted on the prisoners. The enemy shows no interest in peace. It wants darkness to reign. At this point, it is important to make a vital decision. It is necessary to reach this decision together with the people. We will make this decision on behalf of the party and the guerrillas. This decision will be like Mazlum Dogan's decision. The life the enemy sees fit for us is one that is devoid of honor and dignity. Death is a 10071. American Kurdish Information Network; AKIN. "PKK and KDP Meet", in AKIN News, February 1996. [99H-09056] [19960201] On 7 February PKK President Abdullah Ocalan met a high level KDP delegation. This meeting was a continuation of the process of dialogue launched by the cease-fire in south Kurdistan announced by the PKK on 12/10/1995. At the meeting on 7 February th e development of steps towards peace, the consolidation of national unity and the prevention of provocations that would obstruct the positive process that has been launched were discussed. It was decided to include the PUK in endeavors towards national un ity and to continue the talks in a more comprehensive form. Daoud Baghistani, the OSCE's south Kurdistan representative at the UN who carried out mediation in the PKK - KDP cease-fire, was present at the meeting. Baghistani said: "These developments are e ncouraging and an example of progress that needs to be made." Ozgur Politika, 2/9/1996. [=] 10072. American Kurdish Information Network; AKIN. "President Ocalan Addresses The Peoples Of Kurdistan On Med TV: Samson Poised To Shake The Pillars-Not For A Woman-But For The Dignity, Honor & Freedom Of A Nation!", in AKIN News, April 1996. [99H09072] [19960401] (Courtesy of DEM News Agency) This spring is more promising than other springs. It is the spring of Kurdistan, of the peoples of Kurdistan. As the spring rejuvenates, as it blossoms and its flowers decorate the world, our people, too, are decorating themselves with roses. Fourteen years ago, Mr. Mazlum Dogan made a decision. It was a decision to face death squarely in the face. I can emphatically say that this decision was the most honorable, the most resolute decision in pursuit of a life with dignity. There can be no more fai thful decisions for the Kurdish people to live with dignity, to fight for a dignified, honorable life. This is what I said on that occasion.: Since Mazlum Dogan overcame fear of death and lightened its burden, as a nation we must make a faithful decision for a dignified life. We said this decision is a bridge between the old life of bondage and dispossession and a new life with freedom and dignity. We are at the moment crossing this bridge. We are converting the enemy's deprivation of life and liberty int o faith and courage as the foundation of a better life for our people. 30 Kurdistan and the Kurds thousand times more honorable than such a life. All of our people and friends should know that we will deny this kind of life to ourselves. Consequently, I want to make the following call: Up to now, the guerrillas fought in the mountains, like a military force. From now on we will also recruit suicide brigades, those who are prepared to face death. We will heroically face death not only in the mountains but also in the enemy's cities . If the enemy's edict is that we must die, then we will face death in an heroic manner. The enemy should know clearly that the war in the mountains and the wars in the cities will follow different courses. We very much want peace initiatives. We want a political solution through peaceful means. But, they don't want peace. They have depopulated Kurdistan. They have not left one single Kurdish village untouched. They have forced our people to migrate to the s qualor of shantytowns in the fringes of big cities. Millions of our people have been forced to leave Kurdistan. The ones left in Kurdistan are unemployed, poverty stricken and with no land to cultivate. We are ashamed of this kind of life. This kind of li fe cannot be allowed to go on. This is the life the enemy has imposed on us. We will not accept it. Let no one say, "Why did they take the war to the cities? Let no one say "Why are people being killed in the cities?" Especially, the Turkish people should know that why the war is manifesting itself in the cities. The Turkish people, the Turkish intellectuals should know this. If hey have any humanity left in them they should know how many people their government is killing everyday. They should know how t hey kill individuals their security forces detain. Why empty so many villages? Why plunder all that belongs to us? Why, what are the reasons? Every Turk should find answers to these questions. Either the Turks restrain their cruel rulers and end this dirt y war or there will be no peace for them either. Although they have been relatively immune from the effects of this war so far, from now on the situation will worsen. I wish to repeat it. Up to now, the guerrillas operated in the mountains. The suicide brigades can strike not just once, twice or thrice but hundreds of times in the city centers, in factories, and employment places, wherever the regime gets its support and allies who give most support to the regime. If you are going to ignore our peace initiatives, and carry on your dirty war against our people, then prepare yourselves for the war to heat up. the decision we've reached on the eve of Newroz is the same decision reached by Mazlum Dogan. We do not want to implement such a decision. However, our peace initiatives have been ignored for too long. And therefore, we had to make a decision. Consequently, we want our people as a whole to be prepared throughout the coming year. Whatever the deman ds and sacrifices of a life with dignity and honor are, that is what our people must do. They should discharge their obligation fearlessly. What is bad is the situation we are already in here and now. An heroic death will shorten the path to a proper life . No one should be afraid, the courage our people have mustered up is a victory in itself. Even the world is awed by the courage of our guerrillas. Why should we not make use of the strength we've acquired, continue to prosecute the war and deal severe blows to the enemies? Here, let us know ourselves, let us know our people, through our people and our people's struggle let us get to know ourselves. The enemy will not come to the negotiating table in any other way. Otherwise the enemy will recognize no limit in raining death and destruction upon us. Our people are determined. In the days and years ahead, with even greater fortitude and determination our people should think harder and search deeper an politically strengthen themselves. The reasons we have are not insignificant, the war will go on, the enemy will not be able to stop us. Lately, the enemy has been trying to mobilize its allies against us as well. The enemy wants the USA and Germany to attack us, too. I want to tell the USA and Germany the following: This enemy is waging a war of annihilation and genocide against us. This is not your war and do not move against the PKK (Kurdistan Workers Party). We don't want to fight against you as well! If like the enemy you come towards us for a fight, you too will sustain great losses. The people you have stripped of their dignity and national identity will explode in your midst, too. We do not want to do this, but if you come upon us with the intention of fighting us such explosions will occur. I want to repeat and reiterate, again and again, the enemy is waging a war of genocide. Do not aid and abet the enemy in this war. Through democratic and political measures, we expect you to make contributions to end this war. Do not look at our people as enemies, give up detaining our people and end the cruelties. You have nothing to gain from this war. We want to befriend you. Within the framework of human rights, we want to take joint steps with you. I want to say this to Germany again. We want to resolve some issues of joint interest with you through peaceful political means. Do not harass our people in Germany and other countries and stop the detentions. We do not want to do anything harmful against your democracy and public order. Some cabinet ministers have claimed that war has been declared against your democracy. This is not correct. I repeat: we respect your democracy and public order and want you to recognize us and see the war being waged against us for what it is. Witness the cruel oppression perpetrated against us and halt the virtually limitless aid to our enemy. If you act in l ine with human rights, democratic and political perspective, we will be with you all the way. However, the issue cannot be solved through bans and detentions of our people. Stay away from this policy. If you take dialogue as the basis of relations, you wi ll see that our mutual interests will be served all the way. End your hostile activities against our resistance and struggle. Such hostilities do not serve either of us. Let us get together again and discuss whatever you want to discuss. If you want to pe nalize someone, first you must hear him out. Handing down penalties without a fair hearing, without testimonies is cruel. You have people that you have been detaining for years. Detentions without fair hearings are unjust. In a short time, Turkish people, those who advocate fraternal relations and those who want democracy will favor a political solution. Those days are not very far. We wanted to resolve the conflict with this government [in Turkey]. We provided them with ma ny opportunities. We even implored them. Regrettably, this government is not for peace. We sent a letter personally to Turkish Prime Minister Mr. Mesut Yilmaz. He did not bother to read it. He will be the loser at the end. don't let him say, "I didn't hear". I want to make it public that we are bound by the contents of the letter and it is an open letter. Let him make public what he thinks is wrong in the letter. We do not want to divide Turkey. We want democracy in Turkey. We want fraternal relations amo ngst the people. This is not something wrong to want. Those who want to profit and get rich through this dirty war are bad people. They are against the Turkish people as well. It is necessary to pressure them to move out. In connection with this, I wish Turkish people happy Newroz as well. We want fraternal ties with them, equality with them and a new life together. I wish unity between the new people of `Kurdistan. I want all Kurdish parties, organizations, men and women, the young and the aged to join the new life. Proper and successful life does not consist of eating and drinking well, owning a lot of properties. The kind of life we want to lead is the one taking shape ahead of us. The new day -Newroz for us Kurds- will be ours after thousands of years. For the first time, our new day will be Kurdistan day. Let us congratulate ourselves and each other for reaching such a day. Celebrate because such a Kurdistan is coming into being and don't say "we are hungry and thirsty". And "we lack 31 Kurdistan and the Kurds unity" say no more. Our revolution is our greatest concern. Only Kurdistan can quench our thirst and satisfy our hunger. With high spirits and an honorable life, we are already better off. Maybe you have more power than we do. But one doesn't need to complain when the day of judgment arrives. We are weak today, but will be strong tomorrow. Therefore, we propose to resolve our conflict through peaceful means. You will see many good things about us. You will discover that friendship with our people is a thousand times more rewarding than animosity. To our people: Today especially in Germany, our people can freely celebrate their festivity in designated areas. According to what we have heard, no one will bother our people in areas for which a permit to celebrate has been obtained. It is therefore necessary to refrain from actions that may contravene German laws and public order. I believe this will be a progressive step. Our people in the Middle East, in exile, in east and south Kurdistan can celebrate their festivity in a normal manner. They should keep a fair distance away from the borders, away from the enemies' bombs and barracks. There is no sense in celebrating in small groups. And take appropriate security measures to defend yourselves. Our people in north Kurdistan [under Turkish control] whose festivity is denied by the enemy should not deny either their identity or their festivity. They should celebrate to the end through costumes and expressions. In big or small parties, in hiding or out in the open they should celebrate their Newroz. See this Newroz as the celebration of the decision for a life with honor and dignity. Again, all people of Kurdistan, this Newroz celebration takes us closer to the life with honor and dignity. All people of Kurdistan should know that the enemy is in a swamp. It is the enemy that is being cornered everyday. We will carry on with our strugg le. Let's strengthen our unity. The revolution we are in is that of a great nation and is reflected throughout the world. This is enough for you and therefore congratulate each other. You are not a poor nation, you are not a nation of slaves and what you have been wanting for thousands of years is becoming real right in front of your eyes. Today is in fact your day. This Newroz belongs to you more than other people and with great deter mination, we will make this year your year along with Newroz. We will make Kurdistan yours. In the light of this determination and on the basis of realizing this life, I greet you all. [=] 10075. American Kurdish Information Network; AKIN. "Situation in Sivas Has Grown Tense", in AKIN News, April 1996. [99H-09074] [19960401] The situation in the Middle Anatolian province Sivas, that is mainly inhabited by Alevi Kurds, has seemingly increased after about 500 people including village elders have been arrested and several villages have been put under siege. The notorious Specia l Task forces of the Turkish army are engaged in a "head charge" according to the statements of local democratic institutions. They go to the villages dressed as guerrillas and ask for food and logistics in order to arrest people who agree to support them under the charge of support of a terrorist organization" In the province of Sivas about 100 villages have been evacuated in 1995. DEM News Agency,2/13/1996. [=] 10076. American Kurdish Information Network; AKIN. "Sivas Faces Social Explosion", in AKIN News, February 1996. [99H-09060] [19960201] Reactions to the emptying of villages and detention of villagers in security operations in Sivas province are increasing. Republican People's Party (CHP) Assistant Secretary Sinan Yerlikaya stated that state forces were targeting Alevi villages in particu lar and said: "The people of Sivas are on the verge of a serious social outburst". The Democratic Left Party (DSP) has a delegation in the area conducting an investigation. DISK (Progressive Workers Confederation) General Secretary Kemal Daysal said the t error experienced in Dersim last year was this year occurring in Sivas. Daysal said the people were fed up with intensive operations, mass arrests and village evacuations . "It is the security forces, who should be responsible for the people's security, t hat are the cause of this," added Daysal, "we must not allow this to happen. If we remain silent it will encourage the culprits. We warn all parties and their MPs. The terror created by fanatics acting on behalf of the state may tomorrow affect you." CHP Assistant General Secretary Sinan Yerlikaya said at a press conference at the CHP HQ yesterday that over 500 villagers had been detained, 300 villages blockaded and harassed. Yerlikaya called on the authorities to change the governor of Sivas, who he accused of targeting Alevis and left - thinking people while protecting Sunnis and rightists. Ozgur Politika, 2/11/1996. [=] 10077. American Kurdish Information Network; AKIN. "Turkey Border Plan", in AKIN News, December 1995. [99H-09047] [19951201] US officials announced a joint plan to help Turkey improve security along its border with Iraq. A network of heat sensors and observation posts will be erected to stem the flow of Kurdish rebels from Iraq. Jane's Defence Weekly, 11/11/1995. [=] 10073. American Kurdish Information Network; AKIN. "Reaction to Savagery Grows", in AKIN News, February 1996. [99H-09067] [19960201] Following the publication of pictures in the British and Greek press showing atrocities committed by the Turkish army, the Spanish paper El Mundo headlined a story on January 14 thus: "They displayed the severed heads of 4 Kurdish fighters like a trophy o f war." The British Sunday Times published the photos under the heading: "Grim Pictures of Army Butchery Deal Blow to Turkey's EC Hopes", and reported that Pauline Green, leader of the socialist group in the European Parliament, had written to Turkish Pre sident Suleyman Demirel to express the group's horror. Ozgur Politika, 1/16/1996. [=] 10078. American Kurdish Information Network; AKIN. "Turkey Protests", in AKIN News, December 1995. [99H-09046] [19951201] Turkey said yesterday that the European Parliament's decision to give its 1995 Sakharov Prize for freedom of thought to a jailed Kurdish MP did not do credit to the award. Leyla Zana, awarded the prize in Thursday, is serving a 15-year term for involvement with the Kurdistan Workers Party. The Guardian, 11/11/1995. [=] 10074. American Kurdish Information Network; AKIN. "Satellite Dishes Banned in Sirnak", in AKIN News, April 1996. [99H-09080] [19960401] The provincial governor of Sirnak in Turkish-Kurdistan has banned the use of satellite dishes. According to the governor and the chief of the so-called village guards, the high percentage the People's Democracy Party (HADEP) has won in the province in the elections of 12/24/1995 was a result of the broadcasting of the Kurdish Satellite station MED-TV. Already before the decree was made, several people had been arrested under suspicion of watching MEDTV. DEM News Agency, 2/13/1996. [=] 10079. American Kurdish Information Network; AKIN. "Turkey Threatens Foreign Press", in AKIN News, February 1996. [99H09069] [19960201] At a press conference in Ankara organized by the Turkish foreign ministry, spokesman Nurettin Nurkan told foreign press representatives that "the atrocity photos did not reflect reality" and claimed that "a conscious campaign of defamation is being carrie d out against Turkey". Nurkan claimed that human rights violations did not take place in Turkey and left questions on this subject unanswered. Nurkan added that legal action would be taken against 32 Kurdistan and the Kurds those foreign news organizations that published articles b ased on claims that "damaged Turkey's image". Ozgur Politika, 1/17/1996. [=] FRATERNITY to sprout more vigorously in spring with NEVRUZ (New day) which is celebrated (!) by all our citizens with festival s." I looked at the back of the card and, yes, you've guessed, the name of a Turkish state institution was written there. The Public Services Research Trust. The card had been sent from Ankara. I looked again at the pictures on the front of the card. Ther e were pictures of traditional dances from the Black Sea to the Caucasus, of the Sword dance, of dances from Bursa to Afyon and Silifke but nothing beyond Adiyaman and nothing about the Kurds. (...) At that moment the words! "shamelessness" and "embarrass ment" came to mind. (...) The card said peace and fraternity but blood was dripping from the card, Kurdish blood. (...) They (Turkish authorities) are behaving as if it was not them who fired on the people of Cizre and Nusaybin while they danced to celebr ate Newroz. Now they say "Nevruz is peace" It's as if they haven't perpetrated extra judicial killings, torture and massacres. (...) Mesut Yilmaz has at one stroke turned the thousandyear-old "Newroz" into "Nevruz". He is going to celebrate it with his w ife, at the same time his commanders shout "We are ready to write new epics" as they despatch tens of thousands of troops, tanks and guns to Kurdistan. When they talk about peace I see a mentality that is prepared to send thousands of young men to their d eaths in a dirty war without so much as blinking. Ozgur Politika, 3/21/1996. [=] 10080. American Kurdish Information Network; AKIN. "Turkish Human Rights Activist Honored", in AKIN News, December 1995. [99H-09052] [19951201] The German Judges' Union (DRB) sharply criticized mistreatment and torture in Turkish prisons as well as the suppression of freedom of expression in Turkey while handing out its 1995 Human Rights Award. Union chief Rainer Voss criticized the excessive use of charges of "separatism" and "separatist propaganda"by state security courts in Turkey. This year's DRB Human Rights Award was given to Turkish lawyer Husnu Ondul. Ondul is a lawyer in Ankara and was one of the founders of the Human Rights Association (IHD) and the Human Rights Foundation of Turkey, which operates centers for victims of torture. A total of seven political indictments have been filed against Ondul; during one visit to the Kurdish regions, his delegation was even fired upon. In his acceptance speech, Ondul mentioned his murdered colleagues: Metin Can, head of the Human Rights Association in Elazig, and Sevket Epozdemir, head of the Human Rights Association in Tatvan. He accepted the prize in the name of all those people in prison in Turkey because of their work on behalf of the Human Rights Association. Suddeutsche Zeitung, 9/26/1995. [=] 10084. American Kurdish Information Network; AKIN. "Why Turkey No Longer Delights", in AKIN News, April 1996. [99H-09082] [19960401] Throughout his book, Kelsey is keen to get into prisons to see for himself where and how political "criminals" are incarcerated within. Unsurprisingly, prison governors some on a more meager diet that their wards are reluctant to let Kelsey confirm with his own eyes the findings of a 1987 United Nations inspection: at that time, not one of the 644 prisons in Turkey matched minimum international standards. Like many societies founded on unresolved impulses of religion and secularism, Turkey is at war with itself something Kelsey encounters wherever he goes, Turkey makes repeated bids to join the EC, for example. To control an exploding birthrate, one of the prerequisites for membership is the use of condoms, which is Turkish government policy, yet what can be done in a country where condom use offends the vast majority of consenting adults and where many men have more than one wife? Behind the exaggerations of Midnight Express and the yuppie enticements of Turkey's coastal resorts lies a deeply troubled nation. Kelsey evokes its contradictions and dangers unflinchingly, sometimes too harshly: there's not much humor in Dervish the jokes which the Turks enjoy are generally labored or bitter. In dealing with this anachronistic country Kelsey's commendable lack of sentimentality, his roughness even, provides a compelling narrative, but nobody is going to ask him to become ambassador. From a review of Tim Kelsey's book, Sunday Times, 2/10/1996. [=] 10081. American Kurdish Information Network; AKIN. "Turkish Human Rights Monitors and Lawyers Slam Changes to Article 8", in AKIN News, December 1995. [99H-09049] [19951201] Turkish human rights monitors and lawyers have slammed changes to the restrictive law on freedom of expression, Article 8, charging the reforms will not stop people from going to jail for things they say or write. "This is just a trick, a type of cosmetic change that will not protect us from being punished for our thoughts," said Akin Birdal, head of the independent Human Rights Association (IHD) in Turkey. "The changes are nonsense, a joke, it's like make-up that doesn't fit," said Mehmet Ali Birand, host of an influential public affairs television program. The changes also will not affect the estimated 100 additional people human rights groups say are in prison for stating their views, such as Turkish sociologist Ismail Besikci, sentenced to a total of 103 years in prison for books and articles on the Kurds. Reuters, 10/29/1995. [=] 10082. American Kurdish Information Network; AKIN. "Union of Journalists From Kurdistan Founded in Cologne", in AKIN News, April 1996. [99H-09083] [19960401] The First conference of the Union of Journalists from Kurdistan (YRK) was held in the City of Cologne on 17-18 February. Over 100 journalists from Kurdistan, Turkey and Europeparticipated in the meeting that was chaired by the writer Gunay Aslan, who stated that the conference was a step towards a professional organization of Kurdish Journalists. The Union of Journalists from Kurdistan (YRK) will be a bridge between the numerous Kurdish journalists in exile, and those still living in Kurdistan or working in Turkey in spite of the censorship and high rate of torture or killings of journalists on the country. DEM News Agency, 2/19/1996. [=] 10085. American Kurdish Information Network; AKIN. "Yasar Kemal Speaks Out Again!", in AKIN News, April 1996. [99H-09093] [19960401] Yasar Kemal challenges Turkish government to respond to cease-fire Yashar Kemal has stated that it is up to the state to respond to the (PKK) cease-fire, saying: "Come on, declare a ceasefire - I challenge you." Yashar Kemal was speaking at his home wher e he was visited by CHP MP Mehmet Sevigen, party members and the media. Due to the intense press interest Yashar Kemal spoke in the garden of his house. Kemal said that the meaning of the suspended sentence he had received was "Don't write". He stated tha t even in the most fascist, reactionary courts in the world no one could be sentenced for an article, adding: "What does it mean 'Don't write'? This is worse than the Chinese water torture. (...) Whatever the cost I will write again and within a year be s entenced again. I won't suffer 10083. American Kurdish Information Network; AKIN. "Why 'Nevruz'", in AKIN News, April 1996. [99H-09091] [19960401] Extracts from a column by Rengin Avasin. A few days ago a friend showed me a card they had received from a friend of theirs. On the front of the card were the words "Nevruz is peace" and a map of Turkey. Around the map were pictures representing the folk dances of various regions. I looked inside the card. There was the following sentence: "We earnestly wish the seeds of PEACE and 33 Kurdistan and the Kurds this torture." Yashar Kemal said:" Courts of humanity will be established and the state sentenced. I am not a hero. I hate heroics. (...) Human beings are not heroes. (...) But the greatest quality of human beings is of bein g able to overcome fear." "Aren't I afraid of going to jail? (...) But we must overcome fear. The children of the people must not die. There must, absolutely must, be peace." Kemal reiterated that he had been sentenced for using the word guerrilla and sai d he would never conform to orders concerning which words and forms to use. "No one can tell me not to say 'guerrilla' or say 'terrorist'" He also replied to those who have reproached him saying: 'Why don't you rebuke the PKK?', by stating: "Has the PKK s igned the Human Rights convention with Europe? (...) Is Apo's signature beneath the Paris, Helsinki and OSCE agreements? In any case you (the state) call them terrorists not guerrillas." "They say 'You oppose the state but not the PKK.' My target is not t he PKK. It is the state that has to bring about peace. I challenge the state to declare a cease-fire. I'm still blaming the state and as long as things continue like this I'll go on writing." CHP MP Mehmet Sevigen then said that theycondemned the sentenc e Yashar Kemal had received and added that his party would support the writer. Ozgur Politika, 3/15/1996. [=] providing us with this wonderful setting to celebrate Newroz. In particular, I want to acknowledge the work of Dr. Ali, Muzaffer and Temo. Please join me in thanking them by a round of applause. I also want to acknowledge our singers Diyar and Sehruz who have joined us for this occasion from Germany and Canada. I have seen Diyar on Med Television and I have had the good fortune of listening to Sehruz. Both are outstanding Kurdish singers. Please join me in giving Diyar and Sehruz a round of applause as well. Tonight, we are celebrating Newroz. It is a special night not just for us Kurds but also for our neighbors: the Persians, the Assyrians, the Arabs and other natives of the Middle East. It is a night of bonfires, folk dances, delicious food and beautiful customs. It is also a time that signifies resistance, heralded the historical liberation of the Kurds and in our recent history marks the onward march of our national liberation struggle in northern Kurdistan. Newroz which in Kurdish means a new day began on March 21, 612 before Christ in what we today call southern Kurdistan. On that day, a Kurdish iron smith called Kawa killed the Assyrian tyrant known to his contemporaries as Dehak. The news of Dehak's demiseunleashed such joyous emotions that bonfires were made throughout the Middle East to spread the good news the fastest way they knew how at the time. Ever since, Newroz has become an integral part of the Kurdish national consciousness. As oppression against us mounts the longing for the days of Newroz with its symbolic bonfires and folk dances becomes more acute. In our recent history the memory of one Dersim in which 40000 thousand Kurds were slaughtered in 1938 is enough to shake all the Kurds. Halapja which became the testing ground for Saddam's chemical weapons which caused the death of 5000 Kurds will live in our consciousness forever. Here I am reminded of a passage from a poem by Ahmedi Xani, the immortal author of Kurdish quest for freedom, through his works such as Mem-u-Zin. Reflecting heavily on the problems of our people of his time, he had this to say to his contemporaries some three centuries ago which he could have said to us here in this hall were he alive. Xani wrote: "Bartender, for the love of God, please pour some wine into the crystal glass Let the glass and its wine show the world Let there appear whatever it is that we wish Let the events ahead of us come to light Let us know if the future holds promise for us Look! our misfortunes have reached their zenith, Have they started to decline now, do you think? Or will they remain so, Until comes upon us the end of time? Is it possible, I wonder, that for us, too A Star will emerge out of the darkness?" We are gathered here tonight to honor not just one Kurdish star but a growing number of them who shine like bright suns as patriots and martyrs. We are here to celebrate the memory of the Kurds who through the fire of Newroz have brought meaning to our lives, hope to our hearts and light to our days. Despite the pain and immense suffering that is borne by our people on a daily basis, we ought to feel proud, really proud of sharing a generation with the likes of Mazlum Dogan, Zekiye Alkan, Rahsan Demirel, Ronahi and Berivan. 1982 is not an easy year to remember for the Kurds. Thousands were put in Turkish jails condemned to a life of misery where death by torture became so common that years later Hozan Seyithan reminiscing about the infamous days would write the song, Hapsa Diyarbekire. The mayor of that city, Mehdi Zana has a book about the ordeal called Vahsetin Gunlugu, the Journal of Barbarity. There were others who did not survive. Mazlum Dogan not wishing to put up with the torture that was breaking the spirit of the Kurdish resistance, on March 21, 1982, set his body on fire to keep the hope of Newroz alive. Through that supreme act he hoped to spark the flame of liberation in Kurdistan. A decade and four years have passed. Mazlum's dream is now ours: Kurdistan will be free, soon and forever. 8 years later, Zekiye Alkan, a Kurdish student in Diyarbakir Medical School 10086. American Kurdish Information Network; AKIN. "Yilmaz Visits HADEP", in AKIN News, February 1996. [99H-09058] [19960201] Motherland Party (ANAP) leader Mesut Yilmaz paid a visit to the HADEP headquarters in Ankara and met HADEP President Murat Bozlak and other party officials. At a press conference after the meeting, which lasted approximately 40 minutes, Mesut Yilmaz said they had an exchange of views on the subject of injustice in the electoral system and the problem of the "south east", Turkey's biggest problem. Murat Bozlak stated that in order for the cease-fire to become lasting the state must respond and that ANAP mu st make efforts on this issue. Bozlak said that the state of emergency in Kurdistan and village guard system had been launched in the Ozal period, but that Ozal had realized this had not resolved anything but had not lived long enough to end these measure s, and asked Mesut Yilmaz to follow Turgut Ozal's legacy. Mesut Yilmaz did not comment on what Murat Bozlak said. He said the meeting had been useful and said that ANAP would present proposals in parliament to change electoral law and ensure just represe ntation. Ozgur Politika, 2/9/1996. [=] 10087. American Kurdish Information Network; AKIN. "Young Turks Who Never Return", in AKIN News, April 1996. [99H-09077] [19960401] Three months ago Duzgun Tekin left home as usual for his job in a textile factory in Istanbul's Ikitelli industrial zone. He never came back and most probably never will. Mr. Tekin has joined the ranks of some 400 Turks who are believed to have disappeare d since 1980 while in police custody. The story is depressingly familiar, according to officials at the Human Rights Association (IHD). Most of the missing are either Kurdish dissidents or, like Duzgun Tekin, Leftwing radicals with trade links. "Usually they are followed around by security agents in civilian clothes for several days before they disappear, "The marble slab, which was confiscated by the police a few days ago, read: "What started in Argentina, continued in Chile and came to Turkey, befell you, our beloved son." Daily Telegraph, 2/7/1996. [=] 10088. American Kurdish Information Network; AKIN. Newroz 1996, Speech delivered by a representative of the American Kurdish Information Network to an audience of Kurds and their American friends in Lodi, New Jersey on Sunday, March 17, 1996. [99H-09100] [19960317] Dear friends, fellow Kurds, First of all, I want to acknowledge the work of the Kurdish Community of New York for 34 Kurdistan and the Kurds climbed the famous Diyarbakir wall. Again, on March 21, she poured gasoline on herself and sparked another Newroz fire to remind her beloved city of her hate of oppression and of her love of liberation. In 1992, the governor of Sulaymania in southern Kurdistan raised a statute to her memory. We are grateful to the PUK leadership for this solemn act. Again, like Mazlum, she lived not for herself but for us Kurds and Kurdistan. In 1992, the fire of Newroz was lit again and again on Newroz day. This time it was Rahsan Demirel. The Kurds of Izmir were shocked to see their Rahsan on the ground as a pile of bones and ashes. She had left a note behind for the Kurds who were fleeing to western Turkey. She was urging them not to forget the pain and the suffering of those who were being bombarded by the Turks day in and day out. She was calling on them to unite, to resist and to move onward with the struggle of Kurdish martrys who had began the march for the independence and Kurdistan. That year saw the unprecedented attack by the Turkish state on the Kurds who had gathered for Newroz celebrations in Sirnak, Cizre and Nusaybin. 117 people were killed in broad day light by government troops who were carrying orders from the top. The people in the government thought they could make laws that would ban Newroz. But the spirit of Newroz is older than the government and this generation of the Kurds is not scared of guns or their bullets. The Newroz fire that began in Diyarbakir with Mazlum and Zekiye and moved to Izmir with Rahsan then crossed borders and was lit again this time in the heart of Europe by two Kurdish women, Berivan and Ronahi. They too had a message for the one million or so Kurds who had settled in Europe but who were facing increasing hostility from the governments to abandon the struggle of the martyrs for Kurdistan. They left the following note behind, "To the brave people of Kurdistan: We congratulate your Newroz, today. We remind you of the goal to live our humanity as Kurds. We urge you, as our party leader Serok Apo does, of the necessity to be ever more resilient. We undertake this act of selfimmolation, as part of our resistance. To you, we now entrust the sacred struggle. To the Kurdish diaspora, we say, do own the struggle for the humanity of the Kurds. Make the Kurdish revolution in Kurdistan a reality." The struggle for the liberation of Kurdistan is now entering its twelfth year. In these years, some 30000 people have died. 3000 Kurdish villages have been leveled to the ground. Some 3 million Kurds have become refugees. As Kurds we need to feel the pain and suffering that is visiting our brothers and sisters who have lost all they have had throughout their lives. The best way to share this pain would be for each of us as much as our resources permit to take trips to Dersim, Serhat, Amed, Botan and Tolhildan. We need to tell our fellow Kurds that even in America we are with them in our thoughts andthrough our support for their liberation from the foreign yoke. Newroz has been with us for some 2600 years now. No one has the power to take away this celebration of liberation from us so long the Kurdish people continues to exist. Cejna Newroz piroz be! Biji Newroz! (American Kurdish Information Network (AKIN), 2309 Calvert Street NW number 3, Washington, DC 20008-2603; Tel: (202) 4836444; Fax: (202) 483-6476.) [=] s license. Portugal, following after Spain, France, and Germany, also bowed to pressure from Turkey. MED-TV began multi-lingual satellite broadcasts on 5/15/1995, fulfilling a need for 35 million Kurds. Internationally, this step was welcomed as an attempt to give a voice to the world's largest stateless people. (Kurdish-language broadcasting is still illegal in Turkey and some other countries.) MED-TV broadcast for 6 hours each day, providing programming in Kurdish, Turkish, Assyrian, and Arabic. The signal could be received in all of Europe, North Africa, and the Middle East, a huge potential viewership in 34 countries. From the very beginning, the Turkish government exerted great political pressure, coupled with economic threats, on the governments of Europe, urging them to deny broadcast access to MED-TV. But they had no luck for the past 16 months. The Kurds enjoyed their very own television station! MED-TV is a legal company, privately owned, organized by an association of international Kurdish business people, licensed and regulated by the Independent Television Commission (ITC) in London. The station always fulfilled all of its legal and contract requirements, and it also abided by European laws concerning international broadcasting. But now, economic and political pressure from the Turkish government are threatening the integrity of internationally-recognized standards of free speech. MED-TV's future is now dependent on whether countries choose to adhere to international broadcast conventions or bow to pressure from Turkey. MED-TV has vowed to carry on. A variety of options are being examined in order to keep fulfilling the legitimate desire of the Kurdish people to have an uncensored voice of their own, one which is respected by the governments of the world. (American Kurdish Information Network (AKIN) 2623 ConnecticutAvenue NW Suite number 1 Washington, DC 200081522; Tel: (202) 483-6444; Fax: (202) 483-6476.) [=] 10090. American Kurdish Information Network; AKIN. Press Release Number 11: Support for MED-TV. District of Columbia: American Kurdish Information Network (AKIN), July 24, 1996. [99H09039] [19960724] Earlier this month, bowing to pressure from the Turkish government, the broadcasting rights for the Europe-based Kurdish satellite station MED-TV were revoked. There has been much outcry from the Kurdish Diaspora concerning this crackdown on freedom of expression. We received the following letters of support for MED-TV from the jailed members of the Kurdish Democracy Party (DEP) in Ankara Prison and from noted Turkish intellectual Haluk Gerger. We wished to share them with you: "MED-TV brought life to the Kurdish cultural scene the way water and air do these things to living organisms. It was a source of news for the Kurds and a mirror that reflected their reality to them. Thanks to MED-TV, the Kurdish language was coming alive, something which threatened those who wanted to suffocate it. MEDTV epitomized the hope of the Kurdish people for renewal; it was a magnet which drew the Kurds together. For these reasons, we condemn those who wish it to be banned and ask for its broadcasting to resume immediately." -- Leyla Zana, Hatip Dicle, Orhan Dogan, Selim Sadak (jailed Kurdish members of the Turkish Parliament) "I am a Turkish academic. I have appeared in virtually all Turkish TV networks as well as some foreign TV channels. I have never experienced the complete freedom of expression that I've had in various MED-TV programs. MED-TV was a forum where all voices that were either persecuted or otherwise barred to express themselves freely in countries like Turkey, Iraq, Syria, and Iran could find a prominent place for themselves: peace activists, members of ethnic or religious minorities, women, politicians, spokespersons for marginalized communities, etc. It was also a medium through which democratic values like free discussion, dissent, criticism, and tolerance could be transmitted to millions who never in their daily 10089. American Kurdish Information Network; AKIN. Press Release Number 10: MED-TV Has Been Banned. District of Columbia: American Kurdish Information Network (AKIN), July 5, 1996. [99H-09042] [19960705] The Kurdish television station MEDTV was due to start sending out its signal via the Eutel satellite of the Polish state television company PTT as of July 2. But due to pressure from the Turkish government, Polish authorities have canceled the deal. For the past three months, MED-TV was broadcast with the help of the government of Portugal, but this country also revoked the station 35 Kurdistan and the Kurds lives have had the chance to indulge in such "luxuries". It was a school for millions to understand and respect different cultures, values, and perspectives. It was indeed a garden of cultures where a thousand roses blossomed. It is disheartening, to say the least, to see this garden brutalized and vandalized. Working for it, watching it, or participating in its programs, we have been infected with the 'disease of freedom', as its enemies would call our yearning for MED-TV. We cherish this wonderful experiment and will do our best to have it back." -- Dr. Haluk Gerger. (American Kurdish Information Network (AKIN) 2623 Connecticut Avenue NW number 1 Washington, DC 20008-1522; Tel: (202) 483-6444; Fax: (202) 483-6476 E-mail: akin(a)kurdish.org Home Page: http://burn.ucsd.edu/~akin) (The American Kurdish Information Network (AKIN) provides a public service to foster Kurdish-American understanding and friendship.) [=] internal affair of Turkey." We condemn unequivocally this validation of oppression against the inmates, the Kurds and other opponents of the Turkish government. We salute the strikers, their loved ones, and others who have expressed indignation over these untimely deaths. We wish it to be known that we welcomed the statement by the European Commissioner Hans van den Broek urging Turkey in stronglanguage to "prevent further deaths." We ask the State Department to do no less. (American Kurdish Information Network (AKIN) 2623 Connecicut Avenue NW number 1 Washington, DC 20008-1522; Tel: (202) 483-6444; Fax: (202) 483-6476.) [=] 10092. American Kurdish Information Network; AKIN. Press Release Number 1: Turkish Prime Minister Steps Down; PKK Cease-Fire is Postponed. District of Columbia: American Kurdish Information Network (AKIN), September 21, 1995. [99H-09029] [19950920] On 9/20/1995, following the first round of new coalition talks, Turkish prime minister Tansu Ciller officially announced her resignation. According to official statements, the continuation of the coalition government between the Republican People's Party (CHP) and the True Path Party (DYP) was no longer possible due to disagreements about the terms of the coalition. The collapse of the government comes at a time when the number one domestic problem in the country, the Kurdish question, was having some prospects of solution. On 9/18/1995, Abdullah Ocalan, the leader of the Kurdistan Workers Party (PKK), stated in a television interview that he thought the present conditions offered a new chance for a political solution to the conflict. He said: "In order to prove our good will, we want to restart the 1993 cease-fire...Particularly now, as the European Union is about to make a decision regarding Turkey's admissibility to Custom's Union. We would like them to know that we are not the problem and that we are on record for wishing to seek a political solution. If Turkey does not plan to respond to such a gesture with more violence, we will make the announcement soon." According to information reaching our office, Abdullah Ocalan was planning to make the cease-fire announcement in an interview with MED- TV scheduled for September 25. But unfortunately for the casue of peace, the news that government in Ankara had stepped down has forced the Chair of PKK to postpone his decision. In his words: "... until there is a interlocutor in Ankara who could respond to our call, we are going to wait and see." The surprise collapse of the Turkish government is reminiscent of 1993, when Turgut Ozal, the president of Turkey at that time, died of mysterious causes shortly after the PKK announced a unilateral cease-fire. Claims that Ozal died of a heart attack seem far-fetched when one considers the number of voices, even within Turkey, which seemed to indicate that there were political motives for his death. Against the wishes of the Turkish National Security Council, Turgut Ozal had intended to deal with the Kurdish question at the political level. Since all real power in Turkey is in the hands of the military, no civilian politician is willing to take on the risk of acknowledging the cease- fire. It seems that this government collapse is being staged so as to prevent there being any high-ranking officials who can take on the responsibility of utilizing the chances offered by the cease-fire. Furthermore, a collapsed government cannot be held responsible for failing to make use of the cease- fire, and this would remove the burden of having to answer to international pressure. (American Kurdish Information Network (AKIN) 2309 Calvert Street NW number 3 Washington, DC 20008-2603; Tel: (202) 483-6444; Fax: (202) 483-6476.) [=] 10091. American Kurdish Information Network; AKIN. Press Release Number 12: AKIN Salutes the Hunger Strikers Urges Washington to Condemn Their Untimely Deaths. District of Columbia: American Kurdish Information Network (AKIN), July 27, 1996. [99H-09040] [19960727] On 7/21/1996, a Reuters wire report noted that Aygun Ugur, a Turkish prisoner, died as a result of an hunger strike in Turkey. He, together with 2000 other Turkish prisoners, had gone on a hunger strike on 5/19/1996. They had asked the authorities in the government to stop torture and solitary confinements, among other things, in the Turkish prison system. As usual, no one, to this day, has bothered to talk with them. As this statement was being prepared, 10 other Turkish and Kurdish inmates have died. More deaths are expected. The government, the wire reports note, is planning the option of force to break the resistance of the inmates. When the death of second hunger striker, that of Altan Bedran Kerimgiller, became public, the inmate's mother, the Press noted, had wailed: "My baby has gone. Make my baby come back!" The Turkish Justice Minister Sevket Kazan, on the other hand, instead of healing the mother's wound was assuming the aura of a commander: "I don't give a damn about the foreign press reports and letters from Amnesty International. ... Turkey is an independent country." For years now, we have been telling the world about these tales of Turkish oppression against their opponents. This culture of oppression was recently the subject of an editorial by Ahmet Altan, one of the most insightful Turkish journalists. He wrote on July 22, 1996, "I read a declaration of our Minister of Culture in the paper Hurriyet the day before yesterday. He said that our people like Kirkpinar fighting, (Kirkpinar refers to a city where Turkish all-in wrestling tournaments take place) it doesn't like opera and ballet; we like hand to hand fighting." This reminded us of another infamous quote, from another brutal period, by one of Hitler's ideologues, Himmler: "When I hear the word culture, I reach out for my revolver." Some 14 years ago, on 7/14/1982, four Kurdish prisoners began a hunger strike that culminated in their deaths over the political and civil rights of the Kurds. Their memory has now sparked the Kurdish liberation struggle all over the Middle East. Their pictures adorn the Kurdish homes. Their names are given to the Kurdish boys. Today, 10000 Kurdish political prisoners still languish in Turkish jails. On Friday, 7/26/1996, they had a joint statement indicating their decision to join their Turkish friends, through their own hunger strike, in solidarity. Washington, as usual, pretends to be oblivious to the atrocities of the Turkish government. Ankara is hailed as a friend, sometimes as a model -- when these deaths do not occur -- for others to emulate. The statement that emanated from the State Department was short. It said, "We deeply regret the loss of life that has occurred." But lest this might offend Ankara, it added, "... [this] is an 10093. American Kurdish Information Network; AKIN. Press Release Number 2. Turkey Surrounds Etrus Camp in Iraqi-Kurdistan; UN Fails to Aid Against Food Embargo. District of Columbia: 36 Kurdistan and the Kurds American Kurdish Information Network (AKIN), October 10, 1995. [99H-09030] [19951010] For the past year, Turkish soldiers and their Kurdish collaborators, the forces of Kurdistan Democratic Party (KDP), have harassed Kurdish refugees who had fled from state oppression in Turkey. Numbering some 16000 people, these Kurds have had their livestock confiscated, their food intake reduced, and some of these people have been apprehended. Especially in the last month, the KDP have attacked the refugees, resulting in the deaths of 6 people and the wounding of 9 others. According to eyewitnesses, the situation is now getting worse. In the last two weeks, Turkish secret service forces and their local collaborators, the KDP, have surrounded the camp, cutting it off from the outside world. Because of a food embargo against the camp, the refugees have been left to starve. The refugees living in Etrus camp had fled from Turkish state terror, but the Turkish government refuses to leave them in peace. As the local harassment continues, Turkey is also making moves at the international level. During a recent visit to New York, Erdal Inonu, Turkey's foreign minister, complained to the United Nations that this camp ought to be closed and its residents repatriated to Turkey. The Etrus refugee camp stands a testimony to the Turkish government's policy of genocide against the Kurds. Aware of this fact, the Turkish authorities want to put an end to this embarrassment. They, together with their local KDP collaborators, have claimed that the camp is full of guns and acts as a safe area for PKK guerrillas. These are baseless accusations. The United Nations is supposed to protect the people in Etrus camp and provide humanitarian assistance. But according to information reaching our office, the UN is allowing these Turkish/KDP atrocities to take place with impunity. We view this policy as undermining the impartiality of the United Nations, making a travesty of basic human rights. We strongly urge the UN to intervene and rectify the situation. In addition, we urge the Red Cross, NGOs, and human rights organizations to send representatives to the camp and observe the situation first hand. We also urge the democratic public to form a delegation of its own to assess the matter. (American Kurdish Information Network (AKIN) 2309 Calvert Street NW number 3 Washington, DC 20008-2603; Tel: (202) 483-6444; Fax: (202) 4836476.) [=] murdered. Violence has been a policy that has targeted all segments of our society. Duly elected Kurdish parliamentarians have been killed, their constitutional immunity lifted, and some are now serving time in prison. These developments have followed the birth of our party and the nature of our struggle. We want to stand against the policies which seek to assimilate our people, we want to stop the forced removal of our people into oblivion. Because all of the legal channels by which our people sought to organize themselves politically were barred, we undertook our struggle so as to preserve ourselves. Despite the widening, serious problems which confront Ankara, the government's policy is to insist on military solution. This mind-set will cause more bloodshed in Kurdistan and harm the interests of the people of Turkey. To pave the way for the cause of peace, our party unilaterally declared a cease-fire on March 17, 1993 which lasted for 83 days. But the Turkish government, refusing to accommodate the wishes of the Kurdish and Turkish peoples to live in peace, refused to acknowledge our goodwill. Mr. President, Despite the continuing war, our party is ready for an unconditional, peaceful solution to the Kurdish question. If we are not attacked, we will not attack. We are ready to start a new unilateral cease-fire. Allow me at this time to dispel some misconceptions about our party, namely that we are like other classic Communist parties and that we may be seeking to change the existing borders of Turkey or that we insist upon separation from Ankara. None of these assertions is true. We are also opposed to acts of terror. We want to end the pain and suffering of both the Turkish and Kurdish peoples. We want the record to show that we, as a party, are opting for peace and stability, not only in Turkey but also in the region as a whole. To that end, we are open to a federal solution, one that also prevails in the United States of America. I have reason to believe that you will support non-violent solutions to the Kurdish question. To that end, I trust you will persuade the Turkish side to honor such a move. Your support will mean that genocide against a people will be averted, its cultural identity protected, and its democratic and political rights ensured. Allow me to convey to you my deepest respects, Abdullah Ocalan Chair of the Kurdistan Workers Party (PKK). cc: Senate Majority Leader, Bob Dole. Speaker of the House of Representatives, Newt Gingrich. (American Kurdish Information Network (AKIN), 2309 Calvert Street NW number 3, Washington, DC 20008-2603; Tel: (202) 483-6444; Fax: (202) 483-6476.)[=] 10094. American Kurdish Information Network; AKIN. Press Release Number 3. PKK Leader Offers New Cease-Fire In Letter To President Clinton. District of Columbia: American Kurdish Information Network (AKIN), October 27, 1995. [99H-09031] [19951027] We received the following letter from the European office of the National Liberation Front of Kurdistan (ERNK) in Brussels, Belgium. It follows for your perusal verbatim: October 13, 1995; President William J. Clinton, 1600 Pennsylvania Avenue NW, Washington, D.C. 20500. Dear Mr. President, As you are fully aware, the Kurdish question is becoming more violent with each passing day. A democratic solution to this enduring problem is of the utmost necessity. In our recent past, a policy of genocide was visited upon the Greeks and theArmenians of Anatolia. It seems as if, with some slight variations, this same policy is now being inflicted upon our people, the Kurds. This policy has expressed itself in a way which has denied our people the chance to express their identity. The very existence of our people is slated for systematic extinction. The Kurdish people are denied the most basic human rights which are enshrined in United Nations declarations and other international covenants. It is the policy of the Turkish state to forcibly assimilate the Kurdish nation within its borders. In our land, this policy of war has led to the destruction of over 3000 villages. In the last ten years, some 3 million Kurds have been forced to migrate from their lands. In attacks that are clearly supported by the Turkish state, thousands of Kurdish politicians, writers and artists have been 10095. American Kurdish Information Network; AKIN. Press Release Number 4. PKK Chair Announces Unilateral Cease-Fire; PKK Chair Declares Unilateral Cease-Fire to Test Turkey for the Cause of Peace. District of Columbia: American Kurdish Information Network (AKIN), December 14, 1995. [99H-09033] [19951214] On 12/14/1995,PKK Chair Abdullah Ocalan announced an unilateral cease-fire to test Turkey for the cause of peace in an interview with the Kurdish satellite television station MED-TV. Journalists from Turkey and around the world were present at the live press conference with Mr. Ocalan on MED-TV. The PKK Chair said, "We have announced a unilateral cease-fire. We wish to see how the new Turkish government, which will come to power after the 12/24/1995 elections, approaches the Kurdish question. It is a goodwill gesture on our part to give them the benefit of the doubt for new ways to deal with the issue." Ocalan continued: "During the cease-fire, if the Turkish military does not attack PKK forces, then our guerrillas will halt all their offensive military actions." The PKK Chair announced this cease-fire in response to attempts by the European Parliament to find ways for a political solution to the Kurdish question. Another factor was the desire to create more peaceful conditions for the upcoming general elections in Turkey. PKK Chair Abdullah Ocalan stressed that 37 Kurdistan and the Kurds the unilateral cease-fire should not be interpreted as a sign of weakness, rather as an illustration of the party's desire to enter into a political dialogue. The PKK's desire, he said, is not to change Turkey's present borders, but rather to bring about the co-existence of the Turks and the Kurds by means other than war. Several European countries, he said, have federated political systems, and something similar could be worked out to accommodate the Kurds in Turkey. "If Turkey wishes to be a party to the political solution to the Kurdish question but does not want to enter into dialogue with our party, the PKK, some other Kurdish institution could act as an interlocutor, so long as the the existence of the PKK is accepted as a fact and the reality on the ground is not misconstrued." Mr. Ocalan, moreover, called upon the nations of Europe to establish a commission to oversee the cease-fire and to redouble their efforts for the cause of peace so that the momentum for a political solution is not wasted. He noted that Turkey's recent admission into the European Customs Union by definition has made the Kurdish question a European issue. It is the duty, therefore, of European countries to bring an end to the war in Turkey. PKK Chair Abdullah Ocalan called upon Turkey's political and military institutions to respect the cease-fire. He also called on the international community to acknowledge and give their support to this peace effort. (American Kurdish Information Network (AKIN) 2309 Calvert Street NW number 3 Washington, DC 200082603; Tel: (202) 483-6444; Fax: (202) 483-6476.) [=] It is the duty, therefore, of European countries to bring an end to the war in Turkey. PKK Chair Abdullah Ocalan called upon Turkey's political and military institutions to respect the cease-fire. He also called on the international community to acknowledge and give their support to this peace effort. (American Kurdish Information Network (AKIN) 2309 Calvert Street NW number 3 Washington, DC 200082603; Tel: (202) 483-6444; Fax: (202) 483-6476.) [=] 10097. American Kurdish Information Network; AKIN. Press Release Number 5: Turkey Continues to Destroy Kurdish Villages; Despite the Cease-Fire, the Turkish Army Continues to Destroy Kurdish Villages. District of Columbia: American Kurdish Information Network (AKIN), February 12, 1996. [99H-09035] [19960212] The destruction of Kurdish villages in southeastern Turkey which began in the early 1990s continues today, in spite of the unilateral cease-fire by the Kurdish side which started on 12/15/1995. According to reports reaching our office throughout recent weeks, close to 100 villages in and around Divrigi, Zara, Hafik, Imranli and Ulas in Sivas province havebeenbombarded by the Turkish air force using US-supplied Cobra attack helicopters. The people living in these villages are Kurdish Alewites, followers of a moderate Islamic faith considered too liberal by fundamentalists and too supportive of the Kurdish liberation movement by the Turkish state authorities. Many of these villagers have been harassed to either become "village guards" or face the consequences of forced migration in the middle of winter. Unwilling to become the tools of the Turkish government to fight their kin, these Kurdish villagers have had no choice but to move to the shantytowns of large cities in western Turkey. The plight of these Kurdish villagers was also voiced last Wednesday on 2/7/1996, by three of their representatives from the Republican People's Party (CHP) in the Turkish parliament who raised the issue during a press conference in Ankara. They said: "People are under pressure and abandoning their homes." (Reuters World Report, 2/7/1996.) According to a CHP report, Turkish troops have arrested almost 500 villagers and 75 village leaders in the last four months. These new attacks on the Kurds of Sivas, coming at a time when the PKK has adhered to a unilateral cease-fire, show that the Turkish government is determined to resolve the Kurdish question by way of force alone. (American Kurdish Information Network (AKIN) 2309 Calvert Street NW number 3 Washington, DC 20008-2603; Tel: (202) 483.6444; Fax: (202) 483.6476.) [=] 10096. American Kurdish Information Network; AKIN. Press Release Number 4: PKK Chair Announces Unilateral Cease-Fire; PKK Chair Declares Unilateral Cease-Fire to Test Turkey for the Cause of Peace. District of Columbia: American Kurdish Information Network (AKIN), December 14, 1995. [99H-09034] [19951214] On 12/14/1995,PKK Chair Abdullah Ocalan announced an unilateral cease-fire to test Turkey for the cause of peace in an interview with the Kurdish satellite television station MED-TV. Journalists from Turkey and around the world were present at the live press conference with Mr. Ocalan on MED-TV. The PKK Chair said, "We have announced a unilateral cease-fire. We wish to see how the new Turkish government, which will come to power after the 12/24/1995 elections, approaches the Kurdish question. It is a goodwill gesture on our part to give them the benefit of the doubt for new ways to deal with the issue." Ocalan continued: "During the cease-fire, if the Turkish military does not attack PKK forces, then our guerrillas will halt all their offensive military actions." The PKK Chair announced this cease-fire in response to attempts by the European Parliament to find ways for a political solution to the Kurdish question. Another factor was the desire to create more peaceful conditions for the upcoming general elections in Turkey. PKK Chair Abdullah Ocalan stressed that the unilateral cease-fire should not be interpreted as a sign of weakness, rather as an illustration of the party's desire to enter into a political dialogue. The PKK's desire, he said, is not to change Turkey's present borders, but rather to bring about the co-existence of the Turks and the Kurds by means other than war. Several European countries, he said, have federated political systems, and something similar could be worked out to accommodate the Kurds in Turkey. "If Turkey wishes to be a party to the political solution to the Kurdish question but does not want to enter into dialogue with our party, the PKK, some other Kurdish institution could act as an interlocutor, so long as the the existence of the PKK is accepted as a fact and the reality on the ground is not misconstrued." Mr. Ocalan, moreover, called upon the nations of Europe to establish a commission to oversee the cease-fire and to redouble their efforts for the cause of peace so that the momentum for a political solution is not wasted. He noted that Turkey's recent admission into the European Customs Union by definition has made the Kurdish question a European issue. 10098. American Kurdish Information Network; AKIN. Press Release Number 6: End the War in Kurdistan. District of Columbia: American Kurdish Information Network (AKIN), March 26, 1996. [99H-09036] [19960326] 15 members of the United States Congress, John E. Porter, Estaban E. Torres, Michael Bilirakis, Maurice Hinchey, Frank Pallone, Jr., Edolphus Towns, Carolyn Maloney, Anna Eshoo, Robert E. Andrews, William O. Lipinski, Frank R. Wolf, Gary L. Ackerman, Charles E. Schumer, Elizabeth Furse and Robert G. Torricelli in a letter to President Clinton urged him to play the role of a peacemaker between the Kurds and the Turks. The text of the letter follows verbatim. "President William J. Clinton The White House 1600 Pennsylvania Avenue NW Washington, DC 20500; Dear President Clinton, On January 23, 1996, in your State of the Union address, you said, "...we can and should be the world's very best peacemaker."We are writing to ask your help in bringing the blessings of peace to the Kurds who are struggling against a cruel repression in southeastern Turkey. Little known in our part of the world, this conflict has devastated much of the Kurdish region in the country. Regrettably, weaponssupplied to the Turkish army by the United States have contributed in no small measure to this calamity. House Concurrent 38 Kurdistan and the Kurds Resolution 136 of the 104th Congress notes that, "... the human toll of this conflict has been great, with the loss of more than 20000 lives, the displacement of more than 3 million civilians, and the destruction of more than 2,650 Kurdish villages." This war can be brought to a close, Mr. President. The Kurdish people want peace. Their armed leadership declared a unilateral cease-fire on December 15, 1995 to pave the way for the difficult but essential task of the peacemakers. A vast majority of the Turkish people and their true friends around the world want peace too. It is the leadership in Ankara that insists on the course of war. We urge you, Mr. President, to stop supplying arms to Turkey so long as its abuse of Kurds persists and to offer your good offices to these recently estranged peoples to reconcile their differences. We ask you, Mr. President, to seize this moment of hope for it also accords with your vision of a world free from major conflicts.In Kurdish lands, we want the killing to stop, peace to prevail and the civil rights of the Kurds protected. Sincerely yours," American Kurdish Information Network (AKIN) 2309 Calvert Street NW number 3 Washington, DC 20008-2603. (The American Kurdish Information Network (AKIN) provides a public service to foster Kurdish-American understanding and friendship; Tel: (202) 483-6444; Fax: (202) 483-6476). [=] their side. It is now obvious to us that we either convince our adversaries to sit down with us or we make them plead for it. They who insisted on the course of war have now had us master this art. Their losses now, again, bear witness to the truth of my statement. The Turkish Chief of Staff still insists that the opposite is the case. You all heard him say that despite six feet of snow and aninhospitable terrain, his forces had done miracles displaying acts of valor that were the envy of the most resolute fighters. True enough, there is a lot of snow and the terrain has some of the steepest mountain ranges. But what the general forgot to mention is that his 30000 troops were ferried to the mountain tops by helicopters and that his planes were at hand to carpet bomb selected sites at will and that the treasury of a state was at his mercy to prosecute this war. If one were to brand his soldiers with these means as paragons of valor, then what word would be used to describe my units who, sometimes lacking proper clothing and on many occasions living on a rather poor ration of food, manage to hold on to the sacred crevices that make a mockery of the Turkish general's claims. The fire that keeps my units resisting in the snow, as soon as it comes into contact with the Turkish state will bring it down in flames. "I would like to make couple of other points. The present Turkish Prime Minister Mesut Yilmaz is not serious when he states that he wants to solve this conflict by means other than war. The same goes for the President of the country, Suleyman Demirel. The Turkish Chief of Staff thinks no differently. They all say one thing and all do something totally different. This has forced us take the responsibility of our people into our own hands. We, now, are determining their future. If they insist on the course of war, they will find us right in front of them. But we remain committed to cause of peace for the welfare of not just our people but also theirs. If they beat the drums of war, we have a promise to our people. We will rest neither in the day nor in the night. We will live just for one goal, liberation. We will fight to the last of us, doing so as true believers would. We view victory as a certainty. As we wage our war in the mountains and move on to the cities, we ask our people to side with us body and soul. We have an enemy that refuses to recognize our humanity and insists that we all take our place on the trash heap of history. This we will not let to happen. The martyrs of Kurdistan have paved the way; we are only marching to their will. This is not a choice for us; It is the calling of life on us." (American Kurdish Information Network (AKIN); 2623 Connecticut Avenue NW number 1; Washington, DC 20008-1522; Tel: (202) 483-6444; Fax: (202) 483-6476.) [=] 10099. American Kurdish Information Network; AKIN. Press Release Number 7: "The Fire that will Consume Turkey. District of Columbia: American Kurdish Information Network (AKIN), April 11, 1996. [99H-09037] [19960411] Editor's note: The Turkish war that had come to a grinding halt for the past 4 1/2 months in northwest Kurdistan, southeast Turkey, because of the unilateral cease-fire on the part of the PKK, has erupted again, taking scores of lives. Some 30000 Turkish troops were ferried to the mountain tops in Amed (Diyarbakir) province to fight units belonging to Semdin Sakik, one of the most wanted Kurdish commanders of the People's Liberation Army of Kurdistan, ARGK. Last year, Turkish soldiers dropping leaflets from helicopters all over Kurdish lands promised one hundred thousand dollars to the Turk or mercenary Kurd who would capture Commander Sakik dead or alive. What follows is an edited version of his lengthy statement to the Kurdish satellite television station MEDTV on 4/11/1996. "We are in touch with all our units who have engaged the Turkish forces. The enemy losses now stand at hundreds of soldiers. On our part, to date, we have had seven casualties. The attack that began with premeditated ferocity in Amed province has somewhat died down. Now, there are new attacks elsewhere, in Mardin, Botan, and southern Kurdistan [northern Iraq]. In these latter skirmishes, we have had one fighter die; the Turkish losses are high, again somewhere in three digits. There are important lessons to be learned from this latest coordinated Turkish attack on the Kurds. The hand that we extended for peace remained empty in the air. Lest it may be unclear: that hand is still in the air waiting for a shake from the adversary. The policy makers on the other side ought to know this truism that the military victory is and will remain a mirage relative to us. The casualty figures of these latest battles alone point to the inefficacy of war on their part. We are impervious to the loss of Turkish soldiers who are becoming the casualties of this war. We know this for a fact that we are on the right path for the type of war that will undo our adversaries sooner rather than later. A handful of my units have inflicted 30000 Turkish troops hundreds of losses. This know-how is the source of our strength; an important milestone that guarantees us success. This is an important lesson that we would like to impart on adversaries as well. I suggest the Turkish cabinet discuss the merits of our proposition on 4/25/1996, when they have their periodical meeting, again. Some have raised their voices again that we stop the war and disengage again. These people have us by 10100. American Kurdish Information Network; AKIN. Press Release Number 8: Kurdish Official Arrested In Washington: Turkish Government Convinces US to Arrest Kurdish Activist in Washington DC. District of Columbia: American Kurdish Information Network (AKIN), April 16, 1996. [99H-09038] [19960416] In a bold move, trying to discredit the peaceful efforts of the American Kurdish Information Network (AKIN), the government of Turkey persuaded the US State Department to seek the arrest of Kani Xulam, that group's respected spokesman in Washington, D.C. Xulam has been advising members of Congress and the Administration of the atrocities perpetrated by Turkish armed forces in their destruction ofover 3000 Kurdish villages, the murder of tens of thousands of civilians, and the forced relocation of millions. Turkey relies on US military aidto enforce its denial of fundamental human rights to some 20 million Kurds. Xulam comes from Turkish occupied Kurdistan, where he - as all other Kurds - was forbidden to use his native Kurdish language. Now, on the pretext of "passport fraud", the State Department initiated legal proceedings which resulted in Xulam's arrest last week and his appearance on Monday in US District Court in Washington, D.C. In an affidavit to the court, the State Department claimed that it 39 Kurdistan and the Kurds had been informed by the government of Turkey that Xulam "may be a member" of a terrorist organization. Based on that allegation by a foreign power that seeks to silence Xulam, the federal magistrate detained him. Apparently, the government is afraid Xulam may flee the country and they want him held so that he can be deported. Some twenty local human rights activists appeared to speak for Xulam's character and long time commitment to seek peaceful solutions to the present conflict between the Turkish armed forces and the Kurdish people. Among them were Kathryn Cameron Porter, President of Human Rights Alliance and wife of Rep. John Porter (R, IL.), Maryam Elahi of Amnesty International, and Sister Patricia Krommer of the Human Rights Foundation. Although the AKIN offices in Washington, D.C. were searched and its papers rummaged, it is still operating and will continue to campaign for the rights of Kurds everywhere. Ralph D. Fertig, Secretary of the Board of Directors of AKIN and a former federal administrative judge for the EEOC in Los Angeles, commented: "It is clear that these proceedings against Xulam are testimony to his effectiveness in alerting American public officials to the use of US tax dollars to support and equip the Turkish government in its violation of basic human rights of the Kurds. Xulam is a dedicated pacifist, and his efforts have been used in the best American tradition of peacefully petitioning the US government. Neither he nor his cause shall be silenced." Respectfully, J. Azboy Director, American Kurdish Information Network (AKIN) 2623 Connecticut Avenue NW number 1; Washington, DC 20008-1522; Tel: (202) 4836444; Fax: (202) 483-6476. [=] his deportation hearing. Shortly before his release by the INS, Mr. Xulam presented an application for political asylum, claiming that as a result of his political and human rights work on behalf of the Kurds and his efforts to stop US arms sales to Turkey, he would face persecution, torture, and possibly death if forcibly returned to Turkey. That application is now pending before the INS with a decision expected in the next several months. In a statement released today, attorney Peter A. Schey stated: "We believe that the United States government's criminal and deportation charges against Kani Xulam are politically motivated and were encouraged by the government of Turkey. The United States government is more concerned with its strategic relations with the undemocratic government of Turkey than with the human and democratic rights of the Kurds. Mr. Xulam and the American Kurdish Information Network are dedicated to reaching a peaceful resolution of the conflict in Turkey, a war which today continues to result in the burning of Kurdish villages in southeastern Turkey, the massive displacement of Kurdish refugees, and the persecution of Kurds seeking democratic reforms." For more information, contact: American Kurdish Information Network, (202) 483-6444 Peter A. Schey, Center for Human Rights and Constitutional Law, (213) 388-8693, ext. 104; American Kurdish Information Network (AKIN), 2623 Connecticut Avenue NW number 1, Washington, DC 20008-1552. The American Kurdish Information Network (AKIN) provides a public service to foster Kurdish-American understanding and friendship. [=] 10101. American Kurdish Information Network; AKIN. Press Release Number 9: Kani Xulam Free On Bail, Back At Work In Washington, D.C. District of Columbia: American Kurdish Information Network (AKIN), June 3, 1996. [99H-09041] [19960603] On 4/12/1996, Kani Xulam, Director of the American Kurdish Information Network (AKIN), was arrested by armed US federal agents in Washington, D.C. Mr. Xulam was charged in federal court with having acquired a United States passport in 1986 using an assumed name. He was also charged by the Immigration and Naturalization Service (INS) with having overstayed a visitors visa after entering the United States in 1985. During the arrest, federal agents raided Xulam's home and the offices of AKIN, seizing computers, video tapes, and documents, all materials related to Mr. Xulam's human rights efforts on behalf of the Kurds. The Department of Justice initially took the position that Mr. Xulam should be held without bail since he was allegedly linked to unidentified "terrorist" groups operating on behalf of the Kurds of Turkey. Kani was held without bail for approximately 40 days, often detained in solitary confinement, before being transferred to Los Angeles, California where the criminal charge was filed. Following his arrest, the United States Department of Justice convinced a federal court judge in Washington, D.C. that Mr. Xulam should be held without bail on the criminal charge. On 5/14/1996, a federal appeals court in Washington, in response to an emergency petition filed by attorney Daniel Alcorn, overturned the decision to hold Mr. Xulam without bail and ordered that his eligibility for release on bail be reconsidered by the lower court. By the time the appeals court ruling was issued, Mr. Xulam had been transferred to Los Angeles. On 5/15/1996, Mr. Xulam, now represented by Los Angeles civil rights lawyer Peter A. Schey, President of the Center for Human Rights and Constitutional Law, was ordered released on $50000 bail by a Los Angeles federal magistrate. Under the terms of his release, Kani is permitted to travel throughout the United States and continue his work on behalf of AKIN. Mr. Xulam was then transferred to the custody of the INS. On 5/20/1996, the INS agreed to release Mr. Xulam without bail on his own recognizance, pending the outcome of 10102. American Kurdish Information Network; AKIN. Press Release: About AKIN. District of Columbia: AKIN, N.D. [1996?] [99H09094] [19960101] The American Kurdish Information Network (AKIN) is a non-profit, tax-exempt organization established in 1993 to serve the information needs of this country relative to the Kurds. It does this to fulfill two needs: ours, to hold a mirror to the events that are taking place in the Kurdish regions of Turkey, and those of the American public, to enable them to have access to collected materials on the subject. AKIN hopes to function as a bridge over which friendships and knowledge are exchanged to the benefit of both peoples. Its aim is to increase awareness about the Kurds in this country. AKIN is comprised of Americans of Kurdish origin and recent Kurdish immigrants and refugees from all walks of life: entrepreneurs, blue- and white-collar workers, students, and American supporters. AKIN collects, translates, and disseminates information about the Kurds. It hopes to become a valuable resource center for policy makers, scholars, and students of the region. At the same time, it seeks to promote understanding between the Kurds and the Americans. In Kurdistan, AKIN wants the killings to stop, peace to prevail, and the will of the people to be respected and accepted. "One of the greatest tragedies in Turkey's history is happening now. Our Kurdish brothers are being slaughtered, and apart from a couple of hesitant voices, no one is standing up and demanding to know what the Government is doing...What will come of all this?" - Yasar Kemal, perennial candidate for the Nobel Prize in Literature AKIN: provides the latest news on the situation in Kurdistan; exposes every form of human rights violation and repression against the Kurdish people; informs the public about the political and cultural developments in Kurdistan. AKIN aims: to disseminate information to the press and media; to solicit the support of human rights organizations; to secure the interest of Congress, political leaders, and other democratic and progressive forces; to publish documents, reports, and books related to the politics and culture of Kurdistan; to provide information and give advice to journalists, representatives, and human rights activists intending to visit the region. 40 Kurdistan and the Kurds AKIN publications include: press releases and occasional newsletters; daily English translations from the DEM News Agency; documents and resolutions from the Kurdish Parliament in Exile; reports from government officials, lawyers, and human rights organizations concerning human rights abuses in Kurdistan. "We must never again leave millions of men, women, and children at the mercy of the Turkish army." - Danielle Mitterand, wife of the former President of France AKIN calls for: an independent international human rights investigation into widespread human rights abuses committed against Kurds, particularly against Kurdish women; a UN special investigation into torture, arbitrary detention, and extrajudicial executions, and for the perpetrators of these grave violations to be brought to trial; the Kurdish people to be allowed to exercise their fundamental universally-acknowledged right to self-determination; a negotiated settlement to the Kurdish question, with the Turkish government agreeing to open an unconditional dialogue with representatives of the Kurdish people; the US, Canada, and all European countries to immediately stop supplying weapons to Turkey and to issue an arms embargo and impose economic sanctions; all nations to end the deportation of Kurdish refugees to Turkey; the United States government to recognize and support the Kurdish Parliament in Exile; tourists to boycott Turkey as a holiday destination. "...Kurdish people throughout southern Turkey, very ordinary, humble people, have decided they would rather die standing up than spend their lives on their knees...it was the most extraordinary and inspiring sight of my life...I hope one day they have the kind of freedoms we take for granted." - Michael Ignatieff, writer and broadcaster. (American Kurdish Information Network (AKIN), 2623 Connecicut Avenue NW number 1, Washington, DC 20008-1522; Tel: (202) 483-6444; Fax: (202) 483-6476). [=] found that "weapons supplied by Turkey's NATO partners, especially the United States, play a central role in abuses committed by Turkish security forces". It then recommends that the US government "End all military sales and security aid to Turkey until such time as Turkey no longer engages in a pattern of gross human rights violations, as required by section 502B of the Foreign Assistance Act". We agree wholeheartedly with this recommendation. The Kurdish people continue to ask for peace, so why is it that our calls are continually ignored? On 10/13/1995, the leader of the PKK, Abdullah Ocalan, sent a letter addressed specifically to President Clinton, stating once again that the Kurdish forces were willing to agree to an immediate unilateral cease-fire if Turkey would call off its own attacks. As the PKK leader stated, continuing to insist on a military solution to the Kurdish question would only "cause more bloodshed in Kurdistan and harm the interests of the people of Turkey". President Clinton never responded to this letter. The National Liberation Front of Kurdistan is of the opinion that it would be a moral and political mistake for the US government to go ahead with its sale of ATACMS missiles to Turkey. America should cease being a party to the genocide being carried out against our people. The sale of these weapons would only serve to destabilize the region even further. Representative John E. Porter, Co-chairman of the Congressional Human Rights Caucus, outlined such concerns in a November 15th letter to Secretary of State Warren Christopher. In reference to past American arms sales to Turkey, Porter siad, "Our military aid and equipment is being used to prolong a brutal war which is overwhelmingly opposed by the Turkish people." To quote Representative Porter again, "The Kurdish side has repeatedly shown a willingness to find a political solution, only to be flatly refused by the government." We remain committed to finding peaceful and democratic solution to the Kurdish question. But it would make it harder for us to continue our repeated overtures for peace if the West's only response is to arm the Turkish forces with even deadlier weapons. Rather than promoting war and destruction, the US government should use its influence in the Middle East to promote human rights and democratic forces. It is not in America's long-term interest to continue supporting the war-mongers in Ankara. The time is right for a peaceful solution to the Kurdish question. America should not spoil this potential by selling ATACMS missiles to Turkey. (ERNK European Representation) [=] 10103. American Kurdish Information Network; AKIN. Press Release: Kurds Respond To US Missile Sale To Turkey. District of Columbia: American Kurdish Information Network (AKIN), November 26, 1995. [99H-09032] [19951126] (We received the following statement from the ERNK office in Brussels, Belgium. It follows for your perusal verbatim:) National Liberation Front of Kurdistan (ERNK): Press Release - November 26, 1995: The Clinton Administration has agreed to sell 120 army tactical surface-to-surface missiles (ATACMS) to Turkey. As if the Kurdish people have not suffered enough atrocities at the hands of the Turkish military--artillery barrages fired on their homes, tanks patrolling their streets, American-made helicopters destroying their villages--now they will be the victims of ballistic missiles capable of carrying their payload of more than 950 small bombs over distances of close to 200 km. As the Peace Process between the Israelis and the Palestinians advances, as the bloodshed in Bosnia nears its end, and as President Clinton prepares to travel to Northern Ireland to validate the cease-fire there, why must the Kurdish people be subjected to ever more destruction? Just last week, on November 21, Human Rights Watch/Helsinki published a report entitled Weapons Transfers and Violations of the Laws of War in Turkey. This report offered documented proof of serious human rights atrocities committed by the Turkish armed forces. Human Rights Watch put the figures for the war thus far at 19000 dead, 2000 Kurdish civilians murdered by Turkish death squads, more than two million internally displaced persons, and over 2000 villages destroyed. Although we feel the real figures are tragically higher, no one can deny that a profound human tragedy is taking place in Kurdistan. The Human Rights Watch study 10104. American Kurdish Information Network; AKIN. Press Release: Mrs. Clinton At Topkapi Palace. AKIN, March 26, 1996. [99H-09098] [19960326] Hillary Rodham Clinton is on a tour of five countries for ten days. Among the places she is scheduled to visit is Turkey. While in that country, she is going to give a speech on the coexistence of secular governments and religious societies. A better topic for a speech in Turkey would be an address on the coexistence of peoples. A talk on the virtues of tolerance coupled with the need to lift the restrictions on the freedom of speech and freedom assembly would be a more fitting message for t he peoples that make up Turkey, primarily the Turks and the Kurds. Perhaps they would learn to accommodate one another. But it looks like Mrs. Clinton asked her hosts what they would like to hear. And the politicians in Ankara still hurting from their recent losses to the Islamic Welfare Party asked the First Lady to tell the citizens of Turkey to be modern with the empha sis on the secularism. No one has come to as close to oblivion as they have. They want the First lady to help. It is a great plot in an equally fitting spot. The secular Mrs. Clinton delivers the coexistence speech at the Topkapi Place, the White of House of theocratic Ottoman Empire for over 500 years. The Turkish leaders could then tell to the Turks, look, you could be secular and modern too just like the First lady. One wonders if the Turks will take their guest and her entourage to the Harem section of the Topkapi Place. There hundreds 41 Kurdistan and the Kurds of primarily European women were kept in seclusion as concubines. If a nything, feminists should protest the choice of the spot for Mrs. Clinton's address. Were Mrs. Clinton to chose to address the 58 million citizens of Turkey on the virtues of coexistence the ideal spot for the occasion would be Ankara Prison. That symbol of Turkish injustice towards the Kurds has now four duly elected Kurdish parliamenta rians languishing behind its bars. Among them is a woman, Mrs. Leyla Zana, who was elected to the Turkish parliament in 1991 and who now serves a 15 years jail sentence since 1994. The Kurdish question in Turkey now ranks as the country's number one crisis. At issue is an antiquated constitution that legalizes the forced assimilation of the Kurds. Turkey, home to some 15 million Kurds, has laws that equate the cultivation of the K urdish language as a crime. The framers of the Turkish constitution wanted to create the "modern Turk." That meant everybody who lived in Turkey irrespective of his heritage or cultural needs had to assume a new identity, that of a Turkish nationalist. There are Kurds who have assimilated at early age and now are now respected Turks. Some have even made it to the top positions in the administration of the government. The Turks who are opposed to the idea of giving any civil or cultural rights to the K urds are quick to cite the names of these few lucky Kurds supposedly to make the point that discrimination is not a practice in the land administered by the Turks. For the advocates of the Kurdish rights, discrimination is not the problem. They want political rights, civil rights, cultural rights, language rights, in other words, the rights to a heritage that is meaningful for them which they would like to cultivate and impart on their posterity as a gift. Leyla Zana was one of those advocates. She was a Kurd by birth and wanted to remain so by choice. She was born in a Kurdish village in 1961 and would probably have been a refugee now had she not married Mehdi Zana, who in 1977 became the mayor of Diyarb akir. Since then things have never been the same for her. In 1980, the army seized power in Turkey. Thousands of Kurds who were demanding their political and cultural rights were thrown into jails. The mayor of Diyarbakir was a known Kurdish activist. Sensing the danger, he fled but was caught before he could leave Turkey. He was kept in jail for 13 years on a charge that he had spoken an illegal language, his mother tongue, Kurdish, with his constituents. Leyla Zana came of age in those turbulent times. A mother of two children, the wife of a noted Kurdish activist, she entered the political fray, for her husband and for her people. That meant learning Turkish which she did in her trips to the Western T urkish cities where her husband was kept in prison. As she saw her husband deteriorate in health and in spirit, her resolve to become a Kurdish advocate grew. In 1991, when she ran for a seat in the Turkish parliament, she almost always drew the largest crowds ever assembled in the Kurdish regions of Turkey. Leyla Zana and her friends served in the Turkish parliament for only three years. In those years, she lost a fellow Kurdish parliamentarian to the bullets of gunfire. Together with three of her colleagues, they are now serving a 15 year sentence in the infamous Ankara Prison. Six others fled the country seeking political asylum in Europe. Still others got death threats which compelled them to switch parties or be dismissed from their jobs because they refused to be silenced. The Kurdish question refuses to go away. Since 1984, some 30000 people have died in the Turkish state's effort to crush Kurdish aspirations. 2650 Kurdish villages have been destroyed. 3 million Kurds are now internal refugees. Because Leyla Zana seeks a peaceful solution to the Kurdish question, she was awarded the 1995 Sakharov Peace Prize by the European Parliament. She was also among the finalists for the Nobel Peace Prize for the same year. A visit by Mrs. Clinton to Mrs. Zana would mean doing the right thing. It would mean validating an advocate of democratic change and giving the forces of peace in the country the recognition needed to carry on their difficult yet essential task. In Turkey, peace, order and the human dignity are in demand; Mrs. Clinton should not fail to deliver these gifts. (American Kurdish Information Network (AKIN) 2309 Calvert Street NW number 3 Washington, DC 20008-2603; Tel: (202) 4836444; Fax: (202) 483-6476.) [=] 10105. American Kurdish Information Network; AKIN. Press Release: Turkey's War Crimes. AKIN, N.D. [1996?] [99H-09097] [19960101] Just a few weeks ago, "The European", a weekly newspaper published in London, England, had a picture with a warning on its front page. It showed a Turkish soldier holding the decapitated heads of two Kurds. The caption read: "Pictures that will shock the world." A closer look at the pictures and the story which accompanies them reveals that these photographs depict the triumph of five Turkish soldiers over the dead bodies of four Kurdish rebels. In one picture, two of the naked Kurds are headless, one lying on his back and the other on his stomach. The first has a rope tied to his ankles and the second has a rope tied around his trunk, betraying the not uncommon practice of dragging dead bodies behind armored vehicles in Turkey's southeast. Historians tell us that the warriors of Ghengis Khan did the same to their victims, only with horses rather than army vehicles. In another picture, a soldier in his twenties is holding the two severed heads while smiling at the camera and his comrade in the background is smirking. There are other pictures and other depravities. Suffice it to note that one is uglier than the other and each alone is enough to make Kurds and their friends sick for days. For days now, I have been staring at these pictures. I have been telling myself: "One of the decapitated heads is yours." It is an eerie feeling. Just stop and think of it: somebody staring at you holding your decapitated head. I have made a point of looking at the reactions of Kurds who confront these pictures for the first time. They feel utterly numb. Think of a people without faith, without love, without hope and with lots of pain. That is what the Kurds of Turkey have become. These pictures and the heinous crimes they show are not aberrations. These scenes are repeated often in southeastern Turkey, the historical land of the Kurds. Armed with East German rifles, West German armored vehicles and sophisticated American weapons, Turkish soldiers are creating the largest moonscape on the face the earth, raining death and destruction on the Kurds and their land. House Concurrent Resolution 136 of the 104thCongress notes that more than 2,650 Kurdish villages have been destroyed in this most recent Turkish assault on the Kurds. The French philosopher Voltaire wrote that the worst kind of death is to be obscurely hanged. The slaughter of the Turkish Kurds is a good example of that. Ask the Kurds for the name of a people that supports their cause for civil rights and there is not an answer. In Turkey, where the majority of an estimated 25-30 million Kurds live, resistance is costly; as the pictures show, even your dead body is not immune from abuse and degradation. Public office is costly, too, as is proven by the case of 13 duly elected Kurdish deputies who lost their seats in the Turkish Parliament. Four were sentenced to 15 years in prison for advocating the legitimate rights of their people. Ankara has tried everything in its power to discourage the Kurds from demanding their rights. It has tried force. Nothing has come of it. It has tried the "village guard" system in which poor Kurds are armed to teeth and inculcated with hatred for their kin. The upshot has been a disaster: Kurds killing Kurds to the chagrin of their friends. It has tried religion, the opium of masses in the words of Karl Marx, and again the policy has not worked. But something quite unexpected has taken root in Turkey because of the heavy emphasis on religion. The Islamic Welfare Party scored the highest number of votes in 42 Kurdistan and the Kurds Turkey's latest parliamentary elections. This was the result of an unscrupulous campaign by Turkey's leaders, first to undermine the rising tide of Kurdish national consciousness by inculcating a universalistic Islamic ideology which they considered less dangerous than the Kurds, second by using the rising tide of Islamic threat in order to manipulate opinions in the European Union and the United States so as to secure closer military and economic ties. The late Egyptian President Anwar Sadat encouraged Islamic fundamentalist organizations like the Muslim Brotherhood in order to use them against alienated Egyptian youth who were increasingly turning to Marxism. But he himself became the victim of the forces to which he gave a free reign. Members of the Muslim Brotherhood within the Egyptian military gunned him down. Maybe there is something called poetic justice in the world. Maybe we Kurds will get our civil rights after Turkey travels the same road taken by Iran. Maybe then the State Department will recognize our sacrifices of pain and blood and let us have our due. (American Kurdish Information Network American Kurdish Information Network (AKIN) 2309 Calvert Street NW number 3 Washington, DC 20008-2603; Tel: (202) 483-6444; Fax: (202) 4836476.) [=] tolerated in a relatively free environment which preserved them to our own time. The Turkish Republic, which rose from the ashes of the Ottoman Empire, was conceived on a promise of full rights for the Kurds. Mustafa Kemal, the Turkish general who courted the Kurds to join with the Turks to liberate the remnants of the empire, said nothing at the time of the unitary state that he later advocated and which to this day his successors have defended. He knew of the promises of selfdetermination made to the Kurds at the Treaty of Sevres in 1920, and yet he succeeded in convincing them that an Islamic comity of two peoples, that of the Turks and those of the Kurds, held forth better prospect than the Kurds' alliance with the "infidels" of the West. The Turkish and Kurdish war of liberating what is today called Turkey lasted some four years. At the peace talks in Lausanne in 1923, Mustafa Kemal sought legitimacy for his gains. In a symbolic act which his successors are emulating with the same adroitness, he sent a Kurdish envoy, Ismet Inonu, to the negotiating table. Mr. Inonu pleaded with his British interlocutor that the Kurds wanted no special rights and would be happy to be part of the Turkish Republic. To assure the British that this indeed was the case, Ankara even stooped to the time-honored ploy of having reputable Kurdish representatives sendtelegraphic messages to the British at the peace conference stating that the Kurds were in favor of a "union" with the Turks. The Lausanne Treaty of 6/24/1923 officially sanctioned the division of the Kurdish lands among five states. Turkey proved to be the largest beneficiary holding onto 43% of the land. Iran, Iraq, Syria, and the Soviet Union got 31%, 18%, 6%, and 2% respectively. It is difficult to establish the current Kurdish population figures in these states, since the governments that have the Kurds in their custody choose to ignore the matter or offer figures that run contrary to demographic trends. Unofficial figures vary from a low of 25 million to higher estimates of some 40 million Kurds. Of these, some 15-20 million live in Turkey. The life of the Kurds after Lausanne made the theocracy of the Ottomans seem enviable by comparison. Soon after the agreement, Ataturk (meaning "Father of the Turks", the name now given to Mustafa Kemal) abandoned all of his pre-war promises to the Kurds and conceived of Turkey as being a unitary state comprised of one, and only one, people: the Turks. His rallying cry "Turkey belongs to the Turks!" became the creed which to this day forms the basis for Turkish national consciousness. Even today, the Turkish Constitution reads: "The Turkish state, its territory and people, is one and indivisible. The language is Turkish. These facts cannot be changed, nor can changes be proposed." What the "facts" of the Turkish Constitution overlooked were the rights of the Kurds, theArmenians, the Greeks, and other natives of Anatolia who now were told to call themselves Turks because Ataturk had so decreed. The Greeks, as late as the 1950s, were systematically uprooted, sometimes by force and sometimes by provocative acts which compelled them to flee and leave everything that they had behind. TheArmenians were silenced by the massacre of 1915, prompting Hitler two decades later to argue that what the Turks had done with impunity, the Germans could emulate against the Jews. The Kurds were a different matter. To begin with, there were more of them, and they were Muslims, like the Turks. Something more than brute force was required to undo them. Meticulous plans were made for such an act of social engineering. The solution was sought in forced assimilation. In a generation or two, the Turkish social engineers wanted to erase all references to the Kurds. Beginning in 1924, the Kurdish language was banned. Then came the laws which enabled the authorities to give Turkish names to everything that had a Kurdish name. All at once, Kurdish cities, town, villages, and hamlets acquired new Turkish names. For example, the maps that were printed when the Ottomans ruled the area have references to the Kurds and their land, Kurdistan; modern Turkish 10106. American Kurdish Information Network; AKIN. The Turkish Ship Is Sinking The US Government Is Guiding It To The Rocks. Statement by the American Kurdish Information Network before the Commission on Security and Cooperation in Europe hearing on "Turkey - US Relations: Potential and Peril", Tuesday, September 19, 1995 - Washington, D.C.. [99H-09095] [19950919] We live in an age that has witnessed some remarkable changes. Films such as "The Day After", which chilled us with the thought that we may be the last generation, can now be forgotten. Apocalyptic books such as Endgame may for now, we hope, gather some dust. But the new times, though promising, have brought new challenges in their wake. The emerging scenes, the clearer they become, now seem like vistas from "The Killing Fields". The beast in us has a way of prevailing over our nascent humanity to inflict untold misery and sufferings upon the human family. Reported and under-reported tragedies in places like Rwanda, Bosnia, Kurdistan, and East Timor clearly show how fragile is the bond of our civility. In some cases greed, in others racism prevents us from making this world a better place for all. One realm which has remained impervious to the vast changes that have taken us by surprise is that of Turkish/American relations. Ankara has insisted that the special relationship it enjoyed throughout the Cold War remain intact, arguing that nothing has changed to its north, and that even greater menaces now lie to its east (i.e., Iran) and southeast (i.e., the Kurds). The United States government seems to have accepted this Turkish logic, or as some cynics would put it, the Foggy Bottom has not yet awakened to the fact that the Soviet threat is gone. In our view, this unchanged policy endangers Turkey's stability and imperils American interests. The problem is the Kurdish question, -every night it is the number one issue on Turkish television news, -which has demanded a civil solution but has thus far only received a military response. Such an approach is nothing new in Turkey. What is new this time, however, is that Turkey faces an organized resistance from a popular mass movement that has passed the threshold of unbecoming by means of force. A cursory look at the origins of this problem will reveal some rather disturbing facts. First divided between the Ottomans and the Persians in 1639, the Kurds lived quietly on their mountains, oblivious to the world until 1923. To be sure, they were the subjects of the far-flung Ottoman and Persian Empires and suffered their share of the indignities that are the lot of captive peoples. But, most important for the subject of this paper, their land, Kurdistan, and their language, Kurdish, were respected and 43 Kurdistan and the Kurds maps, leaving aside the impartiality of science, refer to the entire region as Turkey. As can be expected, the Kurds did not take lightly the death warrant that was issued in their name. They rose to undo the legislation that was condemning them to the dustbin of history. Long before United Nations Resolution 3103 sanctioned the use of force in liberation struggles, the Kurds fought on several occasions (most notably in 1925, 1930, and 1937/38) to gain control over their destiny. Until the 1980s, however, all their uprisings were crushed. Known Kurdish leaders were hanged. Their relatives and followers were deported. As if the memory of the defeats were not enough, the Kurdishlandscape, especially visible sites such as high mountain slopes, were selected for onerous expressions such as "Happy is he who can call himself a Turk!", which were spelled out with stones in large fonts. If there ever was a psychotherapist for nations, he or she would treat the Turkish case as one that suffers from a severe inferiority complex. In no other part of the world has one witnessed such blatant self-adulation or environmental degradation over the lands of subject peoples. If the purpose of these Turkish maxims all over the Kurdish landscape were to instill love and respect for the Turks, the opposite has happened. The Kurds have resisted and the Turks have enforced the racist laws that were instituted by Ataturk and his cronies. Today, the struggle has taken the form of a massive resistance led by the armed forces of the ARGK, the People's Liberation Army of Kurdistan, the military wing of the PKK. This struggle has become an all-out war on the part of the Kurds to prevail overdeath, while the Turkish military does all it can to keep the fascist legacy of Ataturk intact. There are a number of published reports which document the cost of this Kurdish struggle for freedom and liberty. One of the most compelling is a small book entitled "File of Torture: Deaths in Detention Places or Prisons", published by the Human Rights Foundation of Turkey in 1994. It lists the violent deaths of 420 political prisoners in custody since 1980. And, as the fighting intensifies, other reports keep surfacing. Derya Sazak, in the July 25th edition of the Turkish daily "Milliyet", quotes the governor of State of Emergency Region, which states that 2665 Kurdish villages have been destroyed in the conflict. That is an official Turkish government statistic. The uprooted villagers, their numbers now in the millions, have moved to the cities where they live in shantytowns, without jobs; they are seething with anger and restlessness against the system. The Kurdish liberation struggle has no friends at Foggy Bottom. Washington is not even a disinterested party in this conflict. The US administration has literally given a blank check to Turkey. Jennifer Washburn, a research associate at the World Policy Institute in New York, in a recent commentary in the St. Louis Post-Dispatch, had this to say about Turkish/US relations: "Since the Turkish crackdown on the Kurdistan Workers Party began in 1984, the United States has contributed to the conflict by arming Turkey to the hilt, exporting more than $6.3 billion worth of weapons to an undemocratic, military-led government engaged in a ruthless campaign of terror against its Kurdish population. From 1987-91, Turkey bought 76% of its weapons from the United States. From 1990-93, when the counterinsurgency war intensified and human rights abuses worsened, that number increased to 80%." There is a saying in Turkish that might shed some light on the nature of Turkey/US relations. It goes something like this: "Give a man a hammer and he will think all problems are nails." Turkey has been supplied with plenty of hammers by the United States government, and it is the Kurds who are being ruthlessly pounded like nails. This obviously has engendered anti-American feelings among some Kurds. They assert, and the available data supports them, that the Turkish government could not continue its dirty war against the Kurds without massive amounts of aid and assistance from Washington. The continuation of present policy does not serve the interests of the US government for a number of reasons. Sooner rather than later, it will backfire. Notwithstanding Turkish claims, it is not just one group of Kurds but rather the Kurdish people as a whole who are targeted by American-made weapons. If Washington wishes to avoid a debacle in Ankara, it needs to seriously rethink the ties which have blinded it to Turkey's war aims. Lest it not be clear, a few Turkish generals who have appointed themselves to the National Security Council in Ankara are pushing their country to the brink of an abyss. It will not serve the United States government well to associate with such brutes. The following are our recommendations for putting Turkey/US relations on a more healthy course: (1) The US government should demand that Turkey make fundamental changes to its Constitution and grant democratic and political rights to the Kurds. Turkey says it wants the fighting to stop, but it refuses to deal with Kurdish demands for a civil solution to the conflict. This is like trying to solve an equation without dealing with one of the given variables. In mathematics, this is impossible; in politics, it is no different. The Turkish government would do itself a favor by distancing itself from the fascist ideology of Ataturk and accepting the values of democracy and humanity, and the laws of science, and thereby recognize the existence of the Kurds by reforming the republic's anachronistic Constitution. The United States government would be a beneficiary of such a step as peace and stability would then revisit Turkey. (2) The US government should advocate that Turkey address its Kurdish problem by means of democratic policy and reconciliation, rather than taking the more dangerous route of courting Islamic fundamentalism. Turkey is keeping the Islamic card up its sleeve, so to speak, so as to blackmail support from the West. In the words of a recent Foreign Relations Committee delegation which just returned from Turkey: "Despite claims that it regards fundamentalism as a threat to its secular heritage, the government of Turkey appears to be encouraging and even sponsoring Islamic activities in an attempt to bind the country together and defuse separatist sentiment." But the Islamic movement in Turkey has a different compass than the government officials would like it to follow, and Turkey's present policy "could backfire and inadvertently provide a foothold for Islamic extremists." In 1994, voters in two of Turkey's largest cities, Istanbul and Ankara, elected Islamic mayors from the fundamentalist Refah Party who oppose the separation of religion from the state. Turkey is edging dangerously close to Iranian-style Islamic fundamentalism. It is not in the interests of the United States government to see an Islamic theocracy come to power in Ankara. Rather than trying to subvert the rising Kurdish movement by fomenting religious strife (remember the massacre in Sivas in 1993 and the bloody scenes in Istanbul in March of this year), Turkey should take a more sound and reasoned approach to the issue. Only this can guarantee a place for Turkey among the nations of the West, thus preserving a vital ally of American foreign policy in the troubled region of the Middle East. (3) The US government shouldencourage negotiations between the Turkish government and Kurdish representatives. One step in this direction would be to recognize the Kurdish Parliament in Exile. The Kurds of Turkey are a fact of life. When their duly elected representatives to the Turkish Parliament were jailed in 12/1994, Kurds in Europe responded by forming a Parliament in Exile in April of this year. This body has stated that a political solution to the Kurdish question is the preferred option for a durable settlement. It would be in the interest of the United States government to recognize the Kurdish Parliament in Exile to serve as a starting point for negotiations with the Turkish government. Such a gesture would give much needed encouragement to those Kurds who have tried again and again to seek 44 Kurdistan and the Kurds a peaceful and democratic solution to this question, but who have met with nothing but violence and repression at the hands of the Turkish state. The Kurds of Turkey, as the philosophers would put it, have freed themselves in their thoughts. No amount of force will cause them to abandon their natural right to life with dignity. But even the PKK, the most militant of all Kurdish parties, has time and again expressed its willingness to forgo its stated goal of creating an independent Kurdistan and to entrust the complexities of the situation to the negotiating table, hinting that a federal model could be the basis for a solution. Abdullah Ocalan, the leader of the PKK, on 3/17/1993 and again on 5/25/1995, has gone on record expressing the wish to do his share to bring an end to the this enduring conflict. But a deafening silence has prevailed in Ankara. Historians have noted that it is the mark of statesmanship when the policy makers have foreseen problems and charted courses that have steered the ship of state from rocky paths. The present Turkish government is refusing to deal with the problem at hand, because the Turkish military is not letting them do so. The top brass simply has too many hammers to allow the tedious but essential work of the politicians to take over. With each passing day, more and more body bags are flown back to western Turkey as more and more Turkish soldiers are sent to the eastern provinces to fight in a war which has lasted for far too long. It is an irony of history that the head of the present US administration, President Bill Clinton, refused to serve in the armed forces because he opposed a war which he felt was unjust; now, two decades later, he is fueling a conflict which nearly everyone would agree is inhumane. President Clinton on numerous occasions has expressed his "understanding" for Turkey's armed forays against the Kurds. How can a man who felt the Vietnam War was immoral now "understand" the need to wipe out thousands of Kurdish villages and condemn millions of Kurdish civilians to live their lives as refugees? Twenty years ago, the adventure in Vietnam was wrong; student Bill Clinton was right to protest. Today, the war in Kurdistan is just as wrong; President Bill Clinton, however, is pursuing a policy which is wholly misguided from the standpoint of human rights. We trust that Bill Clinton will help right this wrong, and do so soon. [=] during the first decades of the republic, when there were massacres in Genc, Palu, Ararat and Dersim. In Dersim Ataturk is seen as the saviour of the Alevis. This is the outcome of the assimilation programme carried out after the massacres. A cult of obedience built around Ataturk similar to that described by Orwell in "1984" around the figure of Big Brother has existed in Turkey since the founding of the republic. The peoples living in Turkey must realize the reality of the situation. Whatever Hitler was for the Jews, Ataturk is for the Kurds. Whatever Hitler and National Socialism was for the Germans, Ataturk Kemalism is for the Turkish people. One of the most significant aspects of the growing freedom movement in Kurdistan is its realistic approach to the question of Ataturk-Kemalism and its correct analysis of this phenomenon. In order to create a free, prosperous and peaceful life it is essential to wage a struggle against the monster of Kemalism. This is the duty of all democratically minded people in Turkey and is something that must be undertaken without delay. Ozgur Politika, 2/13/1996. [=] 10108. American Kurdish Information Network; AKIN; Konuk, A. Kadir. "Angry Reactions to Atrocity", in AKIN News, February 1996. [99H-09068] [19960201] First the Turkish embassy in London said the soldiers in the picture "were not Turkish". Then the Turkish General Staff claimed the photographs were "photomontage", that is the soldiers were Turkish but, according to the Turkish General Staff, the severed heads were specially added to the photos later. Anyone with any common sense would find such an explanation absurd. I can also make such claims: The chief of the General Staff Karadayi is Erbakan's aunt. They did this with photomontage. In October 1994, the General Staff made similar claims about the burning of villages in Tunceli, alleging "separatist circles used pictures purporting to be Turkish soldiers to give the impression that 'the Turkish security forces are burning villages'". They forced a village chief to appear on television, but when asked who had burnt the villages he said: "Soldiers did it". What became of him I wonder? When Ciller claimed that the PKK had helicopters, I remember how everyone made fun of her. In fact, it is the Constitution of Turkey and its laws that are photomontage. Take away the European label and you will see the brutality of nomadic tribes. Take the American weapons away from the Turkish army and nothing will remain. Ozgur Politika, 1/16/1996. [=] 10107. American Kurdish Information Network; AKIN; Kili, Naim. "The Alevis and the Kemalist Reality", in AKIN News, February 1996. [99H-09063] [19960201] In Milliyet of 30 January there was an article about a court case involving 100 people being tried for involvement in the incidents in Gazi neighborhood in March 1995. The Secretary of the Hack Bequeaths Veil Cultural Association Sucker Cetin saw that th ere was no picture of Ataturk behind the judge [this is obligatory in courts, classrooms etc. in Turkey] and said to the judge "I want Attar's photograph to be behind you". The other defendants expressed the same wish. It is impossible (for those who kno w the reality of Kemalism) not to feel physically sick to hear such a request. You will remember that during the Gaza incidents the police, educated to be conscious of "Ataturk principles and reforms" fired on the crowd consisting mainly of Alevis, killin g over 20 people. This they did instead of finding the people responsible for the shooting of three people in a cafe that sparked the protests. The Kemalist state also arrested and tortured many of those who protested and is now trying them. These Alevi c itizens, victims of the police, now want to be honored by a photograph of Ataturk, who inspires the police. Ataturk and his associates slaughtered tens of thousands of Alevis in Dersim (1937-38), and his followers killed hundreds in Maras, Corum and Sivas , and most recently 37 Alevi intellectuals were burnt alive in Sivas while the police looked on. Despite this some Alevis who claim to be intellectuals and progressives can still say "We want Ataturk". Ataturk was declared to be the father of the Turks an d made sacred 10109. American-Jewish Committee; Anglo-Jewish Association; Landshut, S. Jewish Communities in the Muslim Countries of the Middle East: Chapter 3: Iraq: Part 01. A Survey Prepared for the American-Jewish Committee and Anglo-Jewish Association.London: Jewish Chronicle Ltd., April 1950. pp. 42-46. [97H-00112] [19500401] An examination of the development of Muslim-Jewish relations in Iraq reveals two noteworthy features, apparently at variance with each other. On the one hand, probably in no other Muslim country has the Jewish minority been so closely associated with the whole fabric of social and political life as in Iraq. On the other hand, in none has antiJewish feeling in recent years been so general and nowhere have anti-Jewish measures been applied so systematically. The Jews in Iraq constitute, as far as we know, the oldest Jewish settlement outside Palestine. Indeed, even if the origin of the House of Abraham in Ur of the Chaldees is disregarded, Jewish settlements in Iraq can be said to have first taken place about 600 years before Jews from Palestine emigrated to Egypt. The majority of the Jews now living in Iraq are the direct descendants of those Jews who, after the destruction of the First Temple 2500 years ago, were led into exile in Babylonia and remained there after the return of some of their number to Jerusalem with Ezra. But the great antiquity of the Jewish community is not, of course, 45 Kurdistan and the Kurds the sole reason for the exceptionally close bonds which unite Iraqi Jews to their country and their non-Jewish neighbors. "They have made themselves an integral part of the nation. Both in business and in politics they have always played a big part." (E. Main: Iraq, 1935.) Their close association with all aspects of the life around them is in part due to the fact that the proportion of the Jewish minority in Iraq to the rest of the population is far higher than in other Muslim countries. Whereas the Jews in Egypt represent only 0.4% of the total population, in Iraq they amount to about 2.5%, and as much as 25% in the capital, Baghdad. It should be noted that it is more difficult to determine the total number of Jews in Iraq than in Egypt. For while in Egypt the Jewish population is almost exclusively concentrated in the big towns, in Iraq it is dispersed up and down the country, including some scattered among the Kurdish tribes in the North. The Kurdish Jews live somewhat apart from the rest of the Jewish community, just as the Kurdish minority lives apart from the Arab population. Both are different from the Arabs in general character and daily habits. The language of some of the Kurdish Jews is Syriac (a form of Aramaic), while those in Mosul speak Kurdish. They are mainly traders and craftsmen and live scattered among the various Kurdish villages and towns. In the Amadia district, however, there can be found a number of Jews engaged in tilling the land. It is difficult to make even an approximate estimate of how many Jews live in these villages, perhaps 5000-6000 at most. They have remained relatively untouched by the events of the past few years, which have had such a revolutionary effect on the rest of the Jewish community. The total Jewish population of Iraq is estimated at 120000. Although this figure may be out of date, it is probably not far wrong, if allowance is made for emigration, on the one hand, and increase in the birthrate, on the other. Of these, between 90000 and 100000 live in Baghdad. But neither is it the larger number of Jews in the country as a whole nor their concentration in the capital which accounts for the difference of their position, at least in the past, from that of their coreligionists in Egypt. Most important is the fact that Western influence on Iraqi Jews being no stronger than it was on the town-bred Muslims, was much weaker in Iraq than in Egypt. Middle class Jews in Iraq took to European dress at about the same time as the Muslims. Likewise, in their daily habits, their houses, and, last but not least, in theirlanguage there was no marked difference between the two communities. Arabic has always been, and still is today, the mother tongue of both Jew and Muslim. True, as a result of the higher educational facilities provided by the activities of the Alliance Israelite Universelle and the AngloJewish Association, knowledge of French or English is more common among the Jews than the Muslims. But this difference has never been sufficient to detract from the central fact that Western influence on the Jews has not been much stronger than on other Iraqi communities. All this is in strong contrast to the situation in Egypt and, again unlike Egypt, there has been no noticeable immigration of Jews from European countries. During the 19th century the Jewish community in Iraq was fairly prosperous; and freedom to develop was assisted to no small degree by the two proclamations issued by the Sultan of Turkey in 1839 and 1856. At that time there was already a considerable number of well to do families. The schools of the Alliance helped to raise the community's educational standard. When the first Chamber of Deputies was opened in Istanbul in 1876, it included a representative of the Iraqi Jews (Menahem Danyiel) and, later, after the Constitution of 1900, the community was represented by Hezkiel Sassoon, a retired senior Ottoman Government official. During WWI, however, the Jewish community suffered great hardships at the hands of Turkish governors. Just prior to the fall of Baghdad in 1917, some of its leading members suffered death, torture, and imprisonment. When, therefore, the Arabs rose against the Turks and made common cause with the Allies, the Jews regarded the fight for liberation as their own. They welcomed the establishment of the new Iraq under British Mandate, and many immediately offered their services in the building up of its administration. From the establishment of the new country, the Jewish community, and especially . its leading members, have been as much bound up with its development as their Muslim neighbors. Hezkiel Sassoon was appointed Minister of Finance and continued to hold this office in several successive Cabinets: A Jew, David Jamra, was appointed Vice-President of the Court of Appeal. Other Jews occupied important posts in various departments, particularly those concerned with the administration of ports, railways, and finance. The large number of Jewish officials in the public service was due to the fact that the sudden demand for officials and clerks could only be satisfied in the main from the Jewish and Christian minorities, with their higher educational standards. During the period of the Mandate (i.e., until 1932), and even in the first years of Iraq's existence as an independent State, the high proportion of Jews in Government service caused no offence. Their talents and skill in office work were most valuable to a Government seeking to prove Iraq's readiness for independence. The Jewish communities in Baghdad and Basra are among the wealthiest in the entire Middle East. The names of some of the leading families, such as the Sassoons and the Khadooris, are known even in other countries. There also exists a large middle class of small bankers, retailers, agents, merchants, civil servants, clerks, and physicians and lawyers, together with other members of the liberal professions. There are, among the poorer elements, many small shopkeepers, and likewise many craftsmen of one sort or another, masons, carpenters; and also domestic servants. There is no special Jewish quarter in Baghdad, Jews being found in all parts of the town, though they do tend to congregate in certain streets of different quarters. The community is well organized. In Baghdad it has established a great number of welfare and social services, a hospital, and about 25 schools. By 1930, 7200 pupils were attending the ten schools under Alliance administration. Thanks to these services, the state of health and the general standard of education of the Jews are far above the average level in Iraq. 90% of the candidates from Iraq for the London matriculation examination, for instance, used to be Jews. The community is governed by a lay council of 60 members, who are entitled to impose certain taxes (e.g., on meat) and to allocate the necessary funds to the various institutions. These funds have made it possible to admit pupils to elementary schools free of charge. There is also a religious council, under the Chief Rabbi, Haham Benjamin, which maintains the communal courts dealing with all such matters as marriage, divorce, inheritance, and the like. Until his resignation at the end of 1949 the overall Head of the community was the universally respected Haham Sasson Khadoori. This partial communal autonomy arises from Article No. 79 of the Constitution of Iraq. The internal organization of the Jewish community is regulated by a special law passed in 1931, which laid down the composition and functions of the various institutions of the four communities in Baghdad, Mosul, Basra, and Diyalah (near Baghdad). The position of religious minorities, including the Jews and Christians, was laid down by the electoral law of 1924, which allotted 46 Kurdistan and the Kurds four deputies to represent each of these communities in the Chamber of Deputies. There has been some argument as to whether the law permits individual Jews or Christians to be elected as representatives of general constituencies. But the argument has been purely academic, since no Jews or Christians have ever presented themselves as candidates. Apart from this, Iraqi law recognizes equal citizenship for nonMuslim minorities and their right to a full share in the public affairs of the State. This right had until recently always been respected and was much valued by the leading personalities of the Jewish community. Except for a natural interest in developments in Palestine, there has never been any feeling of solidarity with the political aspirations of Zionism. The repeated assurances of loyalty to Iraq, which the Chief Rabbi and other leading Jewish personalities have felt it necessary to make during the Palestine crisis, were not merely the result of outside pressure but were statements of fact. (For the declarations of the Jewish community in Baghdad, and of the then Head of the community Sasson Khadoori, see The Jewish Chronicle, 12/30/1949; New York Times, 4/9/1947, and 3/27/1948; and Manchester Guardian, 12/10/1947.) It is against this background of a prosperous Jewish community, closely associated with the country since time immemorial, and not less interested in the common wellbeing and development of Iraq than their Muslim fellow citizens, that the gradual deterioration in mutual relations and the growing aggressiveness of the Muslim majority towards the Jews must be examined. The first signs of the storm to come appeared, far earlier than in any other Muslim country, in 1928, when the first Lord Melchett, on a visit to Palestine, journeyed on to Baghdad. Wild rumors circulated about the nature of his visit, which was alleged to be connected with designs concerning the National Home in Palestine. This caused hostile demonstrations. As far as the Jewish minority in Iraq itself was concerned, however, there was not at that time the slightest indication of any hostility on this ground towards it. Neither was there any suspicion of Zionist sympathies among Iraqi Jews. There was also an economic factor. Not only were Jews prominent in the public service but most of the employees in large Arab business firms were also Jewish, owing to the difficulty of finding suitably qualified personnel among the Muslim population. Since secondary and higher education in Baghdad had always been freely available to Jews, and many had been granted State scholarships for study abroad, the community's educational standards were higher than those of the Muslims. In the first years of Iraq's newly won independence, this liberal attitude began to wane. In 1935 the Iraqi Government prohibited the teaching of Hebrew. Only after repeated remonstrances was permission finally granted for the use of Hebrew, but for strictly religious instruction only. By 1937, Philip W. Ireland, in his book on Iraq, was already remarking on the increased difficulties encountered by non-Muslims wishing to enter the Government service. Doubtless this restriction was occasioned by the increasing number of qualified young Muslim candidates in search of appointments. In 7/1939, the importation of any "Zionist" literature was banned. On the whole, it would be true to say that these measures were occasioned less by any policy directed against the Jewish minority, as such, than by a nationalist reaction against Zionism, which the Iraqis saw as a rival nationalism to their own, and rooted in Europe at that. In any case, Iraq was the only Muslim country where the recommendations of the Bludan Conference were carried into effect. [=] Middle East: Chapter 3: Iraq: Part 03. A Survey Prepared for the American-Jewish Committee and Anglo-Jewish Association.London: Jewish Chronicle Ltd., April 1950. pp. 49-53. [97H-00114] [19500401] The most vivid example, both of vague indictment and of the Government's financial greed, was the case of the Jewish multimillionaire, Shafiq Ades, of Basra (the only one of the accused, by the way, who was sentenced to death and hanged in public). Although his trial was reported and discussed in detail by all the newspapers, it was never clearly established whether there was any connection between his sale of surplus British military equipment to Italy in 1946 and the alleged discovery of the same material in Palestine two years later. The proceedings were held mostly behind closed doors, and the court went so far as to refuse the defense counsel admission to the courtroom. Among many other curious details in this trial, this extremely wealthy capitalist was accused both of "Communism" and "Zionism"! The point to note is that Ades's sentence enriched the Government's treasury by L5 million. The day of his execution was turned into a festival. It was declared a public holiday; thousands of people flooded into Basra from the countryside, and photographs depicting every detail of the hanging appeared in all the newspapers. There is little doubt that the majority of contributions towards the fund raised for the prosecution of the Palestine campaign and, later, for the assistance of Arab refugees, came from Jews. During 5/1948 and 6/1948, Baghdad radio broadcast a long list of Jewish names and their contributions. According to reliable estimates, these total about 500000 dinars. Over and above the swelling of the Iraqi warchest, most of the methods adopted in the anti-Jewish campaign suggest that generally the Government, with popular support, was actively engaged in extorting as much money as it could from the Jewish community. Early in 7/1948, for instance, 40 leading Jewish business men were arrested on a charge of trading with the Soviet Union and thus allegedly supporting a Communist regime. It so happens that many Muslim commercial firms had engaged in similar transactions, many of which had taken place several years before. It also happens that these transactions were the direct result of the Soviet-Iraqi trade agreement. But in the case of the 40 Jews these factors were quietly ignored. The true motives for their being charged became quite obvious when it was learnt that all 40 were released on payment of various sums of up to 10000 dinars. In 10/1948 of the same year the Treasury issued an order to the effect that all Iraqi Jews living abroad would forfeit their property unless they returned to Iraq at once. The total sum which the Government obtained by means of fines, confiscations, "guarantees," andforfeiture of property was certainly a substantial proportion of Jewish-owned wealth in Iraq. It may be computed at something well over L10 million pounds. This official draining of Jewish resources, moreover, was accompanied by a great deal of private blackmail, made possible by the helplessness of the victims. To a Western observer this record might appear proof of systematic persecution. The thinly disguised extortions from the Jewish community, the arbitrary, and often stupid accusations, the onslaught on a helpless minority whose loyalty could not reasonably be questioned. all this would appear at first glance as something more than an attempt to make certain of public security in an emergency; the record seems to bear all the signs of deeply rooted anti-Jewish hostility. But if that were true, how would it be possible to explain the excellence of the relations between the communities but a few years ago and the obvious recognition in former years of the Jewish population as an integral part of the nation? The answer must be sought in the workings of the Eastern mind. There would be no room in a survey of this kind to attempt a 10110. American-Jewish Committee; Anglo-Jewish Association; Landshut, S. Jewish Communities in the Muslim Countries of the 47 Kurdistan and the Kurds description of the subtle blend of human passions, age old habits, and deep seated prejudices which have gone into the forging of the Oriental tradition of thought or to estimate how that tradition of thought has reacted to the impact of Western civilization, with its conception of law and human rights. It is, however, necessary to draw attention to certain points. To begin with, the Arab States which emerged from WWI represented an attempt to create the whole fabric of the Western nation-state out of a galaxy of various semi-independent tribes, self consciousand self centered city populations, rival clans, powerful landowners, interspersed with minorities of different races and religions. This complex had no common tradition beyond the allegiance of the majority to Islam. The consequence was that from the beginning the Arab States rested on social foundations of the most insecure kind. Symptoms of this have been a very characteristic shrill aggressiveness of national outlook and an almost comic attachment to national dignity, coupled with an exaggerated anxiety lest the State's new-found independence should be threatened in any way or its sovereignty infringed. In the case of Iraq, no sooner had the new State come into existence than this excessive national sensitiveness resulted in a wave of feeling against its very creator and helper, Britain. And when King Faisal whose great ability and authority had succeeded in surmounting many initial difficulties, died just at the end of the mandatory period (1933), the struggle for key positions in the Government was intensified thereby adding a new element of insecurity. Rival tribal chieftains, with their dependants and hangers-on began competing with each other for the favors of extremist parties and contributed to making every change of Government an event of greater or lesser violence. Rashid Ali's coup d'etat in 4/1941, was merely one of a series of such changes; it was only the most striking because of its dangerous political and strategic implications in the middle of a world war. This ever-present latent tension was aggravated by the inability of succeeding Governments to cope with urgent problems of social reform, agricultural development, finance, and administration. As early as 1942, the budget showed a deficit of L1.334733 million despite the big royalties paid to the Government by the oil companies for the exploitation of the oilfields. During the first six months of 1948, imports exceeded exports by L17 million, while the country's whole foreign trade amounted to only L27 million. Hence the prevailing nervousness in official circles of Communist propaganda, a fear which frequently reached hysterical proportions. To cap everything, there has been the problem of minorities. The absence of ethnical homogeneity has always been the weak spot of newly created States; the more so when religious and racial differences alienate the minorities from the majority, making the latter, rightly or wrongly, always suspicious of the minorities. Ever since the formation of the State of Iraq, the Kurds, a Closeknit minority numbering more than 700000 in the mountains of the North, have repeatedly revolted against the Government in Baghdad and not without grounds. The unsatisfactory nature of the State's relations with the minorities was made worse by a shocking event in 1933. In that year, a large group of Christian (Nestorian) Assyrians, who had crossed into Syria and wanted to reenter Iraq, was brutally massacred by a detachment of the Iraqi Army. The event sent a wave of horror among all the Christian minorities dwelling in the country. (Under considerable official pressure, the Christians, coreligionists of the victims, and, of course, the Jews, were forced to contribute large sums towards a fund in aid of the survivors whereas the amount of money subscribed by the Muslim majority ,was, in the absence of any such pressure, small.) In any case, the position of any minority dwelling amongst a Muslim population must always be delicate. Constitutional guarantees and protection by law will never induce the Muslim masses, with their innate conservatism and lack of education, to abandon their inborn distrust of the non-believer. In the case of Iraq, whose rise as a nation-state was threatened at the outset by minority troubles, this factor was particularly important, especially as the predominance of British influence for many years has made the populace hyper-sensitive about the country's national independence. As for the Jews, so long as general attention was not focused on them specifically, their position was no worse than was normal for any non-Muslim minority in an Islamic country. If anything, their age old connection with the country, their important economic and social position, and the obvious absence of any separatist tendency among them made their position rather better than that of most of the other minorities. But the steadily growing atmosphere of political insecurity and distrust was bound in the long run to bring about a deterioration. That deterioration became serious as soon as it became possible for the Muslims to suspect any sense of solidarity between Iraqi Jews and those in Palestine. On balance this much can be said: the nature and extent of recent persecution does not mean that, in altered circumstances, there can be no ultimate return of the peaceful relationship which existed between Muslims and Jews in Iraq formerly. Indeed, once the fever of the anti-Jewish campaign had passed its peak, that is, by the end of 1948, there is plenty of evidence to show that many educated Muslims had begun to have second thoughts. Here and there Jewish officials who had been dismissed were asked to resume their posts. The return to the premiership of Nuri Pasha alSaid (the most experienced and esteemed of all Iraqi politicians) raised hopes of better relations, especially as the fanatically nationalist Minister of Defense, Sadiq al-Bassam, the man largely responsible for the sinister activities of the courts martial, was forced to resign. It was then that the Jewish representative in the Senate, the universally respected Ezra Danyiel, was able to appeal to the Government for justice and to remind the Senate of the long-standing loyalty of the Jewish community. On the whole, this speech had a favorable effect, and resulted in official assurances that in future the rights of the Jews to treatment as citizens enjoying equal rights with other citizens would be respected. Since then, Jews have been able to reopen their businesses. Yet the future must remain uncertain. As this Survey goes to press, reports are being published to the effect that the Iraqi Government has now decided to allow Iraqi Jews to emigrate, on condition at they give up their Iraqi citizenship. It is not clear, at the time of writing, whether there are any other conditions attached. In view of what has happened in recent years, however, there can be little doubt that a large scale exodus from Iraq to Israel is to be expected in the near future. As for those who remain, it would be idle to pretend that their future prospects are bright. In so far as they can expect a measure of ability and security, this must, to a large extent depend on the governments of Israel and Iraq reaching, if not agreement, at any rate satisfactory modus vivendi. At the present time there is not even an armistice agreement between the two countries; and Iraq, which does not border upon Israel territory, has shown no anxiety to improve relations. [=] 10111. Amnesty International. Iraq: 'Disappearances': Unresolved 48 Kurdistan and the Kurds Cases Since the Early 1950s: Part 01: Summary. MDE 14/05/97. London: Amnesty International, October 1997. [98H-08420][19971001] Since the early 1980s hundreds of thousands of "disappearances" have taken place in Iraq and remain unresolved. These became particularly widespread during the Iran-Iraq war and during Operation Anfal in Iraqi Kurdistan where over 100000 Kurdish civilians are believed to have "disappeared" in a space of 3-4 months in 1988. In addition to suspected political opponents, many of the "disappeared" victims included those who were arrested as "hostages" in order to force a relative, sought by the authorities for their political opposition, to surrender, those arrested because of family link to a political opponent,andthose arrested because of their ethnic origin. In the latter category, entire Iraqi families of Iranian descent were deported to Iran and thousands of male members of such families were arrested and later "disappeared". Their fate and whereabouts remain unknown to this date. Further "disappearances" occurred during the 1990s, in the aftermath of the 1990/1991 Gulf war and more recently, when Iraqi Government forces were sent to Iraqi Kurdistan at the end of 8/1996 to support forces of the Kurdistan Democratic Party (KDP) in military conflict with forces of the Patriotic Union of Kurdistan (PUK). Hundreds of suspected political opponents were arrested by Iraqi Government forces and "disappeared". Amnesty International continues to receive reports of "disappearances" and has raised its concems on the issue with the Government of Iraq on a number of occasions. So far the Iraqi Government has failed to clarify the fate of the "disappeared" or take concrete measures to end the practice. In this report Amnesty International renews these appeals to the Iraqi Government and calls on the International community to ensure that Iraq complies with its International obligations. [=] military and security personnel the authority to execute any persons attempting to retum to their homes. Some Kurdish estimates put the figure at 150000-180000 "disappeared" victims. AmnestyInternational has the names of about 17000 people who "disappeared" during that time. About five years earlier, in 8/1983, Iraqi forces arrested some 8000 men and boys, aged between 8-70, from the Barzani clan near Arbil. A group of 315 children and young people, aged between eight and 17 at the time of their arrest, were among those arrested. They were first taken to Baghdad and then transferred to unknown places. All have "disappeared". The operation was believed to have been carried out as retaliation for alleged Kurdish support for the Iranian armed forces during the Iran-Iraq war. On 9/12/1983, President Saddam Hussain said in a speech: "We will punish those who cooperate with Barzani's sons, just as we punished the Barzani sons themselves and those who cooperated with them in the past. Those people were severely punished and went to Hell...". Ever since the 1960s and 1970s entire families have been deported to Iran by the Iraqi authorities. With the outbreak of the Iranlraq war in September 1980, the practice became widespread and thousands of families were forcibly sent to Iran. They included Arab Shi'a Muslim families who were declared by the authorities to be "of Iranian descent", taba'iyya, and Feily Kurds who, unlike the majority of Kurds, are Shi'a Muslims. [Prior to the creation of the State of Iraq in 1921, all persons living in that region were registered under either the Ottoman or Iranian protectorates. The two protectorates were divided along confessional lines: Sunni Muslims (both Arabs and Kurds) were registered under the Ottoman protectorate, while Shi a Muslims (both Arabs and Kurds) were registered under the Iranian protectorate. When the State of Iraq was created and Iraqi nationality introduced. each person was obliged to register on his/her nationality form his/her original protectorate. The thousands of families deported to Iran by the Iraqi Government in the 1980s were those whose original protectorate was ran, referred to as tabailyya.] However, thousands of male members, including minors, of those families who were deported to Iran, were arrested and detained. Although the majority were kept in acknowledged places of detention and had access to relatives, thousands were later transferred to unknown places and "disappeared". At the end of the 1990-1991 Gulf war, and following the 3/1991 uprising by Arab Shi'a Muslims in the south and by Kurds in the north, serious human rights violations were reported, including "disappearances" and extrajudicial executions. The fate and whereabouts of 106 Shi'a Muslim clerics and students remain unknown. It is believed that around 12000 people arrested in connection with the 1991 uprising continue to be detained in alRadwaniyya garrison, south-west of Baghdad. Amnesty International has appealed on numerous occasions to the Iraqi Government to clarify the fate of the Shi'a clerics and students but has received no response. During the same period, when the Iraqi forces pulled out of Kuwait, more than 600 Kuwaiti and other nationals were arrested and taken to Iraq. Despite international pressure nothing has been heard of them. The sole exception is Nadia Muhammad al'Anaizi, a Kuwaiti woman, believed to be one of those arrested in Kuwait and taken to Iraq, who was released by the Iraqi authorities in May 1996. In 8/1996, when Iraqi forces and forces of the Kurdistan Democratic Party (KDP) seized the northern city of Arbil, until then under the control of the Patriotic Union of Kurdistan (PUK), hundreds of suspected members of opposition groups and their relatives are believed to have "disappeared". They were reportedly taken to detention centres and prisons in areas under the control of the Iraqi Government. It does not always take a major crisis such as the 1991 uprising or the 1996 interKurdish conflict to witness an upsurge in human 10112. Amnesty International. Iraq: 'Disappearances': Unresolved Cases Since the Early 1950s: Part 02: Background. MDE 14/05/97. London: Amnesty International, October 1997. [98H-08421][19971001] ("I cannot believe he is dead because there is no body and no grave. I cannot rest my heart or mind until I know the truth".) These were the words of a mother who wrote to Amnesty International in 2/1996 about her son, Mazin. He was arrested in Baghdad in 1988 and nothing has been heard of him since. Nearly ten years on and his"disappearance" remains without an answer. The Iraqi authorities have remained silent about Mazin's case and about the cases of hundreds of thousands of others who have "disappeared" since the early 1980s. In 4/1997 the UN Commission on Human Rights in its fifty-third session passed a resolution condemning: "... the massive and extremely grave violations of human rights and of International humanitarian law by the Government ofIraq...".[Resolution1997/60,E/CN.4/1997/L.11/Add.6, 4/17/1997] A month earlier, the UN Working Group on Enforced or Involuntary Disappearances submitted its report to the UN Commission on Human Rights. Among the countries where "disappearances" remain a major concern, Iraq topped the list with more than 16000 submitted cases still unresolved. Amnesty International has on numerous occasions over the years expressed its concem at the practice of "disappearances" by the Iraqi authorities. Cases have been documented in several reports. The organization has obtained and continues to receive the names of thousands of victims whose fate and whereabouts remain unknown. As an example, according to some estimates over 100000 Kurdish civilians "disappeared" in 1988 alone, in a space of 3-4 months, in the socalled Operation Anfal when the Iraqi Government implemented a program of destruction of villages and towns all over Iraqi Kurdistan, ostensibly in order to resettle the inhabitants in areas which offered improved conditions. An estimated 4000 villages and towns were destroyed and razed to the ground and decrees were issued giving 49 Kurdistan and the Kurds rights violations. These are carried out on a daily basis. In September 1996 former detainees told Amnesty International how they were arrested, beaten, tortured and then released without ever knowing the reason for their arrest. Relatives would not inquire about their whereabouts for fear of suffering a similar fate. For many years Kurds, Turkmen, Assyrians, Yazidis and Shi'a Muslims were the main victims of human rights violations. However, since the imposition of UN sanctions on Iraq in 1990, even those considered to be "safe" became the target for arrest, torture and "disappearance". They include joumalists, businessmen, artists, female students and army officers. This, and the harsh living conditions that have resulted from UN sanctions, have led to a significant increase of Iraqi asylum seekers abroad. Mass executions of prisoners and detainees continue to be reported and in 1994 the Iraqi Government introduced a series of decrees extending the use of the death penalty and imposing amputation of hands and ears and branding of the forehead for theft, army desertion and a number of criminal offences.5 In 8/1996, however, the Iraqi authorities informed Amnesty International that the decree imposing ear amputation and branding of the forehead for army desertion had been annulled. The issue of "disappearances" in Iraq remains a very difficult area to investigate. In the majority of cases, once a person has "disappeared" it is virtually impossible to find out any information regarding his or her fate or whereabouts. The victims do not have access to families or lawyers. Trials, when they take place, are conducted in total secrecy. Families ofthe "disappeared" remain ignorant of their fate until they are either released or confirmed to have been executed. Inquiries directed to the authorities are met with denial of arrest or further threats. It took nine years for the al-Hashimi family to learn from the authorities that their father, Isma'il, was executed in 1983, three years after his "disappearance". However, when opposition forces took control of towns and cities in northern and southern Iraq during the 1991 uprising, prisons and detention centres were broken into and the inmates released. Hundreds of them, who had "disappeared" in the 1970s and 1980s, were found to be still alive, having been held in secret underground detention centres. This report documents cases of people who were arrested and subsequently "disappeared" as far back as 1980, cases of victims that the International community at large has failed to address. They are forgotten victims whose families continue to wait and hope. In most cases the victims were not members of any opposition political party or grouping, either legal or illegal. They were arrested as "hostages" in order to force a relative who may have escaped abroad to surrender, because of their family link to a political opponent, or simply for their ethnic origin. [=] on Enforced or Involuntary Disappearances in 3/1994. Neither Amnesty International nor the UN working group has ever received any response from the Iraqi Government. In 6/1993, Amnesty International obtained an official document, dated 4/1984, containing a list of 58 people whose properties and possessions were being confiscated by the Iraqi Government. The names of three of the alHashimi brothers, Ibrahim, Iyad and Isma'il, appeared on the list. It is a common practice for Iraqi political detainees or suspected opponents who flee abroad to have their properties and possessions confiscated by the government. This was the first time the authorities had, albeit indirectly, acknowledged the detention of at least three of the brothers. In 4/1997, Amnesty International received confirmation that the eldest of the al-Hashimi brothers, Isma'il, was executed on 8/3/1983. A copy of the death certificate was made available to Amnesty International. Isma'il was accused of failing to report to the authorities about Ja'far's opposition activities. Isma'il's son, Mohammad Hussain, who was 12 years old in 1980, witnessed the arrest of his father inside his pharmacy in the Karada district of Baghdad. He fled Iraq in 1994 to seek asylum abroad. No further information is available on the six remaining brothers. [=] 10114. Amnesty International. Iraq: 'Disappearances': Unresolved Cases Since the Early 1950s: Part 04: Disappearance Due to Political Activities of Family Members: Al-Sheibani Brothers. MDE 14/05/97. London: Amnesty International, October 1997. [98H-08423][19971001] In early 1980, four brothers, 'Adil, Faysal, Salam and Fazil alSheibani were arrested in the city of Karbala'. Nothing has been heard of them since then. Their arrest is believed to be connected with their brother, 'Adnan's membership of an illegal Islamist opposition group, al-'Amal al-Islami. He had escaped to Iran in order to avoid arrest. Other family members who were on a visit to Syria at the time of the arrests did not return to Iraq for fear of being arrested. [=] 10115. Amnesty International. Iraq: 'Disappearances': Unresolved Cases Since the Early 1950s: Part 05: Disappearance Due to Political Activities of Family Members: Sayyid Muhammed Sadeq Muhammad Radha al-Qazwini. MDE 14/05/97. London: Amnesty International, October 1997. [98H-08424] [19971001] Sayyid Muhammad Sadeq Muhammad Ridha al-Qazwini, a Shi'a cleric, born in 1900, was arrested at night on 8 April 1980, at his home in Karbala'. Security forces climbed over the walls of his garden, broke into the house and took him away in his night clothes. At first he was taken to Mudiriyyat 'Amn Karbala, Karbala Security Directorate, and held there for two weeks. He was then transferred to Mudiriyyat al'Amn al-'Amma, General Security Directorate, in Baghdad, and from there to Abu Ghraib Prison. Since then he has had no access to family members. In 1986 a prisoner who was released from Abu Ghraib Prison said he had seen Sayyid Mubanunad Sadeq Muhammad Sadeq al-Qazwini there. He reported that he was still alive but had lost his eyesight. Since that time no news of him has reached his family. A teacher of religious studies, Sayyid Muhammad Sadeq Muhammad Ridha al-Qazwini was not known to have been involved in any political activities. However, his sons abroad had reportedly taken part in political activities against the Iraqi Government. The family believes Sayyid Muhammad Sadeq Muhammad Ridha alQazwini was arrested in order to put pressure on his sons abroad to stop their anti-government political opposition. There are concerns for his health as he was known to suffer from a hernia and urinary problems. [=] 10113. Amnesty International. Iraq: 'Disappearances': Unresolved Cases Since the Early 1950s: Part 03: Disappearance Due to Political Activities of Family Members: Al-Hashimi Brothers. MDE 14/05/97. London: Amnesty International, October 1997. [98H-08422][19971001] In 1980 seven brothers of the al-Hashimi family were arrested on the same day, 1 October, at different locations in Baghdad. They were believed to have been initially held at Abu Ghraib Prison near Baghdad. The fate and whereabouts of six of them remain to this date unknown. Ahmad, a student; Wahab, a student aged 16 at the time of his arrest; Ibrahim, a post office employee; Hussain, a chemist; Iynd, a civil engineer; 'Abd al-Ridha, an employee at Baghdad Airport and Isma'il, a pharmacist, were believed to have been arrested as "hostages" in lieu of another brother, Ja'far, who had fled Iraq. He was wanted by the authorities for his suspected opposition to the government. Amnesty International issued several appeals on behalf of the al-Hashimi brothers. This case was raised with the Iraqi authorities in 1993 and then submitted before the UN Working Group 10116. Amnesty International. Iraq: 'Disappearances': Unresolved Cases Since the Early 1950s: Part 06: Disappearance Due to Political Activities of Family Members: Mazin 'Abd al-Mun'im Hassan al- 50 Kurdistan and the Kurds Samarrati. MDE 14/05/97. London: Amnesty International, October 1997. [98H-08425] [19971001] Mazin 'Abd al-Mun'im Hassan alSamarra'i, a mechanical engineer, "disappeared" around 8/1988 as he was working in his garden at home, in Baghdad. Security off'cers searched his car and arrested him. Nothing is known as to the reason for his "disappearance" although this may be connected with his father, 'Abd al-Mun'im Hassan 'Alwan al-Samarra'i. He was undersecretary at the Ministry of Oil and was executed in 10/1986 on charges of economic corruption. However, another reason for his "disappearance" may be connected with Mazin's mother who was living in the US at that time. He received a letter from her shortly before he "disappeared". This simple fact may have exposed him to arrest. In 7/1996 Amnesty International submitted the case of Mazin al-Samarra'i to the UN Working Group on Enforced or Involuntary Disappearances, who raised it with the Iraqi Government. No response has been received. [=] arrested on 6/22/1981 because of their Iranian descent. Their house was surrounded by security forces and the entire family, 32 members, were imprisoned for about four months. Whilst the rest of the family were deported to Iran, Deler and 'Ala al-Din were kept in detention. Deler's brother, Ra'id, who was working in Kuwait, was arrested by the Kuwaiti authorities in 12/1983 and handed over to the Iraqi authorities. Deler and Ra'id were last seen in Qal'at al-Salman Prison in 1985. On 3/21/1981, three brothers, 'Imad, an architect, 'Adil, a mechanical engineer and 'Atif, a student, from the 'Abd al-Hussein 'Ushair family in al-'Amara, were arrested in Hai al-Jami'a district in Baghdad because of their Iranian descent. 'Adil and 'Imad were doing their military service at the time. All three were first detained in Abu Ghraib Prison, and then transferred to Qal'at al-Salman Prison in southern Iraq, some 50 miles from the Saudi Arabian border. Family visits were permitted once a month for the first few years until 1986 when they and other detainees with them were rounded up and taken to an unknown destination. Nothing has been heard of them since. Their cousins, Namir and Nasir, were also arrested in the same year and were last seen in 1986 in Qal'at al-Salman Prison. Their families were deported to Iran. One morning in 6/1981, members of the security services went to Hai al-Banuk district in Baghdad and informed Isma'il Mohammad 'All's family of the authorities' decision to deport them to Iran. Later the same day the whole family, including 10 children, were taken to Beit Samir Ghulam Prison in Baghdad where they were detained for two months. All their documents and possessions were confiscated. Isma'il Mohammad 'All, a bank employee now aged around 60, and two of his sons, Salam and Salih were transferred to Abu Ghraib Prison. Salam and Salih, aged 19 and 17 respectively, were high school students at the time of their arrest. Whilst the rest of the family was deported to Iran, Isma'il, Salam and Salih were kept in Abu Ghraib Prison and then believed to have been sent to Nugrat alSalman Prison in southern Iraq. Nothing has been heard of them since. In 6/1997, the youngest daughter, Jasamin, told Amnesty International how the whole family lived in hope of seeing them one day. Jamal A. Ketuly, a Feyli Kurd from Baghdad, was doing his military service in 1980 when he was arrested apparently because of his Iranian descent. His parents and other close relatives were deported to Iran and their properties as well as their Iraqi citizenship documents were confiscated. Jamal was first detained in Abu Ghraib Prison until 7/1981 when he and other detainees were transferred toan unknown place. Until 1989 his family received reports that Jamal was alive but did not know of his whereabouts. Nothing has been heard of him since. Distraught by Jamal's arrest and "disappearance", his mother's health deteriorated considerably and in 4/1984 she died, aged 54. Her wish to see him before her death was not furfilled. Three weeks after her mother's death, Jamal's younger sister, Thikra, committed suicide at the age of 20. In 1981, two cousins, 'Ali Mohammad Badri 'Ali al-Mousavi, a student, and Mohammad Salman Bagher al Shakarji, an architect, were arrested in Baghdad. They remained held and their family have not had any news from them since 1984. Their arrest is said to be connected with their Iranian origin. Mohammad Salman's mother lives in Sweden. In 12/1993 she wrote to Amnest International and signed the letter with these words: "the mother who lives in hope and in vain since 1981... " During the 1980s the Iraqi Government justified the detention of those Iraqis of Iranian descent and the deportation to Iran of their families on "security grounds". It promised that all detainees would be released when the war with Iran ended. Although thousands were later released, nearly ten years have elapsed since the end of the Iraqlran 10117. Amnesty International. Iraq: 'Disappearances': Unresolved Cases Since the Early 1950s: Part 07: Disappearance Due to Perceived Political Opinion: The Case of 'Aziz al-Sayyid Jassem. MDE 14/05/97. London: Amnesty International, October 1997. [98H08426] [19971001] On 4/14/1991, 'Aziz al-Sayyid Jassem, a 55-yearold well-known writer and journalist and member ofthe ruling Ba'th Party was arrested in Baghdad. He apparently failed to write articles supporting the Iraqi Government following the invasion of Kuwait. He was held in solitary confinement, tortured, and his family did not receive any news of him for over a year. In 3/1993 Amnesty International appealed to the authorities to clarify the fate, whereabouts and legal status of 'Aziz al-Sayyid Jassem. Arab writers and journalists also appealed on his behalf and although the authorities acknowledged his arrest they refused to provide any details of the charges against him or information about his fate and whereabouts. Immediately after his arrest, 'Aziz alSayyid Jassem was believed to have been detained at Mudiriyyat al-Amn al- 'Amma, General Security Directorate, in Baghdad. 'Aziz al-Sayyid Jassem is the author of numerous books on subjects including women's rights and the Kurdish question. He edited and wrote for various government publications including al-Qadisiyya, al-Ghad and al-Thawra. He had been briefly detained several times in the past, reportedly because of his writing. He is married and has five children. [=] 10118. Amnesty International. Iraq: 'Disappearances': Unresolved Cases Since the Early 1950s: Part 08: Disappearance Due to Ethnic Origin: Victims of Their Iranian Descent. MDE 14/05/97. London: Amnesty International, October 1997. [98H-08426] [19971001] Following the outbreak of the Iran-Iraq war in 1980, the Iraqi Government deported thousands of Iraqi families to Iran, solely on the basis of their Iranian descent. They included Shi'a Muslim Arabs and Feyli Kurds. A typical scenario would consist of the victims being stripped of their Iraqi documents, and their properties and possessions being confiscated. They were forced onto trucks or buses under armed guard and taken to border areas where they were told to cross into Iran. The majority of deportees have since lived in refugee camps inside Iran while others, the lucky ones, have managed to resettle in third countries. Entire families were deported in this way, including children, the elderly and the disabled. However, thousandsof male members of such families and some females, usually aged between 16 and 40, were arrested and detained indefinitely. Although many were released in subsequent years the fate and whereabouts of thousands remain unknown. Deler Hassan al-Haydari, a student, and his uncle, 'Ala' al-Din, a businessman, both Feyli Kurds from Hai al-Jamila in Baghdad were 51 Kurdistan and the Kurds war and still the Iraqi authorities have failed to clarify the fate of thousands of others. During the 1990s and since the Iraqi Government lost control of the Kurdish provinces of Duhok, Arbil and Sulaimaniya, hundreds of Kurdish families were believed to have been deported from their place of residence in Kirkuk, Khanaqin and other parts of government-controlled areas. In 5/1997 Amnesty International received the names of more than 140 families who were said to be in the process of being expelled to Chamchamal and Arbil in Kurdishcontrolled areas. The authorities are reported to have stripped the deportees of their identity documents and other possessions. According to some reports, in some cases a family member, including children, is taken hostage in order to ensure that the family does not resist the deportation order. [=] been heard of them since. Among those arrested in Arbil were l9 members of the opposition al-'Amal allslami whose headquarters was attacked by Iraqi forces on 31 8/1996. They are believed to be held in Baghdad. They are 'Abd al-Karim Ahmad Salman, Ahmad Hussain 'Affiya, 'Ali 'Abd al-Rasul Amin, Hamid Hashim Finjan, Ahmad Jar Allah, Ahmad Hussain Khalid, Salman 'Ubeid, Sadiq 'Ali, Ahmad 'Abbud, 'Abdullah 'Ali, Yahya al-Yadani,'Ali Hussain Hassan, Hassan Hussain Hassan, 'Ali Ghazi Jabr, 'Abd al-Rahim (Abu Mustafa), Ra'id Khalid, Hafidh Mtashar, Hassan Mahdi Madhlum and Abu Dimu'. Five others whose names are not known to Amnesty International were also arrested with them. Nothing is known about all 24 since their arrest in 8/1996. Also arrested in Arbil were a number of members of the Turkmeneli Party, Hizb Turkman Eli, including the parry's General Secretary, Mohammad Rashid Tuxlu, a 44-year-old engineer. The arrest took place on 9/2/1996 when Iraqi forces stormed the Turkmeneli Parly's headquarters. Party documents and publications were seized and a number of guards outside the building were arrested and summarily executed. Mohammad Rashid Tuzlu and others arrested with him were believed to have been taken to government-controlled detention centres. All have "disappeared". Six members of the Assyrian community in Baghdad, employees in the Presidential Palace, were arrested in 10/1996, reportedly on suspicion of involvement in an attempt to poison President Saddam Hussain. Nothing has been heard of Gewargis Hormiz Oraha, Yousip Adam Khamo, Amira Kora Odisho, Shimon Khoshaba al-Hozi, Petros Elia Toma and William Maffl Barkho, since that date. In 3/1997 Amnesty International wrote to the Iraqi President seeking clarification of the fate and whereabouts of the six Assyrians, 33 Yazidis and all those arrested in Arbil as well as details of any legal proceedings made against them. No response has been received. [=] 10119. Amnesty International. Iraq: 'Disappearances': Unresolved Cases Since the Early 1950s: Part 09: Iraq's International Human Rights Obligations. MDE 14/05/97. London: Amnesty International, October 1997. [98H-08427] [19971001] The practice of "disappearances" by the Government of Iraq seriously contravenes international human rights standards and Iraq's obligations as a state party to the International Covenant on Civil and Political Rights (ICCPR), Article 9 (1) of which states that: "Everyone has the right to liberty and security of person. No one shall be subjected to arbitrary arrest or detention". Also, according to Article 22 of Iraq's own Constitution: "It is inadmissible to arrest, detain, imprison or search a person except in accordance with the rules of the law". The practice of "disappearances" is also in violation of Article 2 of the Declaration on the Protection of All Persons from Enforced Disappearance, adopted by the UN General Assembly in December 1992, and which states: "No State shall practice, permit or tolerateenforceddisappearances". [=] 10120. Amnesty International. Iraq: 'Disappearances': Unresolved Cases Since the Early 1950s: Part 10: Disappearances Continue. MDE 14/05/97. London: Amnesty International, October 1997. [98H08428] [19971001] Amnesty International continues to receive reports of arrests and "disappearances". In 7/1996, 33 men and women, members of the Yazidi community in Mosul were arrested. They were Shireen Mieza 'Arab, Lina Khairi Darman, Thaniya Khairi Darman, Vian Khairi Darman, Sebil Khairi Darman, Amin Kbairi Darman, Jala Khalil Haji, Laila Ilias Darwish, Shizad Khalil Haii, Fahad Jalal Kbalil Haii, Milad Jalal Khalil Haji, Farhad Jalal Khalil Haji, Faiza Jalal Khalil Haji, Amsha Ilias Darwish, Zhakharov 'Ali Khalil Haii, Asi 'Ali Khalil Haii, Khalil 'Ali Khalil Haii, Dimitrov 'Ali Khalil Haii, 'Issa Khalil Haji, Buza Murad Salu, Shireen 'Issa Khalil Haji, Kasil 'lssa Khalil Haii, Khami 'Issa Khalil Haji, Nebras 'Issa Khalil Haji, Khayal 'Issa Khalil Haji, Seynam Elias Darwish, Alnid 'Adil 'Issa Khalil, Yelzas 'Adil 'Issa Khalil, Darur 'Idu 'Abdi Nasser, Fahmi'ldu'Abdi Nasser, Muhamad 'Idu 'Abdi Nasser 'lssa, Hilmi 'Abdu 'Idi Nasser 'lssa and Sisi 'Abdu 'Idi Nasser. Nothing is known as to the reasons for their arrest and their fate and whereabouts are unknown. At the end of 8/1996, Iraqi forces were sent to northern Iraq to support the KDP in conflict with the PUK. As a result, the city of Arbil fell under the control of the KDP and around 70000 people fled the area to seek refuge in Iran. At least 100 members of the opposition Iraqi National Congress (INC) and Iraqi National Turkman Party (INTP) were extrajudicially executed by Iraqi military and intelligence forces following their capture in the Qoshtapa district of Arbil, on 8/31/1996. Inaddition, hundreds of suspected members of opposition groups, including Arabs, Kurds and Turkmen, and their families were arrested, loaded onto trucks and taken to detention centres and prisons in areas under the control of the government. Nothing has 10121. Amnesty International. Iraq: 'Disappearances': Unresolved Cases Since the Early 1950s: Part 11: Amnesty International's Recommendations To The Iraqi Government and to the International Community. MDE 14/05/97. London: Amnesty International, October 1997.[98H-08429] [19971001] Amnesty International is concerned that hundreds of thousands of "disappearances" that have taken place in Iraq since the early 1 980s remain unresolved. The organization is calling on the Government of Iraq to clarify the fate of all "disappeared" persons without further delay and to take concrete steps to put an end to the practice. In addition, Amnesty International is urging the government to implement Amnesty International's 14-Point Program for the Prevention of "Disappearances" (see appendix) as a matter of urgency, and provide compensation for the victims or their families. The UN Working Group on Enforced or Involuntary Disappearances should undertake a mission to Iraq, together with the Special Rapporteur on Iraq, to investigate the systematic practice of "disappearances". Member states of the UN should ensure that the working group and the Special Rapporteur are granted access by the Iraqi Government. The international community should provide resources for the deployment of human rights monitors, which could prevent further "disappearances". This recommendation, put forward by Amnesty International in 7/1991 and included in resolution 1992M1 of the UN Commission on Human Rights, is yet to be implemented. [=] 10122. Amnesty International. Iraq: 'Disappearances': Unresolved Cases Since the Early 1950s: Part 12: Appendix: Amnesty International's Fourteen Point Program For The Prevention of Disappearances. MDE 14/05/97. London: Amnesty International, October 1997. [98H-08430] [19971001] The "disappeared" are people who have been taken into custody by agents of the state, yet whose 52 Kurdistan and the Kurds whereabouts and fate are concealed, and whose custody is denied. "Disappearances" cause agony for the victims and their relatives. The victims are cut off from the world and placed outside the protection of the law; often they are tortured; many are never seen again. Their relatives are kept in ignorance, unable to find out whether the victims are alive or dead. The United Nations has condemned "disappearances" as a grave violation of human rights and has said that their systematic practice is of the nature of a crime against humanity. Yet thousands of people "disappear" each year across the globe, and countless others remain "disappeared". Urgent action is needed to stop "disappearances", to clarify the fate of the "disappeared" and to bring those responsible to justice. Amnesty International calls on all governments to implement the following 14Point Program for the Prevention of "Disappearances". It invites concerned individuals and organizations to join in promoting the program. Amnesty International believes that the implementation of these measures is a positive indication of a government's commitment to stop "disappearances" and to work for their eradication worldwide. (1) Official condemnation: The highest authorities of every country should demonstrate their total opposition to"disappearances". They should make clear to all members of the police, military and other security forces that "disappearances" will not be tolerated under any circumstances. (2) Chain-of-command control: Those in charge of the security forces should maintain strict chain-of-command control to ensure that officers under their command do not commit "disappearances". Offcials with chain-ofcommand responsibility who order or tolerate "disappearances" by those under their command should be held criminally responsible for these acts. (3) Information on detention and release: Accurate information about the arrest of any person and about his or her place of detention, including transfers and releases, should be made available promptly to relatives, lawyers and the courts. Prisoners should be released in a way that allows reliable verification of their release and ensures their safety. (4) Mechanism for locating and protecting prisoners: Governments should at all times ensure that effective judicial remedies are available which enable relatives and lawyers to find out immediately where a prisoner is held and under what authority, to ensure his or her safety, and to obtain the release of anyone arbitrarily detained. (5) No secret detention: Governments should ensure that prisoners are held only in publicly recognized places of detention. Upto-date registers of all prisoners should be maintained in every place of detention and centrally. The information in these registers should be made available to relatives, lawyers, judges, official bodies trying to trace people who have been detained, and others with a legitimate interest. No one should be secretly detained. (6) Authorization of arrest and detention: Arrest and detention should be carried out only by officials who are authorized by law to do so. Officials carrying out an arrest should identify themselves to the person arrested and. on demand, to others witnessing the event. Governments should establish rules setting forth which officials are authorized to order an arrest or detention. Any deviation from established procedures which contributes to a "disappearance" should be punished by appropriate sanctions. (7) Access to prisoners: All prisoners should be brought before a judicial authority without delay after being taken into custody. Relatives, lawyers and doctors should have prompt and regular access to them. There should be regular, independent, unannounced and unrestricted visits of inspection to all places of detention. (8) Prohibition in law: Governments should ensure that the commission of a "disappearance" is a criminal offence, punishable by sanctions commensurate with the gravity of the practice. The prohibition of "disappearances" and the essential safeguards for their prevention must not be suspended under any circumstances, including states of war or other public emergency. (9) Individual responsibility: The prohibition of "disappearances" should be reflected in the training of all officials involved in the arrest and custody of prisoners and in the instructions issued to them. They should be instructed that they have the right and duty to refuse to obey any order to participate in a "disappearance". An order from a superior officer or a public authority must never be invoked as a justification for taking part in a "disappearance". (10) Investigation: Governments should ensure that all complaints and reports of "disappearances" are investigated promptly, impartially and effectively by a body which is independent of those allegedly responsible and has the necessary powers and resources to carry out the investigation. The methods and findings of the investigation should be made public. Offcials suspected of responsibility for "disappearances" should be suspended from active duty during the investigation. Relatives of the victim should have access to information relevant to the investigation and should be entitled to present evidence. Complainants, witnesses, lawyers and others involved in the investigation should be protected from intimidation and reprisals. The investigation should not be curtailed until the fate of the victim is officially clarified. (11) Prosecution: Governments should ensure that those responsible for "disappearances" are brought to justice. This principle should apply wherever such people happen to be, wherever the crime was committed, whatever the nationality of the perpetrators or victims and no matter how much time has elapsed since the commission of the crime. Trials should be in the civilian courts. The perpetrators should not benefit from any legal measures exempting them from criminal prosecution or conviction. (12) Compensation and rehabilitation: Victims of "disappearance" and their dependents should be entitled to obtain fair and adequate redress from the state, including financial compensation. Victims who reappear should be provided with appropriate medical care or rehabilitation. (13) Ratification of human rights treaties and implementation of internationalstandards: All Governments should ratify International treaties containing safeguards and remedies against "disappearances",includingtheInternationalCovenant on Civil and Political Rights and its first Optional Protocol which provides for individual complaints. Governments should ensure full implementation of the relevant provisions of these and other International instruments, including the UN Declaration on the Protection of All Persons from Enforced Disappearance, and comply with the recommendations of intergovernmental organizations conceming these abuses. (14) International responsibility: Governments should use all available channels to intercede with the governments of countries where "disappearances" have been reported. They should ensure that transfers of equipment, knowhow and training for military, security or police use do not facilitate "disappearances". No one should be forcibly resumed to a country where he or she risks being made to "disappear". (This 14-Point Program was adopted by Amnesty International in December 1992 as part of the organization's worldwide campaign for the eradication of "disappearances"). [=] 10123. Amnesty International. Iraq: Human Rights Abuses in Iraqi Kurdistan Since 1991: Part 01: Summary. New York: Amnesty International, February 28, 1995. MDE 14/01/95. [99H-11378] 53 Kurdistan and the Kurds [19950228] Wide-ranging and serious human rights abuses have been committed by the Kurdish administration and political parties in Iraqi Kurdistan since 1991. These abuses include the detention of suspected political opponents, among them possible prisoners of conscience; torture and ill-treatment of political and common law detainees and the failure to investigate such abuses adequately; the use of the death penalty and the enactment of legislation increasing the number of offences punishable by death; executions after summary "trials"; and unlawful and deliberate killings. Iraqi Government forces withdrew from most areas of Iraqi Kurdistan in 10/1991. Since then, these areas have been controlled by Kurdish forces. Amnesty International holds them accountable for the human rights abuses described in this report, in implementation of its mandate in relation to abuses committed by armed political groups. This report is based on research carried out by Amnesty International over the past three years, including five fact-finding visits to Iraqi Kurdistan between 5/1992-7/1994. The organization's concerns in relation to the Kurdish administration(represented in the Council of Ministers for Iraqi Kurdistan, which is effectively the "government" in the region) focus on two main areas: the torture and ill-treatment of detainees and the use of the death penalty. With respect to the political parties, Amnesty International holds the two main parties holding the reins of power in the region - the Kurdistan Democratic Party and the Patriotic Union of Kurdistan - accountable for many of the abuses addressed in this report. These include the torture and ill-treatment of detainees and the unlawful and deliberate killing of unarmed prisoners captured in battle, political opponents and demonstrators. The Islamic Movement in Iraqi Kurdistan, the third political force in the region today, has also committed similar abuses. AmnestyInternational is issuing this report in order to mare public its concerns in Iraqi Kurdistan and calls on the Council of Ministers and the Kurdish leadership to act on the recommendations contained in it. [=] Nowche - Local party committee (term used by KDP). PAK - Kurdistan Freedom Party. PASOK - Kurdish Socialist Party. Pesh Merga - Armed Kurdish forces. PKK - Kurdistan Workers' Party (of Turkey). PUK - Patriotic Union of Kurdistan. Rekkhistini Taybeti - The KDP's security and intelligence apparatus. Rowti Comunist - Communist Current. Tokoshin - Organization of the Kurdistan Workers' Struggle. UKDP - Unified Kurdistan Democratic Party. [=] 10125. Amnesty International. Iraq: Human Rights Abuses in Iraqi Kurdistan Since 1991: Part 03: Introduction. New York: Amnesty International, February 28, 1995. MDE 14/01/95. [99H-11380] [19950228] Wide-ranging and serious human rights abuses have been committed by the Kurdish administration and political parties in those regions of Iraqi Kurdistan which have been under their control since 1991. These abuses include the detention of suspected political opponents, among them possible prisoners of conscience; torture and ill-treatment of political ant common law detainees ant the failure to investigate such abuses adequately; the use of the death penalty and the enactment of legislation increasing the number of offences punishable by death; executions after summary "trials"; and unlawful and deliberate killings of unarmed prisoners and assassinations of political activists and others. This report is based on research carried out by Amnesty International over the past three years, including five fact-finding visits to the region between 5/1992-7/1994. During these visits, Amnesty International interviewed scores of detainees and former detainees held on both political and criminal grounds, as well as prisoners sentenced to terms of imprisonment or death. The organization obtained testimonies from victims of torture and illtreatment, the relatives, friends and colleagues of victims of unlawful and deliberate killings, as well as eye-witnesses and human rights activists. Amnesty International also held discussions with the leaders or representatives of most Kurdish and other political parties, officials of the Kurdish administration, as well as law enforcement personnel and members of the judiciary. the organization acknowledges the cooperation and assistance it has received from many of them. Amnesty International's concerns regarding the human rights situation in Iraq as a whole have been repeatedly placed on public record. Throughout the 1980s and into the 1990s, gross human rights violations on a massive scale have been committed by the Iraqi Government with total impunity and disregard for minimum standards of humane behaviour. They include the arbitrary arrest of suspected or actual political opponents, among them prisoners of conscience; prolonged detention without trial or imprisonment following manifestly unfair trials; the torture and ill-treatment of detainees resulting in countless deaths in custody; the use of the death penalty for a wide range of political and criminal offences after unfair trials and in violation of internationally established safeguards; and the "disappearance" or extrajudicial execution of hundreds of thousands of people - including whole communities - for political reasons. In its campaigns aimed at alleviating the suffering of the people of Iraq, Amnesty International faced a government which sanctioned atrocities as a matter of policy and violated its obligations under international law as a party to the International Covenant on Civil and Political Rights (ICCPR). The organization faced an international community which failed to adopt a single resolution in the United Nations (UN) General Assembly or other UN bodies condemning the Iraqi Government until the invasion of Kuwait on 8/2/1990. It also faced a multitude of states whose perceived geopolitical interests did not accommodate intervention on human rights issues. Amnesty 10124. Amnesty International. Iraq: Human Rights Abuses in Iraqi Kurdistan Since 1991: Part 02: Kurdistan Political Organizations Glossary. New York: Amnesty International, February 28, 1995. MDE 14/01/95. [99H-11379] [19950228] ADM - Assyrian Democratic Movement. AKC - Association of Kurdish Clans. Asoyish - Ministry of Interior's internal security forces. Dozgay Zanyori - The PUK's security and intelligence apparatus. ICP - Iraqi Communist Party. IKF - Iraqi Kurdistan Front. IMIK - Islamic Movement in Iraqi Kurdistan. INC - Iraqi National Congress. IWCP - Iraqi Workers' Communist Party. KCP - Kurdistan Communist Party. KCP - Kurdistan Conservative Party. KDP - Kurdistan Democratic Party. KDU - Kurdistan Democratic Union. KHRO - Kurdistan Human Rights Organization. KLP - Kurdistan Liberation Party. Komite - Local party committee (term used by PUK). KPDP - Kurdistan Popular Democratic Party. KSDP - Kurdistan Socialist Democratic Party. KSP-I - Kurdistan Socialist Party - Iraq. KTP - Kurdistan Toilers' Party (Zahmatheshan). KUP - Kurdistan Unity Party (Yekgirtin). Liq - Party branch (term used by KDP). Liway Taybeti - Special Brigades. Molband - Party centre (term used by PUK). 54 Kurdistan and the Kurds International has also monitored the human rights situation in those areas of Iraq's northern provinces from which the government's forces withdrew on 10/23/1991. Since then, these areas have been controlled by Kurdish forces. Amnesty International holds them accountable for the human rights abuses described in this report, in implementation of its mandate in relation to abuses committed by armed political groups. [=] expression "armed opposition groups" or "armed political groups" has sometimes been criticized as conferring legitimacy on such groups. In fact, the organization seeks to employ neutral language which carries no such connotation. [Similarly, as the International Committee of the Red Cross commentary to common article 3 makes eclear, the applicability of that article's provisions to all parties to an internal armed conflict, including armed opporition group's, confers no legitimacy on such groups.] No organization can retain a non-political stance once it attempts to distinguish between legitimate and illegitimate rebellion. Amnesty International has not done so and will not do so even in relation to those groups which command the most or the least international sympathy. Amnesty International's opposition to abuses by armed opposition groups stems from the same respect for human life, security and liberty which compels it to oppose human rights violations by governments. Amnesty International will continue to place its primary focus on human rights violations by governments and the responsibility of those with governmental authority to abide by their international obligations. Its work to hold opposition groups to the minimum humane standards complements rather than detracts from this world, and is pursued with the same impartiality and independence with which Amnesty International acts in its world with governments. [=] 10126. Amnesty International. Iraq: Human Rights Abuses in Iraqi Kurdistan Since 1991: Part 04: Introduction: Amnesty International's Mandate. New York: Amnesty International, February 28, 1995. MDE 14/01/95.[99H-11381][19950228] Amnesty International condemns and actively opposes a range of human rights violations perpetrated by governments worldwide. The organization works to secure the immediate and unconditional release of all prisoners of conscience [Prisoner of conscience, as defined by Amnesty International's Statute, are people subjected to imprisonment, detention or other physical restriction impopsod by reason of their political, religious or other conscientiously held belief or by reason of their ethnic ongin, sex, colour or language, provided that they have not used or advocated violence.] and to ensure fair and prompt trials for all political prisoners. It opposes the death penalty, extrajudicial executions, "disappearances" and torture and other cruel, inhuman or degrading treatment or punishment in all cases. Since Amnesty International was founded over three decades ago, its mandate has been extended in response to the human rights challenges of a changing world, most recently in 9/1991 when several new areas of concern were incorporated into it. Amnesty International stresses that the international human rights norms it cites concern the protection of the rights of individuals in relation to governmental authoriq; it is governments which have drawn up international human rights law and governments which are bound by it. However, in armed conflicts both governments and those opposing them must observe internationally recognized standards protecting the individual. Amnesty International has for many years condemned the torture or killing of prisoners by anyone, including armed opposition groups - and has done so as a matter of principle. Since 9/1991, the organization has opposed a wider range of abuses by such groups, guided by the protection of the individual enshrined in common Article 3 of the four Geneva Conventions of 1949. These abuses include not only the torture and killing of prisoners, but all unlawful and deliberate killings. Deliberate killings of people who are taking no active part in hostilities are always arbitrary, and Amnesty International opposes them whether the victims are targeted individually or they are the victims of indiscriminate attacks. Similarly, the deliberate killing of soldiers, police or other security personae! who have been incapacitated by sickness or wounds, or who having laid down their arms seek to surrender, is prohibited by international law and condemned by Amnesty International. Amnesty International focuses on the intentional killing of civilians and others taking no part in hostilities. These are distinguishedfromunintended killings that occur during attacks on military objectives, including killings in crossfire between opposing forces. Amnesty International opposes the taking or holding of hostages by armed political groups. It condemns the arbitrary threats to life, security and liberty which are implicit in hostage-taking. Amnesty International also seeks to secure the release of prisoners of conscience held by such groups. Amnesty International take no position on the legitimacy of resorting to violence and opposes specific abuses, not the entity which commits them. In some contexts, governments criticize nongovernmental organizations for not condemning their opponents or for not describing them as "terrorists". Amnesty International's use of the 10127. Amnesty International. Iraq: Human Rights Abuses in Iraqi Kurdistan Since 1991: Part 05: Introduction: Amnesty International's Concerns in Iraqi Kurdistan. New York: Amnesty International, February 28, 1995. MDE 14/01/95. [99H-11382] [19950228] "It is an outrage that the Kurds - having suffered gross human rights violations for so long at the hands of Iraqi Government forces should once again have to endure such abuses, only this time at the hands of their own political leaders." The above extract is taken from a public statement issued by Amnesty International on 6/1/1994, appealing to Kurdish political party leaders to end human rights abuses. It was prompted by reports of gross abuses committed in the context of widespread military clashes the previous month between the two most powerful political parties in Iraqi Kurdistan - the Kurdistan Democratic Party (KDP) and the Patriotic Union of Kurdistan (PUK). During the clashes both parties were said to have deliberately killed prisoners, mutilated some of the victims' bodies, and abducted, killed and tortured civilians on account of their political affiliation. A third political party, the Islamic Movement in Iraqi Kurdistan (IMIK), was also involved in the military conflict in opposition to the PUK. Its forces were reported to have tortured or deliberately killed prisoners. Five months earlier, similar abuses were perpetrated when fierce fighting erupted between PUK and IMIK forces. The events of 12/1993 and 5/1994 (see Chapter 5) represented the most significant deterioration in the human rights situation since the region fell under Kurdish control. The events in 5/1994 in particular, which were far more serious in terms of their immediate and long-term consequences, signified in Amnesty International's view an abandonment of fundamental human rights principles to which the Kurdish leadership had publicly committed itself. This was all the more regrettable since these were the same principles which the Iraqi Government itself consistently failed to uphold, and the consequences of which have meant endless torment and suffering for Iraq's Kurds, Arabs and others alike. Given this, the Kurdish leadership must bear full responsibility for the deep sense of betrayal expressed by many people in Iraqi Kurdistan today. The human rights situation in Iraqi Kurdistan at the time of writing (1/1995) contrasts sharply with that which existed soon after the region fell under Kurdish control over three years ago. At that time, a number of positive measures were adopted to ensure the better protection of 55 Kurdistan and the Kurds human rights, particularly after the 5/1992 parliamentary elections and the appointment of the Council of Ministers effectively the "government" in the region). These included, for example, the separation of the central judicial apparatus from the administration's executive machinery and the abolition of special courts. Attempts were made to create a centralized law enforcement apparatus with clear lines of accountability. Many detainees beld by the political parties were transferred to acknowledged places of detention under the jurisdiction of the police ant internal security forces. These measures are discussed in Chapters 2 and 3. Chapter 4 addresses human rights abuses committed by the Kurdish administration since 1992. Chapter 5 examines abuses committed by the political parties. The distinction is somewhat artificial since the "administration" in many respects remains merely an extension of the power base of the two main political parties, the KDP and the PUK. The deepening political crisis in Iraqi Kurdistan, resulting in large part from continuing disagreements over power-sharing arrangements between these two parties, has led to a gradual deterioration of the human rights situation, culminating in the events of 5/1994 and the perpetration of hitherto unprecedented human rights abuses. In 12/1994 widespread armed clashes broke out once again between the KDP and PUC and continued into 1/1995. At the time of writing, Amnesty International was investigating new reports of human rights abuses,including unlawful and deliberate killings. Details of these abuses are not covered in this report. The report ends with recommendations which Amnesty International urges the political leaders in Iraqi Kurdistan to implement. The organization believes that only when such steps are taken can the human rights crisis in the region be ended. [=] establishmentof a "safe haven" zone in Iraqi Kurdistan stretching between Zakho, Duhok and 'Amadiyya. An "air exclusion zone" [Northern No-Fly Zone] was imposed on 19 April, forbidding Iraqi fused-wing aircraft and helicopters from flying north of the 36th parallel. This remains in force. Many of the Kurdish refugees who had fled to Turkey and Iran beganreturning to Iraqi Kurdistan in 5/1991, encouraged by the presence of the allied forces. By mid-July, however, the allied forces had withdrawn, although they maintained a Military Coordination Centre in Zakho and allies aircraft have continued patrol the areas north of the 36th parallel from Incirlik base in southeastern Turkey. Between 5-10/1991, Iraqi forces retained control of most areas they hadregained after the uprising, with the exception of Duhok from which they withdrew in May shortly after the "safe haven" was set up. During this six-month period, armed clashes and skirmishes between Kurdish and Iraqi Government forces continued, resulting in the further displacement of the Kurdish civilian population. The dashes reaches a climax in the first half of October, when government forces launched indiscriminate military attacks on civilian targets in the towns of Kifri, Kalar and 'Arbat, as well as Sulaimaniya city, using helicopters and heavy artillery. For military and other reasons, the Iraqi Government began a total withdrawal of its armed forces and civil administration from most of the Kurdish region on 10/23/1991. They withdrew from the cities of Arbil and Sulaimaniya, as well as other major towns and their surrounding plains, but remained in the strategic city of Kirkuk. An "internal frontline" was established and the government imposed an economic blockade on the Kurdish-controlled region, which remains in force. The blockade caused severe economic hardship in the region which, like the rest of Iraq, was already suffering the effect of sanctions imposed by the UN in 1990 in the wake of the invasion of Kuwait. The internal blockade quickly caused acute fuel shortages and a sharp rise in the prices of staple foodstuffs and other commodities. The problems were compounded by the abrupt loss of income experienced by over half of the region's working population. Upon withdrawing its forces and administration, the government instructed all civil servants in the Kurdish-held region to redeploy to areas under its control (such as Mosul and Kirkuk) or face nonpayment of their salaries. The overwhelming majority - including doctors, teachers, municipal workers, police personnel, members of the judiciary and employees of the courts - opted for noncompliance. They remained in post, working without pay for several months until the Iraqi Kurdistan Front (IKF: Berey Kurdistani 'Iraqlal-labha al-Kurdistardyya al'Iraqiyya), [Where relevant, the names of various bodies and politica1 parties are transliterated from Kurdish and then in Arabic.] which assumed defacto authority, resumed payment of salaries to civil servants performing essential duties. [=] 10128. Amnesty International. Iraq: Human Rights Abuses in Iraqi Kurdistan Since 1991: Part 06: Chapter One: Historical and Political Context: The Aftermath of the Gulf War. New York: Amnesty International, February 28, 1995. MDE 14/01/95. [99H-11383] [19950228] Following their defeat by allied forces in the Gulf War, the Iraqi armed forces withdrew from Kuwait on 2/28/1991, putting an end to the seven-month occupation of the country. Two days later, rebellion broke out in the city of Basra, instigated by units of the retreating Iraqi army. It was quickly transformed into a mass uprising, spreading to many towns and cities in the south. Several days later a mass uprising broke out in Iraqi Kurdistan, beginning in Chwar Qurna and Rania. By 20 March the city of Kirkuk had fallen under the control of Kurdish opposition forces. By the end of March, however, the Iraqi armed forces had crushed the uprising in both the north and south. The government then embarked on a campaign of widespread repression against the civilian population as a whole as well as those suspected of having participated in the uprising. In that context, gross human rights violations were perpetrated by the advancing government forces. The brutalities triggered a mass exodus of civilians, both Kurds and Shi'a Muslim Arabs, to neighbouring Iran and Turkey. Others fled towards the Saudi Arabian and Kuwaiti borders. By the end of 4/1991, their numbers had reached an estimated 2 million, the majority of them Kurds; most were housed in refugee camps in the border regions in Iran and Turkey. On 5 April the UN Security Council adopted resolution 688, calling on Iraq to end "the repression of the Iraqi civilian population" and to cooperate with the distribution of humanitarian aid to all parts of the country. [On 18 4/1991 a Memorendum of Understanding was signed between the UN and the Iraqi Govemment, providing the basis for UN humanitarian operations in Iraq.] In mid-April "Operation Provide Comfort" was launched by the allied forces (principally those of the United States of America, the United Kingdom and France), followed by the 10129. Amnesty International. Iraq: Human Rights Abuses in Iraqi Kurdistan Since 1991: Part 07: Chapter One: Historical and Political Context: Political Parties and Groups in Iraqi Kurdistan. New York: Amnesty International, February 28, 1995. MDE 14/01/95. [99H11384] [19950228] The IKF, which was established in 5/1988 to coordinate opposidon activity against the central government, was initially composed of five political parties: (1) Kurdistan Democratic Party (KDP: Parti Dimakrati Kurdistanlal-Hizb al-Dimuqran alKurdistani) led by Masoud Barzani; (2) Patriotic Union of Kurdistan (PUK: Yekieti Nishtimani Kurdistanlal-lttihad al-Watani al-Kurdistani) led by Jalal Talabani; (3) Kurdistan Popular Democratic Party (KPDP: Perti Geli Dimakrati Kurdistani Hizb al-Sha'b al-Dimuqrati al-Kurdistani) led by Sami 'Abd al-Rahman; (4) Kurdistan Socialist Party - Iraq (KSP-I: Hizbi Sosialisti Kurdistan - 'Iraqlal-Hizb alIshtiraka al-Kurdistani - 'Iraq) led by the late Rasul Mamand; (5) 56 Kurdistan and the Kurds Kurdish Socialist Party (PASOK: Parti Sosialisti Kurdlal-Hizb alIshtirala al-KurdD led by 'Abdullah Agrin. Three other parties subsequently joined the IKF: (6) Iraqi Communist Party - Kurdistan Region (ICP: Parti Comunisti 'IraqHaremi Kurdistanlal Hizb al-Shuyu'i al-'Iraqi - Iqlim Kurdistan) led by 'Aziz Muhammad; (7) Kurdistan Toilers' Party (KTP: Hizbi Zahmatheshani Kurdistani; Hizbal-Kadihin al-Kurdistani) led by Qader 'Aziz; (8) Assyrian Democratic Movement (ADM: al-Haraka al-Dimutratiyya al-Ashurtyya) led by Younadim Yusuf. Prior to the May 1992 parliamentary elections two of these parties, the KSP-I and PASOK, formed a "joint leadership" and ran for the elections under one platform. Following the elections, the "joint leadership~ was expanded to include the KPDP, and in August 1992 all three formed a new party - the Kurdistan Unity Party (KUP: Parti Yeigirtini Kurdistani; Hizb al-Wakda al-Kurdistani), which temporarily retained a three-member leadership body in lieu of a single leader. While both the KPDP and PASOK were dissolved after this unity, the KSP-I continued to operate under the leadership of Rasul Mamand, who had refused to join the KUP. The considerably smaller KSP-I was itself dissolved in 12/1992 when Rasul Mamand joined the PUK as a member of its Political Bureau. The KUP was in turn dissolved when it joined the KDP during the latter's Eleventh Congress in August 1993. As a result, the KDP was renamed the Unified Kurdistan Democratic Party (UKDP: Parti Dimakrati Kurdistan-YeigirtuIal-HW QlDunuqran al-Kurdistani alMuwahhad), [AIthough UICDP became the official name of this party after 8/1993, in this report it is referred to throughout as the KDP in line with the party's apparent practice in its English language public statements. In Arabic and Kurdish, it is more often refened to as UKDP.] and its new Political Bureau included three members of the former KUP's leadership. Among them we, Muhammad Haji Mahmud (formerly KSP-I) who broke away from the UKDP less than one month later and in 10/1993 announced the re-establishment of the KSP-I under his leadership. At its Second Conference in 11/1994, the KSP-I was renamed the Kurdistan Socialist Democratic Party (KSDP: Parti Sosialisti Dimakrati Kurdistanlal-Hizb al-Ishtirald alDimuqrad al-Kurdistani). The ICP also underwent change. Pressure had been growing for some time within the party for the establishment of a separate Kurdish communist party. At the ICP's Fifth Conference in 10/1993, the Kurdistan Communist Party (KCP: Hizbi Comunisti Kurdistan/alHizb al-Shuyu'i al-Kurdistani) was formed. The ICP (currently led by Hamid al-Bayati) and KCP (currently led by Karim Ahmad) are closely linked although they have separate Political Bureaux and Central Committees. Outside the IKF, the Islamic Movement in Iraqi Kurdistan (IMIK: Bizatnewey Islamiye Kurdistani 'Iraq/al-Harata al-lslamiyya alKurdistan al-'Iraq) is the most powerful group and represents, both politically and militarily, the third force in the region today. A Sunni Muslim movement, it was formed in 1986 during the Iran-Iraq war, and is headed by Shaikh 'Uthman 'Abd al-'Aziz, its Spiritual Guide. Its leadership cadres include former members of the Union of Religious Scholars (Yekieti Mamostayani Ayni Islam/Ittihad Uthnam al-Din), [The Union of Religious Scholars was established in late 1971, its principal role being the promotion of religious awareness. It became defunct after the collapse of the Kurdish oppostiion movement in 1975, but was reconstituted some six months after the 3/1991 uprising. It enjoys the support of both the KDP and PUK, but many of the religious scholars associated with it are known for their anti-IMIK stance.] while others are veterans of the war in Afghanistan. In the past three years, the IMIK has boosted its membership levels in Iraqi Kurdistan, where it has established its own infrastructure in the areas under its control. Within the past two years, three groups were dissolved upon uniting with mainstream parties. The Kurdistan Democratic Union (KDU: Yekieti Dimakrati Kurdistan/al-lttihad al-Dimuqran alKurdistani), which was formed in 1978 and supported the establishment of an autonomous Kurtish region in Iraq, joined the KDP in 8/1993. Its founder, 'Ali Sinjari, is currently a member of the KDP's Central Committee. Another group, the Movement of Islamic Feyli Kurds (Bizatnewey Islami Kurda Feyliyyakan/Narakat al-Fryltyyin alAkrad al-Islamiyyin), was formed in Iran in the early 1980s principally to draw attention to the plight of tens of thousands of Feyli (Shi'a) Kurds forcibly exiled from Iraq by successive governments and to protect the interests of the Feyli minority. it also joined the KDP in 8/1993 and its founder, Jalil Feyli, is currently a member of the KDP's Central Committee. A third group, Revolutionary Banner (Alay Shorish/Rayat al-Thawra), joined the PUK in late 1992. Formed originally from a PUK splinter group in the mid-1980s, it was concerned with the unification of Iraqi Marxists as a whole but also stressed the right of Iraq's Kurds to self-determinadon. In 4/1992 Alay Shorish united with the KTP and several of its leaders became members of the KTP Ccatral Committee. The KTP itself split after the 5/1992 parliamentary elections and several of the former Aloy Shorish leaders subsequently joined the PUK. Among them was the founder of Aby Shorish, Hikmat Karim (known as Mulla Bakhtiar), who is currently a member of the PUK Leadership Committee (Komitey Sarkirdayetilal-Lajna al-Qiyadiyya). Of the other political parties which espouse communism or socialism in Iraqi Kurdistan, the oldest is the Iraqi Communist Party Base Organizations (Hizbi Comunisti Kurdistan Rekkhrawakani 'alQa'ida' lal; Hizb aI-Shuyu'i al-lraqi - Munathamaat al-Qa'ida). This party was formed in 1984 from an ICP splinter group led by Bahatuddin Nuri, Secretary of the ICP in the early 1950s, and is based in Sulaunaniya. Another group, the Kurdistan Liberation Party (KLP: Parti Rizgari Kurdistani' Hizb al-Tahrir al-Kurdistani), was formed in 1993 from a KUP splinter group, most of whose members were originally affiliated to the KPDP and the KSP-I. It is based in Arbil. A third group, the Iraqi Workers' Communist Party (IWCP: Hizbi Comunisti Krekari 'Iraqlal; Hizb al-Shuyu'i al-'Ummali-Iraqi), was formed in 7/1993 from a merger of four small communist groups. The largest group within the IWCP is Communist Current (Rewti Comunistlal-Tayyar al-Shuyu'i) which, according to its spokespersons, was formed in the mid-1980s. However, it reportedly only became active after 1989. After the uprising, it established a presence in Sulaimaniya and formed labour organizations known as Workers' Councils, which were short-lived. The party also attempted to organize itself in Bahdinan during that period. Pressure from both the KDP and PUK, however, resulted in its activities remaining limited and semi-clandestine. The IWCP has an office in Arbil. There are also several small Marxist groups which call for the unification of "Greater Kurdistan" ["Greater Kurdistan" refers to the regions inhabited by Kurds in Iraq, Iran, Syria, Turkey and the former Soviet Union.] and hence oppose on principle any negodations with the central government in Baghdad. All are said to be closely linlced to the Kurdistan Workers' Party (PKK: Parti Kargerani KurdistonlHizb al'Ummal al-Kurdistani) of Turlcey. The oldest among these groups is th' Organization of the Kurdistan Workers' Struggle (Rekkhrowi Tekoshani Rendiderani Kurdistani; Mununathamat Nidal Shaghilat Kurdistan), known as Tekoshin. According to its spokespersons, it was formed in July 1978 and had close relations with the PUK. In late 1990 a rapprochement developed between Tekoshin and the KTP and the idea of uniq was discussed. However, talks broke down when the KTP supported the idea of negotiations with Baghdad after the 3/1991 uprising. It has representatives and members in Bahdinan and Arbil. Another group with similar objectives is the Kurdistan Freedom Parq 57 Kurdistan and the Kurds (PAK: Parti Azadi Kurdistani; Hizb al-Hurrtyya al-Kurdistani). Formed after the 1991 uprising, it is considered by some as a PKK "creation" and to have as its principal aim the recruitment of members for the PKK in Iraqi Kurdistan. It initially had some members in Sulaimaniya and later in Duhok. They have been arrested at various times and held outside the framework of the law, principally by the KDP. A third group in this category is the Action Party for the Independence of Kurdistan (Part) Kari Sarbekhoy Kurdistani; Hizb al-'Amal li-Istiqlal Kurdistan), led by Hussain Hallaq. Formed in 1993 from an ICP splinter group, it is based in Arbil. A fourth group is the Democratic Alliance for the Independence of Kurdistan (Hawpeymaneti Dimakrati bo SerbeAhoy KurdistanlalTahaluf al-Dimuqran Ii-Istiqlal Kurdistan) formed by 'Aziz 'Aqrawi in 1992 and is said to have some representatives in Arbil. Two groups representing several of the Kurdish clans [These include the Surchi, Khoshnaw and Bradosh.] in the region were formed after the 1991 uprising, and for whose loyalty the KDP and PUK competed. The Association of Kurdish Clans (AKC: Komelgay Ashayri Kurd; Jam'iyyat al-'sha'ir al-Kurdiyya) was formed in 8/1991 and has closer relations with the KDP. It is headed by Hussain Surchi and based in Sheqlawa. The AKC has stressed the right of the Kurdish people to self-determination and also called for the "independence of Kurdistan". Following the 5/1992 parliamentary elections, the AKC split and another group was formed, the Kurdistan Conservative Party (KCP: Parti Parezgarani Kurdistan; Hizb al-Muhafidhin al-Kurdistani). Led by Hussain Surchi's brother, 'Umar Khadr Surchi, the KCP is based in Arbil and has closer relations with the PUK. Its stated aims are similar to those of the AKC. Aside from the IMIK, there are several smaller Islamist political groups in Iraqi Kurdistan today. Among them is Kurdish Hizbullah (Hizbullehi Kurdi; Nubullah alKurdi), led by Shaikh Muhammad Khaled Barzani (a cousin of Mas'ud Barzani), which was formed in 1982 in Iran. The group is now based in the region stretching between Barzan, Ramanduz and Merga Sur. In late 1988 the group split and Kurdish Revolutionary Hizbullah (Hirbullahi Kurdi Shorishger; Hizbullah al-Kurdi al-Thawri) was formed, led by Adham Barzani. It is based in the Diyana region. The vast majority of members of the Christian faith in Iraqi Kurdistan are represented by the ADM, a party represented in the IKF. There are also three other Christian groups: the Democratic Christian Movement (al-Haraka al-Dimaqratiyya al-Masihiyya) and the United Kurdistan Christian (Masihiyyi Kurdistan al-Muwabhada), both of which are closely associated with the KDP; and the Chaldean Christian Democratic Party (Kaldo Ashur al-Dimuqrati), which represents Assyrians of the Chaldean sect and is closely associated with the ICP. The Turkman minority in Iraqi Kurdistan is represented by four parties: the Iraqi National Turkman Party (al-Hizb al-Watani alTurkman al-'Iraqi) led by Muthaffar Arslan; the Turkman Union Party (Hizb al-Ittihad al-Turbnanh led by Riad Jamal; the Union of Democratic Turkman (Ittiad al-Dimuqrattyyin al-Turkman); and the Turkman Brotherhood Party (Hizb al-ha' al-Turkman). [=] ~system as well as press and other freedoms. The last round of formal negotiations was held in Baghdad in 8/1991, although contact between the two sides was maintained for several months. It was not until mid-1/1992 that the IKF finally announced that it was suspending talks with Baghdad. It simultaneously called for elections for a Kurdish parliament to fill the administrative vacuum in the region. The parliament would replace the former (government-created) Legislative Assembly of the Autonomous Region of Kurdistan. Those areas of Iraqi Kurdistan which government forces failed to regain after the uprising, as well as those which fell under Kurdish control after 10/1991, were effectively administered by the IKF. The IKF continued to exercise de facto authority in the region until mid-1992, when parliamentary elections were held and a Council of Ministers was formed. Until then, military, security, administrative, judicial and educational matters (among other things) were regulated by local committees set up by the IKF Political Leadership. In late 8/1991 a permanent working committee was created to coordinate and supervise the activities of the various IKF local committees, as well as to liaise with international non-governmental organizations operating in the Kurdish region. Known as the Political Leadership Acting Body (Korjeri Sorkirdoyeti Siyosilal-Hay'a al-'Amila lil-Qiyada al-Siyasiyya), its creation coincided with the negotiations in Baghdad becoming deadlocked and the growing conviction of the Kurdish leadership that agreement could not be reached on the substantive issues. The Acting Body had eight members, representing each of the political parties in the IKF, who met on a frequent and regular basis in Khalifan (Arbil province). After 10/1991 additional local committees were set up for the areas vacated by Iraqi forces. All local committees continued to liaise with and remained answerable to the Acting Body, which transferred its base from Khalifan to Arbil. The Acting Body effectively became redundant after the parliamentary elections and the formation of a Council of Ministers. On 5/19/1992 elections were held simultaneously for the 105member Kurdistan National Assembly (Anjumani Nishtimani Kurdistan; al-Majlis al-Watani al-Kurdistani) and for the "Leader of the Kurdish Liberation Movement". The two laws governing the electoral process had been drafted by a body established by the DCF, [The Law for the Election of the National Assembly for Iraqi Kurtistan and the Law for the Elecction of Leader of the Kurdish Liberation Movement, both issued by the IKP in 4/1992.] the High Commission for the Supervision of the Elections in Iraqi Kurdistan." The elections were based on a system of proportional representation with a 7% threshold. Twelve political parties competed in the parliamentary elections, eight of them for 100 seats and four others for the five seats reserved for parties representing members of the Christian faith. Four candidates contested the position of Leader. The IKF invited a number of international observers, both governmental and nongovernmental, to observe and monitor the elections. Among them was the International Human Rights Law Group, which subsequently published its fintings in 7/1992. [International Human Rights Law Group, "Ballots Without Borders: A Report on the May 1992 Elections in Iraqi Kurdistan", Washington D.C., 7/1992.] The preface to its report reads: "The conduct and completion of the electoral process was a remarkable achievement. The focus of any appraisal of the electoral process must be on the enormous accomplishments of the people of Iraqi Kurdistan and not on the shortcomings of the procedures. As [our] delegation found, the process was remarkably fair and, on balance, free... Despite flaws, the elections offered an opportunity for the will of the people to be expressed... perhaps for the first time in their history." This assessment was not shared by some of the smaller political parties, who stated that the extent of multiple voting, as well as other irregularities, cast doubt on the fairness of the elections. In their public statements the PUK and KDP stated that the elections 10130. Amnesty International. Iraq: Human Rights Abuses in Iraqi Kurdistan Since 1991: Part 08: Chapter One: Historical and Political Context: Kurdish Self-Rule. New York: Amnesty International, February 28, 1995. MDE 14/01/95. [99H-11385] [19950228] In 4/1991, in the aftermath of the uprising, negotiations began between the Iraqi Government and the eight opposition parties represented in the IKP. Five months later, the two sides had failed to reach agreement on a number of issues, the most important of which were: demarcation of the Kurdish autonomous region, particularly as regards the city of Kirkuk; responsibility for security affairs in the autonomous region; a new constitution; and the introduction of a multi-party political 58 Kurdistan and the Kurds were on the whole free and fair, but privately some officials from both parties complained of irregularities. The published official results of the parliamentary elections gave the KDP 50.8% of the vote and the PUK 49.2%. This took into account the reallocation of votes cast for the smaller parties, none of which reached the 7% threshold to qualify for seats in the National Assembly. By agreement, however, the KDP and PUK settled for 50 seats each as part of a power-sharing arrangement. Four of the five seats reserved for the Christian parties went to the ADM. None of the candidates competing for the position of leader won an absolute majority. No date was subsequently scheduled for runoff elections and the position has since remained unfilled. The National Assembly beld its inaugural session in Arbil on 6/4/1992. The Council of Ministers for the Iraqi Kurdistan Region (Anjumant Wozirani Haremi Kurdistani 'Iraq/Majlis al-Wuzara' IlIqhm Kurdistan dil-'Iraq) was formed one month later and began functioning officially on 4 July. [The Law of the Counciul of Ministers for the Iraqi Kurdistan Region (No. 3 of 1992) passed by Decree No. 15 of 16/9/92, published in the official gazette Perleman, Issue No. 2, 10/1992.] Fifteen ministries were created, including the Interior, Justice and Pesh Merga Affairs (the latter being akin to a Ministry of Defence). There is no Ministry of Foreign Affairs although some of the relevant functions are carried out by the Ministry of Humanitarian Assistance and Cooperation. Following the formation of the Council of Ministers, separate laws defining the administrative structure and areas of competence of each ministry were promulgated. Initially these laws were drafted by an advisory legal body composed of three jurists, but towards the end of 1992 this task was taken over by the National Assembly's Legal Committee (al-Lajna al-Qanunryya). The various ministries, however, began functioning before the promulgation of these laws, the last of which was issued in 12/1993. The 15 portfolios were divided along these lines: six each for the KDP and PUK, one for the ICP, one for the ADM and one for anon-affiliated andidate. Following a reshuffle announced in 4/1993, the allocation of portfolios remained the same with the exception of the Justice portfolio, which was given to a representative of the KUP. [The Justice portfolio has been held by the KDP since 8/1993, when the KUP dissolved itself and united with the KDP.] On the political level, the Council of Ministers' stated aims included the "establishment of relations between Kurdistan and the central government on the basis of a voluntary union within a democratic Iraq which recognizes the rights of our people"; the establishment of good relations with neighbouring countries and noninterference in their affairs; and working through the UN both to exert pressure on the Iraqi Government to lift its blockade on Iraqi Kurdistan and to exclude the region from the sanctions imposed by the UN on Iraq. After the 1993 reshuffle, the Council of Ministers stated that efforts would be made to "establish the relationship of the Regional Government with the future central government on the basis of a voluntary union and respect for a framework of a federal and democrtic Iraq in which all the rights of our people are safeguarded". This departure from previously stated political objectives reflected the adoption by the Kurdish leadership in October l9 of a unified Iraq as the basis for its future political program. The statement announcing the "federal union", issued in the name of the National Assembly as follows: "The Kurdistan National Assembly... decided unanimously... to define its legal relationship with the central government, at this juncture in [the Kurdish people's] history, on the basis of a federal union within a democratic and parliamentary Iraq which believes in a multi-party system and which respects human rights as recognized by international covenants and treaties." ["Statement of the Announcement of the Federal Union", issued by National Assembly Decree No.22 on 4/10/1992, published in Perleman, Issue No.3, 10/1992.] On the level of democratic freedoms and human rights, the Council of Ministers committed itself to the following: suspending all legislation passed by the central government which "consolidates and protects dictatorship and destroys the spirit of liberation in Kurdistan"; guaranteeing freedom of opinion, of political and religious beliefs and of the press, trade unions and others; protecting human rights in accordance with the Universal Declaration of Human Rights; guaranteeing die cultural rights of minority groups in Iraqi Kurdistan (the Turkmen, Assyrians and Arabs); and enforcing the law, protecting the independence of the judiciary and refraining from interference in its affairs. After 4/1993 the Council of Ministers also committed itself to making available the necessary buildings and other requirements regarding prisons and detention centres, and to uphold and respect human rights in these establishments; to ensure the availability of modern means of criminal investigation; and to respect human rights in the course of criminal investigation, including refraining from obtaining information by coercion. In 1993 several important laws were promulgated by the National Assembly which were aimed at tackling security problems in the region as well as regulating various aspects of political and public life. The Weapons Law (No. 16 of 1993), [Decree No. 41 of 10/5/1993, published in Perleman, Issue No. 15, 11/6/1993.] passed in October, was intended to control the amount of freely available weaponry in the region and placed the issuance of licences for weapons under the jurisdiction of the Ministry of Interior. Earlier, in April, the Law on Publications for the Iraqi Kurdistan Region (No. 10 of 1993) [Decree No. 24 of 4/25/1993, published in Perleman, Issue No. 11, 5/20/1993.] was passed, giving the Ministry of Culture responsibility for issuing all publication licences. The Law on Associations for the Iraqi Kurdistan Region (No. 18 of 1993), [Decree No. 44 of 10/31/1993, published in Perleman, Issue No. 15,11/6/1993.] passed in October, gave the Ministry of Interior responsibility for issuing licenses to non-profit making associations. Article 4 of this law stipulates that the aims and activities of these associations must preclude the spreading of religious or sectarian strife, and must comply with democratic principles and the Universal Declaration of Human Rights. Article 6 guarantees the right of these associations to hold gatherings, demonstrations, strikes and other activities in accordance with the laws in force. Finally, the Law on Parties for the Iraqi Kurdistan Region (No. 17 of 1993), [Decree No. 42 of 10/18/1993, published in Perleman, Issue No. 15, 11/6/1993.] passed in October, was aimed at regulating the establishment of political parties in the region. Article 3 states: "The freedom to establish political parties is guaranteed, and each party may pursue its activides with complete freedom...". Articles 6 and 7 stipulate that applications for the establishment of political parties must be submitted to the Ministry of Interior and then referred to the Council of Ministers for a final decision. Article 15 sets out a number of "obligations" which all parties must commit themselves to, including: rejecting all forms of terrorism; respecting the law and preserving the independence of the judiciary; and refraining from retaining or establishing any military organizations or possessing weapons in violation of the laws in force. Existing political parties were expected to comply with the provisions of the law within three months of its coming into force. The three laws governing publications, associations and political parties all contain provisions allowing the applicants to appeal against a negative decision by the competent ministry. Appeals must be lodged within a stipulated period to the Court of Cassation. Decisions by the Ministry of Interior to dissolve any political party deemed to have failed to comply with the law can also be appealed before the Court of Cassation. In all cases the rulings of this court are final. The idea of the promulgation of a constitution for Iraqi Kurdistan 59 Kurdistan and the Kurds has been discussed at various junctures by the political, legislative and judicial authorities, and Amnesty International is aware of two draft texts. At the time of writing, the draft texts were still under discussion. The position of "Leader of the Kurdish Liberation Movement" remains unfilled, although the law which regulated elections for this position in 5/1992 was subsequently reissued by the National Assembly as Law No. 2 of 1992 and was used as the legal basis for the promulgation of over laws. The consequences of this post remaining unfilled has given rise to a number of legal problems, which are focused primarily on who should carry out the functions of Leader as defined in Articles 10 to 12 of Law No. 2 of 1992. Article 13 of this law states: "In the absence of the Leader from his position for any reason, the head of the executive authority will replace him." However, Article 14 states: "If the position of leader falls vacant for any reason, the President of the Kurdistan National Assembly will assume his responsibilities until a new leader is elected within one month of the posit on becoming vacant.. Disagreement arose between the KDP and PUK over which of these articles should apply and over the legal definitions of "vacant" and "absent." The decision initially taken in early 1993 was that the President of the National Assembly should carry out some of the functions of Leader on the basis of Article 14. [Amnesty International understands that agreement was reached between the KDP and PUK that both the Preddentof the National Assembly and the Prime Minister would share the function. of Leader on a temporary basis, but that for reasons of protocol the former would take responsibility for many of the public functions. The ratification or commutation of death sentenece was also included in his brief.] He did so for several months, but continuing - challenges to his authority by PUK parliamentarians on the basis of Article 13 prevented him from carrying on with these functions. The legality of the decision to empower the President of the National Assembly as Leader was also challenged by some members of the legal profession in Iraqi Kurdistan, albeit on a different basis. Some people question the validity of Law No. 2 of 1992 itself, since it was originally promulgated by the IKF Political Leadership and not by a competent and elected legislative body (the parliament). [The Law for the Election of Leader of the Kurdistan Liberation Movement was not subsequently debated in the National Assembly It was simply adopted in Law No. 2 of 1992 when the National Assembly came into being.] Others argue that in any case the President of the National Assembly had exceeded his powers by continuing to carry out the functions of Leader beyond the one month stipulated in Article 14. At the time of writing this issue had not been resolved. Debate around varying interpretations of Articles 13 and 14 continued despite the promulgation of another law in 12/1993 which ought to have made such a debate redundant. Law No. 19 of 1993 created an eightmember Presidential Body of the Iraqi Kurdistan Region (Destey Serokayeti Haremi Kurdistani 'Iraq; Hay'at Ri'saat Iqlim Kurdistan al'Iraq), [Law for the Presidential Body of the Iraqi Kurdistan Region, passed by Decree No 48 of 12/22/1993, published in Perleman, Issue No l5, 12/22/1993.] which was meant to fill the vacuum created by the absence of a Leader. Article 1 of Law No. 19 empowers the Presidential Body to assume the authority and responsibilities defined in Law No. 2 of 1992 "until the second phase of the election of Leader of the Kurdish Liberation Movement is completed". In fact the Presidential Body was short-lived and ceased to function within a few weeks of its creation, which had coincided with the outbreak of military clashes between PUK and IMIK forces. Law No. 19 was not subsequently repealed, however; in theory it retains legal validity due in practice none of its provisions is applied. In 7/1994, as a result of an initiative by a group of independent Kurdish intellectuals, delegations from the KDP and PUK held talks in Paris under the auspices of the French Government in an attempt to find a lasting solution to their political differences. A draft agreement was produced which tackled a member of key objectives, including: normalization of the situation in Iraqi Kurdistan in the wake of the inter-party conflict in 5/1994; normalization of interference by political parties in the administration's affairs and the enhancement of the role of parliament; adoption of a unified policy cowards Baghdad as well as the region's neighbouring countries; introducting of a system of accountabilityinto the financial affairs of the Council of Ministers; unification of the police and internal security forces; the disbanding of the armed militias of the two political parties; the abolition of the Ministry for Pesh Merga Affairs and the creation of a unified army based on conscription. The leaders of the KDP and PUK were due to sign the agreement formally in Paris shortly thereafter. This did not take place and armed clashes between the two sides continued intermittently until August. On 11/21/1994 a separate agreement, known as the Alliance Covenant (Mithaq al-Tahaluf) was signed by Masoud Barzani and Jalal Talabani. A series of political and legal reforms was agreed as a means of settling differences between the respective parties and preventing the recurrence of the 5/1994 clashes. The Alliance Covenant also called for the prohibition and criminalization of armed conflict between the political parties and forces in Iraqi Kurdistan and for the condemnation of the use of violence, assassinations and duress as a means of imposing opinions on others. The following month, armed clashes broke out again between KDP and PUK forces and which were ongoing at the time of writing. [=] 10131. Amnesty International. Iraq: Human Rights Abuses in Iraqi Kurdistan Since 1991: Part 09: Chapter One: Historical and Political Context: Background to The Human Rights Crisis. New York: Amnesty International, February 28, 1995. MDE 14/01/95. [99H11386] [19950228] In assessing the human rights situation in Iraqi Kurdistan, Amnesty International recognizes the many difficulties faced by the population and its political leadership over the pase three years. The region was in a state of turmoil following the withdrawal of Iraqi Government forces and administration, which happened barely seven months after the brutal suppression of the uprising. The prevailing military and security situation was extremely precarious, with a constant threat of renewed military attacks by government forces. Iraqi Government agents are believed to have continued to perpetrate acts of sabotage, assassinations and other killings aimed at destabilization and spreading fear. Such acts are believed to have also been perpetratod by Iraq's neighbouring countries, namely Iran and Turkey, including the targeting of their own opponents who have sought refuge in Iraqi Kurdistan. Coupled with this are the consequences of two economic embargoes. The international humanitarian assistance provided by UN agencies and international nongovernmental organizations have undoubtedly benefited some sectors of the population. However, this could not compensate for the sudden loss of income and livelihoods experienced by so many people. High levels of unemployment have in turn contributed to a rise in crime. The uncertainties of the future, both politically and militarily, have also taken their toll. These factors have, however, been used time and again to justify a wide range of human rights abuses committed by those who hold the reins of power in Iraqi Kurdistan. In Amnesty International's view, the failure to uphold fundamental human rights on such grounds or any other grounds, cannot be justified: such rights should be respected in all circumstances. The KDP and PUK, which hold the monopoly of power in the region and have the requisite military means, bear the greatest share of responsibility for the abuses of these human rights. The role of the IMIK, the third political force in the region, has also 60 Kurdistan and the Kurds been significance in this regard. The commitment to a multi-party political system expressed by the leaders of both the KDP and PUK has not been reflected in their practices. While several political parties have continued to function and some are represented in either the Council of Ministers or the National Assembly, the monopoly of power enjoyed by the KDP and PUK has ensured that none of them develops into a viable entity with political weight. Other smaller groups have been suppressed through intimidation, harassment and, in some instances, the arrest or assassination of their members by both the KDP and PUK. The only challenge to the supremacy of the two ruling parties has come from the IMIK, which controls territory and has a sizeable military force. Its challenge,directed principally at the PUK, has to date manifested itself through sheer military force. After failing to reach the seven per cent threshold in the May 1992 parliamentary elections, and following the failure of negotiations with the KDP and PUK over its participation in the Council of Ministers, the IMIK distanced itself from mainstream politics and consolidated its own structures in territory under its control (mainly in the regions bordering Iran in Sulaimaniya Province) and elsewhere in Iraqi Kurdistan where it had presence and membership. In these areas it established its own system of law enforcement, a judicial apparatus, courts and detention facilities and provided educational, health and social services for its members. This has been one of the continuing sources of friction between the IMIK and the other political parties, which have accused the IMIK of not recognizing or accepting the legitimacy of the Kurdish administration and its institutions, and to have thereby contributed to the destabilization of the region. At the same time, the IMIK has itself failed to develop a substitute system of accountability as regards its own members who commie human rights abuses, including torture and unlawful and deliberate killings. A high level of administrative paralysis - most critically in dealing with the criminal justice system - has resulted from the system of power-sharing agreed by the PUK and KDP. The dispute over the results of the parliamentary elections was tackled by sharing the National Assembly seats equally. The President of the National Assembly was to be from the KDP and his deputy from the PUK. Conversely, the Primc Minister was to be from the PUK and his deputy from the KDP. This so-called "50-50 policy" was applied to all other positions of power and authority in the administration. Every KDP minister has a PUK member as his deputy and vica versa. The head of the General Asayish Directorate [the General Secretary Directorate] is a KDP member, while that of the General Police Directorate is a PUK member. Their deputies are appointed on the same basis. Within this system, each party has sought to block the decisions of the other in accordance with its perceived interests at the time. The problems were compounded by the insistence of both parties that key officials and their deputies be accorded identical responsibilities and levels of authority. The gradual application of the "50-50 policy" to lower-level appointments has further ensured that the administration remains but a tool in the hands of the two parties, a means through which their political interests could be served but which cannot hold them accountable for their actions. The absence of accountability has allowed the KDP and PUK to continue abusing their authority, and for individuals affiliated to them to perpetrate human rights abuses with impunity. Prom their respective positions of strength, both parties have undermined many of the positive measures adopted in the name of the administration. It is widely recognized, for example, that final decisions regarding authorization for the establishment of political parties rest with Jalal Talabani and Mas'ud Barzani rather than with the competent ministries. At least two political groups have alleged that their applications under the Law on Parties for the Iraqi Kurdistan Region have been blocked on political grounds rather than because they failed to comply with its provisions. [This refers to the IWCP and the KSP-I (under the leadership of Muhammad Haji Mahmud). Muhunmad Rahim 'Abdullah, one of the KSP-I's leadership cadre who was assassinated in 3/1994 told Amnesty International in 2/1994 that the KSP-I's application for registration as a political party was votoed by Mas'ud al-Barzani.] Both the KDP and PUK, among others, have yet to comply themselves with some of these provisions. The KDP and PUK have shown a singular lack of respect for the independence of the judiciary. Both have actively interfered in perverting the course of justice. They have, for example, prevented the arrest of suspects affiliated to them and for whom arrest warrants had been issued by investigating judges. In other instances, they have removed such suspects from prison by force, collusion or other means. Political interference has compromised the right of defendants, particularly those accused of political or capital offences, to a fair trial. It has also meant that in many cases, members of the judiciary have been unwilling or unable to investigate claims of torture and cases of killings. There are a number of cases where investigating judges have been threatened with death or intimidated in other ways to deter them from pursuing investigations. Several lawyers and one investigating judge were assassinated (see Chapter 5). The increasing number of such killings has spread fear among the population and has prevented meaningful investigations into such crimes. By far the most important factor underlying the human rights crisis is the phenomenon of impunity, which is rife in Iraqi Kurdistan. Despite evidence of the responsibility of forces under the authority of the political parties for grave human rights abuses, no one has been brought to justice. In 7/1994 Jalal Talabani acknowledged to Amnesty Internationalthat PUK forces have committed some human rights abuses, but stated that no measures would be taken to bring them to justice. Mas'ud Barzani told the organization on more than one occasion that while be would be prepared to bring to justice KDP personnel found responsible for human rights abuses, there was "no evidence that any were implicated in such crimes." IMIK leaders told Amnesty International that their forces have not committed any human rights abuses. This report provides evidence to the contrary, and shows that all three political parties have committed gross human rights abuses. Impunity is one of the main problems which the Kurdish leadership must resolve if its stated commitment to protect human rights is to have any credibility. To date, political leaders have shown themselves unwilling to acknowledge the scale of human rights abuses carried out by their respective parties, to impose the necessary controls on the forces under their authority, or to introduce effective measures to ensure that those responsible are held accountable before the law. The fact that the perpetrators of numerous unlawful and deliberate killings and torture remain not only at liberty but also in positions of authority has undermined public confidence in the administration of justice and the rule of law. The knowledge that crime will go unpunished - and may even be rewarded - has contributed to the spiral of violence in society at large, which has in turn escalated human rights abuses in Iraqi Kurdistan. Political leaders frequently justify their failure to act by referring to the precarious security situation in the region, the dire economic conditions, the political uncertainties and the complex nature of Kurdish society. They also cite practical problems relating to law enforcement and the administration of justice, including insufficient resources, lack of training, lack of specialist personnel and corruption. Real though these problems are, the Kurdish leadership must find the political will to ensure that the forces under its control are held 61 Kurdistan and the Kurds accountable before the law and that justice is applied to all human rights abusers and victims. [=] raised human rights issues during debates. [=] 10133. Amnesty International. Iraq: Human Rights Abuses in Iraqi Kurdistan Since 1991: Part 11: Chapter Two: Law Enforcement and the Prison System. New York: Amnesty International, February 28, 1995. MDE 14/01/95. [99H-11388] [19950228] One of the most urgent tasks facing the IKF after the 1991 withdrawal of Iraqi Government forces from the region was the restoration of law and order in the major cities and towns. The civilian police forces were reconstituted and organized administratively into police directorates for each province, and were made directly answerable to the local committee of the IKP. This coincided with the resumption of work by members of the judiciary and the civil courts, and with the reopening of prisons under the jurisdiction of the police. During the months leading up to the parliamentary elections, the civilian police gradually took on responsibility for the arrest, detention and interrogation of criminal suspects, and the referral of cases to the civil courts. The legal procedures followed from the start were said to conform to Iraq's Penal Code and Code of Criminal Procedure, [Penal Code, Law No. 111 of 1969 as amended; Code of Criminal Procodure, Law No. 23 of 1971amended.]both of which fall short of international standards. However, cases involving offences of a "security" nature continued to be dealt with by the IKF's security committees. Suspects were arrested without warrant and interrogated while held in the custody of the same authority, with no independent judicial supervision at any stage in the process, as required by Article 9 of the ICCPR and other internationalstandards.The vulnerability of detainees held in such circumstances was compounded by the fact that although many of them were held ostensibly in the name of the IKF, the arresting and detaining authority was in reality one or other of the political parties. Moreover, some of the detainees were held in unacknowledged places of detention, where they could be held indefinitely and during which they were deprived of the most basic rights. Those who were subsequently charged with recognizable criminal and political offences were brought to trial before special courts, which failed to ensure fair trials. Detainees held by political parties outside the IKF, notably the IMIK, were held under similar conditions. The IMIK adopted its own judicial system, according to which detainees were "tried" and sentenced to terms of imprisonment or to death. A number of positive developments tool: place with regard to law enforcement in Iraqi Kurdistan once the Council of Ministers assumed its responsibilities in 7/1992. The political parties moved towards the unification of their respective armed and security forces to an agreed limit, and a centralized law enforcement structure was created with clear lines of accountability. [=] 10132. Amnesty International. Iraq: Human Rights Abuses in Iraqi Kurdistan Since 1991: Part 10: Chapter One: Historical and Political Context: The Promotion of Human Rights Work. New York: Amnesty International, February 28, 1995. MDE 14/01/95. [99H-11387] [19950228] Following the withdrawal of Iraqi Government forces from the region, political leaders publicly committed themselves to supporting human rights worlc, and in some instances initiated programs aimed at promoting human rights awareness. In 12/1991 the Kurdistan Human Rights Organization (KHRO: Rekkhrawi Mafi Mirov le Kurdistan; Munathamat Huquq al-Insanfi Kurdistani) was set up, with branches in Arbil, Duhok, Sulaimaniya and Kirkuk. [The Kirkuk branch of KHRO, based in Derbendikhan, began functioning in 12/1992.] Its membership was largely composed of lawyers, teachers, academics and other professionals, including doctors and engineers. The KHRO sought initially to document human rights violations perpetrated by Iraqi Government forces, but gradually extended its activity to cover abuses perpetrated by Kurdish groups. These activities included registering complaints by members of the public and intervening on their behalf with the Kurdish authorities; visiting acknowledged places of detention and bringing to the attention of the authorities complaints by detainees and convicted prisoners regarding their treatment in custody as well as the dire conditions prevailing in some prisons; and organizing seminars to promote human rights awareness among law enforcement personnel. From the start, however, the KHRO's work has been hampered by a dearth of members with any experience in the field of human rights and an acute shortage of funding and other resources. On another level, the organization's impartiality has been called into question as a result of some of its members or branches being perceived as too closely associated with either the KDP or PUK. The KHRO has also been riven by internal strife. These problems aside, however, it is evident that as the human rights situation in Iraqi Kurdistan deteriorated, the business of human rights investigation and protection became not only more difficult but also more risky. KHRO representatives increasingly complain to Amnesty International that both the political and administrative authorities rarely respond to interventions made on behalf of individual victims of human rights abuses or take serious steps to redress matters raised with them. More importantly, the increase in the number of unlawful and deliberate killings, particularly the assassination of political activists and members of the legal profession, has deterred committed human rights defenders from carrying out their tasks. Amnesty International is aware of several cases where individuals have been harassed, intimidated or threatened because of their human rights work. A variety of groups and associations have been set up in the past three years which are not involved in general human rights work but focus on promote the rights of women and specific groups of workers. Among the political parties, the KDP, PUK and IMIK have created their own human rights committees, specifically since the 5/1994 events. However, their work remains largely confined to documenting human rights abuses against their own members. Within the Kurdish administration, no mechanism or body with a human rights mandate has been established to date. In mid-1992, prior to the creation of the Council of Ministers, PUK leader Jalal Talabani told Amnesty International that the idea of creating a department within the Ministry of Justice to deal with human rights issues would be discussed by the IKF political leadership. No such department was subsequently created, however. There is also no parliamentary human rights committee within the National Assembly, although a number of parliamentarians have 10134. Amnesty International. Iraq: Human Rights Abuses in Iraqi Kurdistan Since 1991: Part 12: Chapter Two: Law Enforcement and the Prison System: The Ministry of Pesh Merga Affairs. New York: Amnesty International, February 28, 1995. MDE 14/01/95. [99H11389] [19950228] The Law of the Ministry for Pesh Mergo Affairs (No. 5 of 1992) was promulgated on 10/1/1992. [Decree No. 19, 10/1/1992, published in Perleman, Issue 4, 11/1992.] The main purpose of the Ministry is defined under Article 3(1) as "the defence of the unity of Iraqi Kurdistan, its territory and its people, from all aggression irrespective of its source." Article 4 provided for the appointment of a Committee for the Unification of Pesh Merga forces to work towards the recruitment and unification of these forces. Earlier, in 7/1992, the National Assembly had passed a decree allowing for the reinstatement to their former positions of military, police and security personnel who had been removed from their posts or transferred to civilian duties by the Iraqi authorities "because of their links with the Kurdish liberation movement" [Decree No. 3, 62 Kurdistan and the Kurds 7/29/1992, published in Perleman, Issue 1, 9/15/1992.] The following March, Law No. 8 of 1993 was passed, which allowed for the recruitment into the unified armed forces of veteran Pesh Merga officers, provided that they had not "deviated from the aims of the revolution and collaborated with the enemies of the Kurdish liberation movement". [Article 5 of Law No. 8 of 1993, promulgated by Decree No. 18, or 3/17/1993, published in perleman, Issue No. 10, 4/12/1993.] By 10/1993 the unified armed forces had reached some 35000 in number, according to the Minister for Pesh Merga Affairs, Jabbar Parman. He told Amnesty International at the time that the KDP and PUK had each contributed 15000 armed fighters, with the remaining 5000 coming from several smaller political parties. [According to KDP sources, the unified Pesh Merga forces never reached 35000. Amnesty International was told that the agreed target was 36000, but that the total number actually attained never exceeded 28000-29000. Of these, the ICDP and PUK had contributed 12000 fighters each, with the remainder coming from the smaller political parties.] A military college had been established in Qala Cholan (Sulaimaniya province) at the end of 1991, although this was essentially a PUK rather than an IKF establishment. The Ministry for Pesh Merga Affairs does not formally exercise jurisdiction over any prisons, although it has detention facilities for members of the armed forces accused of military offences. These facilities include cells located in or near the headquarters of the unified Pash Merga forces' Special Brigades (Liway Taybatilal-Alwiya alKhassa), which Amnesty International visited in 7/1994. Detainees have also been held on the Pesh Merga ministry's premises in Arbil. The procedures followed by the ministry with regard to the arrest, detention and trial of members of the unified Pesh Merga forces accused of having committed offences are said to be carried out in coordination with the Ministries of Justice and Interior. [=] penalty was provided under Iraqi law, some of which were carried out. At the same time, individual political parties retained their own system of law and order, detaining and interrogating suspects in their own prisons and detention centres and, in some cases, executing them. This system continued to operate after the withdrawal of Iraqi Government forces from most areas of Iraqi Kurdistan on 10/23/1991. However, the withdrawal brought under Kurdish administration the existing civil courts (including the criminal courts) in the cities of Arbil, Sulaimaniya and other areas, form the basis of a central judicial system for the region. These courts continued to function as before, operating alongside the special courts set up by the IKF. The IKF retained ultimate judicial authority for both the special courts and the criminal courts until the appointment of the Council of Ministers in 7/1992 and the creation of a Ministry of Justice. By November that year, all special courts had been abolished. [=] 10136. Amnesty International. Iraq: Human Rights Abuses in Iraqi Kurdistan Since 1991: Part 13: Chapter Two: Law Enforcement and the Prison System: The Ministry of Interior. New York: Amnesty International, February 28, 1995. MDE 14/01/95. [99H-11390] [19950228] The Law of the Ministry of Interior (No. 9 of 1993) was promulgated on 3/27/1993. [Decree No. 21 of 3/27/1993, published in POerleman, Issue No. 10, 4/1993.] Its areas of responsibility, as defined by Article 2, include the following: to protect the internal security of the Iraqi Kurdistan Region; to protect democratic liberties and human rights; to combat espionage, smuggling and infiltration; to protect the economy; and to prevent illegal entry into the region. The law enforcement personnel over which it has jurisdiction, the civilian police and the internal security forces, are a combination of former Pesh Merga fighters and former members of the police under the Iraqi Government. One of the first acts passed by the National Assembly was to bring "all checkpoints and the internal security forces" under the jurisdiction of a Ministry of Interior, effective from 7/15/1992. [Decree No. 1 of 7/15/1993, published in POerleman, Issue No. 1, 9/15/1992.] The Ministry of Interior is organized into six directorates, among them the General Police Directorate (Mudiriyyat al-Shurta al'Amma) and the General Security Directorate (Mudirlyyat al-Asayish al-'Amma), lmown as the Asayish. [The Asayish (literally, "security") forces are the official internal security forces in Iraqi Kurdistan and are henceforth referred to by that name.] The headquarters of both directorates are based in the city of Arbil, and it is to them that the police and the Asayish directorates in each of the four provinces are answerable. The Law of the Ministry of Interior does not spell out the range of crimes for which the police and the Asayish are responsible. In general, ordinary criminal offences are dealt with by the police while security offences, such as espionage and sabotage, as well as drug-trafficking, are dealt with by the Asayish. The police directorates in the provinces of Arbil, Duhok, Sulaimaniya and Kirkuk are organized along the same line. Initially, each police directorate consisted of three units with separate functions: the Emergency Police Directorate (Mudiriyyat Shurtat alNajda), the City Police Directorate (Mudiriyyat Shurtat al-Balda) and the Crime Combat Directorate (Mudirryyat Mukafahat al-Ijram). Each of these units had separate police stations in the principal administrative districts of the cities as well as in the provinces as a whole. The police stations of the City Police and Crime Combat directorateshad detention facilities where suspects were first heft upon arrest and where preliminary interrogation took place. Most of the allegations of torture and ill-treatment of criminal suspects at the hands of the police which have been reported by Amnesty International have emanated from police stations of the Crime Combat Directorate. Following changes in the organizational 10135. Amnesty International. Iraq: Human Rights Abuses in Iraqi Kurdistan Since 1991: Part 13: Chapter Three: The Judiciary and the Courts. New York: Amnesty International, February 28, 1995. MDE 14/01/95. [99H-11391] [19950228] Amnesty International is deeply concerned that the judicial system in Iraqi Kurdistan as established under Iraqi law and modified by legislation and practice since the withdrawal of Iraqi Government forces has been responsible for the unfair trials of political prisoners and the imposition of the death penalty, and has tolerated or facilitated torture and ill-treatment by the Kurdish administration authorities. The system of special courts using special procedures and practices, now abolished, and the susceptibility of judges in special courts to outside pressure has denied political prisoners the fundamental right to be tried by competent, independent and impartial courts. International standards which are particularly relevant include Articles 9 and 14 of the ICCPR, imposing safeguards against arbitrary detention and guaranteeing the right to fair trial before competent, independent and impartial courts, and the UN Basic Principles on the Independence of the Judiciary, providing that "[t]ribunals that do not use the duly established procedures of the legal process shall not be created to displace the jurisdiction belonging to the ordinary courts or tribunals". Amnesty International is also concerned that no measures have been taken to put an end to political interference with the administration of justice at all levels. The emergence of a central judicial system in Iraqi Kurdistan passed through several stages of development. During the seven months between the end of March and the third week of 10/991, judicial authority in areas which remained under Kurdish control was formally exercised by the IKF. This included the arrest, detention and interrogation of suspects; the establishment of special courts; the imprisonment of convicted prisoners; and the imposition of death sentences on prisoners convicted of crimes for which the death 63 Kurdistan and the Kurds structure of the police forces at the end of 1993, the functions of the three directorates were merged to a greater degree and their separate police stations brought under a more centralized command. Amnesty International was told that these changes were aimed at achieving greater efficiency ant better use of scarce resources. The Ministry of Interior is also responsible for the four main police prisons in Iraqi Kurdistan, which are in the cities of Duhok, Arbil and Sulaimaniya and the town of Derbendikhan. All were prisons when the region was under Iraqi Government control, and each continues to be known as the Detention and Deportations Prison (Sijn al-Mawqif wal-Tasfirat). [The police prison in Arbil is more commonly known as Sijn al-Mahatta (the Station Prison).] There are, in addition, smaller prisons or detentdon facilides run by the police in the major towns and some rural areas. Both convicted prisoners and detainees awaiting trial on criminal charges are held in these prisons, including women and children. The authorities claim that lack of resources has prevented the construction of separate prisons for these two latter groups. Prisoners sentenced to death are also held there, and executions are carried out on the premises. The Asayish forces were formally set up in 10/1992, five months before they were legally established under the Law of the Ministry of Interior. They were said to have started functioning effectively in 1/1993 following the appointment of Karim Sinjari, a civilian, as head of the General Security Directorate. [Karim Sinjan is a member of KDP Central Committoc. He remained General Director of the Asayish until the end of 4/1994, when he was suceeded by Ghazi al-Zebari, formaly the KDP's representatve in Syria.] The Asayish are dso organized into four directorates, one for each province. [There is, in addition, a sepante directorate dealing with matters relating to residence, passports and travel.] With the exception of Duholc Asayish Directorate, and are headed by civilians. Each consists of several units, [Not all directorates have established the same range of units, apparently owing to lack of resources.] including: the Political Unit (al-Shu'ba al-Sbassbya), the Legal Unit (al-Shutba al-Qanuiyya), the Economic Unit (at-Shu'ba al-Iqtisadiyya), the Information Unit (Shu'bat al-l'Iamn) and the Residence and Travel Unit (Shu'bat alIqama wal-Safar). In addition to the main urban centres, Asayish personnel are also stationed in the main administrative tistricts, but not in all subtistricts or villages. Karim Sinjaritold Amnesty International that Asayish members sre recruited on the basis of their "trustworthiness", which he ~aid ruled out individuals who had been members of the Ba'th Party or who had served the Iraqi Government in any capacity. He added that while he deemed this policy to be ~contrary to human rights principles., the Kurdish administration could not afford at this stage to place its trust in people who had been linlced to the central authorities in Baghdad. The image presented by Karim Sinjari of Asayish personnel does not appear to be shared by wide sectors of the Kurdish population. Amnesty International has received numerous and persistent complaints suggesting that the Asayish abuse their authority, harass and intimidate civilians, and commit other abuses with impunity. Asayish personnel are said to receive some basic training, including lectures run by representatives of the judiciary on the provisions of the Penal Code and Code of Criminal Procedure. To Amnesty International's knowledge, the training provided had no human rights content. The organization provided Karim Sinjari with copies of the UN Code of Conduct for Law Enforcement Officials, urging that it form part of the training of Asayish personnel and that immediate steps be taken to ensure its implementation. Karim Sinjari subsequently provided Amnesty International with a copy of a letter he had sent to all Asayish directorates, asking the officials in charge to ensure that all personnel are made aware of the provisions of the Code. However, no measures to follow this up are known to have been taken. Karim Sinjari said there were plans to provide for more intensive training in 1994 by running courses of at least three months' duration. Amnesty International does not have details of these courses and therefore cannot assess their potential usefulness. Formally, the two main areas of jurisdiction of the Asayish are economic crimes and political crimes. The former include smuggling and illegal fixing of prices, and the latter focus principally on acts of terrorism, sabotage and espionage. Karim Sinjari told Amnesty International that the Asayish have also been involved in gathering intelligence on incidents involving assassinations, politically-motivated or otherwise, and that such information was then transmitted to the police who have prime responsibility for investigating such crimes. In various areas of crime combat, conflicts between the police and Asayish forces emerged soon after the latter were set up. A number of police officers complained to Amnesty International that the Asayish frequently interfered in their affairs, namely by arresting, detaining and interrogating individuals suspected of having committed crimes which were clearly not within their jurisdiction. in such cases, suspects were said to be frequently arrested without a warrant and kept in detention without judicial supervision of their cases. Amnesty International raised this matter with Karim Sinjari in 10/1993. He conceded that the Asayish had indeed interfered in police matters "in the early days", but that these problems had been largely resolved following a series of meetings with police chiefs. He commented, however, that the police apparatus in Iraqi Kurdistan was "old" and that the "enthusiasm. found among the newly-established Asayish forces was not shared by the police. He said that police personnel were often "not prepared to go out at night" when called to the scene of a crime, and "not as willing as the Asayish to make sacrifices" when combatting crime. Such considerations, he maintained, had led the Asayish to act in areas outside their jurisdiction. This assertion was rejected outright by representatives of the police to whom Amnesty International spoke, and is not substantiated by the organization's findings about the abuse of authority by the Asayish. The arrest and detention procedures followed by Asayish personnel are said by the authorities to conform with Iraq's Penal Code and Code of Criminal Procedure. However, Amnesty International has received numerous reports of the violation of these laws by the Asayish. These include the torture and ill-treatment of detainees and the denial of their legal rights. Suspects in the custody of the Asayish are normally held in one of the four main prisons under their jurisdiction in the provinces of Arbil, Duhok, Sulaimaniya and Kirkuk. The prison buildings are, for the most part, adjoining the headquarters of the respective Asayish directorates, and range in sue from a large facility accommodating several hundred inmates to one or two cells. The headquarters of the General Asayish Directorate in Arbil also has separate detention facilities, vvhere political and other detainees are held. In the provincial districts, Asayish centres have short-term facilities which are used to hold suspects before their transfer to the main prisons in the cities. The prisons run by the civilian police and the Asayish can be described as the "official" prisons in Iraqi Kurdistan. The Kurdish authorities have granted international humanitarian organizations, notably the International Committee of the Red Cross (ICRC), regular access to these places of detention. All requests made by Amnesty International for access to these prisons have also been granted to date. Most are severely overcrowded, which has meant that sentenced prisoners have been held with detainees awaiting trial juveniles have shared cells with adult, and female detainees have not had separate facilities. In 12/1992 Amnesty International was told that the National Assembly had approved plans for a new central prison in the Khalifan region to alleviate overcrowding,.improve conditions of detention and create separate detention facilities for the various 64 Kurdistan and the Kurds categories of inmates. No such prison has been constructed to date. In 7/1994 the Minister of Interior told Amnesty International that a decision had been taken to convert a disused tobacco factory in Arbil into a central prison, and expressed optimism that the decision would be implemented. [=] By 10/1991 all the sector courts had been abolished and replaced with the Supreme Kurdistan Court (Mahkamat Kurdistan al-'Uba), which became the highest judicial body in the Kurdish-controlled region. Article 1 of Decree No. 3035 issued by the IKF's Political Leadership Acting Body on 10/5/1991 defined the competence of this court as follows: hearing all cases of a criminal nature, except cases referred to the Supreme Special Court for the Revolution (alMahiama al-'Ulya al-Khassa lil-Thawra, which was set up one month later - see below); in a cessation capacity, reviewing all judgments issued in civil cases, and in which the court's decisions were final; and appointing judges and taking disciplinary measures against them. Article 2 stipulated that all sentences passed in criminal cases by the Supreme Kurdistan Court be reviewed by cessation by a General Body (al-Hay 'a al-'Amma) of the court. The decisions of the General Body were final except in death penalty cases where sentences had to be upheld by the IKF. The Supreme Kurdistan Court sat in Sheqlawa and had a threemember bench. All criminal cases which were left pending when the sector courts were abolished were referred to this court. Its president, Nuri Isma'il Nanakali, told Amnesty International in 5/1992 that the court applied existing Iraqi legislation, namely the Code of Criminal Procedure and the Penal Code. He admitted that some of the provisions of these laws had on occasion been violated, particularly regarding the treatment of detainees during pre-trial detention. Amnesty International had in fact received numerous reports of gross irregularities before the Supreme Kurdistan Court at all stages of its proceedings, which were conducted in camera. These included the torture or ill-treatment of detainees (including minors) during interrogation to extract "confessions"; the acceptance of such "confessions" as the sole basis for securing a conviction; the conduct of trials in the absence of defence lawyers; and the denial of the right to appeal on points of fact. The court reportedly passed numerous teeth sentences, although officials did not provide Amnesty International with reliable and precise data on this. Nuri Isma'il Nanakali told the organization that the first three teeth sentences passed by this court were carried out publicly by firing squad in 10/1991, and that death sentences passed thereafter were carried out in secret. Among the delegations received was that the decision to sentence prisoners to death and to execute them was, in some cases, taken on political grounds. Political considerations were also said to have influenced the court's decisions to impose fines rather than terms of imprisonment. In early 11/1991, one month after the establishment of the Supreme Kurdistan Court, another special court was set up. The Supreme Special Court for the Revolution (al-Makhana al-Ulya alKhassa lil-Thawra) reportedly came into being to hear cases of a "special" or "dangerous" nature. [Amnesty International was unable to obtain the text of the IKP decree by which the court was set up which may have defined its areas of competence.] These included espionage and sabotage as well as other offences of a political nature. The court sat in Sheqlawa and had a five-member bench. In theory, it followed the provisions of the Code of Criminal Procedure and the Penal Code. In practice, its proceedings reportedly did not meet the most basic standards for fair trial, including those contained in Iraqi legislation. Trials before the court were said to have been summary in the extreme and were characterized by the same irregularities described above with respect to the Supreme Kurdistan Court. In addition, it was widely perceived as a "political court" in the sense that its decisions were seen as based on political rather than legal considerations. There were also numerous cases where detainees who were affiliated to one or other of the political parties were reportedly released outside the framework of the law in exchange for large sums of money (euphemistically referred to as "fines"). This was said to 10137. Amnesty International. Iraq: Human Rights Abuses in Iraqi Kurdistan Since 1991: Part 14: Chapter Three: The Judiciary and the Courts: The Special Courts. New York: Amnesty International, February 28, 1995. MDE 14/01/95. [99H-11392] [19950228] One of the major decisions taken by the IKF in 1991 was to establish special courts, which had special procedures in practice, in an attempt to introduce law and order to those areas which remained under Kurdish control after the uprising was crushed. To Amnesty International's knowledge, the first special court was set up in Diyana (Soran district) at the instigation of Karim Sinjari, who was the IKF's representative In that area at the time. The decision to establish this court was taken in mid-4/1991 and the IKF Court (Mahkamat alJabha), as it came to be known, came into being shortly after. Its bench consisted of seven judges, all said to be graduates of the University of Baghdad's Law College. The court heard both criminal and security cases and its sentences were said to have been ratified by the IKF representative in the area. There was no right of appeal to a higher court. Several other local IKF courts were set up along similar lines in other areas, including Sheqlawa and Rania. Little information is available to Amnesty International on the functioning of the IKF courts, which were said by officials to have applied existing Iraqi legislation. However, Amnesty International has received various reports, including from individuals closely connected with the courts, suggesting that corruption and political interference at a high level influenced some of the courts' decisions. Allegations included the acceptance of bribes by some members of the courts' benches, as well as numerous attempts by IKF officials to interfere in individual cases, particularly by trying to secure the release of certain detainees affiliated to one or other of the political parties. The IKF courts were short-lived. In mid-5/1991 the IKF decided to set up a new judicial structure for the Kurdish-controlled areas. The task of overseeing the implementation and functioning of this new judicial system was entrusted to a senior IKF official, Qader 'Aziz Jabbari, who is currently the Minister of Justice. These areas were divided into four sectors (mahawir), each having a principal court: the Arbil Sector Court, which sat in Sheqlawa; the Sulaimaniya Sector Court, which sat in Qala Cholan; the Duhok Sector Court, which sat in al-Qadesh; and the Gannian Sector Court, which sat in amountainous region on the outskirts of the town of Kifri. [Kifri and other neighboring towns were under Iraqi Government control at the time.] The presidency of each was responsible for the judicial supervision of a number of lower courts which were also set up within each sector to hear different kinds of cases. These lower courts were said to include a Criminal Court, a Court of First Instance, a Misdemeanor Court, an Investigation Court and a Personal Status Court. In 5/1992 Nuri Ismatil Nanakali, [Nuri Ismatil Nanakali was assassinated in 11/1994] formerly President of the Arbil Sector Court, told Amnesty International that the sector courts applied existing Iraqi legislation, with the exception of those provisions ~affecting the liberty and security of individuals.. Again, little information is available to Amnesty International on the functioning of the sector courts. However, the organization has received reports suggesting that they too were characterized by grave procedural irregularities, and subjected to interference by various political parties. Some of the allegations appeared to implicate several judges in the torture or illtreatment of detainees, and in the clandestine release of detainees for political, financial or other motives. 65 Kurdistan and the Kurds have been an accepted practice, and that in fact there was a verbal agreement between the parties in the IKF to that effect. Numerous death sentences were said to have been imposed by this court but officials did not provide Amnesty International with accurate data in this regard. The IKF's political Leadership Acting Body, according to one of its members, had ratified "tens" of death sentences passed by this court during the four months of its existence. The extent of political interference in the affairs of the court was believed to be the principal reason behind its paralysis towards the end of 1/1992, when conflict arose between the KDP and PUK over a particular case. This coincided with the death of the President of the court, 'Umar Mustafa, at the end of that month during the PUK's First Conference. The Supreme Special Court for the Revolution became virtually defunct, although it was not abolished for a further two months. In the interim, the ordinary criminal courts in the cities of Arbil, Sulaimaniya and Duhok gradually took on more cases. This, together with the improved security situation in the region and the partial restoration of law and order, led the IKF to abolish the Supreme Kurdistan Court on 1/28/1992. All cases pending before this court were referred to the Supreme Special Court for the Revolution, which was in turn abolished at the end of 2/1992. Nonetheless, and despite the existence of fully functioning criminal courts, the IKF leadership continued to believe in the necessity of having a special court to hear cases of a security and political nature. On 3/19/1992 the IKP's Political Leadership Acting Body decided to establish a Special Court for the Revolution (al-Makkama al-Khassa lil-Thawra), and Decree No. 281 was issued to that effect on 22 March. The court sat in Arbil, using an office located in a prison attached to the city's former Police Directorate. Its bench consisted of three civilian judges, all said to be graduates of the Law College. Cases of a political and security nature which were pending when the Supreme Special Court for the Revolution was abolished were referred to this court. As far as Amnesty International is aware, no other decree was issued by the IKF setting out the areas of competence of this court, which was essentially the Supreme Special Court for the Revolution with a new name and bench. [The decree authorizing the establishment of thi' court referrod to it as the "Special Court for the Revolution", while the decree which abolished in in 11/1992 referrod to it as the "Supreme Court for the Revolution."] The decree of 3/22/1992 stated, however, that the court would be charged with examining cases referred [to it] by the political leadership~. Its President, Faruq Jamil, told Amnesty International at the end of 5/1/992 that the court was temporary, and was set up during a transitional period to hear cases of a security nature. These were said to iinclude espionage, sabotage and other activity deemed to be prejudicial to "the security of the revolution." Such acts were deemed to have been carried out principally by agents of the Iraqi Government operating in the region. Amnesty International was told that the court followed legal procedures set out in Iraq's Code of Criminal Procedure and Penal Code, and that no exceptional powers had been grantedto the court which overrode the provisions of these laws. Preliminary investigations into offences of a security nature were usually carried out by a security committee within the IKP before being referred to the court, although in some cases such investigations were initiated by the civilian police and then referred to the court once it transpired that the offences were of a security nature. Faruq Jamil stated that the legal rights of detainees were respected once they were referred to the court. An investigating judge was appointed to examine their cases and to renew their detention periods as necessary in accordance with the Code of Criminal Procedure. He added that detainees were granted access to defence lawyers? who presented their clients' defence on two assigned days of the week; that no torture or ill-treatment was used against them; and that, with the exception of cases involving crimes of a "moral" nature, all trial sessions were held in public. However, the verdicts and sentences of the court were final and convicted prisoners had no right of appeal, even in death penalty cases. Amnesty International then met the court's two assistant judges. The organization was told that about 80 prisoners had been convicted by the Supreme Special Court for the Revolution in Shaqlawa on various criminal charges, including murder, robbery and forgery. There were also some 60 detainees arrested mainly in 1991 who had not been tried by that court when it was abolished, as well as 15 other detainees charged with security offences. The prison's register showed that 230 inmates had been entered up to 5/29/1992. Those convicted were serving prison terms ranging from one year to life for both security and ordinary crimes. Amnesty International was offered unrestricted access to the inmates, and was allowed to examine sample files of both convicted prisoners and detainees awaiting trial and to photograph some of these documents. It was clear that in some cases proceedings had been summary, and that some defendants had been tried and convicted without any legal representation. One of the court's assistant judges admitted to Amnesty International that some defendants had not had a defence lawyer, particularly those charged with espionage or sabotage and who were suspected of being agents of the Iraqi Government. He said that it was not the court's policy to deny defendants this basic right; rather, very few lawyers were willing to defend them owing to the nature of the charges. [Nevertheless, Article 14(3) of the ICCPR required the court in a criminal case to assign counsel to defendants who are unable to obtain a lawyer.] Amnesty International was subsequently told by other members of the judiciary that trials before this court were, in fact, held in camera. The torture or ill-treatment of detainees during pre-trial detention was "aid to be routine" and "confessions" extracted under such circumstances were used to secure convictions. The Special Court for the Revolution continued to operate until it was abolished by the National Assembly in mid-11/1992. [Decree No. 35 of 11/14/1992, published in Perleman, Issue No. 6, second half of 12/1992.] The decree which abolished it stated that all sentences handed down by the court would be enforced by virtue of acquiring legal validity through the IKF, which possessed defacto authority at the time (Article 2); that all criminal cases settled by the court would be referred for review to the Court of Cassation for the Kurdistan Region upon its establishment (Article 3); [The provisions of Article 3 also applied to cases involving disputes over land ownership.] and that all cases in which no rulings had been passed by the court would be referred to the Ministry of Justice for distribution to the competent courts (Article 4). Although the Court of Cassation for the Kurdistan Region was established by law in 12/1992 and became functional in mid-1/1993, as far as Amnesty International is aware no cases from these special courts were referred to it for review for at least six months. It was only in late 7/1993 that the new Minister of Justice, Qader 'Aziz Jabbari, announced the appointment of a three-member committee to sort through cases and refer them to the competent courts. [Order No. 2/3/203 issued by the Minstry of Justice on 7/24/1993. The three member committee composed of an invatigating judge and two judicial investigators.] In 10/1993 the investigating judge who headed the committee told Amnesty International that of the hundreds of cases being examined by the committee, 274 involved criminal offences where sentences had been passed by the Special Court for the Revolution. He added that there were no death sentences among them. Of the 274 cases, 250 had already been referred to the Court of Cassation. [Amnesty International has obtained, from nonofficial sources, a partial list of some 70 defendants arrested in the period 5/1991-3/1992 and convicted by the special courts for a variety 66 Kurdistan and the Kurds of offenses under Iraq's Penal Code. These included offenses against the external security of the state (Articles 157, 158, 164, and 167), and common criminal offenses such as robbery (Articles 443 and 444), rape (Article 393) and premeditated murder (Articles 405 and 406). Custodial sentences handed down by the courts ranged from two years to life, but of the 35 defendants from this group convicted of premeditated murder, four had been sentenced to death under Article 406.] He said the Court of Cassation would quash sentences in cases where errors in the legal procedures followed were identified, and uphold sentences where no errors were found. The President of the Court of Cassation, Judge Rashid 'Abd alQader Salim, took a different view. In 10/1993 he told Amnesty International that even in cases where the legal procedures followed were deemed to have been unfair, the sentences would be upheld as "they fell outside the framework of any review." He pointed out that the number of such cases was very small, and that the sentences passed were on the whole commensurate with the crimes committed. He added that the National Assembly could issue a partial or general amnesty if it felt that the sentences passed by the special courts were too harsh. The task facing the Court of Cassation in reviewing the cases referred to it from the special courts is by no means easy. Indeed it is potentially a highly sensitive matter. The extent of political corruption which characterized these courts from the start, and the fact that most, if not all, political parties were reportedly heavily implicated in perverting the course of justice for their own interests explains, in the view of some members of the legal profession, the apparent reluctance of the Court of Cassation to delve too deeply into the hundreds of cases referred to it for review following the abolition of the special courts. These factors may also explain some of the obstacles encountered by Amnesty International in obtaining, particularly from official sources, access to court documentation pertaining to the period 10/1991-11/1992. Amnesty International has three main concerns in this area: (a) that an unknown number of defendants, in both criminal and political cases, were executed following manifestly unfair trials while others remain under sentence of death; (b) that the legal procedures followed during pre-trial detention and before the courts were manifestly unfair in political cases and cases where death sentences were imposed, and that those convicted may be executed or serve long terms of imprisonment if their sentences are upheld by cessation, without having had an effective right of appeal; and (c) that the current Kurdish administration apparently does not intend to initiate investigations into past abuses relating to the special courts with a view to bringing those responsible to justice. This is particularly regrettable as Amnesty International believes there was a genuine desire by the Kurdish leadership in the aftermath of the 3/1991 uprising to establish a judicial mechanism as part of its overall efforts to maintain law and order in areas under its control. The IKF's efforts were hampered by a dearth of qualified and experienced judges and other members of the legal profession, many of whom had remained in Arbil and Sulaimaniya following the return of Iraqi government forces after the crushing of the uprising. Information obtained by Amnesty International suggests that while some of the judges who sat on the special courts' benches whether politically independent or affiliated - endeavored to resist interference in the courts' affairs by political parties, others were more amenable. Moreover, the political parties perceived such judges as their "representatives" on the benches through whom they could obtain the release of some detainees or the conviction of others. The continuing lack of respect displayed by the political parties for the independence of the judiciary and for the laws which they themselves helped to promulgate, has served to undermine many of the positive judicial measures adopted in the past two years (described below). Indeed, in Amnesty International's view, the single most significant threat to the indepentence of the judiciary in Iraqi Kurdistan today remains the interference on the part of some political parties - whether through brute force or more subtle means. It constitutes one of the root causes of many of the human rights abuses described in this report. [=] 10138. Amnesty International. Iraq: Human Rights Abuses in Iraqi Kurdistan Since 1991: Part 15: Chapter Three: The Judiciary and the Courts: The Ordinary Criminal Courts. New York: Amnesty International, February 28, 1995. MDE 14/01/95. [99H-11393] [19950228] The obstacles facing the judiciary in making the ordinary courts functional again after 10/1991 were enormous, given the prevailing conditions. Many court documents, including those pertaining to the criminal investigation of suspects, had been burned or destroyed during the 3/1991 uprising. Many criminal suspects had escaped during the uprising: some were later rearrested by Kurdish law enforcement personnel (particularly those charged with murder and other serious offences), and fresh investigations had to be launched into their cases. This added to the already huge burden facing the courts, created by the high incidence of new cases arising in a region where law and order had not been fully restored. Nevertheless, the extent to which the judicial system became functional, the speed with which this was achieved and, more importantly, the fact that it acquired legitimacy in the eyes of the population, represented an important step forward. Courts which existed under the Iraqi Government continued to function under Kurdish administration. These included the Criminal Courts (Mahakim al-Jinayat) in the cities of Arbil, Dohuk and Sulaimaniya, the Court of Appeal (Mahiamat al-Istinaf) in Arbil, as well as other specialized courts, such as the Juvenile Courts (Mahakim al-Ahdath). [Other courts included the Misdemeanour Courts (Mahakim alJunah) and the Personal Status Courts (Mahakim al-Ahwal alShakhsiyya).] The ordinary criminal courts tried defendants charges with capital offences as well as political detainees charged with security offences. According to members of the judiciary with whom Amnesty International held discussions in 5-6/1992, the courts continued to apply Iraq's Code of Criminat Procedure and the Penal Code, with the exception of certain provisions deemed to violate minimum human rights standards - the so-called "Saddamist" aspects of these laws. According to the Code of Criminat Procedure, criminal suspects can only Se arrested on the basis of arrest warrants issued by an investigating judge. Initially the suspects are held at a police station for 24 hours, after which they must be referred to the investigating judge or released. Upon referral, the suspects' statements are recorded in writing by the investigating judge, who then decides whether to release them unconditionally or on bail, or to detain them for a further 15 days. If the detention period is renewed, the suspects are transferred from the police station to an officially recognized prison. To allow investigations into alleged offences to be completed, the detentionperiod of suspects can be repeatedly extended by the investigating judge for 15 days at a time, provided that the total period of detention does not exceed six months. If the investigations are not completed within that period, permission for a further extension must be obtained from the criminal court, which can order the continued detention of suspects for further periods at its discretion. Iraqi legislation does not set a maximum limit to the period during which suspects may be legally detained, which can effectively lead to the indefinite detention without charge or trial of suspects. [Amnesty International understands, however, that in ordinary criminal cases, the accepted norm in the criminal courts is that the periods for which suspects may be detained beyond the six-month limit should not 67 Kurdistan and the Kurds exceed a further 90 days.] It has not been possible for Amnesty International to assess the extent to which the provisions of the Code of Criminal Procedure were applied in all cases brought to its attention. In May 1992 the then President of the Court of Appeal, Ma'ruf Ra'uf Khadr (who was later to become Iraqi Kurdistan's first Minister of Justice), [Ma'ruf Ra'uf Khadr was appointed Minister of Justice in 8/1992. He held the post until 4/1993, when he was replaced by Qader 'Aziz Muhammad Jabbari.] told Amnesty International that legal procedures were being applied as strictly as prevailing conditions allowed. He gave Amnesty International access to sample files he had selected pertaining to ongoing investigations into the cases of detainees accused of ordinary criminal offences. In these cases, provisions of the Code of Criminal Procedure appeared to have been followed. Several investigating judges gave Amnesty International similar assurances, although it was recognized that improvements in certain areas needed to be made. Matruf Ratuf Khadr conceded, for example, that there were still inordinate delays in bringing defendants to trial. This was borne out during a visit by Amnesty International to al-Mahatta Prison in Arbil in 5/1992. Of the 238 inmates, some of whom had been charged with capital offences, eight were convicted prisoners while the rest were awaiting trial. The prison director told Amnesty International that a number of them had been awaiting trial for many months, and that in the case of one female detainee, the delay had exceeded 10 months. He said that additional time was needed to "check the background of suspects", a task made difficult by the absence of centralized data on individuals which had been removed by Iraqi government officials when they withdrew in 10/1991. He insisted, however, that in other respects procedures were being followed, stating that no detainees were admitted into the prison except in accordance with arrest warrants issued by the competent authorities, and that they were permitted unrestricted access to defence counsel. He showed Amnesty International the prison's register of lawyers' visits, which indicated that lawyers had made visits to the prison at varying times of the day and on different days of the week. One important area where the provisions of the Code of Criminal Procedure were not adequately applied was the investigation of complaints of torture and ill-treatment of detainees. This remains one of Amnesty International's major concerns with regard to the human rights situation in Iraqi Kurdistan (see Chapter 4). At the same time, Amnesty International recognizes the positive role played by the judiciary and some law enforcement personnel in attempting to adhere to the law with respect to arrest, detention and trial procedures. Their task was made that much more difficult because they were operating amid administrative and political chaos and with virtually no resources. More importantly, Amnesty International believes that the gradual emergence of a central judicial system which was not formally controlled by the executive authorities was instrumental in affording protection, albeit partial, to detainees held in acknowledged places of detention. The situation altered significantly after the 5/1992 parliamentary elections and the appointment of a Council of Ministers in 6/1992. The legislative authorities, represented in the National Assembly, became formally separated from the executive authorities in the region for the first time. All laws, legislative decrees and orders which have since come into force were debated and passed by the National Assembly and published in the official gazette, Perleman. [Perleman is published by the Kurdistan National Assembly on a monthly or bi-monthly basis in both Kurdish and Arabic. The first issue appeared on 9/15/1992.] In 11/1992 a Ministry of Justice Law (No. 12 of 1992) [Decree No. 38 of 11/21/1992, published in Perleman, Issue No. 6, second half of 12/1992.] was promulgated, defining the administrative structure of the ministry and its judicial mechanisms. Article 2 of this law states that the ministry's objective is: "to secure justice through the development and implementation of laws and respect for their provisions, both in letter and spirit, such that the principle of the independence of the judiciary is upheld, and to defend human rights in accordance with the Universal Declaration of Human Rights and international human rights declarations and treaties." In the latter half of 1992, the National Assembly passed other legislation which had a direct bearing on the judiciary. Among these was a decree addressing the question of the status of laws passed by the Iraqi Government in Baghdad and the extent of their applicability to Iraqi Kurdistan. Decree No. 11 of 8/31/1992 states: "AIl ministries, and associations in the Kurdistan Region not linked to a ministry, shall examine the laws, decrees, regulations and directives issued by the central authorities to identify what is not compatible with the welfare of the people of Kurdistan and shall submit these to the National Assembly for a decision on the legitimacy or otherwise of their enforceability in the Region. (Article 1) No laws, decrees, regulations and directives which were issued or which will be issued by the central government authorities after the withdrawal of the government administration from the Kurdistan Region on 23/10/1991 shall be enforced except after the legitimacy of their enforceability had been confirmed by the Kurdistan National Assembly." (Article 2) To Amnesty International's knowledge, no legislation passed by the Iraqi Government since 10/23/1991 has been enforced in Iraqi Kurdistan. As for legislation passed before that date, the National Assembly has apparently issued a decree specifying the laws which would not be enforced in the region. [This decree was not published in the official gazette and Amnesty International has not had the opportunity to examine it.] None of the laws or decrees which fall into this category has been formally repealed; members of the judiciary told Amnesty International that they are simply not enforced. Several members of the National Assembly's Legal Committee took the view that those laws, or specific articles within them, which were deemed "incompatible with the welfare of the people of Kurdistan" could not be repealed since the legal authority for such a measure did not exist in Iraqi Kurdistan. They told Amnesty International that the formal repeal of laws requires a republican decree (marsum jumhunri) by a "head of state" or, in the case of Iraqi Kurdistan, a regional decree (marsum iqlimi) by a "regional leader". In the absence of such a legal authority, any legislation deemed unsuitable would simply have to be "frozen" until further notice. Among the laws which have been "frozen" is the Judicial Organization Law (No. 160 of 1979), which in 12/1992 was replaced with the Judicial Authority Law (No. 14 of 1992). [Decree No. 44 of 12/28/1992, published in Perleman, Issue No. 7, 1/1993.] An assessment of this new law and the extent to which it meets Internationally recognized standards is not included in this report. However, its promulgation was significant in several respects: it affirmed the independence of the judiciary, it formally separated the judicial and executive authorities in the region, and it attempted to improve the employment rights of judges as well as regulating their appointment. Equally significantly, the promulgation of the judicial Authority Law closed a gap in the legal system which arose from the severance of links between the courts in Iraqi Kurdistan and those in government-controlled Iraq after 10/1991. The gap was the unavailability of a Court of Cassation to service the region: Iraq has one Court of Cassation which sits in Baghdad. Sentences passed by the criminal courts in Duhok, Arbil and Sulaimaniya and upheld by the Court of Appeal, and which require review by cessation, could therefore be taken no further. This also applied to death sentences, which under Iraqi law are automatically referred to the Court of Cassation. In 12/1992 the then Minister of Justice, Matruf Ra'uf Khadr, told Amnesty International that unsuccessful attempts had been made 68 Kurdistan and the Kurds earlier that year to have a number of cases reviewed by the Court of Cassation in Baghdad. Files pertaining to several cases were dispatched to the court, requesting a ruling on them. They were returned with a note attached, saying: "We do not deal with saboteurs". The necessity of a law authorizing the creation of a Court of Cassation for Iraqi Kurdistan was therefore one of the main driving forces behind the promulgation of the Judicial Authority Law. In addition to this court, Article 8 of the law identifies eight other types of courts, most of which were already functioning. These include the Courts of Appeal (Afahahm al-Isn'naf) and the Criminal Courts (Mahatim al-Jingyot). [The other six types of civil courts are: Court of Personal Status (Mahakim al-Ahwal al-Shakhsiyya), Labour Court (Mahakim al-Amal), Investigation Courts (Mahakim al-Tahqiq), Court of First Instance, (Mahatkim al-Bada'a), Misdemeanour Court (Mahakim al-Junah) and the Juvenile Courts (Mahatin al-Ahdath).] Article 5 establishes Kurdish as the language of the courts, [Interpreters are provided for non-Kurdish speakers.] and Article 6 states that all trial sessions will be held in public unless the court decides otherwise "out of regard for decency or to safeguard public order". In all cases, the explanation of the courts' rulings must be held in public session. The Court of Cassation for Iraqi Kurdistan sits in Arbil, and its bench is composed of a president and six judges, the minimum number stipulated in Article 9. It began functioning formally on 18 January 1993. The Judicial Authority Law also created two appeal districts (mananq isti'nafiyya) - Arbil and Kirkuk - thus providing for the establishment of two Courts of Appeal. One sits in Arbil and serves the Arbil and Dohuk regions, and the other sits in DerbendiLhan and serves the Kirkuk and Sulaimaniya regions. [After the 5/1994 events, the Kirkuk Court of Appeal was transferred to the city of Sulaimaniya.] Each has a four-member bench. Finally, Article 31 provides for the creation of a Judicial Council (Majlis al-Qada'), [The Judicial Council replaced the Justice Council (Majlis al-'Adl) which existed prior to the Iraqi Government's withdrawal from the region and which was headed by the Minister of Justice.] headed by the President of the Court of Cassation with seven other members selected from senior members of the judiciary. The Judicial Council meets at least once a month, provided that at least three quarters of its members are present. Its decisions are carried by majority vote. Article 32 defines its areas of responsibility, which include the promotion, transfer and reinstatement of judges, and the investigation of their conduct and competence, as well as the supervision of the independence of the judiciary. The Judicial Council also makes recommendations to the Minister of Justice regarding the appointment of judges to the Courts of Appeal. A three-member committee within the Judicial Council, known as the Judges' Affairs Committee (Lajnat Shu'un al-Hukkam), is responsible for looking into disciplinary measures against judges. [To Amnesty International's knowledge, two cases had been referred to the Judges' Affairs Committee by 7/1994 but no details on them were available at the time of writing] Decisions taken in this regard by the committee can be appealed against (by the judge in question or by the Minister of Justice) within 30 days to the Enlarged Committee (al-Hay'a alMuwassa'a) of the Court of Cassation. The decisions of this committee are final. The only courts functioning in Iraqi Kurdistan at present are the civilian courts. However, legislation currently in force in the region does allow for the setting up of other courts, and some officials within the Kurdish administration have expressed support for additional courts to hear cases which they believe the existing criminal courts cannot cope with, or which are not within their proper competence. For example, Article 24(2) of the Judicial Authority Law allows for the establishment of a second criminal court within the same province, the competence of which is decided by the Minister of Justice. In 10/1993 the then General Director of the Asayish, Karim Sinjari, told Amnesty International that he had requested the setting up of an additional criminal court to hear cases of a security nature. He said this was necessitated by the backlog of cases awaiting referral to the existing courts and the resulting delays in bringing defendants to trial. He maintained that he had secured agreement to his proposal from the National Assembly, the Prime Minister and the Minister of Justice, but that no practical steps had been taken towards its implementation. Article 3(9) of the Law for the Ministry of Interior provides for the establishment of an Internal Security Forces Court (Mahkamat Quwa al-Amn al-Dakhili), its competence being to hear cases in which both parties are members of the police or Asayish forces. However, no such court has been set up to date. The only military court which current legislation allows for is a Military Court of Cassation (Mahkamat al-Tamyiz al-Askariyya), [Article 4(4) of the Law of the Ministry of Pesh Merga Affairs.] but to date no such court has been set up. The Minister for Pesh Merga Affairs told Amnesty International in 10/1993 that he favoured the setting up of military courts to try members of the unified Pesh Merga forces accused of offences under Iraq's Military Penal Code (No. 13 of 1940 as amended). He stated that disciplinary measures were taken by the ministry with regard to less serious offences, following the provisions of Iraq's Military Code of Criminal Procedure (No. 44 of 1941 as amended). However, for serious crimes punishable with custodial sentences, accused members of the armed forces are currently referred to the Ministry of Justice in coordination with the Ministry of Interior, and tried before the ordinary criminal courts. This practice is in accordance with Iraqi law, which allows for military personnel to be tried before civilian courts where no military courts exist. [=] 10139. Amnesty International. Iraq: Human Rights Abuses in Iraqi Kurdistan Since 1991: Part 16: Chapter Four: Human Rights Abuses By The Kurdish Administration. New York: Amnesty International, February 28, 1995. MDE 14/01/95. [99H-11394] [19950228] Amnesty International has two main areas of concern regarding human rights abuses by the Kurdish administration. First, there is routine torture and ill-treatment of detainees and the continuing failure of the Kurdish authorities to investigate allegations of torture and ill-treatment promptly and impartially, to bring to justice those responsible, compensate and rehabilitate victims and take other effective steps to prevent these abuses. Second, Amnesty International is deeply concerned about the use of the death penalty, often after unfair trials. Most victims are common law detainees, who are usually held in police custody, and political detainees accused of security offences, who are usually held in Asayish custody. Relatively few political activists are held in police or Asayish custody; they are usually arrested and held by the various political parties, although in some cases they are subsequently transferred to official prisons. [=] 10140. Amnesty International. Iraq: Human Rights Abuses in Iraqi Kurdistan Since 1991: Part 17: Chapter Four: Human Rights Abuses By The Kurdish Administration: Torture and Ill-Treatment of Detainees. New York: Amnesty International, February 28, 1995. MDE 14/01/95. [99H-11395] [19950228] Since 1992 Amnesty International has received numerous allegations of torture of common law and security detainees by police and Asayish personnel. This chapter addresses allegations relating to personnel of the Ministry of Interior, and the role of the judiciary in the investigation of such abuses. The victims of torture include common law detainees held on charges such as theft, armed robbery, murder and forgery as well as 69 Kurdistan and the Kurds sexual offences such as rape or sodomy. Other victims are detainees accused of security offences - such as espionage or sabotage - who are usually held in Asayish custody. The methods of torture used by police and Asayish personnel include beatings all over the body with fists, sticks, rifle butts, cables and hosepipes; kicking; falaga (beatings on the soles of the feet); suspension from the ceiling or against the wall by the hands, which in some cases are tied behind the back; burning of the skin with cigarettes or heated metal implements; electric shock treatment; and threats of sexual torture or execution. Victims have occasionally included women and minors. In the majority of cases, torture is aimed at coercing detainees to "confess" to crimes which they are suspected of having committed, as well as to divulge the names of others who may be suspected of involvement. In other cases, torture or ill-treatment is used as punishment. Torture is absolutely prohibited under international law, including Article 7 of the ICCPR, to which Iraq is a party and which is legally binding on all those seeking to exercise governmental authority. Moreover, torture is prohibited under Iraqi law. Police and Asayish personnel are bound to abide by the provisions of the Code of Criminal Procedure with regard to the treatment of detainees in their custody. Article 127 of this law states that no illegal methods mag be used to extract confessions from the accused, including ill-treatment, threats to cause harm, psychological methods or the use of drugs and spirits. Most law enforcement officials with whom Amnesty International has raised its concerns have not denied that detainees have on occasion been beaten during interrogation, and have stated clearly that this is aimed at extracting information from them. The prohibition of torture in the ICCPR is nonderogable in all circumstances (Article 4), and the UN Convention Against Torture and Other Cruel, Inhuman or Degrading Treatment or Punishment (Convention against Torture) states clearly: "No exceptional circumstances whatsoever, whether a state of war or a threat of war, internal political instability or any other public emergency, may be invoked as a justification of torture" (Article 2 (2)). Nevertheless, the Kurdish authorities have sought to justify such treatment on two grounds. Firstly, they referred to the ~special circumstances~ prevailing in Iraqi Kurdistan, in particular the lack of resources available to law enforcement officials. This was said to include vital equipment necessary for the proper conduct of criminal investigation, such as that used for the analysis of blood samples or fingerprints. In such cases, it was argued, where only circumstantial evidence was available against a suspect, law enforcement personnel were "obliged to resort" to beating the suspect to obtain a confession. Law enforcement officials told Amnesty International that particularly when "ugly" crimes such as murder were committed, it was deemed necessary to obtain a "confession" from the suspect, by force if necessary, where forensic and other vital evidence was not available. They added that this was better than releasing a suspect whom they believe to be a "dangerous criminal" and a "menace to the public", simply on grounds of lack of hard evidence. The second frequently cited explanation for the use of torture or ill-treatment is that it is part of the "Ba'thist legacy". Some law enforcement personnel, including those responsible for interrogating suspects, had performed the same functions when the region was under Iraqi Government control, and had therefore come to regard torture and ill-treatment as a routine and legitimate part of interrogation. Consequently, it was necessary to reeducate such personnel and offer them appropriate training courses, which required both time and resources. Amnesty International rejects that any such argument justifies torture, which violates international law under all circumstances. The organization recognizes the need for additional resources and training for law enforcement personnel, but it also recognizes that certain practical measures could be adopted by the Kurdish administration which would contribute significantly to combating and eventually eradicating torture. To this end, Amnesty International held discussions with ministers, law enforcement officials, members of the judiciary and political leaders. The organization recommended that the authorities implement their obligation to investigate torture complaints, bring those responsible to justice and take practical measures to safeguard the rights of detainees and protect them from ill-treatment while in custody. [=] 10141. Amnesty International. Iraq: Human Rights Abuses in Iraqi Kurdistan Since 1991: Part 18: Chapter Four: Human Rights Abuses By The Kurdish Administration: Torture and Ill-Treatment of Detainees: The Victims. New York: Amnesty International, February 28, 1995. MDE 14/01/95. [99H-11396] [19950228] The sample cases described below illustrate the range of reports received by Amnesty International over the past three years regarding torture and illtreatment by police and Asayish personnel. The information comes from many sources. These include interviews and examinations of detainees and former detainees who have been victims of torture, sometimes supported by photographic or medical evidence. Where possible, Amnesty International raised such cases with the relevant officials, among them investigating judges and law enforcement personnel. Other sources include friends or colleagues of victims, medical personnel and human rights activists, none of whom is identified at their request. [=] 10142. Amnesty International. Iraq: Human Rights Abuses in Iraqi Kurdistan Since 1991: Part 19: Chapter Four: Human Rights Abuses By The Kurdish Administration: Torture and Ill-Treatment of Detainees:The Victims: (a) Common Law Detainees. New York: Amnesty International, February 28, 1995. MDE 14/01/95. [99H11397] [19950228] Most cases of torture and ill-treatment known to Amnesty International involve common law detainees who have been tortured immediately after arrest at the police station or Asayish centre. The victims were usually not referred to a doctor for treatment or for an examination of the injuries sustained under torture. In most cases, the victims did not lodge a formal complaint, either because they were unaware of their right to do so, or for fear of being tortured again. The cases below have been selected to illustrate the nature of these abuses. (1) On 11/12/1992 and 11/14/1992, 17 people were arrested on the campus of Salahuddin University in Arbil following the theft of computer equipment. Those arrested included lecturers, administration employees and guards employed by the university. The arrests were carried out by police personnel of the Crime Combat Directorate, who held the suspects at al-Iskan police station. At least 10 of them were reportedly tortured on arrival at the station, prior to interrogation. Isma'il Ratuf Ahmad, a KDP Pesh Merga employed as a guard at the university, told Amnesty International three weeks after his release: "When we reached al-Iskan they did not ask us any questions. We were immediately blindfolded and our hands were tied. They beat us with cables and hosepipes, and subjected us to falaga with our feet raised. They also punched us in our faces and trod on us with their army boots. They were telling us to confess to the theft..." Most of the detainees were released within two or three days. They had been allowed family visits but had no access to legal representationand were not brought before an investigating judge. Upon release, they reportedly received an "apology" from the captain in charge at al-Iskan, who told them that a "mistake had been made". Isma'il Ratuf Ahmad and his two brothers who were arrested with him were transferred to al-Mahatta Prison. Nine days later they were 70 Kurdistan and the Kurds brought before an investigating judge, who ordered their release on bail within two days. The main suspect in the case (after whose "confession" the other detainees were released) was Munir Muhammad Mahmud, a Palestinian born in Baghdad He was sentenced to five years' imprisonment, and in 10/1993 Amnesty International interviewed hun in al-Mahatta Prison. According to his testimony, he was severely beaten with cables while blindfolded and with his hands tied to force him to confess. Four days later he was taken to the Crime Combat's police station in Khanaqa: "They told me to confess and threatened me with sexual assault... Then they suspended me against the door with my hands tied in chains. I remained at Khanaqa for two days and they continued beating me until the pain became unbearable and I said I would confess. Then they took me down from the door and called the investigating judge... ~. After his statement was recorded by the investigating judge, he was taken back to al-Iskan and held there for 10 days. He told Amnesty International he was tortured again after various names were found in his address book. He was then accused of working for Iraqi intelligence. He was taken to hospital on one occasion during this period. Then he was transferred to al-Mahatta Prison. A former detainee who shared a cell with him told Amnesty International that when Munir Muhammat Mahmut was brought there, he could not walk unassisted because of the injuries sustained under torture, and could not eat for several days. A week later, he was transferred to the Asayish Prison where he remained until 4/4/1993, when his trial began before the Arbil Criminal Court: "On that day a guard came and told me 'your trial is today'. Of course they had not notified me beforehand. During the trial I had a defence lawyer whom I had not seen before. I asked the judge to summon two witnesses who could testify as to my whereabouts on the night [of the theft] but he refused, saying I had already confessed before the investigating judge... I explained that everything had happened under torture... I am still waiting to hear if my case can go to appeal." Amnesty International did not have the opportunity to check his statement against the trial transcripts, nor to raise the case with the president of the court. However, it did express its concerns to the investigating judge, who told the organization that because neither Munir Muhammad Mahmud nor any of the other suspects in the case had lodged formal complaints with him regarding their treatment, no investigation had taken place. While conceding that Munir Muhammad Mahmud had clearly been beaten, he judged that he was in reasonable health and not in need of medical treatment.. He did not, therefore, refer him to a medical committee nor open an official investigation into the torture. He expressed doubt that the beatings had been as severe as the testimonies obtained by Amnesty International suggested, unless the prisoner had been tortured at a later stage while in Asayish custody. However, Munir Muhammad Mahmud had testified that he was not tortured at the Asoyish prison, only at the police stations where he was held. (2) On 8/29/1993 two detainees needed intensive care at Arbil's Emergency Hospital after sustaining serious injuries under torture. Muhsin Hamad Ibrahim (born in 1968 in Koisanjaq, selfemployed) and Luqman 'Abd al-Hakim 'Abd al-Rahman (born in 1973 in Koisanjaq,a student at a Science Institute) bad been arrested six months carrier on a murder charge and held in police custody in their home town. On 29 August, shortly after their transfer to Arbil, they were tortured while in the custody of the City Police Directorate at Azadi police station. They were rushed to the Emergency Hospital by several police personnel. Muhsin Hamad Ibrahim died four days later. His death certificate, issued on 2 September, gives the cause of death as "uraemia caused by renal failure as a result of crush syndrome, which in turn resulted from the complications of an external trauma to the body and inflammation of the urinary passages.. Hi external injuries, according to the autopsy report, included "bruises on the right side of the abdomen and chest in the form of six.wide bands of different lengths, some of which are conflated, [and] variously shaped bruises on the thighs and buttocks, some of which are diffuse while the others are in the form of four or more wide bands with some merging together..." The other victim, Luqman 'Abd al-Hakim 'Abd al-Rahman, was discharged from hospital some 10 days later. Six policemen were subsequently identified as having taken part in the torture session. Four were arrested but the two others, both non-commissioned officers, had reportedly fled. One month later, in October, Amnesty International met the captain in charge of Azadi police station, who said that a three-member committee had been set up to investigate the incident, composed of the Minister of Justice, the Deputy Minister of Interior and a legal adviser from the Interior Ministry. He provided Amnesty International with the names of the six policemen implicated in the case, adding that he had been absent on leave when the incident took place. No details were available at the time of writing into the findings of the investigation, although Amnesty International did examine the investigating judge's file on the case. It contained, among other things, the statement given by Liqman 'Abd al-Hakim 'Abd alRahman before he was discharged from hospital. The following is an extract relating to the torture inflicted on him: "My hands were tied from behind... and I was hung onto the toilet window such that my feet were lifted off the ground. My underclothes and pyjamas were removed and [name withheld] took hold of my penis and wound an elasticated string around it such that I felt extreme pain... Then he forced me to drink three jugs of hot water and asked one of the policemen to bring a hosepipe. He told me to confess to [the] killing and I said I was not in Arbil during the incident so how could I confess, and I have witnesses [to that]. He began beating me on my stomach and I felt an urgent need to urinate but I was not able to... Then he gave the hosepipe to a policeman and told him to beat me... Then [after repeated beatings every fifteen minutes] he removed the string from around my penis... When they finished beating me I heard Muhsin's voice. He was brought [to the room and was tortured, I heard him shout 'Allah Akbar' [God is Great]... When their duty tours were over they left us tied up for two hours. My condition became worse and I lost consciousness. I don't know how my hands were untied and how I was transferred to hospital..." To Amnesty International's knowledge, the four policemen arrested following this incident remain in custody but have not been brought to trial. The investigation has not been completed since the two other policemen implicated in the case remain at large. Amnesty International received allegations that the failure to apprehend the two noncommissioned officers in question was because they enjoyed protection from one of the political parties rather than because they had fled. This could not be independently confirmed. (3) A former detainee was beaten during interrogation while in the custody of the Asayish in the town of Kifri (Kirkuk province) in August1993.Photographs of his injuries, including the one shown here, were taken shortly after his release and examined by a forensic pathologist. The pathologist commented: "Those [photographs] show large areas of recent bruising which is purple in colour and certainly on the buttocks and thigh, it seems unlikely that they were inflicted more than a few days previously... The pattern is rather strange, with horizontal lines within the bruising on the buttocks... Possibly a multithonged whip or a handful of plastic tubes may have been used, as some of the marks on tho buttocks are parallel and multiple... The distribution symmetrically on the shoulders, bunocks and sides of the thighs indicates deliberate infliction..." 71 Kurdistan and the Kurds (4) A 36-year-old former detainee from Kalar (Kirkuk province), who was arrested at his home in 1/1994 by Asayish personnel, was beaten by eight people upon arrival at the Asayish centre in Kalar. He was then transferred to the Kirkuk Asayish Directorate in Derbendikhan, where he states that he was beaten once again with cables and burned on the hands and face with a metal implement heated over a stove. Following this, he was taken to the Police Directorate in the town where he was interrogated and accused of having committed a sexual offence. He was released after being broughtbefore an investigating judge, having spent five days in detention. The forensic pathologist's comments on photographs taken of his injuries read: "The face shows obvious linear marks about 1cm wide across the face and neck... consistent with healing superficial burns... The hands show similar scaling, healing surface marks with a red rim which again would be consistent with the impact of a hot rod-shaped object." [=] us that if we did not disperse, they would start firing at the demonstrators. We went outside and told everyone that the situation was dangerous and that they should disperse. I began to walk away but suddenly I was grabbed by the neck by a member of the Asayish. By that time they had surrounded the demonstrators. I resisted and began to struggle, but they dragged me forcefully. At that point the Asayish started shooting. The demonstrators were unarmed..." Another leader of the demonstration told Amnesty International: "All we wanted to do was to protest in front of the Asayish Directorate and call for the release of the two detainees. We were not being provocative. Our slogans were against the Turkish and Iraqi governments, not the Kurdish government... It was around six o'clock in the evening when our delegates came out of the Asayish Directorate and told us to disperse. As soon as the people started to do so, the Asayish began arresting some of them. I heard gunshots and immediately returned to look for Ratuf and saw them taking him. The armed guards on the roof of the building shot dead a woman who held a responsible position in PAK... then a little girl fell to the ground after being hit with a bullet. Several others were injured." During these clashes, two of the Pesh Merga guarding the Asayish Directorate were also killed. The authorities subsequently claimed that the woman who was shot dead during the demonstration [a Kurd from Syria identified only as Najbir, aged 25 and said to have been a PKK Pesh Merga] was carrying a gun and had shot the guards. In all, 13 demonstrators (nine men and four women) were arrested by the Asayish charged with murder. [The detainees were: Ra'uf Kamel 'Aqrawi; 'Abd al-Hakim Ahmad Baban; Sami 'Ali Aziz, Sa'id 'Aziz Mahmud; 'Amer 'Areb Shaikho; 'Abd al-Rahman Saleh; Saif al-Din 'Ali; Muhammad Amin 'Uthman; Kamal Khadr Junil (a Kurd froom Syria); Tibat 'Abdullah Sulaimen; Payman Suhimen Hunid; Dalal Hezel Adina; and Laila 'Ali Musa (the latter two are Kurds from Turkey).] In 12/1992 Amnesty International interviewed five of these 13 detainees in prison. At that time, the men were being held at the Arbil Asayish prison and the. women at al-Mahatta Prison. Ra'uf Kamel 'Aqrawi described what happened following their arrest: "They took us inside the Asayish Directorate and immediately started beating us. They beat us with rifle butts, cables and with their hands and also kicked us. Before taking me to a cell, I was hit on my eye with a rifle and my glasses broke. For the next three days they tortured us during interrogation, especially Muhammad Amin 'Uthman and Sa'id 'Aziz Mahmud who were very badly tortured. After three days the torture stopped..." Laila 'Ali Musa, who had joined the PKK's Pesh Merga forces two years earlier, gave Amnesty International the following testimony: "When the shooting started I was immediately hit. Then my daughter Kurdistan was killed as a bullet shot through her head. Tibat ['Abdullah Sulaiman, a co-detainee] was also injured with three bullets... After the shooting they arrested a group of us and took us inside the Asayish building. They tortured me for about one and a half hours in one of the offices. They beat me on the bullet wound and on my back with a hosepipe. They took the injured ones, myself and Tibat, as well as my dead daughter, to the Emergency Hospital. We stayed there two days and then they took the two of us to al-Mahatta Prison." Tibat 'Abdullah Sulaiman, who was also a PKK Pesh Merga, told Amnesty International that she was injured in the left leg, stomach and chest. She testified that was beaten with a hosepipe and a pistol butt on the shoulders by the Asayish before being taken to the hospital. Another woman, Payman Sulaiman Hamid, was arrested with her husband, 'Abd al-Rahman Saleh. She told Amnesty International: "They tied my hands behind my back and then suspended me from a height against the wall. I was beaten with a hosepipe. the torture 1asted for about one and a half hours. I fainted three times and each 10143. Amnesty International. Iraq: Human Rights Abuses in Iraqi Kurdistan Since 1991: Part 20: Chapter Four: Human Rights Abuses By The Kurdish Administration: Torture and Ill-Treatment of Detainees: The Victims: (b) Political Detainees. New York: Amnesty International, February 28, 1995. MDE 14/01/95. [99H-11398] [19950228] Individuals who have been held in Asayish custody in connection with their membership of certain political groups or organizations have included members of Rewti Comunist, the PKK and Tekoshin. Members of other types of organizations, including the Union of the Unemployed in Kurdistan (Yekieti Bekaran le Kurdistan; Ittihad al-Atilin fi Kurdistan) have also been arrested by the Asayish. In most cases, such detainees have been held without charge or trial for short periods and then released. In other cases, they are held on ostensibly criminal charges. A number of them alleged that they were tortured or otherwise ill-treated while in detention. Below are the details of one incident which serves to highlight the practices used by the Asayish. On 8/26/1992 a group of 13 political activists were arrested in Arbil by Asayish personnel. [AIthough the Asayiah forces were not formally set up until 10/1992, they had begun functioning as a recurting force several months earlier. Initially, this force was answerable to the IKF, and after 7/1992 to the Ministry of Interior.] They were among at least 200 men, women and children demonstrating that day against the military bombardment of Sirnak in southeastern Turkey by Turkish military forces some two weeks earlier. The participants included representatives of several small left-wing groups, such as Tekoshin, PAK and Rewti Comunist. One of the organizers of the demonstration told Amnesty International: "We had all agreed that it would be a peaceful demonstration and our slogans were in the name of the people, not the political parties. We had applied for permission from the Ministry of Interior to hold the demonstration but they refused, telling us that there were many Iraqi government agents operating in the region and the security situation in Kurdistan does not allow [for such activities]. We set off from Shaikhallah la popular district of Arbil]. The Asayish had surrounded the area and were armed with heavy weaponry. Then we heard the sound of gunfire. The Asayish arrested two people and said they were members of PKK and were carrying guns. They refused to let them go. Some of us tried to intervene, but the Asayish started hitting two men among us on their faces ant they started bleeding..." The demonstrators then headed for the Arbil Asayish Directorate, located opposite the Governorate building. A delegation from the demonstrators entered the Directorate and met the then Asayish Director, Khorshid Shira, to urge the release of the two detainees. Their request was refused. One of the delegates was Ratuf Kamel 'Aqrawi, spokesperson for Tekoshin. [Ra'uk Kamel 'Aqrawi was assassinatd in 5/1993.] He told Amnesty International: "They told 72 Kurdistan and the Kurds time they poured water on me to revive me. They burned me with cigarettes on my legs [the scars of which were still visible at the time of the interview]. All the time I was blindfolded. Then they threatened to assault me sexually in front of my husband. I remained at the Asayish Directorate for six days, but the torture was only at the beginning. Then they brought me here..." The fourth woman, Dalal Hezel Adina, testified: "First of all they blindfolded me and tied my hands and feet. They subjected me to falaga and hit me on the back. Then they suspended me from a wooden bar fixed onto a wall by my hands, which were tied behind my back. My right shoulder became dislocated as a result. They beat me first with a hosepipe, then with a belt, on my legs and other parts of my body. Afterwards they applied electricity to my wrists. I could not see them because I was still blindfolded, but I could feel them placing the wires on my wrists. They also suspended me from the ceiling with a rope tied to my hands and made me revolve. In all, I was tortured for about two hours. All the while they were telling me to confess that I had been armed and that I had killed the two Pesh Merga guards." Since their arrest, the 13 detainees had been denied access to their families and had not been brought before an investigating judge. They had not requested access to defence lawyers, apparently in the expectation that their cases would be resolved quickly. On 29 November they began a hunger-strike and submitted a petition to the Ministry of Interior asking, among other things, for a meeting with the investigating judge. This was granted on 1 December, over three months after their arrest. Ratuf Kamel 'Aqrawi told Amnesty International: "The investigating judge told us that a political decision had been taken by the KDP and PUK to release us as there was no evidence against us. He also told us that he had requested that those responsible for the death of the girl and the others be handed over and brought to justice." The detainees submitted another petition asking for access to family members, a fair and public trial and to be accorded the status of political prisoners. They ended their hunger-strike on 4 December and were eventually released on 1/11/1993 without having been brought before a court of law. Amnesty International had raised the cases of the 13 detainees with the Deputy Minister of Interior in 12/1992. Ahmad Sharif 'Ali told the organization that the 13 detainees continuedto be held on the basis of available evidence and were awaiting trial on murder charges. He added that the demonstration should not have gone ahead without official authorization. In 10/1993 Amnesty International sought details of any investigation which may have been set up into the killings during the demonstrations and the torture of the 13 detainees. It also requested access to their court files. The investigating judge responsible for these cases at the time told Amnesty International that he was no longer responsible for Asayish affairs and therefore did not have access to these files. He said, however, that the 13 detainees had been released for lack of evidence on the basis of a court order, and that the investigation had established that they had been tortured in custody. He added that he had requested that those responsible for these abuses be brought to justice but that no steps had been taken. Amnesty International then met the new investigating judge for Asayish affairs, who conceded that on occasion detainees are tortured but said this was exceptional. Where it was deemed necessary to punish detainees then other methods would be used, such as depriving them of food or denying them family visit. With regard to the 13 detainees, he stated he had no objection to Amnesty International having access to their court files, which he said could be found at the Arbil Asayish Directorate. There, Sefin Mala Qara told the organization that he had not held the post of Arbil Asayish Director when the events in question had taken place and thus he had not been directly involved in them. He said that no files pertaining to the cases of the 13 detainees remained at the Directorate, and informed Amnesty International that they could be found with the investigating judge. To date, none of the Asayish personnel involved in either the killing of the demonstrators or the torture of the detainees has been brought to justice. None of the victims of torture nor the families of those killed in the demonstration has been compensated. [=] 10144. Amnesty International. Iraq: Human Rights Abuses in Iraqi Kurdistan Since 1991: Part 21: Chapter Four: Human Rights Abuses By The Kurdish Administration: Torture and Ill-Treatment of Detainees: Investigations of Torture Complaints. New York: Amnesty International, February 28, 1995. MDE 14/01/95. [99H-11399] [19950228] Officials of the Kurdish administration and representatives of the judiciary with whom Amnesty International discussed its concerns recognized that "excesses" have been committed by police and Asayish personnel with regard to the treatment of detainees in their custody. All maintain, however, that the provisions of the Code of Criminal Procedure and the Penal Code are applied, and that complaints of torture or ill-treatment are investigated. Information gathered by Amnesty International over the past three years suggests otherwise. The organization was unable to obtain details of a single case where torture complaints were effectively and thoroughly investigated, nor of a single case where the law enforcement personnel responsible for such abuses were brought to justice. Most of the torture complaints received by Amnesty International in 1992 and 1993 were made by individuals who had been interrogated by the same police or Asayish personnel who were responsible for their arrest and detention. Torture or ill-treatment is normally inflicted before suspects are brought before an investigating judge. In 12/1992 the then Minister of Justice, Matruf Ratuf Khadr, told Amnesty International that one of the key problems in Iraqi Kurdistan was that there was no judicial police force (shurta qada'fyya) answerable to the Ministry of Justice and which could supervise the detention of suspects at this critical stage. The police or Asayish personnel holding the suspects at this stage are under the Ministry of Interior's jurisdiction, and the Ministry of Justice could not intervene until notified of a case through an investigating judge. Investigating judges have told Amnesty International that allegations of torture or ill-treatment are generally investigated only when the suspect brought before them makes a formal complaint, even though international standards require investigations of reports of torture and ill-treatment in cases where there has not been a formal complaint. In that event, the complainant is referred for examination to a medical committee appointed by and answerable to the Ministry of Health. If no complaint is made, a medical examination may not be carried out even when it is patently clear to the investigating judge that the physical condition of the suspect warrants such an examination. One investigating judge told Amnesty International that there is a general reluctance to refer ~too many cases" to the medical committee because doing so risked acquiring a reputation as a "troublemaker" which could mar good working relations with the police and Asayish. Similarly, no legal proceedings are taken against law enforcement personnel accused of torturing or ill-treating detainees unless a formal complaint has been lodged by the victim with the Ministry of Justice. Matruf Ra'uf Khadr stated that such complaints may also be lodged by the victim's family, and added that he would be prepared to consider cases brought to his attention by Amnesty International as "formal complaints". Where complaints are lodged, an investigative council (majlis tahqiqi) is set up, composed of three people representing the Ministry of Interior, the Ministry of Justice and, depending on the case, either the police or Asayish General Directorate. All three must be jurists. Preliminary investigations into complaints are conducted by the investigative 73 Kurdistan and the Kurds council prior to the referral to the courts of any of the accused officials. The failure of the authorities to act on reports of torture or illtreatment in the absence of a formal complaint by the victim has meant that the vast majority of incidents are never investigated. The most common reason for suspects' reluctance to submit complaints is fear of reprisals, particularly if they are to be returned to the custody of the same authority responsible for their abuse. The likelihood of being tortured or illtreated as punishment for having made a complaint is high. Another reason is ignorance of the law and of the rights accorded to all people deprived of their liberty. A third reason may in the perception that suspects will not be believed or that no effective action will be taken. The net result is that "confessions" extracted under torture during interrogation may subsequently be used as sole evidence for conviction in court. Article 181(d) of the Code of Criminal Procedure states that ~if the accused confesses to the charge made against him and the court is convinced of the authenticity of his confession and that he recognizes its implications, it may hear this defence and pass its verdict on the case without the necessity for other evidence...~. The President of the Court of Cassation told Amnesty International that in exceptional cases it is permissible to passsentence on a defendant from whom a confession has been extracted under duress if other evidence available to the court corroborates that confession. He stressed that such confessions could never be used as the sole basis for conviction and that in all cases, the official found responsible for torturing or ill-treating the suspect would be punished according to the law. This practice violates Iraq's treaty obligations under Article 14 (3)(g) of the ICCPR, which protects defendants from being compelled to testify against themselves or to confess guilt. Moreover, international standards require judges and prosecutors to exclude all confessions induced by torture and illtreatment. [See, for example, the Convention against Torture (Article 15) and the UN Guidelines on the Role of Prosecutors (Guideline 16).] The Kurdish administration has yet to bring to justice any law enforcement official found responsible for the torture or ill-treatment of detainees. Some police and Asayish personnel have allegedly been disciplined for abusing their authority in this manner, but such measures have been hopelessly inadequate. For example, the then General Director of the Asayish, Karim Sinjari, told Amnesty International in 10/1993 that 35 Asayish personnel had so far been found guilty of torturing or ill-treating detainees and had been disciplined accordingly. He stated that some of them had been dismissed from the force while others had been demoted. In none of these cases, Karim Sinjari added, had the victims of torture lodged formal complaints and consequently no legal proceedings had been taken against the offenders. In relation to the police, Colonel 'Abdullah Matruf 'Abdullah, Director of the Crime Combat Directorate in Arbil, argued along similar lines while taking a different view of the appropriate disciplinary measures to be taken in such cases. He told Amnesty International in 10/1993 that if a detainee alleges torture at the hands of the police, he is referred to a (Ministry of Health) doctor for a medical examination. If the examination corroborates his allegations, then disciplinary measures are taken against the accused police personnel. No other legal proceedings are instituted against them unless the victim lodges a formal complaint. As for the disciplinary measures taken, Colonel 'Abdullah Matruf 'Abdullah stated that the dismissal of either police or Asayish personnel from their respective forces in these circumstances was "illegal" unless the offenders had been brought before a court of law. Any measures taken should be restricted to demoting the offenders or transferring them to other duties. He ended by denying that police personnel inflict torture or ill-treatment on detainees in their custody. Police and Asayish personnel have frequently infringed various other provisions of the Code of Criminal Procedure. These include: delays in the referral of suspects to an investigating judge beyond the 24 hours permitted by law; failing to transfer suspects to an official prison once the investigating judge renews their detention period; and failing to implement other orders issued by investigating judges, in some cases allegedly on the orders of the Minister of Interior. Other infringements appear to have arisen as a result of varying interpretations of the law. For example, in 12/1992 the then Director of the Arbil Asayish Directorate, Isma'il Taher Dizayee, told Amnesty International that suspects may be held in Asayish custody for a maximum of 72 hours before being brought before an investigating judge. He added that an arrest may be carried out on the basis of a written order issued by him rather than an arrest warrant issued by an investigatingjudge. Amnesty International subsequently sought to clarify this matter with the Minister of Justice, who stated that such procedures had no basis in law. [=] 10145. Amnesty International. Iraq: Human Rights Abuses in Iraqi Kurdistan Since 1991: Part 22: Chapter Four: Human Rights Abuses By The Kurdish Administration: Torture and Ill-Treatment of Detainees: The Protection of Detainees From Torture and IllTreatment. New York: Amnesty International, February 28, 1995. MDE 14/01/95. [99H-11400] [19950228] The need to adopt measures to improve the protection of detainees' rights while in custody, particularly as regards torture and ill-treatment, was recognized by the political, administrative and judicial authorities as early as 1992, although no practical steps were taken until late 1993 or early 1994. With respect to the political authorities, the leaders of both the PUK and KDP told Amnesty International in 12/1992 that urgent measures were needed to ensure full protection of human rights in Iraqi Kurdistan. Jalal Talabani stated that torture must be brought to an end, but that the implementation of laws which protect human rights was still at its first stage. He attributed the slow progress to the precarious security situation in Iraqi Kurdistan and the many acts of sabotage being carried out in the region. Mas'ud Barzani stated that although he had no knowledge of specific cases of torture, he would be prepared to look into any cases brought to his attention. He told Amnesty International that two meetings of the Political Bureaux of the KDP and PUK convened the previous month had focused on drawing up guidelines, in conjunction with the Ministry of Interior, to protect the rights of detainees. According to details subsequently made available by the KDP, these guidelines included measures to abolish torture and ill-treatment, improve prison conditions and provide better health and sanitation services. Amnesty International does not, however, have any details of how these guidelines were followed up or implemented. In 10/1993, during meetings with several officials of the Kurdish administration and members of the judiciary, Amnesty International was informed that certain measures aimed at safeguarding the rights of detainees in police and Asayish custody were being considered. These measures focused on formally separating the authorities responsible for detaining and interrogating suspects, which Amnesty International had previously recommended. Both the Minister of Justice, Qader 'Aziz Jabbari, and the President of the Court of Cassation, Rashid 'Abd al-Qader Salim, told Amnesty International that there were plans to create a judicial police force. Amnesty International understands that members of this police force would formally be under Ministry of Interior jurisdiction, but their work would be supervised by the courts, presumably through the Public Prosecutor's office. Their primary function would be to investigate crimes, which would include interrogation of suspects. Other measures being considered included the appointment of judicial investigators (mahaqqijin 'adliyyin) to take over responsibility for interrogating suspects from the detaining authorities. These investigators would be civilian employees of the courts with the 74 Kurdistan and the Kurds necessary legal qualifications. Since the role of the judicial police overlaps in many respects with that of the judicial investigators, it was not clear how the division of responsibilities would be made. To date, no judicial police force has been established. However, in 10/1993 the Minister of Justice told Amnesty International that steps had been taken to appoint 95 judicial investigators, and that 58 of them had already been deployed in various police stations and Asayish centres throughout Iraqi Kurdistan. He stated that they were all graduates of the Law College and had been examined and selected by a panel of three judges on the basis of their legal qualifications and experience. The Minister stressed that although these judicial investigators had not yet been trained, they now had sole responsibility for investigating crimes and questioning suspects in areas where they had been deployed. However, investigating judges later told Amnesty International that the judicial investigators were not expected to assume their new functions until they had one to two months' training. Furthermore, there appeared to be some confusion about where they would eventually be deployed. The the.' General Director of the General Asayish Directorate told Amnesty International that there was no agreement for judicial investigators to investigate crimes falling within the jurisdiction of the Asayish. He added that while he had no objection to this in principle, the judicial investigators would have to be "trustworthy". Amnesty International understands that judicial investigators have since been deployed in a number of police stations and that they received some training in early 1994. Members of the legal profession to whom Amnesty International spoke welcomed this as a step in the right direction towards affording better protection for detainees. The organization has not had the opportunity to obtain further details on the number of judicial investigators, their areas of jurisdiction, and the nature of the training they received. Moreover, it was not clear whether they could prevent detaining authorities from interrogating those in their custody, and whether "confessions" made to detaining authorities could still be used as evidence in court. [=] Command Council. These resolutions have significantly increased the number of capital offences by amending existing legislation, such as the Penal Code, or by enacting new legislation. The law currently provides for a mandatory death sentence for certain non-violent political offences. The Iraqi Government has always maintained that offences deemed to be "political" are not punishable by death, pointing to Article 20 of the Penal Code. This Article distinguishes between ~ordinary. and "political" offences, with the death sentence being commuted to life imprisonment in the case of the latter. Paragraph (a) of this Article defines "political" offences as those committed with a political motive or offences prejudicial to general or individual political rights. All other offences are deemed to be "ordinary". The same article, however, excludes six types of offences from the category of political offences even if committed with a political motive. [These are: offences committed with a "base and selfish motive"; offense prejudicial to the external security of the state; premeditated murder and attempted premeditated murder; attempt on the life of the President of the Republic; terrorist offences; and immoral crimes such as theft, embezzlement, forgery, breach of trust, fraud, bribery and indecent assault.] Moreover, Article 2(b) states that the competent court should indicate in its judgment whether a particular offence is deemed to be "politicial". Although the ordinary courts in Iraqi Kurdistan continue to apply the provisions of the Penal Code, Amnesty International understands that in 1992 at least one amendment to one of its articles had been formally frozen. by the National Assembly on the grounds of being "incompatible with the welfare of the people of Kurdistan". This was an amendment to Article 156, which provides for the death penalty for deliberate acts endangering the independence, unity or territory of the country. On 21 4/1984 the Revolutionary Command Council had issued Decree No. 458, which stated that the provisions of Article 156 would apply to "anyone whose membership of a party or association aiming, through its acts or in its written program, to change the system of government through armed force or in cooperation with any foreign party, is proved." Amnesty International does not know whether any other provisions in the Penal Code relating to the death penalty have been similarly suspended. In practice, however, only one article of the Code providing for the death penalty has been invoked to date by the criminal courts in Iraqi Kurdistan: Article 406 for premeditated murder in aggravated circumstances (see below). At the same time, the National Assembly has promulgated two separate laws which provide for the death penalty for additional offences. The first of these, Law No. 6 of 1992, was passed on 1 10/1992. [Law on the Protection of Foreigners and Employees of United Nations Organizations and Humanitarian Organizations in the Iraqi Kurdistan Region, passed by Decree No. 20 of 10/1/1992, published in Perleman, Issue No. 5, 12/1992.] Article 2 provides for the death penalty as a mandatory punishment for the premeditated murder of a "foreigner" or "any employee of United Nations organizations [or] humanitarian organizations in the Iraqi Kurdistan Region". The law also has limited retroactive application: Article 4 states that the provisions of this law shall apply to all cases which were still pending before the courts at the time. This retroactive legislation violates Article 15 of the ICCPR. The second law, Law No. 8 of 1992, was passed on 11/14/1992. [Law on the Punishment for Possession, manufacture and Use of Explosives, passed by Decree No. 31 of 11/14/1992, published in Perleman, Issue No. 5, 12/1992.] It provides for the death penalty as a mandatory punishment for "anyone who use's or attempts to use explosives, with the aim of sabotage or collusion with the enemies of the people of Kurdistan, in order to put people's lives in danger, cause them grievous harm or result in their death" (Article 2). In 12/1992 Amnesty International expressed its concern to the Kurdish administration about the enactment of legislation increasing 10146. Amnesty International. Iraq: Human Rights Abuses in Iraqi Kurdistan Since 1991: Part 23: Chapter Four: Human Rights Abuses By The Kurdish Administration: The Death Penalty. New York: Amnesty International, February 28, 1995. MDE 14/01/95. [99H11401] [19950228] Amnesty International is opposed to the death penalty in all cases and works for its worldwide abolition, considering it to be a violation of the fundamental right to life and the right not to be subjected to cruel, inhuman and degrading punishment. In the organization's view, it is inherently unjust and arbitrary, however heinous the crime for which it is provided and however scrupulous the procedures by which it is enforced. The risk of error is inescapable, yet the penalty is irrevocable. In its work over the years to promote and defend human rights in Iraq as a whole, Amnesty International has repeatedly appealed to the Iraqi Government not to execute prisoners and to abolish the death penalty in law. Similarly, in Amnesty International's view, the execution of prisoners by the Kurdish administration violates fundamental human rights. [=] 10147. Amnesty International. Iraq: Human Rights Abuses in Iraqi Kurdistan Since 1991: Part 24: Chapter Four: Human Rights Abuses By The Kurdish Administration: The Death Penalty: Iraqi Law and the Current Legal System. New York: Amnesty International, February 28, 1995. MDE 14/01/95. [99H-11402] [19950228] Iraq's Penal Code (as amended) provides for the death penalty for a wide range of ordinary criminal offences as well as political offences. The death penalty is also provided for in other legislation, such as the Military Penal Code, as well as in numerous resolutions having the force of law passed by Iraq's highest executive body, the Revolutionary 75 Kurdistan and the Kurds the number of offences for which the criminal courts would be empowered to pass death sentences. The organization was told that there was no desire to widen the scope of the death penalty, but it was deemed necessary to pass the new laws in response to the increasing number of attacks on foreigners and acts of sabotage perpetrated by agents of the Iraqi Government and others in the region. [Attacks on foreigners continued to be perpetrated, however. Among those targeted were: Stewart Cameron, an Australian national and prepresentative of CARE Australia, killed on 1/7/1993; Vincent Pollet, a Belgian national and Director of Handicap International, killed on 3/22/1993; and Lissy Schmidt, a German national and correspondent for the news agency Agence Deance Presse, killed on 4/3/1994. In these three cases, the Kurdish authorities named the alleged perpetrators, who were said to have been linked to Iraqi Intelligence.] The Deputy President of the National Assembly, Najad Ahmad 'Aziz Agha, told Amnesty International that when the draft laws were debated, the overwhelming majority of parliamentarians favoured providing for the death penalty for these offences. He added that the debates did not lead to a wider discussion about the merits or otherwise of the death penalty, and that any moves towards its abolition in the foreseeable future were unlikely. Both he and the Minister of Justice told Amnesty International that there were longstanding plans for a major review of the Penal Code, when the possibility of reducing the number of offences for which the death penalty is provided might be discussed. They said that lack of resources, however, had not made such a review possible to date. [=] Initially the provisions of the Code of Criminal Procedure regarding appeals procedures and the ratification of death sentences could not be applied as there was no Court of Cassation to service Iraqi Kurdistan, and no "Leader of the Kurdish Liberation Movement" to carry out the functions of a head of state. The first problem was resolved with the promulgation of the Judicial Authority Law of 1992, which established a Court of Cassation for the region (see Chapter 3). The question of who would ratify death sentences remains a contentious issue. In 12/1992 the Minister of Justice and the Deputy President of the National Assembly told Amnesty International that a proposal was being discussed to establish a "special council" composed of the Prime Minister, the President of the National Assembly and the President of the Court of Cassation (representing the executive, legislative and judicial authorities) to carry out some of the functions traditionally undertaken by a head of state, including ratification of death sentences. However, no final decision had been taken. The Minister of Justice told Amnesty International that the Kurdish authorities had not been confronted with the dilemma as no death sentences had been passed since the appointment of the Council of Ministers. However, as Amnesty International learned several days later, four death sentences had already been handed down by the Sulaimaniya Criminal Court, albeit before the formation of the Council of Ministers. Within 10 days of Amnesty International's discussion with the Minister of Justice, three other death sentences were handed down by the Arbil Criminal Court. In early 1993 it had been decided that the responsibilities and functions of Leader should be assumed by the President of the National Assembly and by 5/1993 he had ratified three death sentences. However, the continuing challenges to his authority has meant that no death sentences have been ratified since. During the short period of its existence, the Presidential Body for the Iraqi Kurdistan Region (see Chapter 1) had not ratified any death sentences either. At the time of writing, the issue was still unresolved. No other authority has since been empowered to ratify death sentences, although the criminal courts have continued to impose death sentences, some of which have been upheld by the Court of Cassation. [=] 10148. Amnesty International. Iraq: Human Rights Abuses in Iraqi Kurdistan Since 1991: Part 25: Chapter Four: Human Rights Abuses By The Kurdish Administration: The Death Penalty: Legal Procedures. New York: Amnesty International, February 28, 1995. MDE 14/01/95. [99H-11403] [19950228] The courts empowered under the Code of Criminal Procedure to pass death sentences in Iraqi Kurdistan are the three criminal courts in Duhok, Arbil and Sulaimaniya (the latter also serves the Kirkuk region). The procedures followed by these courts are said by officials to be in accordance with Iraq's Code of Criminal Procedure. This law, although it contains some safeguards, is fundamentally flawed in a number of respects. For example, it permits the use of confessions extracted under torture if the court concludes that they were truthful. No death sentences have been imposed for political offences to date. In cases where the death penalty has been imposed for murder, Amnesty International has not had the opportunity to examine closely the legal procedures followed during pre-trial detention and before the courts to assess whether they conform with the Code of Criminal Procedure. However, there have been allegations of irregularities in this regard. During a visit to the DetentionsandDeportations Prison in Sulaimaniya in 12/1992, for example, one prisoner under sentence of death told Amnesty International that he did not have a defence lawyer during his trial. In the case of another prisoner in Arbil, Amnesty International received reports in 1994 that the murder confession obtained under interrogation - and accepted as evidence in court was made under threat of torture. Death sentences passed by the criminal courts are automatically referred to the Court of Cassation for review (Article 224(d)). There is no right of appeal under Iraqi law on points of fact, only on points of law. Such a limited review only by cessation denies the right to an appeal as guaranteed by Article 14 (5) of the ICCPR. If upheld on cessation, death sentences would ordinarily be referred by the court to the Minister of Justice, who must have the sentences ratified by the President of the Republic before issuing an order for their execution (Article 286). 10149. Amnesty International. Iraq: Human Rights Abuses in Iraqi Kurdistan Since 1991: Part 26: Chapter Four: Human Rights Abuses By The Kurdish Administration: The Death Penalty: Death Sentences and Executions. New York: Amnesty International, February 28, 1995. MDE14/01/95.[99H-11404][19950228] Between 3/1992-8/1994, at least 34 death sentences were passed by the Arbil, Sulaimaniya and Duhok criminal courts (see Appendix). With one exception, all those sentenced were convicted of premeditated murder - 31 of them in accordance with Article 406 of the Penal Code and two others in accordance with Article 2 of Law No. 6 of 1992 (concerning the murder of foreigners). The remaining death sentence was passed in accordance with Article 2 of Law No. 8 of 1992 (concerning the possession,manufacture and use of explosives). To date, three prisoners have been executed after the death sentences imposed on them were upheld by the Court of Cassation and ratified by the President of the National Assembly. They were executed by hanging in al-Mahatta Prison in Arbil in the presence of a representative of the public prosecution, a judge, a man of religion, a doctor and the prison director. The first to be executed, in 4/1993, was Sadruddin Pirdawud Sama, a 25-year-old man from Arbil. The account of his execution received by Amnesty International reflects clearly the cruel and inhuman nature of the punishment. The prisoner was allegedly made to stand on an empty ballot box. His hands and feet were deaf and a cloth sack placed over his head. A rope was placed around his neck and deaf to a ceiling fan. A prison guard then pushed the ballot box from under his feet. The prisoner was said to have died from 76 Kurdistan and the Kurds strangulation over a protracted period, during which several of those present were reportedly unable to bear the sight confronting them and left the room, among them the representative of the public prosecution. In mid-June, two other prisoners who had been sentenced to death by the Arbil Criminal Court were hanged in alMahattaprison. Bara' 'Abdullah Kadhim, a 22-year old Arab from Ba'quba and a former soldier, and Hamza Latif Rasul, a 21-year-old man from Arbil, were executed on the same day. According to accounts received by Amnesty International, Hamza Latif Rasul took 10 minutes to die and Bara' 'Abdullah Kadhim some 15 minutes. Changes had apparently been introduced to the facilities in the prison to ensure speedy executions. Of the 31 prisoners sentenced to death in Iraqi Kurdistan between 3/1992-8/1994, 26 of them were in custody in 12/1994. [Five prisoners sentenced to death by the Sulaimaniya and Duhok criminal courts escaped from prison at differed times. In 12/1994, after armed clashes broke out between KDP and PUK forces, al-Mahatta Prison in Arbil was reportedly broken into and its inmates fled. It was not known whether they included some of those who had been sentenced to death by the Arbil Criminal Court.] Four death sentences were reduced to life imprisonment upon review by the Court of Cassation, while at least 14 others were upheld and are pending ratification. The remaining sentences were still under review by the court at the time of writing. [=] Kurdistan Since 1991: Part 28: Chapter Five: Human Rights Abuses By The Political Parties: The Perpetrators of Human Rights Abuses. New York: Amnesty International, February 28, 1995. MDE 14/01/95. [99H-11406] [19950228] Prime responsibility for human rights abuses lies with the two parties holding the reins of power in Iraqi Kurdistan the KDP and PUK. Their effective control of large stretches of territory (Bahdinan and Sulaimaniya respectively), the military means at their disposal and their special security and intelligence apparatuses, have enabled them to perpetrate abuses against each other's members as well as against other perceived opponents. Their control of the Kurdish administration's machinery has also meant the absence of any authority which could hold them accountable for their actions. The IMIK also bears responsibility for a significant share of the abuses, particularly since 12/1993. The IMIK controls large stretches of territory along the border with Iran, and has a sizeable fighting force as well as intelligence and security apparatuses. Other political parties have committed human rights abuses, namely the torture or ill-treatment of detainees in their custody. These parties, some of which have since been dissolved, include the KPDP, ICP, KSP-I, KUP, KTP and PASOK. The KSP-I and Kurdish Revolutionary Hizbullah are also believed to have been "involved in unlawful and deliberate killings." The forces within KDP and PUK forces which have committed human rights abuses are: (a) the regular Pesh Merga forces: each party has a sizeable armed force consisting of tens of thousands of Pesh Merga fighters. When the Ministry for Pesh Merga Affairs was formed, each party contributed an agreed number of fighters to form the unified forces under the ministry's jurisdiction. However, the estimated 1200015000 fighters which each party put forward represented only a small segment of its total fighting forces, and even these were not "unified. in any real sense - they remained under the leadership of their respective parties. While some of these forces are veteran Pesh Merga fighters, they also include the Jash (Kurdish mercenaries) who had fought alongside Iraqi Government forces against the Kurdish opposition during the 1980s. After the uprising, many of them remained in Iraqi Kurdistan and were gradually absorbed into the KDP and PUK forces. (b) the Special Brigades: two special brigades were formed in 1992 as part of the unified Pesh Merga forces. Each consisted of an estimated 2000 fighters provided by the two parties, their primary role being the personal protection of Mas'ud Barzani and Jalal Talabani. In theory the Special Brigades were under the jurisdiction of the Ministry for Pesh Merga Affairs. In reality they remained answerable only to the two loaders. Additional Special Brigades were formed by the KDP and PUK after the 12/1993 and 5/1994 clashes. These Special Brigades have committed human rights abuses both during armed conflict and in non-violent situations. (c) the security and intelligence apparatuses: the KDP and PUK each have security and intelligence apparatuses whose functions include: gathering intelligence on the activities of Iraqi Government agents and those of neighbouring countries in Iraqi Kurdistan; gathering information on political parties and organizations in Iraqi Kurdistan; preventing and combating infiltration of their respective parties; and surveillance of individuals within their own parties as well as members of other parties. These apparatuses also control the unacknowledged prisons or places of detention maintained by each party, and the interrogation of detainees held in such places. The main apparatus within the KDP is known as Rekkbistini Taybeti (al-Tanzim al-Khass; the Special Organization), also referred to as Parastin ("protection"). The Parastin was set up by the KDP in 1968 to "protect the revolution", its creation coinciding with the seizure of power in Iraq by the Ba'th Party. Primary responsibility for the Parastin from the start lay with Mas'ud Barzani. The apparatus 10150. Amnesty International. Iraq: Human Rights Abuses in Iraqi Kurdistan Since 1991: Part 27: Chapter Five: Human Rights Abuses By The Political Parties: xx. New York: Amnesty International, February 28, 1995. MDE 14/01/95. [99H-11405] [19950228] A wide range of gross human rights abuses perpetrated by the political parties in Iraqi Kurdistan has been recorded by Amnesty International since 1991. The abuses include detention of suspected political opponents, among them possible prisoners of conscience; torture or ill-treatment of political and common law detainees; executions after summary "trials"; and unlawful and deliberate killings of unarmed prisoners captured in battle, political opponents and demonstrators. Torture and unlawful and deliberate killings were widely reported in 12/1993 when military clashes broke out between PUK and IMIK forces. Such abuses reached a climax during and after 5/1994, when widespread military clashes broke out between KDP and PUK forces, with the IMIK forces also taking part in opposition to the PUK. Amnesty International has raised many of the abuses highlighted in this chapter with leaders of the relevant political parties and administration officials. The responses have been, at best, unsatisfactory. In some cases the political parties denied the allegations made against them; in others, they expressed willingness to cooperate with any official investigations and stressed that any of their members found guilty of abuses would be brought to justice. In the past three years several investigations have been set up into specific incidents, either by the IKP when it possessed dc facto authority or subsequently by the Kurdish administration. However, the political parties have not cooperated with any of them. In fact, they have blocked such investigations through direct or indirect means, or have discontinued them for the sake of political expediency. Amnesty International is not aware of a single case where the perpetrators of any of the abuses referred to have been brought to justice. The failure to do so has, in Amnesty International's view, contributed significantly to the deterioration of the human rights situation in Iraqi Kurdistan. It has enabled elements within the political parties to continue perpetrating abuses with total impunity. Against this background, the protestations of the political leaders and their frequently expressed commitment to human rights remain unconvincing. [=] 10151. Amnesty International. Iraq: Human Rights Abuses in Iraqi 77 Kurdistan and the Kurds continued to function until 1975, when the Algiers Accord between Iraq and Iran led to the collapse of the Kurdish opposition movement. After the 1991 uprising the apparatus was reconstituted and renamed, and remains ultimately answerable to Masoud Barzani. lt is headed by Karim Sinjari, a Central Committee member, but Nichirvan Idris Barzani (Mastud Barzani's nephew), is believed to be the most powerful figure within Rekkhistini Taybeti. The principal apparatus within the PUK is Dezgay Zanyan (Jihaz al-Ma'lumat; the Information Apparatus) which was reconstitutedafter the 1991 uprising from the party's previously exisiting security and intelligence machinery. It is headed by Qader Hadi 'Ali, a Political Bureau member, although it is believed to be effectively controlled by another Political Bureau member, Newsherwan Mustafa Amin. Others with positions of responsibility within both Rekkhistini Taybeti and Dezgay Zanyari are said to include key officials in the Council of Ministers, several parliamentarians, and senior personnel in the police and Asayish forces. Some of these officials head the branches of their respective apparatuses in the provinces of Duhok, Arbil, Sulaimaniya and Kirkuk. Both Rekkhistini Taybeti and Dezgay Zanyari are said to have sections which carry out so-called "special operations", including assassinations. [=] parties within the IKF did not maintain separate prisons but did have detention facilities at their main party headquarters and other bases: the KSP-I in Rania as well as in Nalparez on the Penjwin Sayyid Sadeq road; the ICP in Sheqlawa; PASOK initially in Qala Cholan and then in Sulaimaniya; the KPDP initially in Rawandaz and then in Arbil; the KTP initially in Sheqlawa and then in Arbil; the ADM in Merga Sur and Khalifan; and the KUP in Rania. Among the political parties outside the IKF, the IMIK was said to have various places ofdetention, including in Shaqlawa, Halabia, Chwar Qurna and Diyana. Given the difficulties in identifying and gaining access to unacknowledged places of detention in Iraqi Kurdistan, many cases of torture and other abuses only came to light in late 1992, following the large-scale transfer of detainees from IKF prisons and those of the political parties. A large proportion of detainees who were interviewed testified that they had been tortured under interrogation while held by one of the political parties or she IKF. Among them was a 17-year-old youth from Koisanjaq [name withheld] who was arrested in 12/1991 on charges of sodomy and held in IKF custody in Arbil. By 6/1992 he had been sentenced to six years' imprisonment and transferred to alMahatta prison, where he told Amnesty International: "I was beaten with cables and threatened with the bottle [a form of sexual torture]. I stayed three days without food or drink. They threw cold water on me, tied my hands behind my back and kicked me in the head and used the falaga. They wanted me to confess and tortured me for one week. Then I confessed... my cell had about 10 other people in it, and some of them were also tortured. There was an Arab from al-Najaf who became a Pesh Merga. He was accused of working for Iraqi Intelligence and was very badly beaten." In 12/1992 Amnesty International spoke to some of the 30-35 detainees who were being held at the Asayish prison in Sulaimaniya. Most had been tranferred there from political party prisons after having been held for several months in untried detention. Several stated that they had been tortured during interrogation, including by the KDP, PUK, PASOK and KPDP. They had been accused of a variety of criminal offences. such as murder and theft, but said that no formal charges had been brought against them and no legal procedures followed. In many of these cases, it was not possible for Amnesty International independently to verify testimonies made by detainees, particularly as regards claims of torture. In the majority of cases, torture was said to have been inflicted during the initial period following arrest. Their transfer to official prisons some months later meant that most traces of such treatment were no longer visible. However, the number and consistency of the testimonies suggested that torture of detainees held by the political parties was widespread and routine. The KHRO has received and recorded numerous complaints of this kind. Those detainees who were referred to the special courts established by the IKF were frequently convicted on the basis of "confessions" extracted under torture. A judge who served on the bench of one of the special courts told Amnesty International that he had personally ordered that five detainees be beaten in order to extract "confessions" from them. He said this was necessary to obtain further "evidence" against the suspects in question. The use of torture for this purpose was apparently discussed by the IKF's Political Leadership Acting Body with regard to detainees accused of serious offences and whose cases were being heard before the Supreme Special Court for the Revolution in Shaqlawa. Two officials on the Acting Body told Amnesty International that the difficulties facing members of the court's bench in fully and effectively investigating such offences had led in late 1991 to the sanctioning of the use of torture by the Acting Body in certain circumstances. Since the transfers in late 1992, leaders of the political parties have stated that they no longer maintain prisons or other detention 10152. Amnesty International. Iraq: Human Rights Abuses in Iraqi Kurdistan Since 1991: Part 29: Chapter Five: Human Rights Abuses By The Political Parties: Torture and Ill-Treatment. New York: Amnesty International, February 28, 1995. MDE 14/01/95. [99H11407] [19950228] Some prisons run by the political parties, including in Khalifan, Arbil and Sheqlawa, operated in the name of the IKF which possesseddefacto authority until mid-1992. Detainees held in IKF prisons had some measure of protection as the judicial structure established by the IKF involved the eventual referral of detainees to the special courts. This meant that written records, albeit rudimentary, were kept of detainees' names, dates of arrest and charges against them. IKF prisons were also acknowledged places of detention,to which on occasion representatives of the KHRO and others were permitted access. In this way, the families of the detainees were on the whole able to ascertain their whereabouts. By contrast, detainees held in the custody of the political parties, both those within the IKF and those outside it, were deprived of even this minimal protection. They were held in unacknowledged places of detention, outside the framework of any judicial process, and for the most part without access to the outside world. Under such circumstances, party officials denied holding detainees when their families made inquiries. It also meant that detainees could be held indefinitely, their fate dependent on the whim of the political party in question. It created conditions in which the detainees' basic rights, including the right not to be tortured or ill-treated, could be violated with impunity. The detention facilities used by political parties and groups varied in size and nature. They ranged from several cells on the premises of the political parties' bases holding a few detainees, to separate, purpose-built detention centres, accomodating several hundred detainees, some of which had been used as prisons by the Iraqi Government. The KDP maintained a major prison in al-Qadesh (Duhok Province), although it was ostensibly operating in the name of the IKF. According to reliable sources, it held over 200 detainees in early 1992. The KDP ran other detention centres during 1991 and 1992 in Zawita, Salahuddin and Shaqlawa. The PUK's major detention facilities were in Sulaimaniya Province, including in Qala Cholan, Bakrajo and Tanjaro, and held scores of detainees. The KDP and PUK both continue to maintain some of these and other places of detention. To Amnesty International's knowledge the smaller political 78 Kurdistan and the Kurds facilities, and that they no longer hold detainees. Amnesty International's information suggests otherwise. The organization believes that some political parties, notably the PUK and KDP, continue to hold detainees, albeit in smaller numbers. Suchdetainees are arrested outside the framework of laws which the political leaders have pledged to uphold. They are arrested without a warrant issued by an investigating judge, they are denied access to legal counsel and in some cases to their families, and they may remain held indefinitely in detention without trial. They may also be tortured. Some detainees arrested by forces acting under the authority of a political party are subsequently handed over to the police or Asayish, but this tends to be the exception rather than the rule. Detainees held by the political parties outside the IKF, notably the IMIK, are in an even more precarious situation. To Amnesty International's knowledge, they were never transferred to official prisons under the Ministry of Interior's jurisdiction. The IMIK has continued to hold detainees while denying that it has any places of detention. In 12/1992 Masoud Barzani told Amnesty International that all KDP prisons had been closed and their inmates transferred to the official prisons. Several detainees said to be held thereafter by the KDP were subsequently brought to the organization's attention. Among them was 'Abd al-Aziz Waysi (born 1968 in the village of Bani, Duhok Province). A member of PAK, he was first arrested by KDP forces on 12 12/1991 with 25 others said to be affiliated to PAK and the PICK, and then beld in Zawita. Twenty-three of them, all Kurds from Turkey, were released eight days later; the other three, among them 'Abd al-'Aziz Waysi, were Iraqi Kurds and they remained in detention. 'Abd al-'Aziz Waysi was held without trial for nine months and denied access to his family and defence counsel. He was released on 7/15/1992, reportedly on the orders of Mas'ud Barzani and on condition that he resides in Salahuddin where he was to be kept under surveillance. He did so for two months, and then obtained permission to visit his family in Duhok. Six days after his arrival in Duhok, IKF forces attacked PKK forces stationed in the border regions in Iraqi Kurdistan. An estimated 1400 PKK fighters and their families were captured by IKF forces by 10/i992 and were later transferred to Zale in Sulaimaniya Province. Among those captured was 'Abd al-'Aziz Waysi, who had reportedly made contact with the PKK in Duhok. He was arrested by the KDP and returned to Salahuddin. During the following months his family knew nothing of his fate or whereabouts despite repeated requests for information from KDP officials in Salahuddin. Amnesty International raised his case with Mas'ud Barzani in 10/1993 and requested access to him. Mas'ud Barzani told the organization that 'Abd al-'Aziz Waysi had joined the PKK, assisted it in identifying the locations of four KDP centres, and led a military operation in which several KDP members were killed. Mas'ud Barzani said he had been rearrested at the end of 10/1992 and handed over with other PKK detainees to the Asayish. [Of the estimated 1400 PKK fighters and their families arrested at the time, over 200 were held at the Asayish prison in Arbil for several months and later released.] Mas'ud Barzani denied that 'Abd al-'Aziz Waysi was being held in KDP custody or that his family had mad~ inquiries about him. The following day Amnesty International checked with the Arbil Asayish Directorate and found that 'Abd al-'Aziz Waysi had not been transferred there. He was not to be found in Asayish custody in Duhok either. The organization later learned that his family had been allowed to visit him that month and that he was being held in detention facility at Mas'ud Barzani's headquarters in Seri Resh (a short distance from Salahuddin). 'Abd al-'Aziz Waysi was released in 7/1994. According to information received, his mother had just been to Seri Resh to visit him again, and while returning to Arbil she was involved in a car accident and died. Mas'ud Barzani reportedly authorized 'Abd al-'Aziz Waysi's release in order to attend to her funeral rites. It was not clear whether he had been released only for the mourning period. KDP officials later told Amnesty International that he had not been rearrested, but this could not be confirmed. Another PAK member held by the KDP in 10/1993 was Mahdi Saleh Rashid (also known as Mahdi 'Arif Saleh). He had also been held since 10/1992 following the defeat of PKK forces. He had reportedly given himself up following an agreement between the IKF and PKK. He was being held at the KDP's First Liq (Branch) in Duhok, where Amnesty International requested access to him. Officials there said that the request could not be granted without authorizationfrom senior officials. When authorization was sought from the office of Fadel Mirani (known as Fadel Mutni), the KDP's representative in Bahdinan at the time, Amnesty International was told that Mahdi Saleh Rashid was not being held at the First Liq after all; he had been "transferred elsewhere". Amnesty International raised the mattes with Mas'ud Barzani, who said he knew nothing about the case but would make inquiries. The organization learned that Mahdi Saleh Rashid was later transferred from the First Liq to the Asayish prison in Duhok, where he was visited by friends. At the time of writing, Amnesty International had no further information on his case. A more recent case is that of a PUK Pesh Merga [name withheld] who was arrested by the KDP in Salahuddin on 5/5/1994. He was held in unacknowledged places of detention in the town for nearly four months. According to his testimony and those of fellow inmates, he was tortured shortly after his arrest. For the first three days he was held with other detainees at a detention centre located near the KDP's Political Bureau premises, and then moved to a different location. Representatives of the ICRC were apparently informed of his case by other detainees on 6/2/1994 but, to Amnesty International's knowledge, did not gain access to him. He was being held in the custody of the KDP's security apparatus, Rekkhistini Taybeti. Amnesty International was granted access to him on 7/25/1994. Karim Sinjari, head of the security apparatus, told the organization that the detainee was being held as a suspected member of an assassination squad directed by a senior member of the Council of Ministers [a PUK official, name withheld] and that he had been involved in the assassination of KDP members. The detainee told Amnesty International that he had been interrogated about the killing of two KDP members and the attempted killing of another, but denied any involvement or membership in any assassination squad. He stated that he was being held in isolation at a secret location, which he indicated was a hotel in Salahuddin, and that he had not seen anyone except his captors and interrogators since being transferred there. He showed Amnesty International marks on his legs which he said had been caused by torture, and said: "On the first day of my arrest I was beaten with the butt of a Kalashnikov rifle and severely whipped with a hosepipe and belt. Later I was hit on the back of my neck with a cement block. They tied something tightly around my neck and then beat me." The PUK official rejected the accusations made against both himself and the detainee, who was eventually released uncharged on 9/3/1994. Jalal Talabani also gave Amnesty International assurances that PUK prisons had been closed and their inmates transferred to official prisons. The organization was given access in 12/1992 to Bakrajo detention centre near Sulaimaniya, and saw four detainees, all Iranian nationals, who were said to be the only ones held there. All other inmate. were reported to have been taken to police or Asayish prisons. Officials said that Bakrajo would be closed within days. Information obtained since suggests that both Bakrajo as well as other places of detention under PUK control continue to be used, albeit on a smaller scale. When Amnesty International visited Bakrajo in 7/1994, it was shown five detainees who were said to be members of the PUK's Pesh Merga forces. Several had reportedly committed military 79 Kurdistan and the Kurds offences and one was accused of murder. Officials at Bakrajo said they were being held there on the orders of the Minister for Pesh Merga Affairs. Several former detainees have testified that they were held in unacknowledged places of detention by the PUK in 1991 and 1992, notably in Qala Cholan. They include members of political parties or groups, including the IMIK and Rewti Comunist. Jalal Talabani has repeatedly denied the existence of a prison in Qala Cholan and told Amnesty International that he could "search the area" if it wished. The organization declined, despite receiving details of the prison's reported location and interior. The only detainees said by Jalal Talabani to have been held in Qala Cholan were Iraqi army POWs who had been captured by, or surrendered to. PUK forces during the March 1981 uprising. He said that all were later released under ICRC auspices. According to information received by Amnesty International, the PUK also held detainees in Shaqlawa. Among them was said to be Tawfiq Nuri 'Abd al-Rahman, formerly a PASOK member who was allegedly abducted by the PUK in Sulaimaniya on 12/12/1992. The bodies of two other men who were with him at the time were allegedly found in the streets the following day. Tawfiq Nuri 'Abd al-Rahman's family unsuccessfully sought information from PUK officials on several occasions. His fate and whereabouts remain unknown, and Amnesty International fears that he may have been killed in custody. More recent testimonies by former detainees indicate that Qala Cholan prison was used to hold KDP and IMIK fighters captured during the 5/1994 clashes, as was Bakrajo detention centre (see below). One former detainee, an IMIK member said to have been arrested by the PUK shortly before these clashes, testified to Amnesty International: "I was held in Qala Cholan for two months. For one month I did not see daylight and they used to cut off the electricity... There were about 30 people there, and they would take three or four people out at a time Some of them did not come back... We were beaten with cables and rifle butts, and we were kicked and punched...Another method of torture was to tell us that an order for our execution had been issued, or that they would force us to drink poisoned yoghurt...We were beaten during interrogation. Onedetainee told me that they covered his head with a blanket and repeatedly banged it against a wall... There was a woman held in the prison... She was pregnant when they arrested her and then she had a miscarriage... I stayed there two months, but there was a person there who had been held there for one year and seven months. He was an Arab from Baghdad called [name withheld]... accused of espionage..." Others believed to have been held more recently in Qala Cholan are four detainees arrested in Sulaimaniya in connection with the events of 6/13/1994 in the city. They were detained there for over one month and then taken to the Asayish prison in Sulaimaniya, where Amnesty International interviewed two of them. Several of the IMIK's leaders told Amnesty International in 2/1994 that outside the context of the 12/1993 clashes, they had held no detainees and had no prisons or other detention facilities. The organization raised the case of a detainee who had been in IMIK custody and released only two months earlier. Ahmad Muhammad Ibrahim, a 28-year-old clothes vendor from Arbil, was arrested on 3/20/1993 and held for nine months in untried detention at the IMIK's base in Arbil. He was cut off from the outside world and tortured while held in a dark underground cell. He was freed on 12/28/1993 when PUK forces took control of the base. Ahmad Muhammad Ibrahim, who is affiliated to the PUK, told Amnesty International: "I was in the basement. There was no investigation committee, they just used to come in to interrogate us. They tortured me a lot by beating me... it continued for about forty days an-- then they burned my skin... They used to beat me with cables and tie my hands from behind and suspend me while my feet were tied. They beat me while I was suspended... One day they slapped me twenty times and told me 'We are twenty and we will beat you. If you can bear it, it means you are innocent, and if you cannot bear it, it means that you are an atheist'. They beat me and I lost consciousness... About forty days after my arrest... they came to me and took off my shirt. They poured kerosene on me and set it alight. Then they poured water on me and put out the fire. There were three or four of them. I suffered greatly, and after the fire was put out they left me. I was in great pain and asked for help, and they told me I must die... They took me out [of the basement] in July and they used to make me carry stones on my back... My mother used to come to plead with them and I could hear her voice. I shouted several times but she did not hear my cries... " Having denied holding any detainees, the IMIK then conceded that Ahmad Muhammad Ibrahim had been detained but that his was the only case. 'Abd al-Qader Brayati, military spokesperson for the IMIK at the time, also denied that Ahmad Muhammad Ibrahim had been tortured. He told Amnesty International that the burns had been caused by the detainee accidentally knocking over a kerosene lamp, a claim rejected by the victim. Amnesty International subsequently sought the opinion of a forensic pathologist on photographs of his burns it had taken some eight months after infliction. His comments were: "The check clearly shows extensive keloid scarring... which extends across the middle abdomen over the umbilicus and bilaterally under both nipples, together with scattered patches elsewhere. This a typical late result of burns... The distribution in the midline and symmetrically on both sides of the chest indicate deliberate application at specific sites, thus virtually ruling out accidents... " Ahmad Muhammad Ibrahim was in fact not the only detainee held by the IMIK at its base in Arbil. When he was freed in 12/1993, five other detainees were with him. Among them was 'Adel Ismatil, a 17-year-old youth from Arbil. He testified that he had been held there for three months, having been arrested after a fight with an IMIK member: "They beat me severely so that I could not move my bands or fingers ... They did not allow me to go to the toilet... The weather was very cold and I had nothing to protect me. I tore up my tracksuit and made it into socks to keep warm. I didn't see my parents for three months. I used to shiver from the cold..." In 7/1994 Amnesty International raised the cases of five people said to have been arrested by the IMIK and whose fate and whereabouts remain unknown. The organization was concerned that they may have been tortured or killed in custody. All were members or former members of the IMIK, four of whom are believed to have been arrested in 1991. According to information submitted to the organization, they are: (1) Bahzad Amin Haidar; born 1971 in Diyana, single. He was arrested in Arbil by IMIK members on 3/10/1991 during the mass uprising and initially held at the Awqaf Directorate in the city which was under IMIK control. He was later transferred to Rania and then to a prison in Diyana. Bahzad Amin Haidar had joined the IMIK in 1988 but subsequently renounced his affiliation. In late 1993 he was said to have been held at the IMIK's headquarters in Betwata." (2) Fakher Astad Nader: born 1968 in Shaqlawa, married with one child. He went missing on 8/6/1991 in the Diyana region, where he had gone to obtain authorization from the IMIK to travel to Iran for commercial putposes. On the way he was reportedly stopped by IMIK members driving a Landcruiser, who took him with them. Fakher Astad Nader joined the IMIK in 1987, working clandestinely in Arbil. A year later he joined the armed opposition in the mountainous border regions. In 1988 he was held for six months by the PUK and then returned to his family in Arbil. After the 3/1991 uprising he rejoined the IMIK. He and others allegedly received warnings from the IMIK leadership that any member leaving the party or divulging its secrets would be arrested. There were unconfirmed reports that after he went 80 Kurdistan and the Kurds missing he was seen in IMIK custody at Kawlukan garrison in the Diyana region. (3) Maghdid Astad Mustafa: born 1966 in Sheqlawa, married with four children. He went missing on 8/6/1991 in the Diyana region while on his way to Iran. His car was reportedly seen near the lMIK base in Diyana. Maghdid As'ad Mustafa had been an IMIK member for several years, but had left the party and joined the PUK. He had reportedly been warned not to divulge information on the IMIK and pressurized hto rejoining. (4) Muhsin Hassan Ibrahim: he deserted from military service in 1987 and fled to Iran, where he joined the IMIK. In 1989 in was arrested by Iraqi security forces in Rania while carrying out a clandestine activity for the IMIK. After almost seven months in detention he was released as a result of an amnesty and returned to military service. When Kurdish forces seized control of the major cities during the 3/1991 uprising, Muhsin Hassan Ibrahim made contact with the IMIK at the Waqf (Religious Endowment) Directorate in Arbil. There, he was arrested and accused of betraying the IMIK and revealing information about its organizations in 1989. In mid-1992 he was being held at an IMIK prison in Rawanduz military garrison near Kawlukan, where his family was able to visit him. Shortly afterwards, he was transferred to another place of detention at the IMIK's base in Hawara Barza (Sulaimaniya Province), where he was reportedly put on trial. IMIK officials told Amnesty International in 7/1994 that they had no knowledge of these cases but undertook to investigate them and inform the organization of their findings. By 1/1995 no response had been received. [=] custody took place during the armed clashes of 12/1993 and 5/1994. These are discussed separately later in this chapter. One major incident, however, took place on 710/7/1991, prior to the withdrawal of Iraqi Government forces from the region. Two days earlier, the Iraqi armed forces had indiscriminately attacked civilians in the towns of Kifri, Kalar and 'Arbat, and then in Sulaimaniya, using helicopter gunships and heavy artillery. Several hundred people, most of them civilians, were reported to have been killed or wounded. In an apparent act of retaliation, an estimated 60 unarmed Iraqi soldiers who had earlier surrendered to Kurdish forces in Sulaimaniya were shot dead. A correspondent of Reuters news agency, who stated that he had witnessed the killings, said: "Six were shot without warning together as they knelt in the dirt with their hands in the air. Several others were killed individually. A large group, estimated to number more than 50, were mowed down by automatic weapons fired at close range inside a building where they had surrendered." [Reuters despatch of 10/8/1991.] Both Jalal Talabani and Masoud Barzani publicly condemned the killings at the time. They announced that an inquiry would be set up and declared that those responsible would be brought to justice. On 18 October Amnesty International appealed to Masoud Barzani, as head of the IKF, to call for an end to such practices and asked to be informed of the findings of the inquiry. In 12/1991 Masoud Barzani informed the organization that although at preliminary investigation had been conducted by the IKF committee in Sulaimaniya, it had been agreed on 15 December that a new commission of inquiry representing the IKF Political leadership would be set up: "... having made an initial inquiry to identify the fighters who were present at the scene, the new commission is authorized to see the due process of law take its place. A court hearing [will] take place [in] the second half of 1/1992, to bring all culprits to justice... The outcome of the inquiry and hearing [will] be made public..." An invitation was extended to Amnesty International to observe the proceedings. Amnesty International declined but requested details of the investigation's procedures and the steps taken against the alleged perpetrators; results of the commission of inquiry; details of the composition, terms of reference and procedures of the commission; and details of the composition of the court before which the accused were due to appear, the procedures it would follow and the penal law to be applied. The organization sought assurances that the defendants be granted full rights of defence and, if convicted, of appeal to a higher court. It also urged, in the event of conviction, that none be sentenced to death or executed. No response was received. In fact, the findings of the commission of inquiry were not made public nor was a trial held. In 5/1992 Amnesty International obtained a copy of an internal report prepared by members of the commission of inquiry, dated 1/26/1992. The report gave details of the progress of the investigation and identified 14 Pesh Merga said to be suspected of the killings. Seven of them were said to be affiliated to the PUK and six to the KSP-I. [The KSP=I at that time was led by Rasul Mamand.] The commission members proposed that the 14 suspects be summoned by the IKP Political Leadership for questioning by the commission. To Amnesty International's knowledge, the suspects were held in custody for a period but by 5/1992 all had been released in accordance with an IKF decision not to pursue the investigation. None of the perpetrators has since been brought to justice. During the 1991 uprising, tens of thousands of Iraqi army personnel were captured by or surrendered to Kurdish opposition forces. The majority were disarmed and allowed to return to government-controlled areas. Several thousand, however, mainly officers and other senior army personnel, were detained by Kurdish political parties for several months. Most were subsequently released under the auspices of the ICRC, while others were released by the IKF in exchange for money following appeals from their 10153. Amnesty International. Iraq: Human Rights Abuses in Iraqi Kurdistan Since 1991: Part 30: Chapter Five: Human Rights Abuses By The Political Parties: Unlawful and Deliberate Killings. New York: Amnesty International, February 28, 1995. MDE 14/01/95. [99H11408] [19950228] Hundreds of people have been unlawfully and deliberately killed in Iraqi Kurdistan since the region fell under Kurdish control. Many others have survived attempted assassinations. It has not been possible for Amnesty International to investigate all cases broughtto its attention, particularly where no political motive was apparent or where the alleged perpetrators were neither linked to any of the political parties or organizations in the region nor acting on their behalf. These include numerous revenge killings and murders during robberies. However, responsibility clearly lies with the forces of the political parties in incidents involving the killing of unarmed prisoners. Scores of combatants captured during military clashes are reported to have been deliberately killed, either immediately after surrender or later after being taken into custody. Other killings have been perpetrated outside the context of any armed clashes. These include the killing of unarmed civilian demonstrators and the assassination of political activists. Most allegations implicate three political parties -the PUK, KDP and IMIK. The organization raised its concerns with the parties' loaders and, in several cases, with the party officials who were allegedly directly responsible for the killings. Their responses consisted as a rule of outright denials. While internal investigations have been set up into a number of incidents involving unlawful and deliberate killings, these have been largely cosmetic and to date have not resulted in the perpetrators being brought to justice. [=] 10154. Amnesty International. Iraq: Human Rights Abuses in Iraqi Kurdistan Since 1991: Part 31: Chapter Five: Human Rights Abuses By The Political Parties: Unlawful and Deliberate Killings: The Killing of Combatants After Surrender. New York: Amnesty International, February 28, 1995. MDE 14/01/95. [99H-11409] [19950228] Most incidents involving the killing of combatants after surrender or in 81 Kurdistan and the Kurds families. However, the fate and whereabouts of a small number of Iraqi soldiers remains unknown. In 5/1992 Amnesty International received from Kurdish sources the names of 37 soldiers who went missing in March or between July and 10/1991 and who remain unaccounted for. The organization has also received allegations suggesting that scores of Iraqi soldiers were executed in secret while in the custody of Kurdish forces. Some of these allegations were made by former detainees who were held in the same places of detention as the soldiers, including in PUK custody in Qala Cholan. One former detainee, a member of Rewti Comunist held in Qala Cholan in early 4/1991, testified that dozens of soldiers were executed in the detention centre. He stated that he did not witness the executions but that he subsequently saw the bodies of some victims in the courtyard of the detention centre. In 5/1992 Jalal Talabani told Amnesty International that all Iraqi soldiers who were in PUK custody had been handed over to the ICRC. It was not possible for Amnesty International to independently verify either account. [=] Ministers] went to the governorate building to involve the local authorities in controlling the security situation in the city. There, a group of hostile armed youth attacked them with threatening behaviour and damaged their cars. The bodyguards of the officials - the Deputy Minister for Pesh Merga Affairs and the Commander of the Unifed Pesh Merga Army in Sulaimaniya - fired shots in the air to disperse the agitators... in the chaotic situation that ensued, three people were injured by firearms." In 2/1994 Amnesty International talked to KDP and KSP-I representatives as well as eye-witnesses in Sulaimaniya. The new information did not support the original reports it had received regarding the circumstances in which four civilians were said to have died. Testimony obtained from a variety of people was consistent in suggesting that the deaths had occurred during armed clashes between the two sides. In other respects, however, the accounts of events differed from that presented by the KDP - specifically in relation to the incidents which took place both outside the Governorate building and the KDP's Fourth Liq in the city. In both cases, the accounts suggested that the demonstrators had not been armed, and that shots fired by KDP guards did wound several civilians. Amnesty International discussed its concerns about this incident with the Prime Minister, Kosrat Rasul 'Ali. It sought information about the findings of the investigation initiated by the Council of Ministers and which involved the Ministers of Interior and Pesh Merga Affairs. The Prime Minister told the organization that while an official investigation was ongoing, it was unlikely to be effective or yield results due to the political sensitivities between the KDP and PUK. No findings, if any were arrived at, were communicated to the organization. With regard to KSP-I detainees arrested by the DP in both Arbil and Sulaimaniya in 12/1993, Amnesty International established that all were released within two weeks. None had been handed over to police or Asayish jurisdiction while in detention, despite Masoud Barzani's statement in his letter to Amnesty International that all action taken by KDP forces against the KSP-I had been "fully authorized by the administration's top officials...". (2) A funeral procession of several thousand people was held in Sulaimaniya on 6/13/1994 for 'Uthman Qader Munawwar, a KlDP military commander killed four days earlier during clashes with the PUK in Penjwin. Shooting broke out before the funeral procession was over, and dozens of people were killed or injured. The PUK announced that 14 people had been killed and 46 others wounded; the KDP initially said 51 had been killed but later published the names of only 22. Among those frilled and whose names were submitted to AmnestyInternational by their families were: Aras Qader Ahmad, Jamal 'Aziz Hilanat, Bahruz Ahmad 'Abdullah, Qaraman Mahmud Saleh, Sardar Mahmud Matruf and Muhammad Karim Sufi Ahmad. In 7/1994, Amnesty International interviewed 29 men and women who had taken part in the procession. Some had been injured, while others had been with relatives who were killed. Several had also assisted in carrying the dead and injured to hospitals. According to their accounts, as the peaceful procession approached the Kawa roundabout, close to the hospital, KDP's former Fourth Liq, the shooting started. Most of the shooting was reportedly carried out by PUK forces stationed on the roof of the Fourth Liq as well as from other nearby buildings. A number of people were killed and others injured, among them several who were carrying 'Uthman Qader Munawwar's coffin. The coffin was then taken away to the cemetery for burial. PUK forces stationed on rooftops, as well as members of the PUK Special Brigades deployed in the streets, were said to have continued firing at random into the crowd, injuring a number of people who we.e carrying the wounded. Eye-witnesses at Sulaimaniya's Emergency Hospital described seeing scores of dead and wounded there. Amnesty International received numerous allegations that some of the injured 10155. Amnesty International. Iraq: Human Rights Abuses in Iraqi Kurdistan Since 1991: Part 32: Chapter Five: Human Rights Abuses By The Political Parties: Unlawful and Deliberate Killings: The Killing of Civilian Demonstrators. New York: Amnesty International, February 28, 1995. MDE 14/01/95. [99H-11410] [19950228] Over the past three years there have been several incidents involving the killing or wounding of unarmed civilian demonstrators by the forces of one or other of the political parties. Below are details of three such incidents: (1) Clashes broke out in 12/1993 between KDP and KSP-I forces in Arbil and Sulaimaniya against a background of rising tensions between the readerships of the two parties. On 10 December KSP-I forces under Muhammad Haji Mahmud's authority attacked and took control of the headquarters of the Unified Pesh Merga forces' 24th Brigade in Sulaimaniya, taking weaponry and other military equipment. The following day KDP forces took control of two KSP-I bases in Arbil and arrested 11 people. On 13 December KDP forces attacked KSP-I bases in Sulaimaniya and in the ensuing clashes several civilians were killed and others injured. An estimated 15 KSP-I members were arrested after KDP forces took control of the bases. On the same day several hundred apparently unarmed and peaceful civilians demonstrated in Sulaimaniya against the inter-party fighting. According to information received by Amnesty International at the time, attempts by KDP forces to disperse the demonstrators resulted in shots being fired, killing four people and injuring over 60 others. On 22 December Amnesty International sent a communication to Masoud Barzani requesting information about the incident, including the findings of any investigadon into the idenffty of the perpetrators, and about all KSP-I members in KDP custody. The following day Mas'ud Barzani replied that Amnesty Internaffonal's information was "misrepresentedand distorted by the sources of the reports". His letter stated: "On 13 December, when two offices of the group [the KSP-I were controlled in Sulaimaniya city, a number of civilians were hurt in the crossfire. Yet the armed group bears most of the responsibility for the civilian casualties due to its use of mortar shells in the city... A demonstration was organized with the backing and support of... the PUK to agitate people against the KDP and take advantage of the situation for party interest objectives. Attempts to discourage city officials, who are mainly from the PUK, from organizing the demonstration failed. The demonstration, attended by a few hundred, marched to the KDP office in Sulaimaniya [the KDP's Fourth Liq], and when some agitators tried to attack the party property, shots were fired by the guards overhead to discourage them and nobody was hurt. I absolutely deny the allegation that the KDP shot at peaceful demonstrators. The figure of four people killed and 60 others injured is unfounded... KDP officials [representing the Council of 82 Kurdistan and the Kurds were denied adequate medical treatment at the hospital by senior doctors sympathetic to the PUK, and that several had died as a result. These allegations could not be independently verified. PUK officials denied that their forces had deliberately fred into the crowd. They stated that the procession had not been peaceful and that the participants were hostile, chanting anti-PUK slogans. The Governor of Sulaimaniya, Salar 'Aziz (a PUK official), told Amnesty International that some of those in the crowd had been armed with hand grenades and Kalashnikov rifles hidden under their clothes, and that their true intent had been to take control of the Fourth Liq. He stated that PUK forces had acted in self-defence when they opened fire, and that four of them had been injured after a hand grenade was thrown in their direction. Amnesty International asked to meet these four men, but none was made available. PUK officials later told the organization that only one PUK Pesh Merga had been wounded; the other three were said to be civilians affiliated to the PUK who were in the crowd and had been injured. Amnesty International asked to meet with them too, but again none was made available. PUK officials then informed Amnesty International that it could have access to four detainees who were being held in Asayish custody in Sulaimaniya. All were accused of being agents of the Iraqi Government's intelligence service charged with carrying out acts of sabotage in Iraqi Kurdistan, and of having planned and triggered the clashes during the funeral procession. They were said to have confessed to the charges. Amnesty International interviewed two of the four detainees, including the main suspect in the case, Qassem Karim Ahmad (known as Qassem Darayi). The organization also discussed their wes with the invesdgating judge responsible for Asayish affairs in Sulaimaniya. The organization learned that Qassem Darayi, who is affiliated to the KDP, had been arrested on the night of 6/13/1994 and held for over one month in PUK custody at an unacknowledged place of detention. He was interrogated by PUK officials while being denied access to his family, a defence lawyer and an investigating judge. the PUK then announced that Qassem Darayi had "confessed" to the charges against him, and broadcast extracts from his "confession" on television. He was then transferred to Asayish custody on 18 July, three days before Amnesty International interviewed him. On that day, he was brought before an investigating judge for the first time. His statement was taken down by the investigating judge in the presence of one of the PUK officials who had interrogated him. When Amnesty International saw him at the Asayish prison, his physical condition was frail and hisappearance strongly suggested that he had been tortured. The following day Amnesty International raised his case with the Prime Minister, Kosrat Rasul 'Ali. The organization requested that Qassem Darayi and his codefendants be transferred to Arbil where they might stand a better chance of receiving a fair trial, and that they be medically examined by an independent doctor. The Prime Minister agreed to both requests. It was not known, at the time of writing, whether these requests had in fact been met. Following the events of 13 June, scores of people who had taken part in the funeral procession were rounded up from their homes by the PUK. Among them were people who had been identified from photographstaken by the KDP of the procession and which were published in the party's newspapers. Most were held for short periods and then released. A number of them told Amnesty International in July 1994 that they had left their homes in Sulaimaniya for fear of further reprisals. The KDP accused the PUK of carrying out an "appalling massacre of innocent civilian mourners", while the PUK charged that the KDP "was intent on using the funeral to destabilize the situation in the city [and that] large numbers of KDP gunmen were shipped into [Sulaimaniya], taking advantage of recent cease-fire measures..." Both parties called for independent judicial investigations into the incident, but no such investigation was subsequently carried out. (3) A demonstration organized by the Kurdistan Workers Federation (Fidrasyoni Krekaran le Kurdistan/Federaliyyat al-Ummal fi Kurdistan) [The Kurdistan Workers Federation is composed of several associations representing workers employed in construction, textiles and cement enterprises, as well as some private sector workers and the unemployed.] was held in Sulamaniya on 9/1/1994. Several hundred people were said to have participated in protest against a decision by the Governor of Sulaimaniya to knock down makeshift shelters which had been erected illegally in the city. The majority of people living in these shelters were Kurds from Kirkuk who had been forcibly expelled from their homes by the Iraqi Government. The demonstrators had gathered in front of the Governorate building, demanding that the decision be rescinded until the people concerned had been rehoused. According to accounts of 9/1994 received by Amnesty International from two participants, PUK forces fired into the crowd in an attempt to disperse them. Bakr 'Ali, a representative of the Union of the Unemployed and one of the organizers of the demonstration, was wounded and then allegedly pursued and shot dead by members of the PUK's Special Brigades. A PUK representative told Amnesty International in 10/1994 that after scuffles had broken out outside the Governorate building, a guard stationed there opened fire, killing one person. He rejected claims that Special Brigade forces had been present during the demonstration or that anyone had been deliberately killed. He added that the guard, said to be a member of the civilian police, was under arrest pending an investigation. At the time of writing, Amnesty International had not received details of its findings. [=] 10156. Amnesty International. Iraq: Human Rights Abuses in Iraqi Kurdistan Since 1991: Part 33: Chapter Five: Human Rights Abuses By The Political Parties: Unlawful and Deliberate Killings: Assassinations. New York: Amnesty International, February 28, 1995. MDE 14/01/95. [99H-11411] [19950228] Scores of people have been assassinated in Iraqi Kurdistan since the region fell under Kurdish control. .Many such killings have been attributed to agents of both the Iraqi and Iranian governments operating in the region. Others, however, were said to have been carried out by forces or individuals working under the authority of some of the political parties in Iraqi Kurdistan. These parties are principally the PUK, KDP and IMIK, all of which have denied that their forces have perpetuated such crimes. The victims include political activists, men of religion and members of the legal and other professions. Amnesty International has also received information on a number of women who were said to have been assassinated on the grounds of allegedly having provided several favours, whether under duress or otherwise, to members of the Iraqi intelligence service. There were allegations of political party involvement in some of these killings but Amnesty International was unable to obtain further information on these cases. In other cases, it was difficult to determine whether the killings were politically motivated. Among such victims was Ahmad Janbaz, a lawyer and member of the Iraqi National Turkman Party who was shot dead with his son Mustafa in Arbil on 6/15/1994. Some victims were said to have been killed by political party forces but for personal or financial reasons, while others appear to have been killed for political considerations.Those listed below are a sample of the scores of cases brought to Amnesty International's attention which appeared to have been politically motivated. (1) Mustafa 'Ali al-Barzanji: a Sunni Muslim religious cleric who in early 1992 published a book in Arbil under the title "The Words of God." In it he claimed that he was a prophet (the "awaited Imam") and that his book contained messages he had received through divine 83 Kurdistan and the Kurds inspiration. His dismembered body was found near the Maternity Hospital in Arbil on 9/13/1992. In 12/1992, the Ministry of Interior told Amnesty International that arrest warrants had been issued for three IMIK members suspected of having carried out the killing, among them was said to be a member of the IMIK's Political Bureau. The Ministry said, however, that it had not been possible to apprehend them. (2) 'Aziz Muhammad Khoshnaw: born 1932 in Sulaimaniya, married with three children, assistant general director of the Sulaimaniya cigarette factory. He was shot dead by armed assailants on 4/7/1993 as he left his home in Sulaimaniya. His body was reportedly riddled with over 30 bullets. No suspects were subsequently apprehended. (3) Ra'uf Kamel 'Aqrawi: born 1952 in 'Aqra (Duhok Province), married with three children. He was the main spokesperson for Tekoshin. Following five months in detention without trial in Arbil in late 1992 (see Chapter 4), he began publishing a newspaper, Regay Rendjderan, as the main organ of Tekoshin. He was shot dead by armed assailants on 5/25/1993 as he was returning to his home in Duhok. No suspects were subsequently apprehended. Shortly before he died, Ra'uf Kamel 'Aqrawi had published an article in Regay Rendjderan critical of the KOP and PUK's "50-50 policy". (4) Francis Yusuf Shabo: born 1951 in Mangesh (Duhok Province), married with four children. An Assyrian Christian of the Chaldean sect, he was an active member of the ADM. He became a member of parliament after the May 1992 elections and was a member of the National Assembly's Economic Committee. He was also responsible for dealing with complaints submitted by Assyrian Christians regarding disputed villages in Babdinan from which they had been forcibly evicted by the Iraqi Government and subsequently resettled by Kurds. He was shot dead by armed assailants on 5/31/1993 as he approached his home in Duhok. No suspects were subsequently apprehended. (5) Lazar Milcho Hanna (known as Abu Nasir): an Assyrian Christian born 1933 in Mangesh, married. He was a member of the ICP's Central Committee for the Iraqi Kurdistan Region and was also a member of a three-person committee responsible for the IKF's financial affairs. He was shot dead by armed assailants on 6/14/1993 near his home in Duhok. No suspects were subsequently apprehended. (6) Tahsin 'Ali Nayef: born 1956 in Duhok, married with five children. He was an investigating judge in the town of Zakho, and was responsible for issuing arrest warrants and bringing legal proceedings against a number of people believed to have been involved in the drugs trade in the Bahdinan region. He had reportedly refused to respond to pleas for the release of some of them. He was shot dead by armed assailants on 17/17/1993 at his home in Zakho, in the presence of his wife and children. A suspect affiliated to the PUK was arrested shortly after but was subsequently released (see below). (7) Soran 'Uthman Hama Saleh: born in Sulaimaniya, he was affiliated to the ICP and was a member of its local committee in the ciq. He was killed by armed assailants in Sulairnaniya on 7/22/1993 and was allegedly tortured prior to his death. No suspects were subseguently apprehended. (8) Qais Muhammad Ahmad (known as Renas): born 1959 in Arbil, married with two children. A political activist since 1974, he was elected to the KTP's Central Committee in 4/1992 and was transferred to Duhok, becoming the party's representative in Bahdinan. He was shot dead on 7/29/1993 at the KTP's base in Duhok, in the presence of his wife, by KDP forces, scores of whom had surrounded the base prior to the killing. Similar attacks on KTP bases in nearby Zakho and Sumail were said to have been carried out the same day. Several KDP members were arrested after the killing (see below). (9) Mulla 'Abd al-Rahman Qader Yunis: born 1933 in Arbil. He was head of the Union of Religious Scholars. He was shot dead in Arbil on 8/5/1993 as he left the premises of the Union of Religious Scholars. Two men in a taxi drew up behind him and shot him at close range with a gun fitted with a silencer. Several people were reportedly summoned for interrogation by the Ministry of Interior which opened an investigation into the incident, but to date no one has been convicted of the crime. Mulla 'Abd al-Rahman was said to be close to the KDP althoup not affiliated. He was said to have criticized in his sermons the IMIK's interpretation of Islam and the use of religion for political ends. (10) Nazhir 'Umar 'Ali (known as Aram): born 1964 in Sumail (Duholc Province), single. He was a leading member of Rewti Comunist and the IWCP, and helped produce the IWCP's newspaper, Bo Peshewe. He was also a spokesperson for the Union of the Unemployed in Kurdistan. On 8/28/1993 he left his home in Sumail, apparently to join friends, but never returned. His body was found three days later on the outskirts of Sumail: he was said to have been shot in the head and chest and his body burned. No suspects were subsequently apprehended. His family accused the ICDP of having had him killed through its members attached to the Duhok Asayish Directorate. Nazhir 'Umar 'Ali, according to his family and colleagues,hadbeen summoned on at least two occasions in the months prior to his death by Asayish personnel, who reportedly attempted to pressurize him into abandoning his activities and renouncing his political affiliation (see below). (11) 'Ali 'Abdullah Boskani: born 1933 in Sulaimaniya, married with children. A wealthy businessman, he was affiliated to the ICP for many years although he reportedly had left the party some time before his death. He was shot dead on 8/29/1993 in a busy street in Sulaimaniya by armed assailants. No suspects were subsequently apprehended (see below). (12) Adam Zrar 'Uthman: born 1973 in a village near Arbil, single. A student of industrial studies, he was reportedly associated with the IMIK. He was abducted by four armed men in a crowded marketplace in Arbil on 2/12/1994. His body was found Iying in the streets of Arbil flve days later; it showed numerous gunshot wounds and his right arm had been partially severed. Amnesty International was not able to substantiate allegations it had received that PUK forces had carried out the killing. (13) Muhammad Rahim 'Abdullah (known as Khala Haji): born 1947 in Sulaimaniya, married with nine children. A former member of the KDP, he joined the KSP-I in 1979 and was elected to its Central Committee in 5/1981. He remained with the KSP-I when it was reconstituted under the leadership of Muhammad Haji Mahmud in 10/1993. He was gunned town in Sulaimaniya on 3/11/1994 by armed assailants and died in hospital several hours later. No suspects were subsequently apprehended. (14) Fu'ad 'Abd al-Rahman al-Chalabi: a senior member of the Muslim Brotherhood, a group which operates under the name of the Kurdistan Islamic Union (Yekgertay Islami Kurdistanlal-Wahda alIslamiyya al-Kurdistaniyya). He was shot dead in Arbil on 10/6/1994. (15) Mulla 'Abd al-Rahman 'Abd al-Qader: Deputy Head of the Union of Religious Scholars and preacher at the 'Umar bin al-Khattab mosque in Arbil. On 11/26/1994 he was attacked by an assailant armed with an axe and later tied in hospital. (16) Nuri Isma'il Nanakali: a lawyer and active PUK cadre who serves as president of the Arbil Sector Court and the Supreme Kurdistan Court in 1991. He was shot dead together with a companion in the streets of Arbil on 11/27/1994. No effective or meaningful investigations into these and other killings have been carried out to date. All the above victims were 84 Kurdistan and the Kurds killed after the Kurdish administration was established. In most of these cases, the Council of Ministers set up committees, headed by investigating or court judges, to gather and examine the evidence. None have so far resulted in any convictions. Amnesty International has received numerous allegations attributing these killings to special forces within the KDP, PUK and IMIK. The security apparatus of the KDP, Rekkhistini Taybeti, and that of the PUK, Dergay Zanyori, are said to have units akin to assassination squads, whose members receive orders from senior party officials. There is also widespread conviction that such unlawful and deliberate killings could not have been perpetrated without the knowledge, consent or acquiescence of the leaders of these two parties, to whom the security and intelligence apparatuses are ultimately responsible. The names of individuals alleged to be members of assassination squads within the KDP and PUK have been submitted to Amnesty International, including by officials of both parties who supplied information about the other's security and intelligence activities. Some of this information was supported by documents which each party said it had seized from the other's bases during the 5/1994 clashes. While the authenticity of these documents could not be independently verified by Amnesty International, some of the details were consistent with information received from other sources. Similarly, the authenticity of documents said by the PUK to have been seized from IMIK bases during the 12/1993 clashes could not be independently verified, but some of their contents were equally consistent with information from other sources. The documents did not identify individual IMIK members involved in killings, but there were details of extensive surveillance operations of named individuals, as well as references to killings and attempted killings by the IMIK. The PUK subsequently published extracts from some of these documents in their newspapers. The IMIK responded by stating that the PUK had forged the documents. In 10/1993 Amnesty International met officials from the Ministries of Justice and Interior to obtain information regarding the official investigations into some of the above mentioned killings. Both ministries said that separate investigations had been set up into the Sulaimaniya and Duhok killings. Amnesty International met the President of the Duhok Criminal Court, who was heading the investigation in that province. He said that the committee enjoyed the same powers as investigating judges, and that the families of the victims ant others had been summoned and their testimonies recorded. He said that two suspects were being held pending further inquiries. He also informed Amnesty International that he was no longer responsible for the matter, as the investigation was being transferred to Arbil. The families of the victims whom Amnesty International met, both in Duhok and Sulaimaniya, confirmed that they had been summoned but some complained that the suspected perpetrators had not been called for questioning. They said that they did not expect the investigations to yield any results. Some believed that the real perpetrators would not be brought to justice since they were protected by their respective political parties. Amnesty International shares that conviction. In Arbil, the Minister of Justice told Amnesty International that the investigations had been transferred there for the sake of effectiveness, since progress had been slow. Another member of the Council of Ministers told the organization privately that in Duhok, "pressure" had been applied to the investigation committee such that it could not proceed. A new committee was to be set up in Arbil to investigate both the Duhok and Sulaimaniya killings as well as those which subsequently took place in Arbil. In the event, no such committee was formed and, to Amnesty International's knowledge, responsibility for the whole matter now rests with one investigating judge whose progress, understandably, has been slow. Even in the one incident where the alleged killers were identified andapprehended,the case has been fraught with difficulties. Qais Muhammad Ahmad (Renal), a member of the KTP Central Committee, was assassinated in front of eye-witnesses, and three members of the KDP's First Liq in Duhok were named as his killers. Two of them were arrested shortly after; the third suspect was said to have been injured during the incident and was hospitalized. However, he remained at liberty for several months and was only apprehended following pressure and intervention by the KTP leadership. By July 1994, one year after the killing, the case had not gone to trial. The three suspects were transferred from Duhok to Arbil and were being held at al-Mahatta prison On 97/9/1994, four days before Qais Muhammad Ahmad's wife was due to identify them as her husband's killers, the third suspect was removed from prison. He was reportedly taken by people claiming to represent the Salahuddhn police force who said that the suspect was wanted there for questioning. This transfer apparently took place without the knowledge or consent of the investigating judge responsible for the case, and the suspect's whereabouts could not be confirmed. On 25 July the Minister of Interior told Amnesty International that a committee composed of three officers had been set up to investigate the incident and that Amnesty International would be informed of its findings. The same day Mas'ud Barzani told the organization that he had no knowledge of the incident but would make inquiries. At the time of writing, Amnesty International had not received any information concerning the outcome of these investigations. In 10/1993 Amnesty International raised some of the killings highlighted in this report with Mas'ud Barzani and Jalal Talabani, and in 2/1994 other cases were raised with Shaikh 'Uthman 'Abd al-'Aziz and several IMIK leaders. Mas'ud Barzani said that the KDP was opposed to political assassinations. He said he had proposed a special committee to investigate the killings and that if it proved the involvement of any KDP members, they would be brought to justice. He acknowledged that politically motivated assassinations had taken place but said these were largely the result of personal feuds. Regarding the killings in Duhok province, Mas'ud Barzani said that both he and Fadel Mirani (the KDP's representative in Bahdinan), had advised the victims' families to initiate legal proceedings against any KDP official against whom they had evidence. The cases raised with Masoud Barzani, apart from that of Qais Muhammad Ahmad, included: Fransis Yusuf Shabo, Ra'uf Kamel 'Aqrawi, Lazar Mikho Hanna (Abu Nasir) and Nazhir 'Umar 'Ali (Aram). In the first three cases, the organization had received the names of people said to be linked to the KDP's First Liq who were allegedly responsible for the killings. Amnesty International expressed its scepticism to Masoud Barzani about the families' ability to produce hard evidence of KDP compliciq, about their willingness to initiate legal proceedings, and about the effectiveness of the official investigations. The organization said that the lrillings themselves deterred the victims' families, eyewitnesses, other informants and members of the judiciary from taking any measures for fear of meeting the same fate. At the same time, some families did hold the KDP. responsible for the killings and had asked Amnesty International to convey this to thi party's leader. Among them were the parents of Nazhir 'Umar 'Ali. Masoud Barzani said he did not "even know the family". However, he undertook to visit Duhok agaid and to meet the families concerned. Amnesty International subsequently learned that such a visit did take place and among the families visited was that of Nazhir 'Umar 'Ali However, as one has since been apprehended and brought to justice for his death or thif of the other victims named. In February 1994 Masoud Barzani told Amnesty International that the KDP had evidence of Iraqi Government complicity in the killing of Fransis Yusuf Shabo, and that the alleged 85 Kurdistan and the Kurds perpetrators were in Mosul. the organization requested the evidence but did not receive it. In June 1994 a public statement by Amnesty International on the human rights situation in Iraqi Kurdistan referred to political killings by the KDP. The KDP responded by issuing a public statement and sending a letter to the organization's Secretary General. The following is an extract from that letter" "As to the killing of rival political activists, there may be some circumstantial evidence that some murder cases have taken place in the KDP stronghold of Babdinan region (Duhok province), yet to link these cases to the party itself is inaccurate These assassinations have taken place not only in Bahdinan, but in other Kurdish provinces of Erbil and Sulaimaniya as well. But to single out the KDP and directly hold it responsible is unfair judgement. We have looked into the 3-5 cases... and we believe the killings grew out of old, personal feuds. We do condemn political killings and their perpetrators and we welcome any further inquity into the case." Amnesty International's concerns regarding political killings were also put to PUK leader Jalal Talabani in 10/1993. The specific cases raised, which had been attributed to the PUK, were those of 'Aziz Muhammad Koshnaw and 'Ali 'Abdullah Boskani. Jalal Talabani expressed the PUK's readiness to cooperate with official investigations into these and other killings. He added that the PUK had also initiated its own "internal investigation" into these two killings, and that anyone found responsible would be brought to justice. Amnesty International does not know if such an investigation was ever conducted and, if so, it has not been provided with its findings. What is known is that no one has been brought to justice for these two killings. In early 1994 the PUK published extracts from a document said to have been among those seized from IMIK bases during the 12/1993 clashes. The document referred to several attempts by the IMIK to assassinate 'Ali 'Abdullah Boskani, a claim which the IMIK then refuted. Another case in which the PUK was said to have been implicated is that of Tahsin 'Ali Nayif, the investigating judge who was killed in Zakho. Shortly after the incident a PUK member was apprehendedonsuspicion of involvement. He was initially held in police custody, but was later handed over to the Ministry for Pesh Merga Affairs on the grounds that he was a military man (he was a deputy battalion commander based in Duhok), and was held on the Ministry's premises in Arbil. The Minister for Pesh Merga Affairs, Jabbar Farman, told Amnesty International in 10/1993 that he had requested the setting up of an ad hoc military court to put the suspect on trial, arguing that he should not be tried before a civilian court. This did not happen, however. Complaints were subsequently made to the Ministry of Justice that the suspect was not in detention and had been seen walking freely on the Ministry's premises. The Minister of Justice took up the matter with Jabbar Fannan in a letter dated 11/10/1993. However, the suspect was released uncharged. The PUK has denied involvement in killing Tahsin 'Ali Nayef, and some of its officials accused the KDP of having perpetrated the crime and of seeking to implicate the PUK in the Duhok killings. The KDP refuted this claim. Amnesty International has not been able to obtain further information about other killings attributed to the PUK, among them that of Soran 'Uthman Hama Saleh. In 2/1994 Amnesty International raised with Shaikh 'Uthman 'Abd al-'Aziz its concerns regarding killings attributed to the IMIK, specifically the cases of Mustafa 'Ali alBarzanji and Mulla 'Abd al-Rahrnan Qader Yunis. Shaith 'Uthman and other officials present said that "such acts are against Islam and are not perpetrated by the Movement". With regard to Mustafa 'Ali alBarzanji, Shaikh 'Uthrnan said that he had deemed him to be "insane" and his book to be "blasphemous" but that the IMIK was not responsible for killing him and had condemned the act. He denied IMIK responsibility for the killing of Mulla 'Abd al-Rahman Qader Yunis, adding that he had personally issued a statement deploring the crime. He also denied that the IMIK had threatened or intimidated other religious clerics. [=] 10157. Amnesty International. Iraq: Human Rights Abuses in Iraqi Kurdistan Since 1991: Part 34: Chapter Five: Human Rights The Events of 12/1993. New York: Amnesty International, February 28, 1995. MDE 14/01/95. [99H-11412] [19950228] Armed clashes broke out in the third week of 12/1993 between PUK and IMIK forces against a background of mounting tension between the two parties. Initially the clashes were confined to the Kifri region (Kirkuk province), but they spread rapidly to cities and towns in Kirkuk, Sulaimaniya and Arbil provinces, and lasted some two weeks. By the end of December, IMIK forces had suffered a heavy military defeat and were forced to retreat to their strongholds in the border regions. Both the PUK and IMIK reportedly sustained heavy casualties although the number of combatants killed or wounded could not be reliably verified. Civilian casualties were also said to have been high, particularly after the conflict spread to Arbil and SulaimanIya. It is almost certain, however, that the number of combatants and civilians killed or injured during the two-week period ran into several hundred, perhaps as many in 500. Homes and public places, including mosques, were destroyed in the major cities and towns, in large part due to the heavy weaponry used. Serious human rights abuses were committed by both sides during and after the clashes. Hundreds of combatants as well as civilians were taken prisoner, the vast majority of them by the PUK. Both parties issued public statements accusing the other of having sparked off the conflict and of committing abuses. These included torture of detainees, unlawful and deliberate killings of prisoners after surrender and, in some cases, mutilation. The IMIK also charged the PUK with conducting widespread arrests of suspected IMIK members or supporters both during and after the clashes. To Amnesty International's knowledge, the only other political party in Iraqi Kurdistan which took part in the conflict was the Kurdistan Communist Party, whose forces were said to have fought alongside the PUK in the Kalar region. On 12/23/1993 Amnesty International sent communications to the PUK's leader and the IMIK's Spiritual Guide, expressing its concern about the numerous alleged abuses and appealingfor their end. The organization sought verification of the allegations, requested details of all those taken prisoner, and urged that they be handed to the Kurdish administration authorities. Amnesty International also wrote to the Prime Minister, Kosrat Rasul 'Ali, urging that the Council of Ministers initiate prompt, thorough and impartial investigations into all reported abuses and to bring to justice those found responsible in accordance with international norms. The organization urged the Council of Ministers to take immediate steps to transfer all detainees held by the PUK and IMIK into the custody of the Kurdish administration, to ensure that they be protected from torture or ill-treatment and to promptly release all those who are not to be charged with a recognizable criminal offence. No response was received to any of Amnesty International's communications. In 2/1994, during a visit to Iraqi Kurdistan, Amnesty International interviewed several of the small number of IMIK members and supporters still being held by the PUK (the majority had been released the previous month) as well as former detainees held by both sides. Testimony was obtained from torture victims and staff at several hospitals, where autopsy reports were examined. The families and friends of some victims of alleged unlawful and deliberate killings, as well as eye-witnesses, were also interviewed. Amnesty International raised its concerns with representatives of the PUK and IMIK and with officials of the Council of Ministers. [=] 10158. Amnesty International. Iraq: Human Rights Abuses in Iraqi 86 Kurdistan and the Kurds Kurdistan Since 1991: Part 35: Chapter Five: Human Rights The Events of 12/1993: Background To The Human Rights Abuses. New York: Amnesty International, February 28, 1995. MDE 14/01/95. [99H11413] [19950228] On 12/16/1993 an IMIK member was apprehended by PUK armed fighters in the town of Kifri (Kirkuk province). Ihsan Jabbar Ibrahim, imam of a mosque in the town and a teacher of English at Kifri Secondary School, wu held at the local PUK base for two days and then released after intervention by senior IMIK officials. Two days earlier, according to accounts received, clashes had taken place between an IMIK and a PUK member in the town, which resulted in the latter being shot and injured. On 18 December, prior to Ihsan Jabbar Ibrahim's release, the IMIK announced it had abducted two PUK members to use as leverage to secure his release. Relatives of the two men retaliated by attacking a car belonging to the IMIK, resulting in the death of four people and the injury of others. In the interim, efforts were made by senior officials from both sides to contain the situation. Between 16 and 19 December, joint PUK-IMIK committees were set up to normalise relations and bring the clashes under control. Agreement was reached on the exchange of prisoners held by each party, among other things. However, on 17 December, PUK fighters reportedly ambushed six IMIK members on the outskirts of Kifri, killing four of them. Four days later the body of a PUK member, Azad Karim Samin, was found in the streets of Kifri (see below); he was among 11 PUK detainees who were held at an IMIK base in the town, ten of whom were released on 19 November. On 19 December, the funeral of Hiwa Ranisyi, one of the four IMIK members killed on 17 December near Kifri, was held in his home town of Rania. Several hundred people reportedly took part in the funeral procession, including women and children. Shooting started as the participants passed in front of the PUK's main base. The IMIK later stated that PUK fighters stationed at the base had fired the first shots, killing one IMIK fighter and injuring another. The PUK denied this, adding that there were numerous armed IMIK fighters among the crowd and that their intentions were not peaceful. In the event, IMIK fighters attacked the PUK base, killing five PUK cadres (see below). Between 12-18 other cadres were captured, according to the PUK, while the IMIK announced it had taken 57 prisoners. Following the events in Rania, the situation escalated markedly. The PUKannounced that on 19 December Kamaran Ahmad, deputy commander of one of its battalions, was assassinated by the IMIK in Koisanjaq, and that an anti-IMIK demonstration in Halabja was dispersed when IMIK fighters shot at the crowd, killing one civilian and injuring another. In the ensuing days, armed clashes spread to a number of towns in Kirkuk, Sulaimaniya and Arbil provinces. PUK forces launched attacks on IMIK bases in Rawanduz, Shaqlawa, Harir and Diyana on 21 December. In turn, IMIK forces attacked PUK bases in Qala Diza, Hadi Awa and Chwar Qurna, and temporarily cut off the Arbil-Sulaimaniya road at Halbat Sultan. A cease-fire agreement signed by both sides on 25 December did not prove binding. Armed clashes continued in a number of places including Koisanjaq, Halabja, Kifri and Kalar, and spread to the cities of Arbil and Sulaimaniya. The following day PUK forces took control of Betwata, the IMIK's main headquarters, capturing several of its senior officials who were in the vicinity at the time. Among them was Shaikh 'Uthman 'Abd al-'Aziz who was taken to Arbil by Jabbar Farman, the Minister for Pesh Merga Affairs and field commander of the PUK forces during the conflict. From there, he was escorted to Salahuddin where he and other senior IMIK officials remained under the protection of the Iraqi National Congress (INC). [The INC, a coalition of most of the major Kurdish and Arab opposition parties in Iraq, was established in 6/1992 in Vienna. It was renamed the Unified Iraqi National Congress at a conference held in Salahuddin in 11/1992, when severer other opposition groups joined it. It has a three member Presidential Council: Said Muhammad Bahr al-'Ulum (representing the Shi'a Muslim opposition), General Hassan al-Naqib (representing the Sunni Mwlim opposition) and Masud al-Barzani (representing the Kurdish opposition). The head of its 30-member Executive Council is Ahmad al-Chalabi.] None of those detained by either side during the conflict was held in acknowledged places of detention under the Kurdish administration's jurisdiction. For the most part, detainees were held in cells or makeshift places in the respective parties' bases and centres. Some IMIK bases captured by the PUK were also used as temporary places of detention. Detainees in PUK custody who were interviewed by Amnesty International said that they were permitted family visits during the latter part of their detention, while those held in IMIK custody said they had been denied such access. The circumstances in which detainees in both PUK and IMIK custody were held, and the absence of any judicial supervision of their cases, made them highly vulnerable to abuse. Allegations of torture, deaths in custody and unlawful and deliberate killings were rife. Scores of people were also arrested outside the context of armed conflict. Most of these arrests were carried out by the PUK, particularly in the aftermath of the defeat of IMIK forces. Those arrested included civilians who were suspected of having taken up arms and participated in the clashes, and those who were known or suspected supporters of the IMIK. In 2/1993, Amnesty International received from the PUK lists of detainees held by the party during the conflict and in its aftermath. According to these lists, over 900 people with known or suspected connections with the IMIK had been arrested by, or surrendered to, the PUK between 12/21/1993-1/10/1994. In some lists, the detainees are described as combatants, while in others there was no indication as to whether they were combatants or civilians. The largest group, 442 in total, appears to have been arrested and held in the Sulaimaniya region, with a further 269 held in the Arbil region. The remainder were listed as having been held in Derbendikhan, Kifri, Kalar and Smud. The lists also suggest that some detainees were released shortly after their arrest and interrogation. Most, however, were apparently held for several days or weeks and then released in batches between the last week of 12/1993 and the third week of 2/1994. Upon requesting access to those still detained in 2/1994, AmnestyInternational was initially told by PUK officials that none remained in detention. They subsequently acknowledged that a small number were still being held and granted the organization access to 22 of them. Five were being held at the PUK's Political Bureau headquarters in Arbil, 13 at a former IMIK base In Sulaimaniya and four others at the PUK's Second Meibend (Centre) in Derbendikhan. Amnesty International was also informed that a small number of detainees were still held in Kalar and was offered access to them. It was not possible for the organization to assess the veracity of the information provided by the PUK, although it was evident that the large majority of detainees had in fact been released. However, the relatives and friends of some detainees who were said to have been released told Amnesty International that they had no knowledge of their fate or whereabouts. Moreover, in several cases the names of individuals who had been held in PUK custody for a period and who were subsequently found dead did not appear on the lists provided by the PUK. Details regarding PUK combatants and members held by the IMIK were more difficult to obtain. Statements issued by the IMIK during the conflict made only brief references to the numbers of people taken prisoner or released. In a statement dated 12/20/1993, 57 people were said to have been captured in Rania, but a statement issued one week later gave the number as 75. A further statement dated 1/7/1994 announced that the IMIK had released over 100 detainees, who were said to include senior PUK officials and 65 87 Kurdistan and the Kurds others who had been arrested in Rania. A further 20 detainees were also said to have been released in Halabja on 2 January. In early February 1994 the IMIK told Amnesty International that all such detainees had been released. This assertion was contradicted by the PUK, which announced that four of its members who were held by the IMIK in areas close to the border with Iran were only released in the second week of February in Khormal. Amnesty International did not have the opportunity to interview them, however. Following its investigation into the 12/1993 events Amnesty International concluded that serious human rights abuses were committed by both PUK and IMIK forces. It was not possible to follow up all allegations of human rights abuses, and those on which information was received are too numerous to be adequately addressed here. These include torture testimonies submitted by former detainees held by both sides; in several of these cases, supporting medical evidence was obtained. This report focuses on one area of concern: the unlawful and deliberate killing of combatants after surrender and of others arrested outside the context of armed conflict. [=] is fired from a distance and only the bullet causes entrance damage..." On the case of another of the 18 victims: "The disruption of the face and the large wound on the right side of the neck indicates a gunshot wound which has probably smashed the upper spine, lower jaw and possibly interior skeletal strectures in the face and the base of uhe skull. The wound is very large and this suggests a contact wound, possibly not at right angles to the skin, but tangentially which has extended the wound upwards... This is likely to be a very close range or contact wound from a rifled weapon..." Amnesty International was also given the names of 11 PUK combatants attached to the Second Melbend who were allegedly responsible for the death of the 18 men. In another incident, eight IMIK combatants were allegedly killed after surrender on 27 December after PUK forces took control of the IMIK's headquarters at Betwata. [Seven of the eight men were identified as: Mulla Sharif Hussein Mustafa; Mulla Wirya Kirhkuki; Nabi Mina Hassan; Ahmed Babakr Ahmad; Dana Muhammad; 'Ali Hussein; and Barzan Koyi (the body of the late was apparently not found subsequently).] Nine IMIK fighters were said to have been ambushed by PUK forces on Makok mountains near Betwata as they sought to escape. PUK forces allegedly disarmed them, tied them up and shot them. One of the nine, Hassan Babakr Ahmad, sunived. He identified four PUK military commanders who were said to be present at the time. He testified: "They took us to [name withheld], so he ordered that our hands be tied from the back. Then he said to us: 'you took part in the battles at Chwar Qurna and we will execute you'... He ordered his troops to disperse far away and kept about 20 of his supporters... They took us to a place about 100 metres away from the main road. Suddenly all their Pesh Merga started firing at us with different weapons and we all fell quickly to the ground. They thought we were dead... I knew I had been hit with a bullet [but] I didn't die..." The families of two of those killed, Mulla Sharif Hussun Mustafa ant Nabi Mina Hassan, told Amnesty International that when they collected the bodies, they saw marks on the wrists where they had been tied, and that the index finger of the right hand of both men had been severed. The body of Nabi Mina Husan was also said to bear knife wounts and his right arm severed. In 2/1994 the Minister for Pesh Merga Affairs told Amnesty International that PUK forces had not ambushed any IMIK fighters, and had been heading for the Bazyan region to fetch the IMIK's Spiritual Guide. On the way, they had encountered the nine IMIK fighters and a battle ensued in which some PUK Pesh Merga were wounded and the nine Idlled. He added that he was not present turing the battle, but had heard shooting and by the time he arrived on the scene, the IMIK fighters had already died. Amnesty International also received the names and details of scores of other members or supporters of the IMIK who were allegedly killed by PUK forces after arrest outside the context of armed conflict. It was not possible to investigate many of these cases or to establish the circumstances surrounding the deaths. Below are two sample cases: (1) Ahmad As'ad Isma'il: born 1972 in Arbil, owner of a recording studio. He was arrested on 24 December together with his brother-in-law and a friend after PUK fighters surrounded his sister's home in the Zanyari district of Arbil. His family inquired about him at the PUK's Third Melbend but obtained no information. Three days later two of the detainees were released but the whereabouts of Ahmad As'ad Isma'il remained unknown. All three had apparently been taken to the PUK's Political Bureau headquarters in the city but he had been separated from them. The family was then apparently told by the PUK that Ahmad As'ad Ismatil was at al-Jumhuri Hospitat, then at Rizgari Hospital, then at the Third Melbend, then at the Political Bureau. His fate remained unknown until 1/2/1994, when bis body was found in the streets of Arbil. According to two witnesses, the 10159. Amnesty International. Iraq: Human Rights Abuses in Iraqi Kurdistan Since 1991: Part 36: Chapter Five: Human Rights The Events of 12/1993: Unlawful and Deliberate Killings By PUK Forces. New York: Amnesty International, February 28, 1995. MDE 14/01/95. [99H-11414] [19950228] Amnesty International has received the names and details of scores of people who were said to have been deliberately and arbitrarily killed by PUK forces in 12/1993-1/1994. The victims include combatants killed after surrender, targeted individuals arrested outside the context of armed conflict ant subsequently killed, and injured combatants who were reportedly deprived of medical treatment or bagged out of hospitals and shot. In a number of cases, the bodies of the victims were allegedly mutilated. Many of the allegations could not be substantiated. In some cases, however, information obtained strongly suggested that unlawful and deliberate killings had been perpetrated. Such information includes consistent eye-witness and other testimony and forensic evidence. One incident involved the reported deliberate killing of 18 IMIK combatants after surrender near Kitri on 28 December. According to information received, the group was among many combatants who had begun to withdraw from their bases followlag the defeat of IMIK forces at Betwata two days earlier. Tne 18 combatants were said to have been pursued by PUK forces and then surrendered to them. Their bodies were recovered the following day by residents of Kitri. the PUK told Amnesty International that the 18 men had been killed in battle. [The 18 men killed were Nazem Muhammad Tawfiq; Jalal 'Ali Qader; Sherzed 'Ali Qnder; Hushem Muhummnad Kakamand; Ibrahim Muhammad Kakamant; Nawzed Muhammad Khan; Luqman Muhammad Amin; Sabah Jusem Husan; 'Umar Padel; Hassan Riftat Hussain; Muhummad Rahim; Sanun Muid; Goran Haidar Rustum; 'Abbas Mahmud; 'Adnan Hakim Taher; 'Adel 'Uthman Rasul; Aygub Chemchemali; and Kamaran Zarayani.] However, a number of people from Kilri who said they had seen the bodies told the organization that the gunshot wounds appeared to have been inflicted at close range, suggesting that the victims had been killed after surrender. Photographs of some of the victims' bodies appear to support these statements. The following are extracts from comments made by a forensic pathologist who examined these photographs: On the case of Kamaran Zarayani, one of the victims: "The appearances are suggestive of a close gunshot wound, possibly contact, which has disrupted the tissues on the left side of the head. When a weapon is placed very close to the skin or actually pressed against it, the discharge of gas usually lacerates the tissue in a very irregular fashion, often star-shaped, as opposed to the neater hole when a gun 88 Kurdistan and the Kurds victim's body had five gunshot wounds and his left arm had been severed. They stated that the victim's stomach gave the appearance of having been crushed with a heavy object. His name did not appear on any lists given to Amnesty International by the PUK of IMIK detainees arrested in the Arbil region. (2) Bestun 'Abd al-Rahman 'Abdullah: born 1971 in Koisanjaq, a student of geography at Salahuddin University. On 26 December he left his home in Arbil after being told that PUK forces intended to arrest those living there. He hid and the following day headed for Koisanjaq with 11 others, but encountered a PUK patrol before reaching the town. six from the group reportedly fled while the remaining six, among them Bestun 'Abd al-Rahman 'Abdullah, were captured. According to accounts received, they were blindfolded, lined up and shot. None of them was said to be carrying weapons. Bestun 'Abd al-Rahman 'Abdullah's body reportedly had two gunshot wounds, one in the eye and the other in the stomach. Amnesty International also received allegations that some IMIK combatants were deliberately killed by PUK forces after being dragged out of hospitals. The names of several alleged victims in Arbil were given to Amnesty International but there was no opportunity to investigate these and similar cases. However, numerous people in Arbil, Sulaimaniya and Kirkuk provinces testified that on the whole, injured IMIK combatants were treated privately in homes rather than in hospitals for fear of being killed or captured. As a result, some were said to have died because of lack of adequate treatment. In other cases, PUK forces were said to have taken control of hospitals to prevent the injured being brought there. For example, two employees at Kalar Hospital told Amnesty International that PUK forces were stationed around the building and on the roof for several days to prevent the injured from the IMIK from being brought there. [=] Iran), were: Abu Bakr Madid Karim, head of the PUK's Khormal Komite; Bakhtiar Ahmad; Kamal Ahmad Hamad Amin; Sherwan Muhyiddin Ahrnad; Saheb Jatfa' Muhammad; and Jalal Babala Mairuf. A seventh person captured, detained and killed with them, Fairuz Rahman Hama Sa'id, was a KDP Pesh Merga. The bodies of all seven were allegedly mutilated by having their ears cut off. Amnesty International could not substantiate these allegations, although it did receive from the PUK film footage showing a number of bodies which had clearly been mutilated. The victims, who were unidentified, were said to be PUK combatants killed by IMIK forces. These claims were rejected by the IMIK. In another incident, seven PUK combatants were captured by IMIK forces following an attack on their unit near the village of Sosakan (a border region in Sulaimaniya Province) on the night of 28 December. Ten other PUK combatants with them reportedly fled. Five of those captured were said to have been shot dead that night: Sharif 'Ali Bakr (aged 16), Lawran Rahman Walukhan (aged 17), Mustafa Ahmad, 'Abd al-Rahman 'Abd al-Qader Muhammad and Hussain 'Ali Hama. One of the two detainees who survived, 'Umar Haji Hussain, told Amnesty International: "When we had spent all the ammunition we had, they surrounded us on the hill and captured us. Then they blindfolded us, tied our hands from behind and took us inside... and shot dead five of the prisoners..." The family of one of the victims, Sharif 'Ali Bakr, told Amnesty International that his body bore gunshot wounds in the head and limbs as well as bayonet wounds in the neck and back. His face was said to have been mutilated. An autopsy was performed on 30 December at a Sulaimaniya hospital, which said the victim's external injuries included a stab wound in the skull and mutilation of the face. The family of another victim, 'Abd al-Rahman 'Abd al-Qader Muhammad, also testified that his body bore gunshot wounds and bayonet wounds in the face and stomach. 'Umar Haji Hussain testified that after the five victims had been killed, both he and his codetainee, 'Abdullah Hadi 'Umar, were taken the following morning to a border region inside Iranian territory (in the district of Paveh). He stated that upon arrival, they were blindfolded and their hands tied, and that they were punched, beaten with rifle butts and threatened with execution. Their subsequent release was apparently in exchange for the release of nine IMIK detainees by the PUK. [=] 10160. Amnesty International. Iraq: Human Rights Abuses in Iraqi Kurdistan Since 1991: Part 37: Chapter Five: Human Rights The Events of 12/1993: Unlawful and Deliberate Killings By IMIK Forces. New York: Amnesty International, February 28, 1995. MDE 14/01/95. [99H-11415] [19950228] The IMIK was also said to have committed unlawful and deliberate killings during the 12/1993 clashes. The body of Azad Karim Samin, a PUK member who had been held in IMIK custody until 19 December, was found in the streets of Kifri two days later. He had reportedly been battered to death and his body was wrapped in a large cloth with the words "There is no God but Allah" written on it. The IMIK denied responsibility for his death. Eye-witness testimony and other information obtained regarding the events in Rania on 19 December (see above) suggested that the five PUK cadres who died that day were killed by IMIK fighters outside the immediate context of armed clashes. IMIK officials had told Amnesty Internationalthat they had died as a result of an exchange of fire between the two sides. The five victims were: Muhammad Sultan, 'Ali Mam Qader, Salman Fakhri, Bakhtiar Muhanunad Majid and Mustafa Hassan. The first to be killed was said to be Muhammad Sultan, who emerged from the base and was apparently attempting to calm the situation down. However, the testimonies obtained by Amnesty International did not support later statements issued by the PUK which accused the IMIK of refusing initially to hand over the bodies of the five men to their families, of dragging the bodies through the streets of Rania, and declaring the five men to be "sinners" so they could not be buried in a Muslim cemetery. Six PUK combatants were allegedly shot dead after surrendering to IMIK forces in Khormal (Sulaimaniya Province) in the third week of December. According to accounts received, they were taken prisoner at the PUK's Komite (local committee) building in the town and detained there. One of them was reportedly injured. The six men, who were said to have been killed on 25 or 26 December in the Hawraman region (close to the border with 10161. Amnesty International. Iraq: Human Rights Abuses in Iraqi Kurdistan Since 1991: Part 38: Chapter Five: Human Rights The Events of 5/1994. New York: Amnesty International, February 28, 1995.MDE14/01/95.[99H-11416][19950228] Widespread military clashes erupted in Iraqi Kurdistan on 5/1/1994 between the armed forces of the KDP, PUK and IMIK. They continued intensely throughout the month, and while there were intermittent clashes in June and July, they were relatively contained. In August clashes erupted again until the end of the month when a ceasefire was agreed and observed. Widespread and gross human rights abuses were committed by all sides during the conflict and in its aftermath, and hundreds of prisoners were captured. Combatants were killed after surrender or capture and others were tortured while in custody. Civilians not involved in the clashes were arbitrarily arrested on the basis of their political affiliation, held in unacknowledged places of detention and tortured. The clashes caused upheaval in the lives of hundredsof innocent civilians who were either forced out of their homes or fled. Many people died - civilians and combatants - largely because of the use of heavy artillery and other weapons in the major cities. Amnesty International could not obtain a reliable number of casualties, although estimates ranged from 600 to over 2000 dead. On 1 June Amnesty International publicly called on leaders of the political parties involved in the conflict to "stop deliberately killing and 89 Kurdistan and the Kurds mutilating prisoners in their custody, and abducting, killing and torturing civilians based on their political ties". The organization had received the names and some details of 51 KDP members allegedly executed by the PUK after arrest between 2 and 23 May in eight locations, and 49 PUK members allegedly executed by the KDP after arrest between 4 and 28 May in five locations. In one of the latter incidents, IMIK forces were reported to have carried out some killings alongside the KDP. Some of the alleged victims on both sides were said to have been tortured prior to execution or their bodies subsequently mutilated. Numerous civilians were also reported to have fallen victim to arbitrary arrest, torture or deliberate killings. No response was received from either the PUK or IMIK as intermittent clashes continued. The KDP, however, issued a press release on 6/3/1994 responding to Amnesty International's statement and sent a letter to the organization's Secretary General. The letter stated: "The PUK allegation, as repeated in Amnesty's press release, that the KDP killed 49 PUK party members is completely unfounded. We emphatically deny any frilling of PUK prisoners by our forces between 4 and 28 May or during the whole course of the latest tragic and selfdestructive events. The allegation is an absolute fabrication by the PUK and it is passed to AI solely to counterbalance the killing of 51 KDP prisoners. The names and details of our victims have been published before sending them to AI. The PUK has not published or raised the case of their alleged names. Executing prisoners goes against a long-standing KDP tradition. It has been our policy since the 1960s to strictly observe the Geneva conventions pertaining to the treatment of prisoners of war and civilians." The PUK had in fact submitted to Amnesty International the names of 39 of its members who were said to have been killed after capture; the names of 10 others were received from other sources in Iraqi Kurdistan. In its letter the KDP said that while "it must take exception to several allegations made against it, it nevertheless welcomed the organization's 'attention to the problem and its statement' and invited Amnesty International "to send a fact-finding mission to investigate the case and all other abuses raised in [its statement]". Amnesty International visited the region in 7/1994 for three weeks to investigate a range of human rights abuses reported since 1 May. During the visit, none of the senior PUK officials with whom the organization met addressed the general allegations made in Amnesty International's 1 June statement. They did respond to specific cases raised with them during the visit, references to which arc made below. IMIK officials, on the other hand, strongly objected to allegations of human rights abuses attributed to their forces, in particular the killing of prisoners which they stated was contrary to Islamic principles upheld by the Islamic Movement.. They said they intended to issue a statement refuting allegations made by Amnesty Internationalagainst the IMIK, which the organization undertook to make public in any report it published on Iraqi Kurdistan. At the time of writing, no such statement had been received. [=] military commander, 'Ali Hasso Mirkhan, who claimed ownership of a piece of land in the district. He arrived with some 20 Pesh Merga, and after efforts by local officials to settle the dispute peacefully had failed, firing broke out and continued into the following day. Two PUK military commanders were killed in separate incidents during these clashes. Attacks by PUK forces on the local KDP base resulted in 'Ali Hasso Mirkhan and one other from his group being killed in the exchange of fue, while 19 other KDP Pesh Merga were taken prisoner. All were then allegedly executed. Clashes between the two sides spread on 2 May to the town of Rania, from where PUK reinforcements had been dispatched to Qala Diza. PUK forces succeeded in taking control of the KDP's Eleventh Liq in Rania and arrested a number of party officials and combatants. Two of them were allegedly shot dead shortly after arrest. By that evening tensions had spread to both parties' strongholds in Sulaimaniya and Duhok. In the city of Sulaimaniya, PUK forces took control of the KDP's Fourth Liq and other offices and over 90 KDP members were later arrested. Among them were 14 senior KDP officials, including Qader Qader, Deputy Minister for Pesh Merga Affairs. Similarly, KDP forces took control of PUK bases in Duhok, Zakho and 'Amadiyya, arresting those inside. By the end of the first week of May, armed clashes had spread to a number of towns, including Derbendikhan, Chemchemal, Halabja, Khorrnal, Biyara, Kifri, Kalar, Salahuddin, Sheqlawa and 'Aqra. There were numerous reports of the killing of prisoners by both sides, including on S May when six PUK combatants were allegedly killed after capture by KDP forces in Salahuddin and 16 KDP detainees were allegedly killed by PUK forces in Halabja. Three other PUK detainees were allegedly killed by KDP forces in the 'Aqra area on 7 May and at least eight others after capture by joint KDP/IMIK forces in Khormal on 4 May and later. Armed clashes erupted elsewhere during the second week of May: KDP forces took control of PUK bases in Diyana, Khalifan and Harir, while in Sayyid Sadeq, Hawraman, Penjwin and Halabja PUK forces clashed with the joint forces of the KDP and IMIK. PUK and IMIK forces also clashed in Tawela, Biyara and Khormal. On 17 May armed clashes erupted in the Haj Omran area and the following day in Koisanjaq. Four PUK combatants captured near Haj Omran by joint forces in Koisanjaq were allegedly frilled on 19 May (see below). By 29 May the armed clashes had spread to the city of Arbil and lasted some three days. While the city had not witnessed significant fighting until then, forces of both the KDP and PUK were already present there, occupying a number of public buildings. On 3 May, PUK forces had taken control of the National Assembly building, ousting the guards stationed there and positioning themselves around and on the roof of the building. They also control, 5/1994 took control of the Maternity and al-Jumhuri hospitals, while KDP forces were stationed at Rizgari Hospital. Other public buildings were also occupied. The principal negotiating role throughout the conflict was played by the INC, which was responsible for bringing senior KDP, IMIK and PUK officials round the table on a number of occasions. Under its auspices, several agreements were reached on the withdrawal of forces, on effecting an immediate cease-fire and on exchanges of prisoners. These agreements were frequently flouted, but the INC did succeed in diffusing tensions in some instances, thereby preventing further escalation of the conflict. By consent of all sides, the INC also assumed responsibility for deploying neutral forces under its control to strategic locations and checkpoints previously controlled by either PUK or KDP forces. One of the first agreements negotiated by the INC on 8 May involved establishing a Committee for the Exchange of Prisoners (Lajnat Tabadul al-Asra) through which many prisoners were subsequently exchanged. The committee was in hampered by its lack of powers of enforcement and dependence on the cooperation of the 10162. Amnesty International. Iraq: Human Rights Abuses in Iraqi KurdistanSince 1991: Part 39: Chapter Five: Human Rights: The Events of 5/1994: Background To The Human Rights Abuses. New York: Amnesty International, February 28, 1995. MDE 14/01/95. [99H11417] [19950228] No attempt is made here to trace exhaustively the sequence of events of 1 May and the following months, nor is there an assessment of where responsibility lies in both igniting and prolonging the conflict. Amnesty International has focused on establishing the facts about those human rights abuses falling within its mandate, identifying their perpetrators and putting pressure on the Kurdish leadership to bring those responsible to justice. The land dispute which sparked off clashes in Qala Diza on l May involved a KDP 90 Kurdistan and the Kurds conflicting parties to gain access to detainees and ensure their actual release. A number of former detainees later told Amnesty International that they had been hidden from the committee's members or had not been handed over to them as agreed. Nevertheless, Amnesty International believes that the INC's efforts were critical in at least identifying the names and whereabouts of many detainees, and may have been instrumental in preventing further deliberate killings at the height of the conflict. Representatives of the ICRC present in Iraqi Kurdistan were also granted access to detainees. Considerable efforts at mediation were also made by political parties in Iraqi Kurdistan which had remained neutral. Chief among these were the Kurdistan Communist Party, KTP and the ADM, whose forces also assisted in other ways. In Arbil, for example, joint KTP/KCP forces were stationed at al-Mahatta Prison to prevent inmates from escaping: from the outset, the vast majority of police and Asayish personnel who were affliated to either the KDP and PUK had joined the forces of their respective parties as combatants. In Sulaimaniya, the KCP bases were used as "neutral ground" for the exchange of prisoners. Both the Council of Ministers and the National Assembly were paralysed by the conflict; the National Assembly did not meet as a body between 3 May and 2 July. On several occasions civilians demonstrated in Arbil and Sulaimaniya against the inter-party conflict, calling for an immediate end to the fighting. During one such demonstration in Arbil on 7 May, two civilians (Khaled Khalil Hama Amin and Hamid Hassan) were killed and several others injured as shots were fired into the crowd. Responsibility for this incident has not been established: the KDP accused the PUK, while the PUK said that the demonstration "came under fire from an unknown car". Between 24 and 27 May over 200 women marched from Sulaimaniya to Arbil calling for an end to the fighting. In both cities, committees were formed by professionals which appealed for peace. Armed clashes continued intermittently during June and July in a number of areas, albeit on a much reduced scale and were quickly contained. However, relations between the two sides remained tense and widespread arrests of known or suspected members of each party by the opposing side continued, many of whom were tortured in custody. Unarmed civilians taking part in a funeral procession in the city of Sulaimaniya on 13 June were also killed as PUK forces fired into the crowd. On 12 August armed clashes broke out again in Qala Diza, and in Shaqlawa in the ensuing days. The town of Qala Diza, under PUK control at the time, came under heavy bombardment from areas controlled by KDP and IMIK forces. Most casualties were civilians. The clashes reached a climax between 23 and 26 August during which heavy artillery was used by both sides. According to INC sources, an estimated 600 people, both civilians and combatants, were killed during these three days of fighting. Fierce clashes also broke out in 'Arbat, Sayyid Sadeq and Halabja between 26 and 28 August, involving all three sides. According to information received, joint KDP/IMIK forces attacking PUK positions on the outskirts of Halabia succeeded in encircling a large number of the party's combatants on the shores of Derbendikhan lake, cutting them off from the main road. While many surrendered to the KDP and IMIK, scores of others attempted to escape by swimming into the lake and were said to have drowned. On 29 August, Masoud Barzani and Jalal Talabani attended a special session of the National Assembly, during which they made pledges to honour prior agreements concluded by their respective parties. Less than 48 hours later, clashes had broken out again north of Arbil, allegedly instigated by PUK forces. The range of human rights abuses committed between 5-8/1994 are too numerous to be adequately addressed here. This report consequently focuses on two areas of concern: torture and ill- treatment of detainees and unlawful and deliberate killings of combatants after surrender. Several sample cases of torture are highlighted from among those on which medical evidence was obtained by Amnesty International and when the findings are supported by expert forensic opinion. The cases of alleged unlawful and deliberate killing of unarmed prisoners described below include the major incidents said to have taken place. In these cases, no forensicevidence was obtained by or made available to Amnesty International, and it was not possible for the organization to examine the remains of the alleged victims during its visit to Iraqi Kurdistan in 7/1994. The details set out below are based on testimonies from eyewitnesses, former detainees, relatives of the victims, party officials and others. All the cases warrant thorough and impartial investigation at the highest level. Leaders or representatives of the KDP, PUK and IMIK with whom Amnesty International raised its concerns in this regard denied that their forces had killed unarmed prisoners. The sole exception was Jalal Talabani, who acknowledged to Amnesty International that PUK forces had committed such crimes in two separate incidents in Rania and Koisanjaq. [=] 10163. Amnesty International. Iraq: Human Rights Abuses in Iraqi Kurdistan Since 1991: Part 40: Chapter Five: Human Rights: Human Rights Abuses By PUK Forces: (a) Torture and Ill-Treatment of Detainees. New York: Amnesty International, February 28, 1995. MDE 14/01/95. [99H-11418] [19950228] Scores of former detainees held in PUK custody - both combatants and civilians - told Amnesty International that they had been tortured or otherwise ill-treated while in custody. The majority were known or suspected members or supporters of the KDP. In 15 cases, Amnesty International obtained solid evidence to support the claims of torture: eight victims interviewed, examined and photographed by Amnesty International still bore scars, and in seven other cases the organization obtained photographic evidence. An examination of the photographic evidence by a forensic pathologist concluded that the injuries sustained in each of the 15 cases were consistent with the allegations made by the victims. Below are four sample cases: (1) Haji Taqiddin Muhammad Amin: born 1951 in 'Aqra (Duhok Province), married with eight children, a KDP cadre. He was arrested on 6/28/1994 in Arbil by several armed men from the PUK. He had come to Arbil from 'Aqra to deliver letters on behalf of the KDP. The armed men identified him by name and told him to get into their vehicle: "When I asked what for, they didn't reply but hit me in the chest and face with a rifle. They blindfolded me very tightly and forced me to lie down in their Landcruiser. My hands were tied too. They insulted and humiliated me, and asked me about the killing of someone from the PUK. I replied that I had nothing to do with it and that I had resigned from the KDP. They said 'we will only believe you if you curse Masoud Barzani'. I was taken to a place under PUK control. I was still blindfolded so I didn't know where I was. When I refused to curse the KDP, one of them said 'Bring the hosepipe'. I thought he was going to beat me but he used it to tie my legs to the Landcruiser. They dragged me along the ground and said 'Curse'. I refused so he kicked me in the back of my head, and blood flowed from my left ear and nose. They dragged me again and said 'We will kill you'. After about three hours I was released as a result of interventions made on my behalf...." (2) Jalil Hamad Sur 'Umar: born 1968 in Sulaimaniya, married with one child, a graduate from a technological institute and a former boxing champion. He was arrested on 6/26/1994 in Sulaimaniya by three armed men from the PUK: "They blindfolded me and tied my hands and feet in front of everyone and pushed me in their car... They took me to Bakrajo. Six or seven of them beat me with cables and weapons, then they put me in a solitary cell. Half an hour later I was 91 Kurdistan and the Kurds tortured again. They wouldn't let me say anything, they beat me everywhere. Twice they applied electricity to my tongue. Then they hit my head six or seven times against the wall till I lost consciousness. When I opened my eyes again I was back in the cell. They told me 'Join us and curse Barzani and we will release you'... I was released after my brother-in-law paid them money. I was held there from 9.30 in the morning till 4.00 in the afternoon. If I had stayed the night they would have executed me, that is what they told me..." (3) Ali Mahdi Saleh: born 1944 in Khaniqin, married with 10 children, a driver and former KDP Pesh Merga. He was arrested on 6/4/1994 at a PUK checkpoint in Sayyid Sadeq (Sulaimaniya Province). He had been on a minibus heading for Halabja: "At Sayyid Sadeq we stopped at the checipoint. I was wearing a yellow shirt and they told me 'You are from the KDP'. They took away all the men in the Coaster [minibus] and left the women. They took us to the Ninth Melbend in Sharazur. When we entered they blindfolded us and the head of the Melbend told us to sit down... I was beaten with cables and a wooden stick and a hosepipe. Before the beating they told me 'You are from the KDP' and I replied that I had been in the past... They said 'Say that you art from the KDP' and I refused... In the end I said it.. After three or four days they transferred me to 'Arbat to the former KDP base there which they had converted into a prison... There I was put in a communal cell. There were between 50-70 prisoners in two communal cells, most of them from the KDP and a few were from the [Islamic] Movement. I didn't see the others being tortured but I saw them after they returned to the cell following the torture. There was a young boy there, 15 or 16 years old. His left hand had been broken twice from the beatings. They sent him to a doctor who put his hand in plaster. When he came back they put him in another room. He was from Chemchemal... They hid him from the Committee for the Exchange of Prisoners... Then they released him... I was released in a prisoner exchange on 12 June at the Communist Party base [in Sulaimaniya]..." (4) Daraghayi [full name withheld]: a trader born in Sulaimaniya in 1960. On 7/12/1994 in 'Ain Kawa, he was accosted by six armed men who forced him into a nearby house. He stated that the letters 'PUK' were on his assailants' Kalashnikov rifles. He was tortured after various documents were found in his possession which apparently linked him to the KDP. He told Amnesty International: ".... he began to hit me [and] the other Pesh Mergas hit me with the butts of their Kalashnikovs. The beating intensified and I was kicked and punched... While they were hitting me I saw two large paintings on the wall. One of them was a portrait of the martyr Aram and the other was of 'Ali 'Askari. [Shaswar Jalal (known as Aram) was a well-known political figure within the PUK; he was killed in 1977 by Kurdish agents of the Iraqi Government. 'Ali 'Askari was a senior PUK military commander who was executed by the KDP in 1978.] Then I knew that I was in PUK hands... I heard the person interrogating me tell the others to bring a hosepipe... He bent it in half and began to hit me. I fell in a corner. There, he beat me without stopping. . . In the garden he continued beating me with the hosepipe. When he beat me he was drinking 'Araq [alcoholic drink]. After each glass he beat me... I think he drank about one and a half bottles... He beat me in the garden until four or five in the morning... Around midnight I sensed that the neighbours had heard my screams but no one intervened. The house was located in a residential area, close to the UN. When he became tired of beating me he insulted me..." Local residents in 'Ain Kawa apparently heard his screams and informed staff of one of the UN agencies, who in turn informed Amnesty International. By that time, however, he had been released and was receiving treatment at Rizgari Hospital in Arbil. Amnesty International interviewed him several days later and photographed his injuries. The forensic pathologist commented that .... the Injuries are very recent and some of the beating was severe in intensity, causing extensivehaemorrhage into the tissues, the overall appearance of prolonged, repeated severe whipping with objects of varying width." [=] 10164. Amnesty International. Iraq: Human Rights Abuses in Iraqi Kurdistan Since 1991: Part 41: Chapter Five: Human Rights: Human Rights Abuses By PUK Forces: (b) Unlawful and Deliberate Killings. New York: Amnesty International, February 28, 1995. MDE 14/01/95. [99H-11419] [19950228] (1) Qala Diza. 2 May: Nineteen KDP combatants were said to have been killed by PUK forces following their arrest on 2 May. As noted earlier, clashes had broken out between forces affiliated to the PUK and KDP forces led by 'Ali Hasso Mirkhan after the failure to settle a ]and dispute. According to accounts received by Amnesty International, PUK forces attacked the KDP's Nawche (local committee) building in the town, where 'Ali Hasso Mirkhan and other Pesh Merga had taken refuge. Following the attack, the KDP forces retreated to an area outside the town known as Gurdi Husni, where a battle ensued and two KDP combatants, including 'Ali Hasso Mirkhan, were killed. Nineteen others were captured and, according to eye-witnesses, were brought back to Qala Diza and held at the PUK's Komite building. [Among them were: Hamad 'Abdullah Saleh; Amir 'Abdullah Salch; Khano Majid Wali; Amir Muhyiddin Lashkaryani; and Fakhri Hamad Ibrahim Khan.] A 24 year-old man from Rania testified: "That evening they brought out five of the detainees, drove them to Gurdi Husni and executed them. Then five others, and then the rest, in groups. It was about seven o'clock in the evening. I didn't witness the killings but people in the town could hear shots being fired. The bodies were brought by local people in Qala Diza. Some of mem had their hands cut off and the eyes of others had been gouged out... The body of 'Ali Hasso had been burned and they had dragged it through the streets of Qala Diza." The bodies were reportedly taken to Rania and from there to Merga Sur for burial. A KDP Pesh Merga testified that he had assisted in the burial of the bodies, ant told Amnesty International: "'Ali Hasso's face and chest were burned and his teeth wrenched out... There were traces of rope marks around his neck... and other injuries suggesting he had been dragged on the ground on his back and buttocks... The bodies of Amir and Hamad 'Abdullah [two brothers who were among those killed] had been dismembered. I put their remains in plastic bags and buried them... The stomach of Khorshid Ahmad [another of those killed] had been slit open and his legs, hands and arms had been cut... but not dismembered Amir Muhyiddin Lashkaryani [another victim] had one bullet wound in his back. His face had been mutilated with a bayonet and his eyes gouged out..." (2) Rania. 2 Mav: That day PUK forces attacked and took control of KDP bases in the town, including the premises of the party's Eleventh Liq and the Nawche. Among those arrested at the Liq and killed shortly thereafter were Ahmad Saleh Beg, head of the KDP's Nawohe in Rania, and Azad Muhammad Qader, a Pesh Merga. Both were said to have been shot dead in front of eyewitnesses. One witness, an 18-year-old student from Rania, told Amnesty International: "I was standing in front of the Liq. There was little resistance and within a few minutes [PUK forces] had entered the building. Ten minutes later they brought out Ahmad Saleh Beg and Azad [Muhammad Qader]. Azad was a simple Pash Merga. He was wearing yellow. Two of them shot him dead in front of the door. They were ... [names withheld] from Rania. Ahmad Saleh Beg was taken to the home of [the head of PUK's Eighth Melben] which is almost facing the Liq. Five minutes later he was brought out of the house and taken round to the back. There were many people around. They hit him with the butts of their rifles... and then shot him. The people were afraid and some were crying. Even supporters of the PUK were against it... 92 Kurdistan and the Kurds Three of them had hit him with their weapons and he fell into a pool of dirty water on the ground. He was shouting: 'Don't kill me... What do you want?" The bodies of the two men were left there until they were collected by their families. PUK officials in Rania told Amnesty International in 7/1994 that the KDP's Eleventh Liq had not been attacked by PUK forces but by local people from the town, among them supporters, friends and relatives of a PUK military commander killed in Qala Diza earlier that tay. The officials denied that any KDP member had been killed after capture. Jalal Talabani, however, admitted that the victims had died in such circumstances and that PUK forces were responsible for their death. (3) Koisanjaq. 18 and 19 May: Armed clashes broke out in the town of Koisanjaq on 18 May, during which PUK forces attacked and took control of the KDP's Nawche building. An estimated 50-60 KDP members, the majority of them Pesh Merga, emerged from the Nawahe and surrendered to the PUK. However, one of them, Jamal Hama Saleh, remained inside as he had been wounded. Several of the KDP members who surrendered later told Amnesty International that they had appealed to PUK officials to release him. Among them was a Nawohe official, who said: "I intervened on Jamal's behalf with the head of the PUK Komite, asking for his release as he was injured. They agreed, but about 10 minutes later we heard shots being fired. The PUK later took his body to the al-Jum'a mosque". Jamal Hama Saleh's family told Amnesty International that he had gone to Koisanjaq that day, was caught up in the fighting and took refuge at the Nawche after being wounded. He was said to have received some medical treatment by a KDP doctor shortly before the surrender. The doctor told Amnesty International: "I treated Jamal when he arrived at the Nawohe. He was injures in his upper legs and penis, and lost two fingers. He couldn't move his legs.." Five other KDP detainees were killed by the PUK the following day. They were: Sherwan 'Abd al-Rahman Karim, a Pesh Merga; Hawez Hassan Risha; Halgurd 'Uthman (known as Mam Yahya) and his two brothers, Karokh and Asos. All five had been among the KDP members who had surrendered after PUK forces took control of the Nawche. They were held in Koisanjaq for one night, and on 19 May were made to board a Coaster together with 15 guards from the PUK, ostensibly to transfer them to a place of detention in Sulaimaniya. On the Koisanjaq-Sulaimaniya road, near Haibat Sultan, the five detainees were shot dead by their guards and their bodies left by the roadside. That evening, PUK forces buried them in a pit on a nearby hillside. They were subsequently recovered by their families and brought back to Koisanjaq for burial. A brother of Sherwan 'Abd alRahman Karim testified to Amnesty International: "Sherwan and Hawez were taken to the PUK's Komite after their arrest and the other three were held somewhere else. We later learned that Sherwan had been threatened with death by [a senior PUK official, name withheld]. Knowing he was to be killed, Sherwan asked to see his mother and his eldest son raged three]. They went to see Sherwan's wife and asked for the boy, saying his father wanted to see him. They took him away for 24 hours and did not return him to his mother until after Sherwan was executed. On the afternoon of that day [19 May] someone told us that they were to be executed... So I took my car and headed for Salahuddin. There, I spoke to Sami 'Abd al-Rahman, who informed Ahmad al-Chalabi and Kak Mastud. Both of them spoke to Kosrat by telephone. [Sami 'Abd al-Rahman, member of the KDP's Political Bureau; Ahmed al-Chalabi, head of the INC's Executive Committee; Masoud al-Barzani, KDP leader; and Kosrat Rasul Ali, Prime Minister.] Kosrat promised that they would not be executed. The following day, at 4.30 in the afternoon, I arrived back in Koye [Koisanjaq] and went to my home. I was told they had already been executed... People had heard the sound of gun shots coming from the Haibat Sultan area... Some firemen from Koye went that evening to put out a fire in a wheatfield and they saw the five bodies on the side of the road, but they did not dare take them. That night some PUK Pesh Merga removed the bodies. The following morning we went to the place where the executions took place... There were traces of blood on the ground... I found Sherwan's pen and recognized his shoes which had been left there. Later, we were informed that the five bodies were buried a short distance away. We went there and found the bodies. They were covered with a blanket which itself was covered with soil. The families of the others had come too. We took the bodies back with us to a mosque in Koyl and removed their clothes. Each of them had at best 30 bullet wounds... some had rope marks on their wrists, others were still tied with rope..." A close relative of Halgurd 'Uthman and his two brothers told Amnesty International: "After the Newche had fallen, the PUK told Mam Yahya that he could go home... But they came to see him later that evening. They asked him to join the PUK or face imprisonment in Sulaimaniya. He replied that he was ready to go to Sulaimaniya. Then theybrought Asos and told him he was to go with his brother to Sulaimaniya... Then they brought Karokh, who used to be a PUK member. They aslced him to pin again but he said he wanted to go with his brothers. All three were unarmed... I saw their bodies later. They had been shot at close range and each had about 30-40 bullet wounds in the head and chest. Their brains had been blown out of their heads..." Amnesty International received the names of four senior PUK officials who were said to have been in Koisanjaq on 18 and 19 May and to have been present when the five detainees boarded the Coaster. The decision to execute them were allegedly taken by one or more of these officials, two of whom are members of the PUK's Political Bureau. However, PUK officials maintained that the five detainees had been armed with a hand grenade, and that after attempting to overpower the guards in the Coaster, they were shot dead. One PUK official in Koisanjaq told Amnesty International that after the incident, a decision was taken not to return the bodies to the town "for fear of exacerbating the situation". The official said that it was decided to bury the bodies elsewhere, temporarily, until the situation had calmed town. He stated that he had personally chosen the location for their burial, and showed Amnesty International the pit. Jalal Talabani subsequently acknowledged to Amnesty International that the detainees had been shot dead while unarmed. (4) Halabja, 4-5 May: Eleven people were reportedly arrested and deliberately killed on 5 May shortly after PUK forces entered Halabja. Most of the victims were said to have been suspected members or supporters of the KDP and, in one or two cases, IMIK. The victims were allegedly arrested in their homes or on the streets of Halabja by the PUK's Pesh Merga and Special Brigades forces on 4 or 5 May. Their bodies were recovered in the ensuing days: they had been dumped in various locations on the outskirts of the town. Their families testified that the condition of the bodies suggested that large amounts of blood had been taken from them before they were shot, and that this had been carried out at Halabia al-Shahida Hospital. However, it was not possible to verify this claim. The 11 people killed, who included three minors, were: (5) Fariq Tawfiq 'All: born in Halabja on 6/6/1982. His body was found on 6 May near the village of Hassan Awa. (6) Keylcawas Muhammad Ramadan: a farmer born in Halabia in 1957; married with four children. His body was found in a field on the outskirts of Halabja on 6 May. (7) Kamal 'Abduliah Nader: born in the village of Nijla in the district of Halabja in 1969; married with four children. His body was found near Zamaqe resettlement camp on 5 May. (8) Soran Ma'ruf 'Abd al-Rahman: a student born in Halabia in 93 Kurdistan and the Kurds 1970. His body was found near Bakrawa on 6 May. (9) Faisal Ghaffur Muhammad and Nawzaid Ghaffur Muhammad: Two brothers born in Halabja in 1973 and 1977 respectively. Their bodies were found in a field near the village of Zamaqe on 7 May. (10) Futad Jamil: a secondary school student from Halabja aged about 15. His body was found in a nearby ffeld on 7 May. (11) Baqi Qader Rashid: born in Halabja in 1963; married with four children. His body was found near Zamaqe resettlement camp in the second week of May. (12) Nateq 'Izzat 'Abd al-Karim: a student born in Halabja in 1971. He was arrested with his three brothers and taken to the PllK's Melbend in the town. There, Nateq 'Izzat 'Abd al-Karim was separated from the others and his body was found several days later near Zamaqe resettlement camp. (13) Siddiq Taqi 'Abd al-Rahrnan: born in Halabja in 1968. His body was found near Bakrawa on 6 May. (14) Saifuddin Ahrnad Muhammad: born in Halabja in 1954. His body was found on the outskirts of Halabja several days after his arrest. [=] (3) Jawad Taher: he was arrested at his home in Hdabia on 14 June by IMIK armed men. He testified: "They told me they wanted to talk to me for five minutes and then they would let me go. But they held me for two days and I was subjected to severe and harsh torture. They tortured me badly using a military belt, they kicked me and beat me with the butts of their rifles... the reason for my arrest was that my relatives and family are with the PUK, like my uncle, and they beat me because of them. I am not with the PUK." (4) Barham Kamal Shahzaman: a non-commissioned officer with the police in Sarchinar, Sulaimaniya. He was accosted by armed men of the KDP in Arbil on 6 July at a health centre. He stated: "There were several armed men from the KDP. They had with them a yellow flag and a photograph of Mas'ud Barzani. They asked me for my identity card so I gave them my police identity card. They said they wanted my membership card and I said I didn't have one. They searched me and found my gun and my PUK identity card. They took me to the Second Liq... and there they began beating me severely. They also took my car..." [=] 10166. Amnesty International. Iraq: Human Rights Abuses in Iraqi Kurdistan Since 1991: Part 43: Chapter Five: Human Rights: Human Rights Abuses By KDP and IMIK Forces: (b) Unlawful and Deliberate Killings. New York: Amnesty International, February 28, 1995. MDE 14/01/95. [99H-11421] [19950228] (1) Khormal. 4 May: Armed clashes broke out in and around the town of Khormal on 4 May between PUK forces and the joint forces of the KDP and IMIK. According to accounts received, the clashes lasted several hours and resulted in the death of a number of PUK combatants and the capture of others. Those taken prisoner fell into two groups. The first had reportedly come under armed attack at the PUK's Komite in Khormal and were forced to withdraw outside the town where they were captured by IMIK forces. Two of them testified in 7/1994 that the IMIK killed two of their fellow detainees soon after arrest. One of them, a member of the Hawraman Komite of the PUK, testified: "After four hours of fighting, we retreated from Khormal towards the village of Takya. Before getting there we fell into an ambush set up by the Islamists. We were 25 Pesh Merga... They said we would come to no harm. As we had been dispersed, one of our Pesh Merga hid in the little river of Zala. He stood up and put up his hands in surrender but they immediately killed him. His name was 'Ali and he was 23 or 24 years old. They took us to one of their bases in the village of Yalan Pe. Before getting there, they killed one of our Pesh Merga called 'Umar, who had been wounded in the battles. He was in the back of the car. Several times he had cried out that he was in pain. He had been wounded in his leg.." According to their accounts, the detainees were then taken from Yalan Pe to an IMIK base in Wishianaw, where they were held in a cave for 44 days. None was tortured, but all said they were kept blindfolded for the first 10 days and then brought out of the cave to carry out work. During this period, three of the detainees were allegedly executed. A 31-year-old Pesh Merga from Khormal, who was among those held in the cave, told Amnesty International: "About a week after we arrived here, they took away Falah Isma'il and 'Amer 'Azk Ghulam; both are from Garmian. It was about 2 o'clock in the morning. They called out their names and took them out of the cave. We didn't hear anything more about them. A few days later they took out Jalil Ramadan Sa'id, who has been a Pesh Merga for a long time, in the same manner. It was about 8 o'clock in the evening... The three bodies were later found in the vicinity of Yalan Pe, a village near Khormal". The remaining 20 detainees were eventually released on 16 June in an exchange of prisoners organized by the INC. Several of them told Amnesty International that some 10 days before their 10165. Amnesty International. Iraq: Human Rights Abuses in Iraqi Kurdistan Since 1991: Part 42: Chapter Five: Human Rights: Human Rights Abuses By KDP and IMIK Forces: (a) Torture and IllTreatment of Detainees. New York: Amnesty International, February 28, 1995. MDE 14/01/95. [99H-11420] [19950228] Some of the former detainees from the PUK interviewed by Amnesty International in 7/1994 stated that they had been tortured or otherwise ill-treated while in KDP or IMIK custody. Only a few cases, however, still had visible physical evidence to support their claims at the time they were interviewed. The organization did obtain photographic evidence to support claims of torture in 12 other cases, and where the clearly visible scars on the victims' bodies were found to in consistent with the allegations made. The following are four sample cases: (1) Qader Hadi Karim: a PUK combatant from Sulaimaniya who was captured with other combatants by joint forces of the KDP and IMIK in the Khormal region on 6 June. He stated that upon capture, some KDP members were about to shoot them when an IMIK combatant prevented any killings: "After they tortured me my strength gave way because of the severity of the beatings. Then they transferred me to Khormal and there I was subjected again to severe torture until the evening. On the night of 11 June they took me out of the detention centre after having spent two nights there, and during that time the torture had become less severe. I was the first one to be called out of the detention centre. They did not say they were going to torture me - they said they were going to execute me. They asked me to divulge information before the execution was carried out." (2) 'Adnan 'Abd al-Qader: an artist born in 1971 in Kalar. He was arrested by anned men of the KDP in Arbil at the Medea Hall on 13 June and held for several hours. He testified: "I had gone to the Hall to make some enquiries but I found no one there except a KDP patrol... I was alone when they arrested me. They asked me to show them my identity card and I gave it to them. As I was walking away they called me back, and when I returned they searched me and found the identity card of the PUK's Second Melbend... I didn't know the people who arrested me. You cannot imagine what the situation was like... They knew nothing except violence. There were 12 armed men. They used all kind of methods during the torture. They used their hands and cables and anything else that they found. They didn't want anything from me. It was only because they had found a PUK identity card on me and that I belonged to the other side... After they arrested me they took me to the KDP's Second Liq... and then to [another prison near] Salahuddin University..." 94 Kurdistan and the Kurds release, IMIK officials had told them that ICRC representatives would be coming to see them, and that consequently the conditions in which they were being held were improved. They were allegedly told to say that they had been held in tents, not in a cave. When the ICRC representatives arrived on 14 June, however, they were apparently not given access to the detainees, being told that they had already been released. The second group of PUK combatants captured on 4 May had surrendered to KDP and IMIK forces after a battle around the fortress of Khormal. One of them, a Pesh Merga aged 40 from Penjwin, told Amnesty International: "After we had run out of ammunition, we surrendered. When they came they treated us badly. They shot dead in front of us three people - my brother Karim Muhammad Rahman, aged 24, my cousin Mahmud Muhammad Karim, aged between 25 and 27, and one of my relatives, Jamal Faraj, aged 30. All three had been disarmed. We had been 18 people in all, and after the three executions, 15 of us were left. They divided us into two groups. We were nine taken by the KDP and the other six went to the Islamists. This took place in the fortress. We nine were taken out of the fortress. Later the KDP Pesh Merga told us that the Islamists had tied the hands of the six prisoners and started hitting them with blocks and stones and then executed them..." According to another PUK detainee, a Pesh Merga from Penjwin aged27, the first three executions were also carried out by IMIK forces. He told Amnesty International that the IMIK wanted to execute them all, but were prevented from doing so by the commander of the KDP Khormal forces. Until their release, the detainees were held in KDP bases in several areas, including Biyara, Daremar and Karajel. (2) Salahuddin. 5 May: Armed clashes broke out on 5 May after KDP forces attacked the PUK's Komite in Salahuddin. the clashes lasted several hours, with KDP forces tarring control of the Komite and arresting some of the PUK combatants inside. The PUK later published the names of six of their combatants who were allegedly killed after surrender. Several PUK Pesh Merga who were in the Komite at the time told Amnesty International that the KDP had initiated the clashes despite assurances from senior party officials that no attack on the Komite would take place. They said that there were 29 PUK Pesh Merga inside the building who sought to defend themselves against a large KDP force. According to their accounts, five of their fighters were killed during the clashes, seven others killed after surrender (five of them having been wounded), and the remaining 17 arrested and taken into custody. The five who were wounded and then allegedly killed were identified as: Rizgar Wasman Khadr, Khadr Rahman, Mukhlis Ghaffur Hussain, Ahmad Qader Mahmud and Hiwa Sulaiman 'Abdullah. Two others, Muhsin Muhammad Mawlud and Farhan Mustafa Hamad, were allegedly taken into the grounds of the Komite building, tied to an electricity pylon and shot dead. One of the Pesh Merga interviewed said he had not witnessed the killings but that he had seen the two men surrender and a few minutes later he heard the sound of gunshots. In addition to the PUK combatants, a secondary school student aged about 15 was also killed in the incident. Bahzad Muhammad Muhammad's father told Amnesty International that he went to the Komite late that afternoon, after the fighting had ended, and found his son's body riddled with bullets. The Pesh Merga alleged that Bahzad Muhammmad Muhammad had been killed after capture, along with the seven combatants mentioned above. The boy's father stated that he and others had gathered five of the bodies, including the two who were tied to the electricity pylons, and had taken them to the Mulla Hamza mosque. KDP officials rejected these allegations, stating that all the deaths had occurred during the exchange of fire. They also stated that the attack on the Komite was not unprovoked, and had been in response to a hand grenade being thrown at a group of their armed men. It was not possible for Amnesty International to independently verify either the PUK or KDP account of events. (3) Bardarash and 'Aqra, 7 May: Three PUK combatants were said to have been frilled after arrest following armed clashes in 'Aqra on 5 and 6 May: Rif'at 'Abdullah (known as Ribaz), a military commander; and two Pesh Merga, Salam Saleh and Farhad Harnad Amin. KDP forces took control of the PUK's Merbend in 'Aqra on 6 May and a number of officials and Pesh Merga were arrested. Three PUK combatants who were involved in the clashes told Amnesty International that Rebaz and several others evaded capture and sought refuge in Girdasel, an area inhabited by the pro-PUK Harki tribe. There, they were joined by other PUK Pesh Merga and went to the nearby village of Mam Dawda. The following day they attempted to go to Arbil. One of them, a 44-year-old Pesh Merga from Arbil, told Amnesty International: "We were 28 in all... We sent six Pesh Merga to contact someone from another village to show us the way. They were arrested soon after they had set off... We dispersed in the wheat field. We didn't know that we were almost surrounded. I, with seven others, was separated from Rebaz and the rest. Then firing began from all directions. They arrested us... and took us to the village of Dala Re on the river, facing the village of Ifraz. Most of the [KDP] Pesh Merga there belonged to the clans. We were afraid... We thought they wanted to frill us... I wanted them to take us to the KDP Liq as soon as possible, as there were officials there with whom we could talk... A little while later, they brought Ribaz and Isma'il, my brother. They had been arrested. Rebaz was wounded in the foot... At about 10 or 11 the next morning, 7 May, several armed men came and said they were taking Ribaz for treatment... I said 'No, You are going to frill him'. I said 'We will come with him'. They pushed me away and took Ribaz, dragging him along on the ground and treading on his wound. They put him in a car... He was executed in a place about 200 metres away from where we were..." The circumstances in which the two other PUK detainees, Salem Saleh and Farhad Hamad Amin, were killed are not known to Amnesty International. Those held in Dala Re, as well as six others held in the village of Dara Tu, were taken back to 'Aqra. Five days later they were released in a prisoner exchange organized by the INC. KDP officials denied that Ribaz had been killed by their forces after capture. They stated that he had resisted arrest and was killed in the exchange of fire. However, they apparently refused to hand over his body to his family, who told Amnesty International that they were not allowed to see it. Rebaz, Salem Saleh and Farhad Hamad Amin were buried on the outskirts of 'Aqra. (4) Haj Omran, 17 May: Hassan Kwestani, a senior PUK official and head of the PUK's Fourth Melbend, was allegedly killed after capture in the Ha; Omran region on 17 May. The PUK stated that he and the Pesh Merga accompanying him were ambushed by the joint forces of the KDP, IMIK and Kurdish Revolutionary Hezbollah. He was said to have been wounded, captured and then executed. The PUK also stated that Hassan Kwestani's body was subsequently mutilated, photographed and filmed, and then buried close to the area where he had been killed. A PUK military commander who was among those ambushed told Amnesty International the' Hassan Kwestani had been directed by the PUK's Political Bureau to go to the Haj Omran region in order to consolidate PUK control there. On the road between Haj Omran and Choman they were ambushed by the KDP, IMIK, Kurdish Revolutionary Hezbollah and a number of Iranian Pasdaran (Revolutionary Guards). The military commander testified that Hassan Kwestani had been accompanied by four civilians and 24 Pesh Merga, who were overpowered after a brief skirmish. He stated that three among them had been killed during the clashes, eight had fled, four had been captured and then killed, and the others had been taken prisoner. Those allegedly killed after capture, in addition to Hassan Kwestani, were identified as Mahmud Alunad 'Abdullah, his 95 Kurdistan and the Kurds brother, Yusuf Ibrahim Khadr, his cousin; and Mina Ahmad Isma'il. Hassan Kwestani was said to have been wounded in the hand before being captured. KDP officials denied that Hassan Kwestani and the others were killed after capture, stating that they had died during a battle south of Haj Omran. On the other hand, 'Abd al-Qader Brayati, a senior IMIK military commander, told Amnesty International that Kurdish Revolutionary Hezbollah forces were responsible for killing Hassan Kwestani in the ambush. He stated that the IMIK had photographs and video footage showing his body lying against his car with numerous bullet wounds. He undertook to provide copies of the photographs and film but did not do so. Hassan Kwestani's body was not returned to his family and he was said to have been buried in the Haj Omran region. Amnesty International was unable to obtain further corroborating evidence about the incident. [=] state functions, Amnesty International believes that they are bound by the provisions of international human rights treaties which Iraq has ratified, namely the ICCPR, and should conform to other international human rights standards. The Kurdish authorities have, both in public statements and through legislation passed by the National Assembly,repeatedly committed themselves to upholding those human rights standards set out in the Universal Declaration of Human Rights and international human rights treaties and covenants. These standards prohibit any derogation from fundamental rights and guarantees, including the right to life and the prohibition against torture, even in emergencies. To translate these principles into practice requires a resolute and public commitment to the protection of human rights at the highest political level, prompt and effective investigations, and sanctions when abuses are committed, coupled with rigorous training and control of the armed and security forces. Amnesty International submits the following recommendations to the Council of Ministers and leaders of the political parties. If implemented, these measures could help to reduce human rights abuses in Iraqi Kurdistan and would demonstrate a genuine commitment to the promotion of international human rights standards and their effective implementation. [=] 10167. Amnesty International. Iraq: Human Rights Abuses in Iraqi Kurdistan Since 1991: Part 44: Conclusions and Recommendations. New York: Amnesty International, February 28, 1995. MDE 14/01/95. [99H-11422] [19950228] If human rights abuses are to be prevented in the future, effective steps must be taken now to address their causes. The chief responsibility for action rests with the Council of Ministers and with the leaders of the political parties in Iraqi Kurdistan. In this report, Amnesty International has sought to highlight some of the structures, policies and behaviour which lie behind human rights abuses in the region. Two principal factors stand out: the impunity enjoyed by the political parties' armed and special forces which has meant that perpetrators of abuses have not been brought to justice; and the active undermining of the judiciary and trek of respect for its independencebythe political parties. The main political parties in Iraqi Kurdistan have not only ignored, but have also encouraged, human rights abuses by the forces under their authority as a means of settling political differences. In allowing the use of illegal methods, they have intensified the spiral of political violence which has characterized the region for more than a year. The Kurdish leadership has failed to ensure that the Pesh Merga forces and the security and special forces, whether operating in the name of the Council of Ministers or individual political parties, act within the rule of law. These forces continue to arrest people arbitrarily and to torture detainees. They continue to kill civilians. They have killed combatants and others after capture, surrender or after such combatants have been incapacitated by wounds. All such acts violate international humanitarian law, in particular as recognized in common Article 3 of the Geneva Conventions of 1949. Despite evidence of the responsibility of these forces for widespread human rights abuses, not one single individual has been brought to justice. The failure to implement human rights safeguards effectively, to tackle continuing problems of impunity or to bring under control their forces raises serious questions about the Kurdish leadership's political will to end human rights abuses. Victims of human rights abuses, their relatives and society at large all have a vital interest in the truth about past abuses and in the clarification of unresolved human rights crimes. Furthermore, bringing the perpetrators to justice is not only important for the individual case; it also sends a clear message that human rights abuses will not be tolerated and that those responsible will be held accountable. A new approach is required by the Kurdish leadership if it is to succeed in breaking the self-perpetuating cycle of violence and in building institutions based on mutual respect and protection of fundamental human rights. The political and administrative authorities in Iraqi Kurdistan have declared the region under their control to be an integral part of the State of Iraq. They tool: over existing state structures, including the courts, and have largely continued to apply existing Iraqi legislation. In continuing to carry out 10168. Amnesty International. Iraq: Human Rights Abuses in Iraqi Kurdistan Since 1991: Part 45: Conclusions and Recommendations: Recommendations to the Council of Ministers. New York: Amnesty International, February 28, 1995. MDE 14/01/95. [99H-11423] [19950228] (1) Conduct thorough, prompt and impartial investigations into any reported incidents of unlawful and deliberate killings, torture or other human rights abuses committed by officials of the Kurdish administration or the political parties (including those cited in this report). They should be conducted by a body which is independent of those allegedly responsible and has the necessary power and resources to carry out this task; such investigations should satisfy the same strict standards applicable to investigations of extrajudicial executions by states. The methods and findings of these investigations should be made public. (2) Make special efforts to protect the security of relatives, witnesses, lawyers and others assisting with investigations of human rights abuses. (3) Bring to justice law enforcement personnel and members of the political parties' forces responsible for unlawful and deliberate killings, torture or other human rights abuses. All investigations and trials should be held before ordinary criminal courts in accordance with international standards for fair trial. There should be no amnesties or other similar measures which have the effect of preventing the emergence of the truth and subsequent accountability before the law. (4) Take steps to ensure that investigations establish chain-ofcommand responsibility for human rights abuses; anyone suspected of having ordered, committed or covered up human rights abuses should be brought to justice. (5) Prohibit explicitly all unlawful and deliberate killings and torture, and ensure that any such abuses are recognized as criminal offences and are punishable by penalties which take into account the gravity of the crime. Such penalties should be consistent with international standards and exclude the death penalty and other cruel, inhuman or degrading punishment. (6) Take effective steps to ensure that the prohibition of unlawful and deliberate killings is reflected in the training of all personnel involved in the arrest and custody of detainees and of all personnel authorized to use lethal force, and in the instructions issued to them. Such personnel should be instructed that they have the right and duty to refuse to obey any order to participate in a deliberate killing, and that an order from a superior officer or a public authority must never 96 Kurdistan and the Kurds be invoked as a justification for taking part in such a killing. (7) Establish clear guidelines regarding the use of lethal force by the police as well as the armed and security forces carrying out law enforcement functions in accordance with the UN Basic Principles on the Use of Force and Firearms by Law Enforcement Officials and the UN Code of Conduct for Law Enforcement Officials; ensure that effective steps are taken to implement these guidelines. (8) Take effective steps to ensure that law enforcement personnel cooperate with investigations and that members of the judiciary investigating human rights abuses are given adequate resources and protection. (9) Provide fair and adequate compensation to the victims of human rights abuses and their families. (10) Ensure that all detainees are held only in officially recognized places of detention, and that accurate information about the arrest, detention and whereabouts of any person is made available promptly to relatives, lawyers, doctors and the courts. (11) Ensure that all detainees are brought before a judicial authority without delay after being taken into custody, as required by Iraqi legislation, and that relatives, doctors and lawyers have prompt and regular access to them; and take steps to establish regular, independent, unannounced and unrestricted visits of inspection to all places of detention. (12) Ensure that all detainees have the right to have the legality of their detention promptly determined by a judge and to be released if that detention is unlawful. (13) Take all necessary steps to ensure that statements made as a result of torture or other ill-treatment cannot be admitted as evidence during any proceedings. (14) Establish and maintain local and central public registers of all detainees, in accordance with international instruments such as Rule 7 of the UN Standard Minimum Rules for the Treatment of Prisoners and Principle 12 of the UN Body of Principles on the Protection of All Persons under Any Form of Detention or Imprisonment, to be updated on a frequent and regular basis and made available on request to relatives, Ministry of Justice officials, judges, lawyers and representatives of human rights organizations. (15) Ensure that members of the judiciary and human rights defenders receive the full protection of the law so that they can carry out their vital work; all instances of human rights abuses directed against such persons must be fully investigated and the perpetrators brought to justice. (16) Commute all outstanding death sentences to lesser penalties, including death sentences passed by special courts; refrain from imposing death sentences under existing legislation and from passing any new legislation extending the scope of this punishment. [=] with detainees or others at risk of abuses, pending the outcome of human rights investigations. (3) Disband "assassination squads" and other forces operating outside the political parties' chain-of-command but with their support or acquiescence; make explicit that members of such groups who have perpetrated unlawful and deliberate killings will be brought to justice. (4) Ensure that all detainees captured during armed conflict are treated humanely and protected from torture or execution in accordance with international humanitarian law, including common Article 3 of the Geneva Conventions of 1949. (5) Put an immediate end to all forms of torture and other cruel, inhuman or degrading treatment or punishment by forces under the authority of the political parties. (6) To improve protection from torture and killings, transfer all criminal and political suspects currently in the custody of the political parties to the jurisdiction of the Kurdish administration's courts for a prompt judicial determination of their legal status. If the courts determine that they should be detained, they should be held only in officially recognized prisons under the jurisdiction of the Council of Ministers. (7) As a further step to protect such detainees, close all prisons and other detention facilities under the jurisdiction of the political parties and ensure that no one is held in secret detention. [There is no (8) in the original document.] (9) Take immediate steps to end threats and intimidation against human rights defenders, lawyers and members of the judiciary, and put an end to all political interference in the administration of justice; make explicit that all incidents involving the unlawful and deliberate killing of lawyers and members of the judiciary, including those cited in this report, will be promptly, thoroughly and impartiallyinvestigated and the perpetrators brought to justice. (10) Ensure that forces under the authority of the political parties fully cooperate with investigations by the Council of Ministers into human rights abuses, including those cited in this report. [=] 10170. Amnesty International. Kuwait: Five Years Of Impunity: Human Rights Concerns Since The Withdrawal Of Iraqi Forces: Part 01: Summary. London: Amnesty International, February 1996. [98H08431] [19960201] Since the end of the Iraqi occupation in 2/1991, Kuwait has embarked on a series of political and human rights reforms. Parliament has been reconstituted, a committee has been established to look into complaints of human rights violations, and steps have been taken towards the ratification of several international human rights treaties. However, the government has failed to address many human rights violations relating to the period of Martial Law immediately after the occupation. These include the detention of prisoners of conscience; torture and ill-treatment; unresolved extrajudicial executions and "disappearances"; manifestly unfair trials; and the increased scope of the death penalty. Although the human rights situation has now improved considerably, the fundamental rights, usually of foreign nationals and stateless persons continue to be violated. Amnesty International has investigated cases of extrajudicial executions, "disappearances" and torture in Kuwait and has followed the trials of political prisoners and prisoners of conscience. The organization has sought clemency for prisoners on death row. It has repeatedly urged the Kuwaiti authorities to investigate fully all human rights violations and has raised with them its concerns about the unfairness of trials in the Martial Law Court and the State Security Court. However, the Kuwaiti authorities have made little effort to investigate human rights violations, particularly those relating to the Martial Law period, or to bring those responsible to justice, and have failed to address the substance of Amnesty 10169. Amnesty International. Iraq: Human Rights Abuses in Iraqi Kurdistan Since 1991: Part 46: Conclusions and Recommendations: Recommendations to the Kurdish Political Parties. New York: Amnesty International, February 28, 1995. MDE 14/01/95. [99H11424] [19950228] (1) Put an immediate end to the killing of combatants after surrender or capture by forces under the authority of the political parties and any other unlawful and deliberate killing; make explicit that individuals who ha e violated international humanitarian law will be brought to justice in proceedings which satisfy international standards before courts which are competent, impartial and independent. (2) Take immediate steps to remove members of the political parties' forces known or suspected of being implicated in unlawful and deliberate killings, torture or other human rights abuses from any position of authority and from all duties in which they have contact 97 Kurdistan and the Kurds International's concerns or to respond to requests for information. Amnesty International is calling on the Kuwaiti authorities to investigate and redress all outstanding cases of human rights violations and to take steps to ensure the full protection of the human rights of everyone in Kuwait. This document, written in 12/1995, outlines Amnesty International's main concerns in Kuwait and includes a number of recommendations to the Kuwaiti Government. [=] special court, before its dissolution on 6/26/1991. Trials before this court were manifestly unfair. All the cases before the Martial Law Court which had not been tried, possibly more than 450, were transferred to another special court, the State Security Court. AmnestyInternational had longstanding concerns about unfair bids before this court prior to the Iraqi occupation. In 9/1991, following the introduction of procedural amendments, at least 150 defendants were released. Amnesty International welcomed these amendments but publicized the continuing violations of the right to fair trial at every stage of the court's proceedings. The State Security Court tried cases, mostly of alleged "collaborators", between 4/1992-9/1995. Over 160 people, including prisoners of conscience, are believed to be serving sentences after conviction in unfair trials before these two courts. [In addition to raising its concerns with the Kuwaiti authorities, Amnesty International has expressed its concern about Kuwaiti nationals who were transferred from Kuwait to Iraq by Iraqi forces during the occupation of Kuwait. In 9/1993 Amnesty International published a report naming 140 Kuwaitis and third-country nationals who were believed to be held in secret detention in Iraq and urged the Iraqi Government to clarify the fate of these individuals (see Iraq: Secret detention of Kuwaitis and thirdcountry nationals, Al Index: MDE 14/05/93). Early in 1995 the Ministry of Justice of Kuwait provided Amnesty International with 625 names of Kuwaiti and other nationals believed to be still in Iraq. According to press reports in late 1995, the International Committee of the Red Cross (ICRC) has said that 609 of these cases were awaiting clarification. The Iraqi Government also has a continuing obligation to investigate vigorously these "disappearances", to release all prisoners of conscience, to bring to justice those responsible for violations of human rights, to compensate the victims or their families, and to provide rehabilitation to victims of torture.] [=] 10171. Amnesty International. Kuwait: Five Years Of Impunity: Human Rights Concerns Since The Withdrawal Of Iraqi Forces: Part 02: Introduction. London: Amnesty International, February 1996. [98H08432] [19960201] Since the end of the Iraqi occupation in 2/1991, Kuwait has embarked on a series of political and human rights reforms. Parliament has been reconstituted, a committee has been established to look into complaints of human rights violations, and steps have been taken towards the ratification of several international human rights treaties. However, the government has failed to address many human rights violations relating to the period of Martial Law immediately after the occupation. These include the detention of prisoners of conscience; torture and ill-treatment; unresolved extrajudicial executions and "disappearances"; manifestly unfair trials; and the increased scope of the death penalty. Although the human rights situation has now improved considerably, the fundamental rights, usually of foreign nationals and stateless people continue to be violated. Amnesty International has investigated cases of extrajudicial executions, "disappearances" and torture in Kuwait and has followed the trials of political prisoners and prisoners of conscience. The organization has sought clemency for prisoners on death row. It has repeatedly urged the Kuwaiti authorities to investigate fully all human rights violations and has raised with them its concerns about the unfairness of trials in the Martial Law Court and the State Security Court. However, the Kuwaiti authorities have made lime effort to investigate human rights violations, particularly those relating to the Martial Law period, or to bring those responsible to justice, and have failed to address the substance of Amnesty International's concerns or to respond to requests for information. Amnesty International is calling on the Kuwaiti authorities to investigate and redress all outstanding cases of human rights violations and to take steps to ensure the full protection of the human rights of everyone in Kuwait. This document, written in 12/1995, outlines Amnesty International's main concerns in Kuwait and includes a number of recommendations to the Kuwaiti Government. [=] 10173. Amnesty International. Kuwait: Five Years Of Impunity: Human Rights Concerns Since The Withdrawal Of Iraqi Forces: Part 04: Positive Developments. London: Amnesty International, February 1996. [98H-08434] [19960201] On 10/5/1992 elections were held for the 50-seat National Assembly (parliament) which had been dissolved in 1986 by the Amir of Kuwait. A parliamentary Committee for the Defence of Human Rights (CDHR) (Lajnat al-difa' 'an huquq al-insan) was created, which has the power to investigate complaints from members of the public and to make non-binding recommendations to the authorities. The work of the CDHR has reportedly led to improvements in some prison conditions. In 4/1995, according to newspaper reports, the Minister of the Interior agreed to the CDHR's proposal to establish a permanent working group in his Ministry to look into complaints received by the committee. In addition, human rights sections have been set up in the Ministries of Foreign Affairs and Justice. The Kuwaiti Government has also taken steps towards ratifying a number of international human rights treaties. Kuwait acceded to the Convention on the Prevention and Punishment of the Crime of Genocide on 3/7/1995. In 7/1995 the Council of Ministers announced that it had approved draft laws relating to Kuwait's accession to the International Covenant on Civil and Political Rights (ICCPR), the International Covenant on Economic, Social and Cultural Rights, and the Convention against Torture and Other Cruel, Inhuman or Degrading Treatment or Punishment. These draft laws were then reportedly sent to the Amir, before being submitted to the National Assembly for approval. On 8/1/1995 the National Assembly approved a bill abolishing the State Security Court and transferring all cases to ordinary criminal courts. The bill was later ratified by the Amir and entered into force in mid-9/1995. Amnesty International welcomed the abolition of the State 10172. Amnesty International. Kuwait: Five Years Of Impunity: Human Rights Concerns Since The Withdrawal Of Iraqi Forces: Part 03: Background: The Martial Law Period and Its Consequences. London: Amnesty International, February 1996. [98H-08433] [19960201] In 2/1991 the Amir of Kuwait, Shaikh Jaber al-Ahmad alSabah, declared a three-month period of Martial Law following the withdrawal of Iraqi forces, which was subsequently extended until 6/26/1991. During the Martial Law period, Kuwaiti Government forces and armed civilians, often acting with the knowledge or acquiescence of government officials, carried out a campaign of arbitrary arrests, torture and extrajudicial executions of individuals suspected of "collaboration" with Iraqi forces. Many of those detained "disappeared" and their whereabouts remain unknown. The victims were mainly non-Kuwaitis, including Iraqis, Palestinians, Jordanians and members of the bidun community (stateless Arabs). Close to 1000 people were arbitrarily detained and of these at least 70 "disappeared" between 2-6/1991. The cases of 164 alleged "collaborators" were tried by the Martial Law Court, a temporary 98 Kurdistan and the Kurds Security Court and urged the Government of Kuwait to set up a judicial review of the cases of all political prisoners sentenced after manifestly unfair trials by the Martial Law Court and the State Security Court. However, no such judicial review is under way. Despite these positive steps, in the same period the Kuwaiti authorities have taken measures against freedom of expression. Censorship of newspapers was lifted in 1992, but since then several journalists have reportedly been arrested and detained briefly in connection with offences under the press law, including writing and publishing articles critical of government policies and officials. Most were later fined. The authorities have also curtailed the activities of non-governmental organizations in Kuwait. In 8/1993 the Council of Ministers issued a decree ordering the dissolution of all unlicensed organizations, including one of the country's leading human rights groups, al-Jami'a al-Kuwaitiyya lil-difa' 'an Dahaya al-Harb, the Kuwaiti Association to Defend War Victims (KADWV). The decree effectively ignored a resolution adopted by the National Assembly in 12/1992, calling for non-governmental groups working on behalf of Kuwaitis missing in the aftermath of the Gulf conflict to be legalized. The Hostages & Missing Committee (Lalnat al-raha' in walmafqudin), a seven-member parliamentary committee responsible for following up cases of Kuwaitis held in Iraq, condemned the government's decision to close down these organizations. Its members resigned in protest at the National Assembly's failure to support their efforts to have the government's decision overturned. As a result of the decree, and after fruitless efforts to obtain government registration, the KADWV had to vacate its premises in 10/1994. Unlicensed organizations may face difficulty in carrying out their work, and the authorities have sometimes banned public meetings, including those concerned with human rights. [=] and his brother Jalal; 'Adnan Hakawati; and Muhammad 'Adnan Barakat. Unconfirmed reports suggest they may have been held with 'Isam al-'Udwani in the Talha Deportation Centre in early 1992. Samer George Habib 'Azar, Tha'er Jum'ah Jibril and Bilal Mahdawi were all reported to have been tortured during detention. In 12/1995 Amnesty International received details of the "disappearance" of Mazen Sharif al-'Azawi, an Iraqi national aged 34. He was reportedly arrested on 3/7/1991 from his home in al-Salmiyya by a group of men in civilian clothes, one of whom identified himself as an officer in the security forces. Mazen al-'Azawi was reportedly held for about a week in Salwa police station, after which he was taken to Biyan police station, where he was reportedly seen with blood on his face by detainees who were later released. Since then, unconfirmed reports have suggested that he was held in the Military prison and later in the State Security prison. His family, who have now left Kuwait, have never received any official information about his fate. The "disappeared" whose cases Amnesty International has already documented include; George Victor Salsa, a Palestinian with Jordanian nationality. A bank officer from al-Salmiyya, he was arrested at his home by two State Security policemen on 5/9/1991 and subsequently "disappeared". In 1/1992 the organization received information that he was being held incommunicado at Kuwait Central Prison. Later reports suggest that he was held for a time with 'Isam al-'Udwani. He was later allegedly tortured and held in Kuwait Military Hospital. Also among the "disappeared" are in 1991. 'Awatif Qasim Muhammad 'All al-Maliki, a young Iraqi woman who was last seen at the end of 2/1991; and Khalid Rashid Muhammad Agha-Mir, an Iraqi Kurd born in Kuwait, who worked as a cashier at al-Salem Gynecological Hospital before his arrest in 4/1/1991 by soldiers and armed civilians. He was reportedly seen at al-Salmiyya police station and was subsequently moved to an unknown destination. While some of the people listed as "disappeared" may have been brought to trial, fled or been expelled from Kuwait, Amnesty International is concerned that others may have died in custody or may have been extrajudicially executed. This fear is heightened by the outcome of some cases where "disappearances" were resolved. For example, Muhammad Shawkat Yusuf, a Palestinian student, was arrested on 5/19/1991 by armed Kuwaiti civilians. He was later killed, possibly in al-Nugra police station where he was taken. On 5/23/1991 his body was reportedly taken to the al-Sabah hospital mortuary On 5/25/1991 his body, with the eyes gouged out and with a bullet hole in the cheek, was found on a rubbish dump in al-Jabiriyya. A 13-year-old Palestinian boy, 'Iyad Aqrabawi, was found dead in the street in al-Khaldiyya on or about 3/10/1991. He had "disappeared" after being arrested with three other young men at the Sabhan petrol station at the beginning of 3/1991. Armed Kuwaiti civilians were said to have controlled the petrol stations at the time. [=] 10174. Amnesty International. Kuwait: Five Years Of Impunity: Human Rights Concerns Since The Withdrawal Of Iraqi Forces: Part 05: Human Rights Violations Since the End of the Occupation: Disappearances and Extrajudicial Executions. London: Amnesty International, February 1996. [98H-08435] [19960201] The campaign of arbitrary arrests, torture and extrajudicial killings by Kuwaiti Government forces and armed civilians -- often acting with the knowledge or acquiescence of government officials -during the Martial Law period was directed in the main at Palestinians, Jordanian and Iraqi nationals, and members of the bidun community. Many of those who were arrested subsequently "disappeared" in custody and their.fate and whereabouts remain unknown. In 1992 Amnesty International documented the cases of 62 non-Kuwait) nationals who "disappeared" in custody between 2-6/1991. However, the true number of those who "disappeared" will probably never be known. The Kuwaiti authorities have made little effort to investigate human rights violations in the aftermath of the Iraqi withdrawal, and the only way to obtain information about the "disappeared" is to contact their families, many of whom have moved to other countries. Reports of other "disappearances" from this period have continued to reach Amnesty International. For example, in 1995 the organizationreceived details of eight people who "disappeared" in 1991. 'Isam Muhammad Saleh al-'Udwani, a Palestinian with Syrian nationality, was arrested on 5/8/1991 by at least three members of the Kuwaiti security forces. His family has not seen him since or been able to obtain any official information about him, although at various times unconfirmed reports have suggested he was held in the State Security Prison in the Civil Defence Building, Talha Deportation Centre and Kuwait Central Prison. Six Palestinians with Jordanian nationality also 'Isam Muhammad Saleh al-'Udwani a "disappeared''. They are Samer George Habib Palmtinian with Syrian nationality, who "disappeared" in 1991.'Azar, Thater Jum'ah Jibril; Bilal Mahdawi 10175. Amnesty International. Kuwait: Five Years Of Impunity: Human Rights Concerns Since The Withdrawal Of Iraqi Forces: Part 06: Human Rights Violations Since the End of the Occupation: Disappearances and Extrajudicial Executions: Investigations Into Disappearances and Extrajudicial Executions. London: Amnesty International,February 1996. [98H-08436] [19960201] The Kuwaiti authorities, while repeatedly giving assurances that extrajudicial executions and "disappearances" during the Martial Law period were being investigated, have failed to conduct adequate investigations to resolve these cases. Amnesty International knows of only one case where an alleged perpetrator of an extrajudicial execution was brought to justice. A Kuwaiti police investigator was convicted of the murder in 3/1991 of a Lebanese man and his son, and of the attempted murder of his daughter. He was sentenced to life imprisonment in 12/1993, 99 Kurdistan and the Kurds which was reportedly reduced to 15 years' imprisonment in June 1994 because of "mitigating circumstances". In 3-4/1991, an Amnesty International delegation visiting Kuwait examined the burial records at al-Rigga cemetery, which showed that scores of unidentified bodies had been buried since 2/26/1991. The bodies were simply listed as "unknown". Unless a full investigation is carried out, including the exhumation of mass graves, the fate of many of the "disappeared" may never be known. Where investigations have been carried out, they do not appear to have fulfilled the requirements of independence and thoroughness, as set out by Internationally recognized standards, such as the UN Principles on the Effective Prevention and Investigation of Extra-legal, Arbitrary and Summary Executions. For example, Amnesty International has repeatedly sought information on the case of George Victor Salsa (see above) and for details about any investigation carried out into his fate. In 1/1994 the Kuwaiti Minister of Information, Saud Nasir Al-Sabah, stated that a thorough investigation had been conducted into the "disappearance" of George Victor Salsa The Minister invited Amnesty International to inspect the relevant official documents and records. In 2/1994 Amnesty International welcomed this offer and requested information on the following issues: who conducted the investigation; whom did the investigators interview; which places of detention, prisons and hospitals were visited and on what dates; and what references to George Victor Salsa were found in the prison or hospital records. Amnesty International has not received any reply. The lack of response casts serious doubts on the adequacy of the investigation procedures. In a letter to the Belgian Section of Amnesty International in 5/1994, the Kuwaiti Ambassador in Belgium took issue with the organization's criticism of the Kuwaiti Government's approach to human rights violations after the occupation, pointing out that two Kuwaiti officials had been brought to justice for violations during that period. In its response in 9/1994, Amnesty International said that in 1991 it had sought details of all those tried for human rights violations, but had never received any details from the Kuwaiti authorities. The organization also said that "[g]iven the hundreds of reports of violations during the Martial Law period, including torture, the failure to publish a single report of any investigations of these reports of violations and the figure of two convictions for these crimes suggests that the Kuwaiti authorities are not taking their obligations to investigate reports of violations and to bring to justice those responsible seriously". Amnesty International also pointed out in its response that, despite repeated requests for the information, the Kuwaiti authorities had never provided the organization with a complete list of those convicted by the State Security Court. Such information could help to clarify the fate of some of those who reportedly "disappeared". The Kuwaiti Government has a continuing obligation to investigate all reports of "disappearance" and extrajudicial executions, to bring to justice anyone found responsible, and to compensate the families of victims of extrajudicial executions. Investigation into "disappearances" and extrajudicial executions should be independent and impartial and consistent with Internationally recognized standards such as the UN Declaration on the Protection of All Persons from Enforced Disappearance; the UN Principles for the Effective Prevention and Investigation of Extra-legal, Arbitrary and Summary Execution, and Amnesty International's own Commission of Inquiry Standards. To comply with these principles and with its own 14-point program for the prevention of "disappearances", Amnesty International believes that effective investigations of these cases require as a minimum the examination of all hospital records during the Martial Law period and of records of all police stations, prisons and places where people were detained. Relevant medical records should be made available to those concerned. The Kuwaiti authorities should provide copies of the investigation reports, including details of any cases in which officials have been the subject of disciplinary procedures or been referred to the Public Prosecutor. Death certificates should be issued to families where "disappeared" individuals are found to have died. [=] 10176. Amnesty International. Kuwait: Five Years Of Impunity: Human Rights Concerns Since The Withdrawal Of Iraqi Forces: Part 07: Human Rights Violations Since the End of the Occupation: Torture and Ill-Treatment. London: Amnesty International, February 1996. [98H-08437] [19960201] Reports of torture were common during the Martial Law period and some victims appear to have died in custody as a result. For example, Khalil Salim Bahhur, a Palestinian head teacher with Jordanian nationality, died in al-'Addan hospital after his arrest on 4/1/1991. He had been kept in incommunicado detention for at least 10 days. His body allegedly had multiple stab wounds and his ears and nose were said to have been cut off. In 10/1991 Amnesty International submitted to the Kuwaiti authorities the names of 11 people alleged to have died in custody as a result of torture, or to have been extrajudicially executed. The communication remains without response. Many of those detained during the Martial Law period have alleged that they were tortured. For example, Usama Suhail Hwsein, a Palestinian prisoner of conscience currently held in Kuwait Central Prison, was said to have been tortured during incommunicado, detention, including repeated beatings, electric shocks and cigarette burns. He was allegedly threatened with further ill-treatment if he mentioned the torture during his trial before the Martial Law Court in 6/1991. He was sentenced to death, later commuted to life imprisonment, for working for the Iraqi newspaper al-Nida'. Reports of torture and ill-treatment have declined considerably since the end of the Martial Law period. However, occasional reports have been received by Amnesty International. For example, a Sudanese man, Ahmad al-Mubarak, alleged he was tortured during interrogation in a police station in 1/1992. In 5/1992 a Sri Lankan national, Colompurage Asoka Pathmakumara, died on his way to a hospital, apparently after being tortured at Jlaib al-Shuyukh police station. Also in 1992, Hisham teen Sultana, an airline steward of dual British and Tunisian nationality, was reportedly tortured in July while held for over two weeks at Messila civil defence centre. After his release, he said that he had been beaten repeatedly on the chest and stomach and burned with cigarettes while in custody, and had been denied access to consular officials, a representative of his airline and a lawyer. In 1993 the body of a young Iraqi national, Ma'add Zahir, was found near the Iraqi border, reportedly with head injuries and signs of torture on his body. He had reportedly been abducted by Kuwaiti police with three companions, who were also said to have been tortured. The three others were apparently resumed to Iraq after three days. The Kuwaiti police reportedly denied involvement in this case. Amnesty International has repeatedly called on the Kuwaiti authorities to investigate allegations of torture and to bring anyone found responsible for torture or ill-treatment to justice. [=] 10177. Amnesty International. Kuwait: Five Years Of Impunity: Human Rights Concerns Since The Withdrawal Of Iraqi Forces: Part 08: Human Rights Violations Since the End of the Occupation: Torture and Ill-Treatment: Investigations of Torture. London: Amnesty International, February 1996. [98H-08438] [19960201] Allegations of torture and ill-treatment during the Martial Law period remain, almost without exception, uninvestigated. [Amnesty International is aware of only one prosecution for violations of the rights of detainees leading to a conviction. On 12/1/1993 the Kuwaiti Ambassador to the United 100 Kurdistan and the Kurds States of America informed Amnesty International that not long ago a state security officer was stripped of his rank and sentenced to prison for the death of a defendant while in custody, but provided no further information about the case.] Many defendants in trials before the Martial Law Court and the State Security Court alleged that they were tortured and often had injuries consistent with their claims. Investigations into these claims were frequently cursory and defendants were often convicted on the basis of confessions which they said had been extracted under torture. [Article 12 of the Torture Declaration prohibits the use as evidence of any statement established to have been made as a result of torture or ill-treatment.] Even where complaints of torture during State Security Law trials were sent to a government doctor for examination, these examinations often took place more than a year after the alleged torture, so signs of torture would have been extremely difficult to detect in many cases. Qualified independent experts were not invited to examine defendants and independent observers were not present during examinations. In the absence of independent experts or observers watching the government doctors, it is difficult to assess the quality of the examinations. For example, in the trial of 11 Palestinians of Jordanian nationality charged with belonging to the military wing of Jabhat alTahrir al- 'Arabiyya, the Arab Liberation Front, some of the defendants said in a State Security Court hearing in 5/1992 that they had been beaten and that their "confessions" were the result of torture. Muhammad 'All Ahmad Dalfallah and his brother Buil 'All Ahmad Dalfallah showed the court burns and scars. The court sent all the defendants to the Idarat al-Adilla al-ana'iyya, Criminal Investigation Department in the Ministry of the Interior, for an investigation of their injuries. According to the court summary, the Chief Forensic Doctor of the Criminal Investigation Department said in his testimony to the State Security Court on 7/5/1992 that with the exception of one person, all of the injuries were slight and their date was difficult to determine. He said they could have been self-inflicted or caused by friends of the deceased. Instead of placing the burden of proof on the prosecution to show that the "confessions" were voluntary, the State Security Court concluded that the "injuries were not proved to have been caused by beatings" and could not have led to confessions. According to one of the lawyers, a medical report on one of the defendants, indicating that he had injuries which could have been inflicted in custody, was not discussed by the court. Since Martial Law, there have been occasional reports of torturers being brought to justice. However, this has usually only been after repeated complaints and publicity about the alleged torture or illtreatment. After Amnesty International sought information about the circumstances of the death of Colompurage Asoka Pathmakumara, the Ministry of Justice replied in 12/1992 that his interrogators had said that he had jumped from the top floor of the police station, and that a forensic doctor had testified that his death resulted from injuries sustainable from a fall from a height. The response added that the inquiry had found that Colompurage Asoka Pathmakumara had been beaten "lightly" during his interrogation in connection with a theft, and that his body had bruises on the upper arms and feet consistent with such a beating, but that these injuries were not connected to the cause of death. According to the Ministry of Justice, seven policemen were charged with torturing Colompurage Asoka Pathmakumara in order to force him to confess. Amnesty International welcomed this step and sought details of the names of those arrested and the precise charges against them. It also sought a copy of the forensic doctor's report on the death and his testimony to the Public Prosecutor. No response to this request has beenreceived. [According to reports in 1993, three police officers were convicted of the murder of a Sri Lankan in 1/1993, and were each sentenced to five years' imprisonment with hard labor.] A detective was also reportedly arrested in 1994 in connection with the torture of Ahmad al-Mubarak in 1/1992, and charged with aggravated assault. The detective was reported to have previously been convicted of torture, but had not served his sentence. Amnesty International sought details of the investigation and the outcome of the case. No response had been received by the time of writing, nor had any response been received concerning any of the other allegations of torture or ill-treatment raised with the Kuwaiti authorities. Amnesty International is deeply concerned at the failure of the Kuwaiti authorities to provide information regarding action taken on complaints of torture both during and after the Martial Law period. Proper investigation of torture requires a careful and thorough investigation in accordance with accepted medical practice. The methods and detailed findings of investigations should be made public. The failure of the Kuwaiti authorities to provide Amnesty International with any such reponse increases fears that the authorities may be permitting human rights violations to be committed with impunity. In addition, victims of torture or their families should be able to seek redress and compensation. [=] 10178. Amnesty International. Kuwait: Five Years Of Impunity: Human Rights Concerns Since The Withdrawal Of Iraqi Forces: Part 09: Human Rights Violations Since the End of the Occupation: Unfair Trials. London: Amnesty International, February 1996. [98H-08439] [19960201] Amnesty International has serious concerns about the fairness of trials that occurred before the Martial Law Court and the State Security Court. These were both special courts. The State Security Court had been established under Law 26 of 1969 to try state security offences. The Martial Law Court was created as a temporary replacement for ordinary courts, as well as that of the State Security Court. The Martial Law Court was dissolved on 6/26/1991 and the State Security Court took over the trials of hundreds of defendants accused of "collaboration" and other crimes. The State Security Court was itself abolished in 9/1995 (Law No. 55 of 1995), and all the cases before it were transferred to ordinary courts. This was reduced on appeal to two-year suspended sentences after the payment of "blood money" to the family. Amnesty International has sought clarification as to whether these convictions relate to the same case. Many of those convicted after unfair trials by the Martial Law Court and the State Security Court are still serving lengthy prison sentences. They include prisoners of conscience and at least eight political prisoners still on death row. [=] 10179. Amnesty International. Kuwait: Five Years Of Impunity: Human Rights Concerns Since The Withdrawal Of Iraqi Forces: Part 10: Human Rights Violations Since the End of the Occupation: Unfair Trials: Flaws in Trials Before the Martial Law Court and State Security Court. London: Amnesty International, February 1996. [98H08440] [19960201] Trials before the Martial Law Court and the State Security Court did not meet International standards for fair trial, including Article 14 of the ICCPR which reflects universally accepted minimum standards for fair trial. Neither court satisfied international requirements that criminal courts be independent and impartial. They violated the prohibition on displacing the jurisdiction of ordinary courts by the creation of special tribunals which do not use established legal procedures. The crimes with which defendants were charged were based on legal provisions which are vague. Defendants were not informed at the time of arrest of the charges against them or of their rights. Defendants were denied family visits and non-Kuwaiti detainees were not given access to a consular representative. During 101 Kurdistan and the Kurds the Martial Law period in particular, lawyers were often not permitted to see their clients, nor did they have access to the files and documents needed to prepare their defence. In addition, the failure of the Martial Law Court to issue judgments or explanations of its decisions [Article 14(1) of the ICCPR requires that "any judgement rendered in a criminal case... shall be made public."] in all but a handful of cases makes it difficult, if not impossible, to determine to what extent the court relied on "secret sources", hearsay evidence and evidence which was not shown to the defendants or their lawyers. The courts also failed to investigate thoroughly claims of torture, even when the defendants showed scars that were consistent with the methods of torture they described. Many detainees said that they "confessed" after torture and ill-treatment, and a large proportion of them were subsequently convicted. Many detainees may have been reluctant to make complaints to the prosecutor fearing further torture and ill-treatment when returned to detention. Those convicted by the Martial Law Court and the State Security Court are still denied the fundamental right to appeal against their conviction and sentence to a higher court, as recognized by Article 14 (5) of the ICCPR, even though both courts have now been abolished. Martial Law Court decisions are subject only to a limited review by a panel of judicial counsellors. Since the Martial Law Court rarely produced written judgments explaining the reasons for the verdicts and sentences, it is unclear how the reviewing panels were able to carry out the reviews. The reviews were held in camera, apparently without defendants or their lawyers being present, and the panel could only make non-binding recommendations to the Crown Prince who, as the Martial Law Governor, could reduce, confirm or even increase the sentence. [This violates the ban on revision of court decisions in Principle 4 of the UN Basic Principles on the Independence of the Judiciary.] Defendantsconvicted by the State Security Court are also denied the full right to appeal. The amendments of 9/1991 granted those convicted by the State Security Court a limited right to review, which was restricted to a review of legal errors by cessation. Kuwaiti lawyers, however, have said the right to appeal against judgments of the State Security Court was, in practice, interpreted very narrowly. The flaws in the Martial Law Court trials are illustrated by the trial of 24 employees of the newspaper al-Nida'. Shortly after the Iraqi invasion of Kuwait in 8/1990, the Kuwaiti newspaper al-Qabas was closed down by the Iraqi authorities and was replaced by al-Nida', which was the only newspaper allowed to be published during the occupation. The 24 employees of the newspaper were charged with "collaborating" with Iraqi occupation forces. The trial took place in one day on 6/2/1991. Defendants were denied the right to cross-examine the key prosecution witness, a "secret source" who never appeared in the courtroom. Defendants and their lawyers did not always have an opportunity to examine documentary evidence before it was shown to the judge and they were questioned about it. Many ofthese defendants are reported to have been tortured while under investigation." Six of the24defendants were sentenced to death, 10 were sentenced to prison terms and eight were acquitted. The death sentences were subsequently commuted to prison terms by the Crown Prince. Amnesty International considers the 15 people still held to be prisoners of conscience and is calling for their immediate and unconditional release. In cases before the State Security Court lawyers generally had access to files before trials and could re-examine witnesses who had testified in the hearing before the prosecutor, but many violations of the right to a fair trial which had occurred in the Martial Law Court continued. Flaws in State Security Court trials are illustrated by the case of I 1 Palestinians of Jordanian nationality. 'Imad al-Din Mahmud Nimr, Muhammad 'All Ahmad Daifallah, BasD 'All Ahmad Dalfallah, Akram Shaker Ahmad, Al-Muttaz Billah Muhammad Saleh, Muntadr Muhammad Saleh, Hussain Rashed Huuain, Mutayyed Yassir Huuain, Iynd Muhammad 'Issa, Bassem Hassan Muhammad and a minor, Hussam Muhammad Rashed, were all sccused of belonging to Jabhat alTahrir al-'Arabiyya, the military wing of the Arab Liberation Front, and assisting the Iraqi occupation forces in Kuwait. They were also charged with illegal possession and use of weapons and with receiving salaries from Iraq during the occupation. In this trial the court permitted the investigator to give testimony based on "secret sources". Pieces of evidence were withheld from the defendants and their lawyers. Defendants were not always warned of their right to remain silent before being questioned by the court and at least one defendant was questioned after his lawyers had left the room. During a hearing on 5/4/1992 the defendants said that they had been beaten and that their "confessions" were the result of torture. Hussam Muhammad Rashed was sentenced by the State Security Court to four years' imprisonment and the other 10 were all sentenced to death. On 6/6/1994 the Court of Cassation reduced the death sentences against the 10 men to prison. 'Imad al-Din Mahmud Nimr was sentenced to life imprisonment and the death sentences against the other nine were reduced to 15 years' imprisonment. The flaws in judicial procedures were not limited to trials of people alleged to have "collaborated" awing the Iraqi occupation. Eleven Iraqis and three Kuwaitis appeared before the State Security Court on 6/5/1993, charged with participation in an alleged Iraqi Government plot to assassinate the former United States (US) President, George Bush, owing his visit to Kuwait in 4/1993. The defendants were not allowed access to lawyers before the trial. The right to be presumed innocent until proven guilty was seriously jeopardized by statements made by Kuwait's Public Prosecutor at a press conference on 5/16/1993. He stated that the defendants were "criminals who allied with the devil and conspired with him to try to assault Kuwait's honored guest ... [and that] investigations proved without doubt that it was the Iraqi intelligence service which moved this rotten group of accused persons to execute the plans of the evil Iraqi regime...". In addition, statements made by the US Government justifying an air strike on Baghdad on 6/26/1993 on the grounds that there existed "compelling evidence" of an Iraqi intelligence assassination plot, and the subsequent statement of the Kuwaiti authorities welcoming the air strike, further underlined thedefendants' presumption of innocence. On 6/4/1994 the State Security Court sentenced six of the accused -- five Iraqis and one Kuwaiti -- to death. On 3/20/1995 the Court of Cassation upheld the death sentences on two of the convicted, Ra'ad 'Abd al-Emir 'Abbud al-Asadi and Wdi 'Abd al-Had) 'Abd al-Hassan alGhazali, both Iraqi nationals. The Court of Cassation reduced the death sentences of the Iraqis Salem Nasser Subalh Rumi al-Shummari and Bandar 'Ujail Jaber alShummari to life imprisonment while another Iraqi, 'Adel Ismatil 'Issa al-'Utaibi, had his sentence reduced to 15 years' imprisonment. In the case of the Kuwaiti national, Badr Jiyad Thamer Mutlaq al-Shummari, the Court of Cassation overturned the conviction of attempted assassination but upheld a sentence of five years' imprisonment for smuggling alcohol. Amnesty International delegates visited Kuwait several times in 1991 and 1992 to observe trials of alleged "collaborators" before the Martial Law Court and the State Security Court. They concluded that the trials were manifestly unfair. Since 1991, Amnesty International has repeatedly asked for detailed information regarding the trials, verdicts and sentences passed by the Martial Law Court and the State Security Court. Such information has, however, not been provided by the Kuwaiti authorities who have consistently denied that the trials were unfair. They said that trials were held in public and that international organizations and international and local media were 102 Kurdistan and the Kurds allowed to follow the proceedings. However, such openness is not in itself a guarantee that all the rights of defendants were respected or that all proceedings were conducted in accordance with international standards on fair bias. [=] 10180. Amnesty International. Kuwait: Five Years Of Impunity: Human Rights Concerns Since The Withdrawal Of Iraqi Forces: Part 11: Human Rights Violations Since the End of the Occupation: The Use of the Death Penalty. London: Amnesty International, February 1996. [98H-08441] [19960201] Executions were resumed in 1993 after a period of three years during which there were no judicial executions. Death sentences were passed on some of the defendants convicted for state security crimes in unfair trials before the Martial Law Court and the State Security Court, thereby denying the rights laid down in Paragraph 5 of the UN Safeguards guaranteeing protection of the rights of those facing the death penalty. The death penalty is also imposed by ordinary courts. In 5/1993 'Abd al-Rahman Hassen Khafi, an Iraqi national' was executed after his death sentence had been upheld by the Court of Cassation and ratified by the Amir. He had been convicted after an unfair trial of membership of the Arab Liberation Front, and of killing a Kuwaiti border guard. Kamal Matar, a member of the bidun community, was executed in 12/1993 following his conviction for murder in an ordinary court. Executions continued in 1994:Muhammad 'All Qulalb al-Rashidi was hanged on 7 8/1994 following his conviction for leading a gang-rape of a 10-year-old Egyptian girl. Three executions were reported in 1995. Muhammad Nalib, a Filipino national, was executed in April following a conviction for murder. Ahmad al-'Azmi was hanged in July after his conviction for murder. He had stormed into a wedding and shot dead the bridegroom and one other person. In September Muhammad Rifa', a Turkish national, was executed. He had been convicted of murdering a woman he had hoped to marry. Several people are at the moment on death row. They include six men convicted by the State Security Court in 1992 and 1993: Muhsin Shawkat Taher Hussain, Jassem Hassan Sabhan, 'Abd alKhalid Mankhi Naji, 'Abd al-Wahed Hamid 'Abd al-Shah, Amj ad Ibrahim Hamad al-Shi khaiti and 'Abd al-Salem 'Abd d-Karim Sat ud, all Iraqi nationals, were convicted as "collaborators" and are now believed to be awaiting a review of their sentences by the Court of Cassation. Several others have been sentenced to death in absentia. Finally, Ra'ad 'Abd d-Emir 'Abbud al-Asadi and Wali 'Abd al-Had) 'Abd al-Hassan al-Ghazali were sentenced to death in the trial of those accused of taking part in the assassination plot against George Bush. Their death sentences were upheld by the Court of Cassation in 3/1995. Before execution the sentences have to be ratified by the Amir. At least five people convicted of crimes before ordinary courts are also believed to be on death row. In 12/1993 a man identified in press reports as "S.J." was sentenced to death for breaking into a woman's house and threatening to kill her. An unnamed Kuwaiti man was reportedly sentenced to death in 9/1994 for murdering his wife. In 10/1995 the Court of Appeals reportedly confirmed the death sentence passed on a Kuwaiti man accused of killing a Syrian woman. In 12/1995 three Egyptian nationals, one in absentia, were sentenced to death for murdering their Kuwaiti employer. After review by the Court of Appeal, death sentences in ordinary criminal cases are referred to the Court of Cassation before being sent to the Amir for ratification. While recognizing the seriousness of crimes such as murder and rape, Amnesty International opposes the death penalty unconditionally as a violation of the right to life and the right not to be subjected to cruel, inhuman or degrading punishment as proclaimed in Articles 3 and 5 of the Universal Declaration of Human Rights. When death sentences are imposed after unfair trials where the risk of error is obvious, such as those before the State Security Court and the Martial Law Court, the enforcement of such an irrevocable penalty is totally unacceptable. On 4/25/1995 the National Assembly approved amendments of the Law on the Combat of Drugs (No. 74 of 1983). The amendments widen the application of the death penalty with respect to several drug-related crimes. Amnesty International has expressed its regret to the Kuwaiti authorities over the expansion of the scope of the death penalty, particularly as the death penalty has not been shown to have any special deterrent effect against drug trafficking. The UN Special Rapporteur on extrajudicial, summary or arbitrary executions recently stated: "In view of the irreparability of loss of life, the impossibility of remedying judicial errors and, indeed, the wellfounded doubts expressed by a wide range of experts in criminology, sociology, psychology, etc. as to the deterrent effect of capital punishment, the Special Rapporteur once again calls on the Governments of all countries where the death penalty still exists to review this situation and make every effort towards its abolition." [UN Doc. E/CN.4/1995/61, p. 118.] [=] 10181. Amnesty International. Kuwait: Five Years Of Impunity: Human Rights Concerns Since The Withdrawal Of Iraqi Forces: Part 12: Human Rights Violations Since the End of the Occupation: Expulsion of People Without Due Process. London: Amnesty International, February 1996. [98H-08442] [19960201] International law prohibits states from sending people to any country where they would be at risk of serious human rights violations. Such expulsion contravenes the Internationally recognized principle of nonrefoulement, which is binding on all states. After the end of the Iraqi occupation,the Kuwaiti authorities reportedly expelled hundreds of people, mostly Iraqis, Palestinians and members of the bidun community, from Kuwait. Many were sent to Iraq. Many of the expulsions, particularly during the Martial Law period, were said to have been summary, with individuals denied their rights to legal representation, to seek asylum or to appeal againSt rejection of asylum claims. After 6/1991, people were said to be permitted interviews with ICRC delegates to determine whether or not they were willing to be sent to Iraq. Amnesty International appealed to the Kuwaiti Government to halt the forcible expulsion to Iraq of Iraqis and others at risk of serious human rights violations there, and to establish fair and impartial procedures to identify those at risk. After 1991, there were few reports of forcible expulsions. However, in 7/1995 reports were received that a large group of Iraqi nationals (between 150-200) was arrested and summarily deported by the Kuwaiti authorities, possibly to Iran, without being given any access to an asylum determination procedure. There was apparently no examination of their claims and representatives of the UN High Commissioner for Refugees (UNHCR) were denied access to the group. Amnesty International sought clarification from the Kuwaiti Government in 8/1995 about these reports, but had not received a response by the time of writing. The organization remains concerned that Kuwait may have breached International standards which require that asylum seekers be provided with access to a full and fair asylum procedure, by which people in need of protection can be identified so that they are not returned to countries where they would be at risk of human rights violations. Amnesty International also urged the Kuwaiti Government to cooperate fully with the UNHCR on all refugee protection matters. In addition, over 600 people are said to bedetained in places such as the Talha Deportation Centre under deportation orders. Deportation orders in Kuwait are usually issued administratively and are rarely subject to any kind of judicial review. Many of those held are members of the bidun community and some are believed to have been held for several years. They include people who were acquitted by the State Security Court and who have been 103 Kurdistan and the Kurds detained since their acquittal. For example, Huwddi Khalaf al-'Udwani Muharib, a bidun bom in Kuwait and who served in the Kuwaiti armed forces before the Iraqi occupation, has been held in Talha since his acquittal on charges of "collaboration" by the State Security Court on 6/30/1993.AmnestyInternational fears that at least some of the detainees held under deportation orders are detained for political reasons, such as their suspected or perceived support for Iraqi forces during the occupation. Any such people would be prisoners of conscience who should be released. In 11/1992 there were reports that detainees in the Talha Deportation Centre, a converted school lacking basic facilities, where detainees were held in overcrowded conditions, had been tortured or ill-treated. Members of the CDHR have visited the detention centre. One member, an opposition member of parliament, reportedly said of the centre in 6/1995 that "we want to get rid of that black spot in the white robe of human rights". [Arab Times, 6/8/1995.] [=] should be reviewed so that the crimes are narrowly and precisely defined to give clear notice of what conduct is prohibited. (5.8) Ensure that all detainees are always given prompt, regular and confidential access to lawyers at all stages of the proceedings. All detainees should be brought without delay before a judge empowered to assess the legality and necessity of their detention, and should be provided with access to a doctor of their choice, if necessary. (5.9) Review legislation regarding the death penalty. Now that almost half the countries in the world have abolished the death penalty, Kuwait should consider reducing the number of offences punishable by death and act towards its abolition. (5.10) Ratify human rights treaties. Kuwait should expedite its steps to ratify human rights treaties, including the International Covenant on Civil and Political Rights and its Optional Protocols, and the Convention against Torture and Other Cruel, Inhuman or Degrading Treatment or Punishment. [=] 10182. Amnesty International. Kuwait: Five Years Of Impunity: Human Rights Concerns Since The Withdrawal Of Iraqi Forces: Part 13: Recommendations. London: Amnesty International, February 1996. [98H-08443] [19960201] Amnesty International recognizes that the Kuwaiti Government has taken some steps to improve the human rights situation in Kuwait. However, it believes that the implementation of the following recommendations will help close the door on the human rights violations committed in the period after the Iraqi occupation and establish Kuwait's commitment to the protection and promotion of human rights in the future. (5.1) Carry out immediate and thorough investigations into all cases of extrajudicial executions and "disappearances". The investigations should be carried out by a body which is independent of those allegedly responsible and has the necessary powers and resources to carry out the investigation. The investigation reports should be made public and should include information regarding the locations in which each person was detained, the dates of detention and the medical records of any examination or treatment the detainee received. If the "disappeared" person died, the family should receive a death certificate, as well as autopsy and inquest reports where available. Anyone found responsible for "disappearances" or extrajudicial executions should be brought to justice, and the families of victims compensated. (5.2) Investigate promptly and impartially all reports of torture and ill-treatment. The methods and results of the investigations should be made public. All those responsible for human rights violations should be brought to justice. Victims of torture should be given fair and adequate compensation, and access to full rehabilitation. "Confessions" obtained as a result of torture should be excluded as evidence before the courts. (5.3) Release all prisoners of conscience immediately and unconditionally. (5.4) Retry all other people convicted by the Martial Law Court and the State Security Court. The trials before both courts were manifestly unfair and, therefore, all defendants convicted by them should be retried by ordinary criminal courts in accordance with International fair trial standards. (5.5) Commute all death sentences. Amnesty International also appeals to the Amir to exercise clemency in all cases. (5.6) Provide effective protection for asylum-seekers. The authorities should follow full and fair asylum procedures which would effectively ensure that no one is expelled to a country where they would be at risk of human rights violations such as imprisonment as prisoners of conscience, torture, execution or "disappearance". (5.7) Amend legislation to be consistent with international standards. In particular, legislation concerning state security crimes 10183. Amnesty International. Press Release: Freedom of Information. London: Amnesty International, June 1992. [94H-12821] [19920601] [In countries around the world, journalists attempting to exposehuman rights violations have themselves become victims. Some have been killed outright. Others have been silenced by threats, harrassment and imprisonment. Writers, novelists and poets whose work is deemed critical of the authorities also risk detention, imprisonment, torture and, in some cases, death. Some of these journalists and writers are prisoners of conscience, jailed because of their professional activities or for exercising their right to freedom of expression.] On 7/8/1991, Luis Antonio Morales Ortega, a journalist well known for his investigations into human rights abuses in his native Peru, announced via Radio Wari, a local radio station, that he had received death threats from the Anti-Terrorist Liberation Command, a paramilitary group believed linked to the security forces. Just five days later, two men in a passing car shot Luis Morales dead as he tried to escape into the house of a relative in the city of Huamanga in Aycucho department. During the previous month the Anti-Terrorist Liberation Command had threatened staff at Radio Wari and forced them to broadcast death threats against two other journalists who had accused the security forces of committing human rights violations in Ayacucho. The text of the threats included the following: "We tell this rat, delinquent, terrorist, disguised as a journalist, this bloody dog Magno Sosa Rojas... that he will die like a beheaded dog... we are following his steps very closely, his days are numbered..." Since 1982, when Ayacucho was first placed under military control, at least 15 journalists have been killed by the security forces or groups linked with them. Journalists in other parts of Peru are also at risk. In 8/1991 the Anti-Terrorist Liberation Command issued death threats against Jorge Chaves Morales, a journalist with 'La Republica', a Lima daily newspaper which has given extensive coverage to human rights issues. In Colombo, Sri Lanka, in the early hours of 2/18/1990, Richard de Zoysa, a journalist, broadcaster and actor, was dragged from his home by six armed men, some of whom were reportedly wearing police uniforms. The following day his naked body was washed up on a nearby beach. An autopsy found that Richard de Zoysa died instantly from gunshots through the neck and the head fired at close range. The Sri Lankan and international press has speculated about the possible reasons for the abduction and murder of Richard de Zoysa. His killing may have been linked to the "disappearance" in 1/1990 of Lakshman Perera, who had produced a play written by Richard de Zoysa called "Me Kauda? Mokada Koranne?" ("Who is he? What is he doing?"), a phrase used to describe President Ranasinghe Premadasa during the presidential elections in 12/1988. Other reports suggest Richard de Zoysa was killed in retaliation for his news reports on the human rights situation 104 Kurdistan and the Kurds in Sri Lanka. In 6/1990 Richard de Zoysa's mother, Dr Manorani Saravanamuttu, and Batty Weerakoon, the lawyer appearing on her behalf at the magisterial inquiry into the abduction of her son, received death threats warning them to stop pursuing the case. Dr Saravanamuttu, who had witnessed her son's kidnapping, had named a senior Superintendent of Police as one of the abductors. The magisterial inquiry was discontinued on 8/30/1990, and no action has been taken against the police officer allegedly involved. Foreign and national journalists in Guatemala continue to receive threats, apparently from members of the security forces or those acting with their acquiescence. Some have fled the country. Others have been openly attacked. Byron Barrera Ortiz, a Guatemalan journalist, was shot by two men on a motorcycle while driving his car in Guatemala City in 10/1990. His wife, Refugio Araceli Villanueva, also in the car, was killed instantly. Shortly after the attack, Byron Barrera and his two children went to live abroad. Byron Barrera later stated that his life was saved only because he was wearing a bullet-proof vest. He said that he had been followed by two men on a motorcycle the day before the attack, an incident he reported to the authorities who promised to investigate. Byron Barrera had returned to Guatemala in 1985 after several years in exile. He was the director of the Central American News Agency, and vice-president of the Guatemalan Journalists Association. Byron Barrera had been the editor of the weekly newspaper, La Epoca, until 6/1988 when the newspaper's offices were fire-bombed, reportedly by members of the security forces. The newspaper, which had published many articles critical of the government, never reopened. In an open letter in 11/1990, Byron Barrera stated that "Guatemala continues to be a land for no one, a land of impunity, death and desolation". He added, "I have had to explain the truth to my children; the people of their country who are conspicuous for the ideas of freedom are assassinated." On 8/10/1991, Byron Barrera returned to Guatemala to present evidence in the Fifth Court of Penal Justice in Amatitlan, Department of Guatemala, which was investigating the case. At a news cconference he declared that he believed members of the armed forces were involved in the attempt on his life. Guatemalan journalists were anonymously warned not to continue publishing information on the Barrera case. In 8/1991, Juan Carlos Ruiz, Hugo Garcia and Silvino Velasquez received anonymous threatening telephonecalls, warning them to stop reporting on well-publicized casesconcerning the alleged involvement of military personnel in human rights violations, including the attack on Byron Barrera. The Prosecution's Office of the Public Ministry which was investigating the cases reportedly received similar threats. Two lawyers hired by Byron Barrera were also threatened and have since withdrawn from the case. According to Byron Barrera, the authorities have shown little determination to proceed with the investigation into the attempt on his life and the killing of his wife despite evidence implicating members of the armed forces. Some countries bring criminal charges against those who publish real or implied criticism of the authorities. Such chargesinclude "showing contempt", "spreading false information" and "sedition". Two journalists in Cameroon were convicted in 1/1991 of publishing an article critical of the government in Le Messager, a Douala newspaper. . In 12/1990 the Cameroon government had introduced laws which tightened press censorship. The legislation enables the government to seize or ban newspapers "in case of conflict with the principles of public policy". On a number of occasions in early 1991 the authorities seized copies of Le Messager. One such confiscation followed the publication in April of the names of all those convicted or held in administrative detention in connection with a 1984 coup attempt. The article described poor prison conditions and named the prisoners who had died in detention since 1984. In September the authorities banned Le Messager and four other newspapers. In South Korea, Chang Ui-gyun, a publisher specializing on books on ancient Korean history, is serving an eight-year prison sentence under the National Security Law. In 1982 his publishing licence was withdrawn after he published a book of poetry which was critical of the government. Chang Ui-gyun then spent two years in Japan where he studied ancient Korean history at Kyoto University. While there he is said to have discussed North Korea's proposals for the reunification of the Korean peninsula. In 5/1986 he organized a meeting on Korean unification, where a song which he had written on the subject was performed. Shortly after his return to South Korea in 1987, Chang Uigyun was arrested and charged on several counts under the National Security Law, including that of transmitting state secrets. He denied all charges of espionage but was convicted by the court and jailed. Amnesty International believes that Chang Ui-gyun is detained for his peaceful political views and activities and that the charges of espionage against him have not been substantiated. In Rwanda at last 30 people accused of offences related to freedom of expression and association were triedbetween 3-10/1990. Further arrests and trials of journalists occued in 1991. Although many newspapers have begun publication over the past two years, the government has been unwilling to tolerate open criticism of government officials or practices. Rwabukwisi Vincent, the editor of Kanguka newspaper, was arrested in 7/1990 and charged with "endangering the security of the state", apparently because he had travelled to the Kenyan capital, Nairobi, and met Rwandese exiles, including the former King of Rwanda. The State Security Court twice failed to convict him due to lack of evidence. But in 10/1990, after Uganda-based Rwandese exiles attacked Rwanda's northern border, the same court sentenced him to 15 years' imprisonment, apparently without hearing any new evidence. In 5/1991 Rwabuksiwi Vincent was released by order of the Supreme Court, pending a new trial. A month later he was one of four journalists arrested for publishing articles critical of the authorities. Rabuksiwi Vincent was charged with endangering the security of the state, apparently because the authorities said what he had written for publication expressed support for the rebels. He was released in 9/1991 but the charges against him reportedly were not dropped. It is not clear whether or not he will be brought to trial. Amnesty International continues to be concerned by the Iranian government'sendorsement of threats against the life of Salman Rushdie, the British author of "The Satanic Verses". In 2/1989 Ayatollah Khomeini issued a fatwa (religious edict) stating that the book was blasphemous and that it was the duty of Muslims everywhere to put the novelist to death. Amnesty International was not aware of any direct attempt by agents of the Iranian government to kill Salman Rushdie, but the repeated endorsement of Ayatollah Khomeini's edict by Iranian authorities indicates that they would condone his extrajudicial execution. Amnesty International has repeatedly called on the Iranian authorities to withdraw their support for any threat to Salmon Rushdie's life. Kenyan writers and journalists have been imprisoned for advocating multi- party democracy. Gitobu Imanyara, editor of the Nairobi Law Monthly, was arrested on 3/1/1991, and charged with publishing a seditious publication. In the February edition of the magazine he had published a manifesto of a new opposition political party and an editorial criticizing the government for tribalism. In April Gitobu Imanyara collapsed from a severe migraine headache at the Nairobi Law Courts, where he was awaiting a ruling on an application for bail. He was returned to prison and held in a cell with no bed, mattress or other furniture. Although later admitted to hospital, he was kept chained and under armed guard. He was released on 5/28/1991, and the sedition charges against him were dropped. Gitobu Imanyara received the Golden Pen of Freedom award from the International Federation of Newspaper 105 Kurdistan and the Kurds Publishers in early 1991. Following his release, he resumed his work at the Nairobi Law Monthly, despite continuing police harassment. Edward Oyugi, a writer and Professor of Educational Psychology at Kenyatta University, was sentenced on 7/11/1991, with three others to seven years' imprisonment for holding a "seditious" meeting. He has been a consultant with the office of the United Nations High Commissioner for Refugees and the World Council of Churches and has written books and articles on philosophy, sociology and psychology. Edward Oyugi and the three others had been arrested one year earlier following public debate on the issue of multi-party democracy in Kenya which led to widespread unrest in July 1990. Amnesty International expressed concern about the fairness of their trial and, in particular, that no steps were taken during the trial to investigate the prisoners allegations that they had been tortured. No evidence was brought by the prosecution that the four had discussed or planned violence against the government. The sedition laws in Kenya have frequently been used to jail government opponents. Edward Oyugi was released on bail on 2/14/1992, along with the three others pending their appeal to the High Court later that year. In 1990 the Vietnamese authorities arrested several critics of the government - including journalists and writers - beginning a crackdown on intellectuals and dissenters which continued into 1991. Duong Thu Huong, a prominent Vietnamese writer and dramatist, was arrested in 4/1991, reportedly for trying to send "sensitive documents" out of the country, and held wihout trial until 11/1991. The author of many novels, poems, articles and plays, Duong Thu Huong has emerged as one of the most significant writers in post-war Vietnam. A former member of the Communist Party of Vietnam, she has since become one of its sharpest critics. In Saudi Arabia, Salih al-'Azzaz, a prominent writer and journalist, was arrested in 11/1990, reportedly while taking photographs of a demonstration. He was reportedly arrested on suspicion of being one of the organizers of the demonstration, in which dozens of Saudi women drove cars in convoy through the streets of Riyadh in protest against the country's prohibition of women drivers. At the time of his arrest, Salih al-'Azzaz was editor-in-chief of the magazine of the Saudi Arabian Chamber of Commerce and Industry. Amnesty International considered him to be a prisoner of conscience, detained because of his involvement with a peaceful demonstration. He was released in March 1991, after four months of detention. In many countries journalists sympathetic to prohibited political parties or organizations, or working for publications aligned with them, have also been subjected to human rights violations. Marwan Hamawi is one of a group of Syrians arrested in the mid-1970's on suspicion of having links with the pro-Iraqi wing of the Ba'th Party. At the time of his arrest in 3/1975, he was the director of SANA, the Syrian news agency. He was detained without charge or trial in al-Mezze Military Prison. 'Abd al-Karim Qutaifan, a playwright and actor, was also detained without charge or trial in Syria. He was arrested in 7/1983 on suspicion of being a member of the Party for Communist Action (PCA), a prohibited political party. Members of the PCA have frequently been imprisoned and tortured because of their opposition to the government, their demands for more democratic freedom and for the release of all political prisoners. Marwan Hamawi and 'Abd al-Karim Qutaifan, both of whom had been adopted by Amnesty International as prisoners of conscience, were released along with more than 1000 political prisoners in 12/1991. Hamadi Jebali, editor of the Tunisian weekly al-Fajr (Dawn), was sentenced by the military court in Tunis in 1/1991 to one year in prison for publishing an article calling on the abolition of military courts in Tunisia. Mohammed Nouri, the author of the article, was sentenced to six months' imprisonment. Both men were charged with "defamation of a judicial institution". Although Mohammed Nouri's sentence has expired he remains in prison, apparently under investigation for new charges. Al-Fajr, now banned, was the organ of an Islamic organization, al-Nahda, which does not have official recognition from the state. Members, sympathizers and suspected sympathizers of al-Nahda have recently been targeted for arrest, detention and torture. Dozens of writers and journalists were detained without charge or trial in Sudan after a military government, backed by the National Islamic Front, seized power from the elected civilian government of Sadiq alMahdi in 6/1989. They were imprisoned because of their peaceful opposition to the military government. Most were released after a general amnesty for political prisoners was announced in 4/1991. Arop Madut Arop, head of the Information Center at the Sudan Council of Churches, was arrested in 3/1990 after requesting a visa to attend a Church Service Development meeting in Germany. He was held without charge or trial until 5/1991. Under the government of Sadiq alMahdi, Arop Madut Arop was the editor of the English language weekly newspaper, Heritage, until it was ordered closed by officials in 1988. Heritage had called for an end to the conflict in southern Sudan between the government and the armed opposition Sudanese People's Liberation Army (SPLA) and had published a long interview given to Arop Madut Arop by the SPLA leader, John Garang. Shortly after the 6/1989 coup, the first part of the interview was reprinted in an Arabic language newspaper. Publication of the second part of the interview was stopped. Arop Madut Arop's arrest is thought to have been related to the goverment's disapproval of the article. Journalists in Turkey are frequently targeted for abuse while pursuing there professional activities. In 9/1991 the Turkish Press Council reported that during the first eight months of the year 44 journalists had been physically assaulted, in most cases by state employees, including police officers. Amnesty International has received numerous reports of journalists being tortured in police custody in Turkey. In 3/1991 eight journalists working for the weekly political review, Century, were arrested in Ankara and charged with membership of the Kurdistan Workers Party, an illegal organization. While detained they were blindfolded and interrogated about their sources for articles they had written about the Kurdish conflict in the southeast of Turkey. Some were tortured; one said he was stripped naked, suspended by the wrists, and given electric shocks. The main charges against the eight were soon dropped but they continue to stand trial for alleged possession of firearms which they say they obtained for their personal protection after receiving anonymous death threats. Journalists and writers working in countries where governments face civil unrest have been particular targets for the authorities. In Kuwait Osamah Suhail Hussain, a Palestinian, was sentenced to death by the Martial Law Court in mid-6/1991, after an unfair trial which did not conform to international standards. Osamah Suhail Hussain and 23 others were accused of "collaboration with the Iraqi authorities" because they continued to work for the newspaper, al-Nida', during the Iraqi occupation of Kuwait. A Kuwaiti newspaper, al-Qabas, was taken over by the Iraqi authorities and renamed al-Nida' shortly after the Iraqi invasion in 1990. It was the only newspaper allowed to publish during the occupation. At the trial the identity of the chief prosecution witnesses was concealed and the defence was not allowed to crossexamine them. Trial documents presented to the court were not made available to the defendents or to their lawyers. Osamah Suhail Hussain was reportedly tortured with electric shocks, beatings and cigarette burns. On 6/26/1991, his sentence was commuted to life imprisonment. The rights to freedom of expression, freedom of association and freedom of belief are enshrined in the Universal Declaration of Human Rights and in the International Covenant on Civil and Political Rights (ICCPR). The ICCPR has been ratified in 106 Kurdistan and the Kurds many of the countries in which journalists have been the victims of human rights violations. Governments which deny civil and political rights to journalists flout international law and often flout their own constitutions. The struggle for human rights depends to a large extent on the free flow of information and on the courage and commitment of journalists and writers. Those who become victims of human rights violations because of their efforts to expose violations by governments deserve the full support of the international human rights movement. [=] 10184. Amnesty International. Press Release: Getting Away With Murder: Amnesty International Report 1992. London: Amnesty International, August 1992. [94H-12628] [19920801] The Amnesty International Report 1992, published in July, documents a year of human suffering and injustice in 142 countries worldwide. governments continue to turn a blind eye to gross human rights violations, including torture, extrajudicial executions, "disappearances" and arbitrary detention. The phenomenon of impunity - exemption from punishment - fuels this recurring pattern of abuses. As long as governments allow or encourage their forces to act with contempt for human rights, as long as the agents of repression believe they can kidnap, torture and murder without fear of discovery or punishment, the cycle of violence will never be broken. Dramatic political changes in various regions of the world have pushed the human rights issue into greater prominence in international relations than ever before. A record of human rights violations has become an increasingly acute embarrassment, not only at the United Nations but also in other relations between states. In 1991 the Commomwealth Heads of Government Meeting, the General Assembly of the Organization of American Heads of States,the Organization of African Unity, the Conference on Security and Cooperation in Europe and the Francophone Summit all increased their scrutiny of human rights. The European Community and other donors declared they would take human rights records into account when allocating aid. Countries whose rulers did not even pay lip service to human rights a decade ago are now advocating respect for these fundamental rights. Some are bringing their laws into line with international human rights standards or at least have promised to do so. Many have established new institutions to promote and protect human rights. In some cases, this reflects a new government's genuine commitment. But for others it is simply an opportunity to present an acceptable face in the political arena of the "new world order". And in some of the countries where human rights have been most brutally violated there is not even a pretence of accountability. Since the end of the Gulf War, troops in Iraq have massacred thousands of Kurds and Shi'a. These are only the latest atrocities in a long history of massive human rights violations. In Myanmar (Burma), the military rulers have turned the country into a "secret state of terror" in a ruthless crackdown on those who dare oppose them. In China, widespread human rights violations continued in the aftermath of the suppresion of pro-democracy protests in 1989; millions of people were believed to be in administrative detention without charge in 1991. Hundreds, possibly thousands, of prisoners of conscience were held in China and thousands of people were executed, usually following the most perfunctory of trials. But in today's world, gross violations increasingly take place under elected governments with explicit human rights commitments. The gulf between commitments and practice can only be bridged if all unresolved human rights abuses are properly investigated and the guilty brought to justice. Victims, their relatives and society at large have a vital interest in knowing the truth. Bringing the guilty to justice also sends a clear message that violations of human rights will not be tolerated and that those who commit them will be fully accountable. When the police and security forces are allowed to commit crimes with impunity, contempt for the rule of law flourishes and the violence continues. In Sri Lanka, tens of thousands of people were unlawfully killed or "disappeared" at the hands of government forces between 1987-1990 in a campaign of counter-terror against a Sinhalese armed opposition group. Since armed conflict with the seperatist Liberation Tigers of Tamil Eelam (LTTE) resumed in the northeast of the country in 1990, government troops have caused the "disappearances" or deaths of thousands more civilians, including babies and elderly villagers. Those responsible have not ben brought to justice. The LTTE has also commited gross human rights abuses, including the torture and public execution of prisoners. In Peru over 4000 people are estimated to have "disappeared" and hundreds more have been summarily killed by the security forces since 1983. Massacres by soldiers have often followed armed attacks by opposition groups, including the Partido Comunista del Peru (Sendero Luminoso), Communist Party of Peru (Shining Path), whose rebellion has been marked by brutal atrocities against civilians. Yet members of Peru's armed forces have acted with total impunity. A few police officers have been tried and sentenced for violations committed during counter-insurgency operations. But Peruvian military courts have conspicuously failed to investigate violations or convict armed forces personnel accused of human rights crimes. In some countries violations are carried out by paramilitary groups or so-called "death squads" which operate with official approval. In the Philippines, for example, the government's counter-insurgency strategy has involved semi-official armed groups described as "vigilantes" collaborating closely with the official security forces. Although repeatedly implicated in grave human rights violations, their activities have not been curbed. In other countries governments claim to be powerless to control paramilitary groups and refuse to accept responsibility for bringing their responsibility to an end. In Colombia, paramilitary organizations have carried out thousands of political killings and hundreds of "disappearances". These "death squads" have been described by the Colombian authorities as groups of right-wing extremists acting outside state control. But judicial investigations have uncovered compelling evidence that many paramilitary groups were made up of or supported by members of the Colombian forces. Similarly, in South Africa, a growing body of evidence has linked "hit squads" responsible for political killings with covert police and military operations. Hundreds of people have also been killed by members of the Inkatha Freedom Party with the active collusion of the police. Governments and branches of the security forces sometimes deflect national and international criticism by announcing an investigation into alleged abuses. Sometimes the announcements are made in good faith, but the investigations inexplicably stall. In other cases, announcing investigations simply serves as a shield for official inactivity and a barrier against uncovering the truth. Both military and civil authorities in Uganda have announced inquiries into reported extrajudicial execution by soldiers. So far these have only prolonged the army's ability to act with impunity; by 6/1992 none of the inquiries had reached any conclusions. In mid-1991, Amnesty International was told that an inquiry started after killings in late 1988 was being relaunched, but it had not made public any findings by 5/1992. Even when investigations are carried out and judicial proceedings started, the institutions responsible for the administration of justice are frequently weak and ineffcient, or susceptible to pressure from other branches of government or the security forces. Prosecutors or judges have sometimes behaved with outstanding courage, only to be forced into exile when their governments proved unwilling or unable to protect them from the threats of the accused - usually members of their own 107 Kurdistan and the Kurds security forces. In Guatemala, even in those rare instances when the government has announced arrests and criminal proceedings in cases of human rights abuse, punishment commensurate with the crime is rarely meted out. In 1991, for instance, two police officers found guilty of killing a 13-year-old boy were given three-year suspended sentences and released on bail pending appeal. Official investigations of abuses by Israeli forces in the Occupied Territories since the beginning of the Palestinian intifada (uprising) in 1986 seem to be inadequate and rarely result in prosecutions. Those found guilty have received punishments which did not reflect the severity of the offences committed. Justice is sometimes subverted by administrative measures, such as transferring cases to special tribunals. Typically, as in Colombia, Guatemala and Peru, these are military tribunals which are unlikely to make strenuous efforts to pursue prosecutions against fellow officers in human rights cases. Often the accused are acquitted - sometimes even promoted. When in exceptional cases convictions are secured, the punishment rarely bears any relation to the crime. The failure of state institutions to protecthuman rights discourages victims and their relatives from using important domestic remedies, such as habeas corpus. The fear of reprisals can make such remedies useless. In Sri Lanka, for example, relatives of the "disappeared" who have made inquiries with government officials have subsequently received death threats, and lawyers and witnesses who testified before the courts have been killed. Witnesses and complainants in human rights related cases in Colombia, Guatemala, Peru and the Philippines have faced the same fate. Some steps were taken in 1991 to break long-established patterns of security forces committing violations with impunity. In El Salvador, a colonel was convicted in 1991 for the 1989 murder of six Jesuit priests and two university staff. This was the first time a senior ranking military officer had been convicted of human rights violations, and was partly the result of enormous international and domestic pressure. Unfortunately, many cases in El Salvador did not receive such international attention, and the perpetrators remain at large. As part of the peace agreements ending the county's civil war, a Truth Commission was set up to investigate certain past human rights abuses. However, it was feared that an amnesty law passed prior to the Commission's establishment might jeopardize its work. Amnesty laws which prevent investigations or halt prosecutions and trial undermine the search for truth and justice. Some governments responsible for human rights violations, anticipating their loss of power, have preempted investigations by proclaiming amnesties. Successor governments have been placed under tremendous pressure to uphold such measures, or to concede them where they did not already exist. Even in Argentina, where political and military leaders were once held to account for human rights violations, the political retreat from full accountability has been swift. In 1985, five of the military commanders who formed the juntas which ruled Argentina between 1976-1983 were convicted of human rights crimes during the "dirty war" against "subversion". The Argentine government's national commission on the "disappeared", in its 1984 report Nunca Mas (Never Again), exposed the truth about past impunity, estimating that over 9000 people had been abducted, tortured and "disappeared" during the "dirty war". Yet the five military commanders were pardoned by President Carlos Menem in 12/1990, and amnesty laws put a "Punto Final" (Full Stop) to further prosecutions and gave immunity to those who acted under orders. In Chile, 1991 saw the publication of the report of the National Commission for Truth and Reconciliation. Although it documented the massive scale of human rights violations under the previous military government, it did not guarantee criminal investigations into those abuses. In fact, the Chilean courts continued to apply an amnesty law which had been passed by the former military government to close investigations into cases of human rights violations which occured before 1978. A law came into force in Honduras in 1991 granting a broad and unconditional amnesty for certain political crimes. While 13 political prisoners were released as a result, the amnesty law also covered killings, torture and unlawful arrests committed by police and military personnel. In a number of African countries, governments have granted immunity from prosecution to former government and security officials in order to bring about rapid political settlements. In Benin and Congo, the overall effect of letting particular individuals act with impunity has been to avoid a close examination of the systems which allowed them to commit human rights violations, and to postpone reforms. Former President Matthieu Kerekou of Benin was the highest placed official in an African country to be formally granted immunity from prosecution in 1991. Elsewhere in Africa the progress of investigations, even after governments have changed, has sometimes been so slow that governments have abandoned their initial commitment to bring human rights violators to justice. Undoubtedly, the task of collecting evidence which can be presented to a court often appears daunting. Many of those with immediate experience of past abuses are dead, or, having fled abroad, are still unwilling to return and risk reprisals. Material evidence has frequently been destroyed - documents burned and bodies buried in secret graves. It is therefore vital that information is presented in a public forum, such as public inquiry or trial, otherwise the pressure not to proceed to a trial is enormous. In Ethiopia, six months after the downfall of Mengistu Haile-Mariam's government, officials were being detained but no moves had been made to bring them to court. The new leaders of Chad initiated investigations into extensive killings and torture of prisoners under the previous government of President Hissan Habre, but their reports of new "disappearances" and extrajudicial executions from 10/1991. In Eastern and Central Europe controversy raged about the accountability of those associated - even through Communist Party membership alone - with the former governments. Similar debates over accountability occured in Germany in the aftermath of unification. Meanwhile the Cambodian peace settlement failed to include provisions to bring to justice those responsible for the massive human rights violations of the past. Countries which have not undergone dramatic political changes also have to face up to the past in order to improve the future. Torture, for instance, is endemic in many countries with relatively mature and sophisticated judicial systems. In 1991 Amnesty International drew attention to 10 years of torture in Egypt. Although civil courts had granted scores of compensation claims from torture victims, in only one political case had security, police or prison officials been put on trial on torture charges, and all were acquitted. Torture has been prevalent in the police stations of Turkey for even longer, but official obstruction and special provisions which protect torturers mean that few complaints result in prosecution. Even when prosecutions are opened into cases of death in custody, they are often on charges such as unintentional killing. In India, the judiciary has taken some remarkable initiatives to protect human rights, yet torture remains routine throughout this vast country; at least 455 people have been tortured to death since 1985. Very few of those responsible for torture are ever prosecuted and convictions are extremely rare. Usually police officers are simply suspended during investigations, then reinstated. Some have even been promoted. Torture is also widespread in Mexico, where torturers are likewise rarely held accountable for their crimes. The debate over accountability in Eastern Europe has underlined the importance of guaranteeing fundamental human rights to everyone, including those accused of human rights violations. Over the years Amnesty International has monitored the trials of many of those it had 108 Kurdistan and the Kurds previously blamed for human rights violations. Even when people have been fairly convicted of human rights crimes, if they were sentenced to death Amnesty International appealed for those sentences to be commuted. Governments willing to put an end to the violations committed by those charged with the protection of law and order must fulfil certain fundamental responsibilities. First, there should be throrough investigations into all allegations of human rights violations; to determine individual and collective responsibility and to provide a full account of the truth to the victims, their relatives and society. Investigations must be undertaken by impartial institutions independent of the security forces - which must be granted the necessary authority and resources for their task. The results of the investigations should be made public. When human rights violations have become endemic in a society, investigations of individual cases may not be enough. A public commission of inquiry should investigate the entire pattern of abuses and the reasons behind them. It should examine the agencies responsible and propose changes to laws, institutions, administrative proceduresand practices, training and accountability of personnel. Second, those responsible for human rights violations must be brought to justice. They must be held to account even if they are officials of a past or current government and regardless of whether they are members of the security forces or of semi-official paramilitary groups. Those accused of human rights crimes should be tried, and their trials should conclude with a clear verdict of guilt or innocence. Amnesty International takes no position on what sentence should be passed, provided that the death penalty is not imposed. However, the systematic imposition of penalties that bear little relationship to the gravity of the offences brings the judicial process into disrepute and does not serve to deter further violations. Respect for the rule of law cannot be promoted unless all trials are conducted in full comformity with internationally recognized standards. Third, amnesty laws which prevent the emergence of truth and accountability before the law are not acceptable. This applies whether the law is passed by those responsible for the violations or by successor governments. The interests of national reconciliation after a period of violence may be served by pardons after conviction. AmnestyInternational takes no position on this practice; it simply insists that the truth is revealed and the judicial practice completed. Allowing government agents to get away with murder and other gross human rights violations - whether through official complicity or failure to punish the guilty - breeds contempt for fundamental rights. Only by ensuring that the perpetrators are brought to justice can governments send the clear message that human rights violations will not be permitted to continue. In 1991 the rhetoric of human rights reached unprecedented heights in world affairs; in how many countries will this lead to a reversal of the vicious spiral of torture, killings and "disappearances" committed with impunity? [=] 10185. Amnesty International. Press Release: Governments Playing With People's Lives: Amnesty International's Annual Report Details Abuses In 161 Countries. London: Amnesty International, July 8, 1993. [94H-12627] [19930708] "Governments continue to put politics before people's lives," Amnesty International said today as it released its 1993 annual report in the wake of the first United Nations World Conference on human rights for 25 years. "The World Conference has restated the human rights principles of the past, instead of those dealing with the violations of today and the threats of the future," said Amnesty International. "The real yardstick of the World Conference will be action, not words. What are governments now going to do to stop the torture, the 'disappearances' and the killings? When we compare the fine speeches and final document with the damning evidence of political repression in this report it is clear that governments have yet to prove that the World Conference will make a difference to the lives of people around the world." The AmnestyInternational 1993 annual report reveals that during 1992 prisoners of conscience were held in at least 62 countries; over 110 governments used torture in their prisons or police stations; and political killings were used by the state in 45 countries to exterminate opponents and "troublemakers". In Africa, despite continuing moves towards multi-party democracy, human rights violations persisted on an appalling scale with thousands of defenceless men, women and children brutally killed by government forces. Angola, Chad, Sierra Leone, Sudan and Zaire were among 14 countries where unarmed civilians were killed outright by soldiers or "disappeared" in their custody. In Somalia a complete breakdown of any semblance of national government allowed atrocities on a massive scale by various political groups. In South Africa, 1992 saw the continuance of a pattern of covert involvement by the security forces in the many politically motivated killings in the country. Not only governments were responsible for human rights abuses - in several countries, including Angola and Sudan, opposition groups also committed deliberate and arbitrary killings and torture. 1992 was an appalling year for human rights in Europe. The war in Bosnia- Herzegovina led to horrific abuses. All sides in the conflict were responsible, but the majority of victims were Muslims and the main perpetrators were local Serbian armed forces. Armed conflict also led to human rights violations in little publicized wars in Azerbaydzhan, Tadzhikistan and other parts of the former Soviet Union. "In numerous other European countries, human rights saw setbacks rather than improvements," said Amnesty International. There was an increase in reports of ill- treatment at the hands of the police and security forces - in some cases raciallymotivated - in countries including Bulgaria, France, Germany, Italy, Portugal, Romania and Spain. In Turkey, torture continued to be a very serious problem and the year also saw an upsurge in killings by the security forces in the mainly Kurdish southeast. Among Amnesty International's concerns in the United Kingdom was the revelation of evidence of collusion between Loyalist paramilitary groups and security forces in Northern Ireland. Human rights abuses were also committed by armed political groups in some countries in the region, including Turkey, Spain and the United Kingdom. Amnesty International had serious concerns about refugee protection in many countries in Europe, exacerbated by agreements affecting asylumseekers adopted by the European Community in 1992. In Asia there was little sign of any improvement in human rights, with widespread political killings, "disappearances", torture, detention of prisoners of conscience, unfair trials and use of the death penalty. In countries such as Myanmar, the Philippines, Indonesia and East Timor and Sri Lanka, political killings were part of an enduring pattern of repression. In Cambodia high hopes for a UN-brokered peace settlement faltered as politically- motivated killings escalated in the run-up to elections. In India too, hundreds of political activists were extrajudicially executed and scores more "disappeared" in conflict zones. Throughout India, torture was rife. In China, hundreds of prisoners of conscience were held and at least 1000 people executed: the true figure is probably higher but will never be known. In at least eight Asian countries, particularly India and Sri Lanka, human rights abuses were committed by armed opposition groups as well as governments. Serious human rights violations, including systematic torture, were committed by government agents throughout the Middle East during 1992. Thousands of people were detained without charge or trial in virtually every country in the region during the year, many of them held under state of emergency laws. The death penalty was widely used, particularly in Iran, where at least 330 people - including dozens of political prisoners - were executed. Hundreds of detainees "disappeared" in Iraq and killings of Shi'a Muslims in the southern 109 Kurdistan and the Kurds marshes region claimed an unknown number of lives. New information emerged about some 100000 Kurds, most of whom had "disappeared" from custody since 1988. At least 120 Palestinians were shot dead by Israeli forces and in December, 415 Palestinians were deported to south Lebanon after an Israeli policeman was taken hostage and killed by the Islamic Resistance Movement, Hamas. Both government forces and armed opposition groups were also responsible for grave abuses in other countries, including Algeria and Egypt. Many governments in the Americas still failed to make any serious attempt to bring those responsible for violations to justice, and government agents continued to commit crimes with impunity during 1992. Gross human rights violations, including political killings and "disappearances", continued and torture and ill- treatment by police and military personnel was endemic. Thousands of people were killed by armed forces, paramilitary groups or semi-official "death squads" in Colombia, Peru, Brazil and Guatemala. In Haiti, at least 100 people were killed in circumstances suggesting they had been extrajudicially executed:thousands of Haitian asylum- seekers were forcibly returned to Haiti by the USA without a hearing. Thirty-one people were executed in the USA during the year - the highest number since executions were resumed in 1977. Indigenous peoples continued to be the target of human rights violations, including killings, in a number of countries in the region, including Brazil, Guatemala, Mexico, Peru and Colombia. Armed opposition groups were also responsible for serious abuses, notably in Colombia and Peru, where the population found itself "caught between two fires". [=] 10186. Amnesty International. Press Release: Turkey: Amnesty International Urgently Appeals To New Turkish Prime Minister And Kurdistan Workers' Party (PKK) To Prevent Further Human Rights Abuses In Southeast Turkey. London: Amnesty International, June 5, 1993. [94H-12646] [19930605] A new Prime Minister of Turkey will be appointed on 14 June. On 6/11/1993 Amnesty International sent the following message to the Turkish government and to the leadership of the PKK following a declaration by the PKK on 8 June that they were to lift the unilateral cease-fire originally declared in March this year: "Although Amnesty International takes no position on armed conflicts as such, it is clear that the continuing armed clashes in southeast Turkey since 1984 have provided a context for grave and widespread human rights abuses by both sides. Amnesty International has documented and clearly condemned the practice of torture and extrajudicial execution by government forces, and the killing of prisoners and civilians by the PKK. "Amnesty International has noted that since the PKK's declaration of a unilateral ceasefire there has been a significant reduction, though by no means a complete halt, in human rights abuses by both sides. This, we note, was warmly welcomed by both the media and the general public throughout Turkey. For its part, Amnesty International, believing that both sides in the conflict were sincere in wishing an end to the misery which the fighting brought about, was encouraged to hope that this new development was the first step on a path which would finally halt torture, killings and other abuses. "However, at the very time that the government was expected to enact a number of confidence building measures, including lifting the state of emergency currently in force in southeast Turkey, this optimism was thrown into doubt by the killing of 33 prisoners by the PKK in Bingl on 24 May - an act condemned by Amnesty International. Subsequent intense military activity resulted in the PKK's announcement on 8 June that their unilateral ceasefire was at an end. Although Amnesty International believes that the PKK and the Turkish government are reluctant to accept the return to persistent and widespread human rights abuses which renewal of the conflict would inevitably bring, we fear that both sides are being drawn unwillingly by the course of events back into a human rights crisis. These tragic consequences can only be avoided if both sides pull back from the brink and take steps to ensure the protection of human rights and basic humanitarian standards. "It is for this reason that Amnesty International is appealing today to the Turkish Government, and to the leadership of the PKK, asking that every effort should be made now to prevent further pain, injury and loss of life which will certainly be paid by civilians as the price of such a conflict. In making this appeal we ask that both sides remember the hundreds of women, children, civilians and prisoners who have already died at the hands of both sides in the conflict since 1984." [=] 10187. Amnesty International. Press Release: Turkey: Former Prisoner Says Thanks. London: Amnesty International, May 1991. [94H-12767] [19910501] On 12/1991, Mehdi Zana, a former Kurdish prisoner of conscience who had been held in Turkey, visited AI's InternationalSecretariat, where he met staff and members of Amnesty International and other organizations who had campaigned on his behalf. "I came here to convey my thanks to all Amnesty International members", he said. "I believe that without the pressure and support of your organization and similar organizations throughout the world, I would not be alive today". Zana, the former mayor of Diyarbakir, was arrested shortly after the military coup in 1980. Tried on a variety of charges, he was sentenced to more than 42 years' imprisonment. Amnesty International believes that Zana was imprisoned because of his position in Kurdish society and his support of the rights of Kurds to have a seperate cultural identity. His sentences were subsequently reduced and he was released on 4/13/1991. [=] 10188. Amnesty International. Press Release: Turkey: Human Rights Situation Deteriorates. London: Amnesty International, N.D. [1993] [94H-12761] [19930101] The Turkish government has completely failed to live up to its widely- publicized commitment to improve Turkey's human rights record. In fact, the human rights situation in the country appears to be deteriorating rapidly, with continued widespread reports of torture and an unprecedented volume of allegations of extrajudicial executions. In an election speech in 10/1991, Suleyman Demirel, now Prime Minister, confirmed that torture in police custody was a serious problem and promised that under his administration "the walls of all police stations will be made of glass." But by 9/1992 his government had taken no steps to safeguard detainees in police custody. An unsatisfactory package of draft legislation, which still failed to meet international standards, was announced in 4/1992 as a solution to the problem of torture, but on Aug. 26 this was withdrawn. Meanwhile, almost anyone arrested continues to be at risk of torture or ill-treatment. There were at least nine deaths in custody during the first eight months of 1992. Moreover, reports of extrajudicial executions have increased dramatically. In 1991 more than 50 people, mainly villagers, were taken from their homes and shot, apparently by members of the regular security forces. Since 11/1991 the killings have continued but the methods have changed. More than a hundred Kurdish men, among them journalists and local politicians, have been shot to death in Southeast Turkey by unknown gunmen. Many of the victims had previously been detained, tortured or threatened by the police, and there is growing evidence to suggest that the security forces are protecting or inciting the assassins. In spite of AI's repeated appeals for the establishment of commissions of inquiry, as laid down in the United Nations Principles on the Effective Prevention of Extra-Legal, Arbitrary and Summary Executions, the government has failed to establish such commissions or any form of public inquiry. Amnesty International has also repeatedly expressed concern to the Turkish government about a succession of incidents in southeast Turkey in which civilians, 110 Kurdistan and the Kurds including women, young children and elderly people, have been killed, apparently by security forces firing indiscriminately during demonstrations, or in retaliation for attacks by the Kurdistan Workers' Party (PKK). More than 120 civilians have died during such incidents, most recently in Sirnak, where at least 15 civilians, including five children, were killed in August, allegedly by security forces who fired on civilian districts with tanks and small arms after a PKK attack in which at least one of the security forces was killed. Amnesty International has recommended that the incident be the subject of an independent inquiry and that the findings be made public. [=] 10189. Amnesty International. Women in the Middle East: Human Rights Under Attack: Part 3: Women and Conflict. New York: Amnesty International, August 1995. [97H-20062] [19950801] The mutilated body of Asrar Qabandi was dumped outside her family's home in Kuwait by Iraqi soldiers. She had been interrogated for weeks about her work for the Kuwaiti resistance and tortured in front of her father. She was just one of many women who suffered almost every known human rights violation during the Gulf conflict of 1990 to 1991, a conflict which still dominates many women's lives as they struggle to cope without their husbands or search for missing relatives. Hundreds of unarmed civilians, including women, were deliberately killed in Kuwait when Iraqi troops invaded the country. Children were shot in the head at close range by Iraqi soldiers and their bodies dumped outside their houses for their mothers to find. Many women were sexually abused; in particular, foreign domestic servants were raped by Iraqi soldiers. Hundreds of Kuwaitis and other nationals who were transferred to Iraq during the occupation remain unaccounted for. Some are believed to be still held, but there are fears that others died as a result of torture or were executed. Among those still missing are Wasmiyya Fahd Shuwaireb al'Ajmi, now aged 33, and her mother, Bakhita Muhammad Slaih al-'Ajmi, both Kuwaiti nationals. They were last seen at their home by relatives on 8/2/1990. Also missing is Samira 'Abd al-Ghaffar Mansur Matrafi, owner of a small business, who was seized at a check-point in Kuwait City by Iraqi soldiers in 11/1990. She was 27 years old. Her mother, who has campaigned tirelessly for her release, has had to rely on scraps of information about her daughter's fate. First she was said to be in a Kuwaiti jail. Then she was reported to have been moved to Iraq. Then a Lebanese man said he had seen her on a prison bus in Baghdad in 1992. Since then her mother has heard nothing and the Iraqi authorities have refused to respond to appeals for information. The end of the Iraqi occupation did not end the suffering for many women in Kuwait. The returning Kuwaiti authorities and armed Kuwaiti civilians exacted a terrible revenge on many civilians, particularly Palestinians, Iraqis and Sudanese living in Kuwait. Scores of people were slaughtered and women were among the 1,000 or so who were arbitrarily detained, some of whom subsequently faced manifestly unfair trials. Among several defendants sentenced after an unfair trial that lasted just one day was Ibtisam Berto Sulaiman alDakhil, a 35-year-old Kuwaiti journalist. She was sentenced to death, later commuted to life imprisonment, for alleged "collaboration" with the occupying Iraqi forces. She was charged with 23 other women and men in connection with her work for the newspaper al-Nida'. All said they had been forced to work for the paper after being threatened by Iraqi soldiers: the newspaper they had previously worked for, alQabas' was closed down by the Iraqi authorities shortly after the invasion and replaced by al-Nido'—the only newspaper allowed to publish during the occupation. Another woman tried in the same case, Wafa' Wasfi Ahmad, a 23-year-old Jordanian secretary, was sentenced to 10 years' imprisonment. Both women are prisoners of conscience. Fatima Ramez Tafla remains behind bars in Kuwait Central Prison despite a government review of her case which should have led to her release. Her nightmare began in 1991 when she was charged with "collaboration" with Iraqi forces, including "deliberately assisting the Iraqi enemy by indicating that her husband was a member of the Kuwaiti resistance". Her husband had been executed by Iraqi forces in 9/1990. The case against her was brought by her father in-law when Fatima Tafla was preparing to leave Kuwait with her young son, shortly after the Iraqi withdrawal. She was interviewed by the Deputy Attorney General and initially released on the grounds that there was no evidence against her. Nevertheless, her case was referred to the Martial Law Court and on 6/13/1991 she was sentenced to death. When all death sentences were reviewed by three Counsellors appointed by the Martial Law Governor, they unanimously agreed that her sentence had no legal grounds owing to a lack of any substantial evidence against her. They recommended that her sentence be suspended. Despite this, her conviction was not overturned and her death sentence was reduced to 10 years in prison. In total, there are still 14 women political prisoners in Kuwaiti jails, including six prisoners of conscience, serving sentences ranging from 10 years to life imprisonment for "collaboration". In Iraq, too, the aftermath of the war did not mean the end of widespread human rights violations. In 3/1991 women suffered in hugenumbers as government forces violently suppressed popular uprisings by Kurds in northern Iraq and by Shi'a Muslim Arabs in the south. Tens of thousands of families were forced to abandon their homes to escape the terror, many in the south fleeing to the marshlands. Since then, government forces have repeatedly attacked the marshes, assaulting and killing many women, men and children in the villages. In one incident in 5/1992 helicopter gunships attacked a wedding ceremony in the village of al-Agir in the al-'Amara marshes, killing the bridegroom as well as children. There was no military target in the area. An eye-witness recalled: "The aeroplanes came and hit at us... The celebration turned into mourning." The repression has not stopped. In 9/1993 scores of unarmed civilian women and men were reported to have been deliberately and arbitrarily killed during a bombardment of the Abu Zargi and 'Elwi marshes northwest of Basra. Others "disappeared" after arrest, or were tortured and later executed. Even before the 1991 Gulf war, women in Iraq had suffered abuses on a massive scale during decades of ceaseless repression by the government. Several hundred thousand women, men and children "disappeared" during the 1980s as the authorities clamped down on any sign of resistance. The victims included people from a wide variety of groups—Kurds, Arabs, Turcomans and Assyrians; Sunni and Shi'a Muslims, and Christians—as well as members of prohibited political parties and their families, military personnel and disaffected members of the ruling elite. The most notorious example of mass extermination was the killing of an estimated 5000 civilians by chemical weapons in the Kurdish town of Halabja in 3/1988. There have been other Halabja-style massacres. In fact, in August and September that year, as a result of a particularly intense wave of attacks on Kurdish communities, including with chemical weapons, over 50000 Kurds fled to southern Turkey. Many women have described how rape and sexual abuse have been used as a weapon of terror by Iraqi security forces during operations against the Kurds. A Kurdish woman, a member of the Iraqi Communist Party Pesh Merga, explained what happened to her in the late 1980s: "They snatched me off the street. I put up a fight against the security police, but they hit me on the head with a pistol butt and I passed out... One method used by Iraqi jails epitomizes their barbarity. And that is rape... No matter how much I'd heard about it, nothing prepared me for the actual experience. It lives on inside me. I still bleed a lot. It was done not by just one man, but by a group of them." 111 Kurdistan and the Kurds Around the world millions of women are the forgotten victims of armed conflicts inside their countries. As both government forces and armed opposition groups resort to campaigns of terror in pursuit of their aims, women are taken hostage, raped and murdered. Whatever the reasons for the conflict and whoever is responsible for the human rights abuses, the result is that the lives of women and their families are devastated. In Sudan, thousands of women have been extrajudicially executed,made to "disappear", imprisoned, tortured and raped by government forces. Most of the violations have been committed in the context of the fierce fighting between government forces and the armed opposition movement, the Sudan People's Liberation Army (SPLA), in the war zones in the south and in the Nuba mountains. In the Nuba mountains government troops have abducted, murdered and raped thousands of women and children in attacks on villages during military operations to forcibly resettle civilians in so-called peace villages. A former security official who witnessed assaults on Nuba villages in 7-8/1992 described the government's tactics when clearing villages: "...ground troops entered the villages, shooting indiscriminately and killing hundreds of civilians... Many women were raped by the soldiers... The people were loaded on to trucks each of which could transport about 80 persons. Many had to walk to Kadugli under army guard. The dead bodies were left behind as prey for the animals." Because of the shame attached to rape, few of the victims have talked openly about their experiences. One who did, a woman from the Moro Hills who was raped by soldiers in Kadugli in 10/1992, said: "I was taken on the way home by .soldiers and tied down. I was... taken to the barracks. I refused them... Once I was tied up they did a lot of things to me." Women have met a similar fate in northern Bahr al-Ghazal, particularly when troops have been driving people away from the railway line linking north and south Sudan. Women and girls have been abducted by members of the Popular Defence Force (PDF), a government-created militia, during such operations; some have been taken as concubines or sold into domestic slavery. Among those still missing is Apiu Majok, aged 12, who was abducted in 1993. Women have also suffered gross abuses as a result of fighting between armed opposition groups. For example, in 10-11/1991 many women were killed, raped or abducted when SPLA-Nasir forces briefly took over land controlled by SPLA-Mainstream in Upper Nile. In 3/1993 SPLA-Mainstream troops attacked the village of Pagau in retaliation; 32 women were lined up and shot in the head. Their only "crime" was to be of Nuer origin and therefore suspected of loyalty to the SPLA-Nasir faction. In Algeria over 40000 people are reported to have been killed since conflict erupted in early 1992. While many of them died in armed clashes, thousands of civilians are reported to have been extrajudicially executed by the security forces or deliberately killed by armed groups defining themselves as Islamic groups. The violence erupted following the cancellation of the second round of multi-party elections after the Islamic Salvation Front (FIS) had made major gains in the first round, and since 2/1992 a state of emergency has been imposed. The conflict between government forces and armed groups continues to claim an increasing number of civilian lives; during 1994 and early 1995 the number of violent attacks on unarmed civilians by both sides escalated. More than 300 civilian women are reported to have been killed by armed groups since the beginning of 1992. Civilian women are also reported to have been killed and injured by the security forces during raids and at check-points. Tens of thousands of women have been widowed as a result of killings by the security forces and by armed groups; others continue to search for their relatives who "disappeared" after arrest. The conflict in Algeria has again seen the use of rape as a weapon of terror. Because of trauma and the social stigma associated with this form of torture, women are often reluctant to report rapes. In Algeria, this reluctance, combined with the absence of independent human fights monitors, has made it difficult to assess the true scale of the problem. However, reports of abductions and rape by groups of armed men, particularly in rural areas, have been increasing. Some women are reported to have been held prisoner and used as forced domestic labour. The victims and their families are often threatened with further abuse if they speak of their experiences. Many have fled their homes fearing further attack; some have been ostracized by their families. Algerian women have also been the victims of widespread campaigns of terror by armed groups calling themselves "Islamic groups". Professional groups—such as teachers, journalists, magistrates and civil servants—have been targeted, as have students and relatives of the security forces. Death threats have been posted up in public places and sent to individuals' homes. The sources of the threats are not always clear; the effect, however, is. They have created a climate of fear in which many women are terrorized. Rachida Hammadi, a 32year-old journalist working for the national television station, and her 36-year-old sister, Hourria, were shot by gunmen on 3/21/1995 on their way to work in Algiers. Hourria was killed on the spot and Rachida died from the wounds some weeks later. Rachida Hammadi was one of 40 joumalists killod since 5/1993 in attacks reported to have been carried out by armed groups calling themselves "Islamic groups". Groups defining themselves as Islamic groups have increasingly abused women in Algeria for not covering their hair, for going to beaches or for travelling on public transport because male and female passengers are not segregated. Katia Bengana, a 17-yearold student, was shot dead in Blida in 2/1994, reportedly after receiving threats that she would be killed if she did not wear the hijab (Islamic veil). After her death an anti-Islamist group, the Organization of Young Free Algerians, issued a statement saying that for every woman not wearing the veil who was attacked, they would kill 20 veiled women. Soon after, on 29 March, two young women students wearing the veil were shot dead at a bus stop near their school. Armed groups defining themselves as Islamic groups have also threatened women working in the public sector with death if they do not give up their jobs. Among those believed to have been killed by such groups wore three women teachers, including Khadija Assa, who were killed in 2/1995. Nabila Diahnine, an architect and leading feminist, was shot and killed on 2/15/1995 in the centre of Tizi-Ouzou. She was a member of the Berber Cultural Movement and president of a feminist organization. She had been due to go to France to take part in events organized to celebrate International Women's Day on 8 March. The political leadership of the FIS outside Algeria have stated that they respect women's fights, including the fight of women not to wear the hijab. However, until recently they had failed to condemn threats made by armed groups defining themselves as Islamic groups against women for not wearing the veil or for behaving in ways they consider un-Islamic. The FIS has claimed that these threats are made by those who are seeking to discredit Islamist groups. However, armed Islamist groups have not themselves denied these attacks and threats against women. Several of the other conflicts which have dominated the region in recent years have had grim consequences for women. In the IsraeliOccupied Territories of the West Bank and Gaza Strip, scores of Palestinian women and children were killed by Israeli soldiers during the Palestinian intifada (uprising) [sic] which began in 1987. Many of these were shot dead in the numerous incidents in which soldiers have used excessive force in response to protests by Palestinians. Some died as a result of misuse of tear-gas. Many were killed when they were simply going about their everyday lives. One such victim was Najah Abu Dalal. She was in her courtyard 112 Kurdistan and the Kurds chatting to a relative on 4/21/1993 when she suddenly fell to the ground. She had been shot through the left eye, apparently by a soldier stationed on a nearby rooftop. Five days later she died. The Israeli authorities have yet to mount an adequate investigation into her death. Among the Palestinian girls who have been killed was 11-yearold Rana Abu Tuyur. On 12/19/1992 she was sent out by her mother to buy milk as a long curfew had just been lifted. She came across soldiers who were trying to stop a group of stone-throwing youths who were some 500 metres away. She was on the other side of the road to the soldiers, between 50-100 metres away. Witnesses say the soldiers were firing at anyone who tried to cross the road and one of the soldiers fired and hit Rana Abu Tuyur in the chest. She died before reaching hospital. An official investigation found that two soldiers had deviated from the rules of engagement, but found no connection between the shots fired and Rana Abu Tuyur's death. However, details of the methods and results of this investigation have not been made public, contrary to international standards. Women have suffered other human rights violations at the hands of the Israeli authorities during the intifada. For example, many have been made homeless since mid-1992 as a result of a policy of house destruction. Typically, houses in which the Israeli authorities believe suspects may be hiding are surrounded and their inhabitants ordered out and held in nearby houses. The houses are then attacked with heavy fire, including machine-gun fire, grenades and anti-tank missiles. Afterwards, soldiers enter the houses, fifing at any place where survivors may have been hiding. In many cases, soldiers blow up the houses with explosives, suggesting that one of the aims, if not the main aim of these operations, is to impose a form of collective punishmenton the occupants. In one such operation in Hebron in 3/1994, a pregnant woman was killed in disputed circumstances. The Israeli authorities denied that these operations were a form of collective punishment, claiming that they were designed to protect their forces from surprise attacks by people inside the houses. They also denied that houses were blown up after soldiers had entered them. However, the authorities have never clarified evidence provided by military experts that the houses were indeed blown up from the inside. The Israeli authorities have also destroyed the houses of Palestinians who have participated in attacks against Israelis, rendering their families homeless. In November 1994 the house of the family of Salah 'Abd al-Rahim Nazzal, who was responsible for a bus bomb in Tel Aviv which killed 23 people, including himself, was demolished after the family's appeal to the High Court of Justice against the demolition order had been rejected. Such collective punishment violates fundamental principles of international law. Women have also suffered at the hands of Palestinian armed opposition groups. Unarmed civilian women have been deliberately and arbitrarily killed by such groups. Many attacks in recent years have been carried out by the Islamic Resistance Movement, Hamas, which continues to oppose the peace process. For example, in 4/1994, four women, two girls and a man were killed by a suicide car bomber. Hamas described the attack as "legitimate retaliation" for the killing of Palestinians by an Israeli settler in Hebron two months earlier. In 10/1994 women were among 23 people killed in a suicide bomb attack on a bus in the centre of Tel Aviv carried out by Hamas. The wider Arab-Israeli conflict has also threatened the physical integrity of many other civilians, including women and children. In 7/1993 a week long confrontation in south Lebanon and northern Israel between Israeli forces and Hizbullah, a Lebanese armed group fighting against Israel's continuing occupation of a strip of south Lebanon, led to thousands of civilians in both countries having to flee their homes for safety. Israeli forces carried out a widespread bombardment of villages and Palestinian refugee camps in south Lebanon. Israeli officials stated that the bombardment was deliberately aimed at forcing the civilian population to flee the area and at putting pressure on the Lebanese Government to prevent Hizbullah from carrying out attacks against Israel. Radio broadcasts warned village residents to leave or risk death. Over 200,000 people fled northwards, and over 130 people, including civilians, were killed. During the same period, Hizbullah launched over 270 Katyusha rockets against northern Israel and the "security zone", killing two civilians and forcing tens of thousands of others to leave their homes to seek safety. Deliberate targeting of civilians by anyone can never be justified. In Morocco, the government has used a system of secret detention to punish its political opponents, particularly supporters of the pro-independence movement in Western Sahara. Several hundred women, men and children from the south of Morocco and the Western Sahara have "disappeared" since 1975. They wore reportedly arrested by Moroccan security forces and later imprisoned in secret jails. In several cases, whole families "disappeared". Almost all the victims were suspected of sympathizing with the Popular Front for the Liberation of Saguia el Hamra and Rio de Oro, more generally known as the Polisario Front. For example, five women were arrested by Moroccan security forces on 3/3/1985 during a wave of arrests in Laayoune. Among them was 40-year-old Salka ment Najem ould Omar Lahsen. Police came to her house in the moming, broke down the door and arrested her on suspicion of distributing leaflets in support of the Polisario Front. She has never been seen again. Her children were left to fend for themselves. Magboula ment Bouchraya ould Mohamed Yahdih "disappeared" four years earlier. Security officers raided her house in Laayoune in the middle of the night in 1/1981. They searched the premises but found nothing. Nevertheless, they took Magboula ment Bouchraya away in a police van. For two months her family was able to take food and clean clothes to her in Laayoune prison. Then they were suddenly forbidden to do so, although no reason was given. They have heard nothing of Magboula ment Bouchraya since then. In 1991 more than 300 women and men who had "disappeared" for up to 16 years wore released during a worldwide campaign against human rights violations in Morocco. Nevertheless, hundreds of people reported to have "disappeared" since the 1960s remain unaccounted for. The government denies any knowledge of them, just as it had for years denied knowledge of the 300-plus "disappeared" who were released in 1991. [=] 10190. Amnesty International. Women in the Middle East: Human Rights Under Attack: Part 4: Women Activists. New York: Amnesty International, August 1995. [97H-20063] [19950801] In the Gulf state of Bahrain, women have increasingly been participating in "prodemocracy" demonstrations, calling on the government to reconvene the National Assembly, which was dissolved by Amiri decree in 1975, and to respect the country's 1973 Constitution. They have also been protesting against the heavy-handed response of the authorities and demanding the release of political detainees. As a result, they are finding out what the inside of Bahrain's jails look like and some have reportedly been beaten or otherwise ill-treated by security officials. One woman, who joined a protest by women outside the Ministry of Justice building in 2/1995, described how the protesters were treated that day: 'We were about 20 women coiling for our relatives to be released. The whole area was surrounded by police. They ordered us to leave the area but we refused. I was beaten and carried by six policemen and forced into a jeep, but I managed to jump out again. One woman had her clothes torn and her chest was exposed. Another woman was pregnant. They humiliated and insulted us." Some Bahraini women have been singled out for arrest either because of their activities or because they are related to male activists. Zahra 113 Kurdistan and the Kurds Salman Hilal and a 12-year-old girl, Ayat 'Abd al-Jabber Salman, were rounded up in mass arrests in early 4/1995 and taken to the Juveniles Prison in Madinat 'Issa. A few days later Zahra Salman Hilal went on hunger strike to demand the right to see her husband, who had been detained since 1/1995. She remained in prison without charge or trial until 29 May. Ayat 'Abd al-Jabber Salman was released in mid-April. On 6 April Fatima 'Ashur Singais and her daughter Malika were arrested in a dawn raid on their home in alSanabes. Fatima 'Ashur Singais was released within a few days, but Malika remains held without charge, apparently in order to force her brother to give himself up. On 9 April Nazi Karimi, a student of languages at the University of Bahrain, was summoned for interrogation with her husband in connection with the "prodemocracy" protests. He was released the same day, but she remained held without charge or trial until 10 May. For 18 days she was held in solitary confinement and denied access to her family, lawyers and medical treatment. She had reportedly been put under pressure to sign a "confession" saying that she had taken part in recent protests. She reportedly went on hunger-strike after her arrest, resulting in significant weight loss and illness. The authorities had also reportedly threatened to forcibly exile her and the rest of her family from Bahrain. Whole families have been persecuted in this unprecedented upsurge of protest in Bahrain, during which at least 12 people have been shot dead by the security forces during demonstrations and 1300 detained. On 1 April 1995 security forces surrounded the home of Shaikh 'Abd al-Amir Mansur al-Jamri, a prominent Shi'a Muslim religious scholar and member of the former National Assembly, in the village of Bani Jamra. He and 18 members of his family were placed under house arrest without charge, including his wife, Zahra Yusuf, three daughters, three sons and other young children. All were denied access to the outside world and had their telephone lines disconnected. On 15 April Shaikh 'Abd al-Amir al-Jamri was transferred to an undisclosed location. There was no information on his fate or whereabouts until 9 May, when he was taken to al-Qal'a Prison in al-Manama. There, one of his daughters, 'Afaf, was brought to see him, allegedly in order to tell him that he would be sentenced to a long term of imprisonment. While in the prison, 'Afaf al-Jamri was reportedly beaten by women police officers. She was taken into custody herself later that day and remained held at a detention facility in Madinat 'Issa until her release on 5 June. She is 31 years old and has two young children. Her father, Sheikh al-Jamri, remains held without charge or trial. In Tunisia in the past few years, hundreds of women have been detained without charge or trial, harassed and ill-treated. Scores of them have been tortured, sexually abused and threatened with rape in the Ministry of the Interior and in police stations. Dozens have been detained as prisoners of conscience for peacefully exercising their right to freedom of expression, association and assembly, and many have been imprisoned after unfair trials. Some of the women cited in this report cannot be named for fear of further endangering their wellbeing and that of their families. Most have been targeted because of suspected links with al-Nahda, an unauthorized Islamist movement. However, other political activists have also been subjected to human rights violations. A woman who was five months pregnant was arrested at her home in Gabes on 11/6/1992 and accused of carrying out political activities on behalf of the Tunisian Workers' Communist Party (PCOT). She says that while she was in incommunicado detention in Gabes police station, she was partially undressed, beaten with sticks and threatened with rape and further violence if she did not talk about her political activities. One of the policemen reportedly told her: 'We'll bring out what you have in your womb." She was forced to sign a police statement without knowing its contents. The next day she felt ill and seemed in danger of miscarrying, and was released. A few days later she was rearrested and interrogated while lying on the floor as she was too ill to stand up. On 11/18/1992 she was tried and sentenced to four months imprisonment for belonging to an unauthorized organization and collecting money without permission. Her lawyer requested a medical examination and an investigation into her allegations of ill-treatment, but these were denied. Although she was granted bail pending appeal, she continued to be detained until 1/11/1993, when the appeal took place. Her sentence was upheld, but she was released the following day by presidential pardon. No investigation was carried out by the authorities into the allegations of ill-treatment and those who ill-treated her were not brought to justice. Women activists in Iraqi Kurdistan have continued to suffer gross violations of their rights since the area came under the control of Kurdish political parties in 10/1991. Some have been detained without charge or trial and subjected to torture and ill-treatment. During a demonstration in the city of Arbil in 8/1992 against the Turkish military bombardment of a Kurdish town in southeastern Turkey, Kurdish security forces shot into the peaceful crowd to disperse the protesters. Among the dead was the six-year-old daughter of Laila 'All Musa, who was herself held as a political prisoner. In prison, she told Amnesty International: 'When the shooting started I was immediately hit. Then my daughter Kurdistan was killed as a bullet shot through her head... After the shooting they arrested a group of us and took us inside the Asayish [security forces] building. They tortured me for about one and a half hours in one of the offices. They beat me on the bullet wound and on my back with a hosepipe." Another woman, Payman Sulaiman Hamid, who was also arrested after the demonstration, told Amnesty International: "They tied my hands behind my back and then suspended me from a height against the wall. I was beaten with a hosepipe. The torture lasted for about one and a half hours. I fainted three times and each time they poured water on me to revive me. They burned me with cigarettes on my legs [scars on her legs were still visible at the time of the interview]. All the time I was blindfolded. Then they threatened to assault me sexually in front of my husband." These two women, along with two other female and nine male detainees arrested at the same time, began a hunger-strike on 211/29/1992 demanding access to their families and a meeting with the investigating judge. This was granted on 12/1/1992 and on 1/11/1993 all were released without having been brought before a court. None of the security personnel involved in either the killing of the demonstrators or the torture of detainees has been brought to justice. None of the victims of torture or the families of those killed has been compensated. In Iran, women who have peacefully opposed the government since the 1979 revolution have faced severe penalties. Several have beenheld as possible prisoners of conscience for many years in connection with their alleged activities for organizations such as the Tudeh Party and People's Fedaiyan Organization of Iran. Those suspected of political opposition in Iran are routinely tortured and illtreated during interrogation. In 1988 thousands of political prisoners, many of whom were already serving prison sentences, were summarily executed. The mother of one of the victims wrote to Amnesty International; her experience mirrors that of many others. Her daughter was arrested in 1982 for alleged possession of leaflets issued by the People's Mojahedin Organization of Iran (PMOI) and tried by an Islamic Revolutionary Court. For six years the mother was able to visit her daughter regularly in Evin Prison in Tehran. In 8/1988 the visits were suddenly stopped. In 11/1988 she was informed that her daughter had been executed. She has never been told where her daughter's body is buried. To this day the authorities have failed to account for the thousands killed in 1988. One former female prisoner 114 Kurdistan and the Kurds told Amnesty International: "We were aware of the massacre of the men prisoners [in 1988 and 1989] and assumed that the Mojahedin women prisoners had also been executed. We discussed this among ourselves... We could not see the future clearly. We thought at that time that we were in a world of death. There was no contact with the world of the living." Women political activists in Syria have also been jailed for their peaceful opposition to the government. Doha 'Ashur al-'Askari, for instance, has been in prison since mid-1993. Her trial was still in progress at the end of 1994, but there has been no news of her since. She was arrested for suspected membership of the Party for Communist Action; she had been living in hiding since 1986 when she found out she was wanted by the authorities. Her daughter Kamilya has known nothing but prison life; she was born in Duma Women's Prison in Damascus a few months after her mother was detained. In Egypt, women have been detained without charge for peaceful protests. On 3/24/1995 Warda Mahmoud and Nawwara Nagm, students at Cairo University and 'Ain Shams University respectively, were among dozens of people arrested after they had peacefully protested against Israel's participation in the International Trade Fair being held in Cairo. The two women were held at al-Qanatir alKhayria Prison until 3 April, when they were released without charge. The Israeli authorities have jailed women suspected of opposing the Israeli occupation of West Bank and the Gaza Strip or of being members of illegal organizations. Some of them have been ill-treated. 'Abir al-Wahaydi, a 23-year-old engineering student at Bir Zeit University on the occupied West Bank, was arrested in 6/1992 on suspicion of being involved with activities organized by Fateh, the main faction in the Palestine Liberation Organization (PLO) and of planning to kill an Israeli settler. She was taken for interrogation to the General Security Service wing in Ramallah, where there are reportedly no separate facilities for women. Three days later she was transferred to Moscobiyyah detention centre in Jerusalem. She testified in a written affidavit: "...I was taken to Moscobiyyah for interrogation. They took me out to the courtyard on Friday after five days of no sleep with a sock on my head and my hands handcuffed. Above me there was a loudspeaker and it was very cold. I felt as if I would collapse from the sound coming out of the loud.speaker... The interrogation lasted for 14 days without letting me see a lawyer." Her interrogators repeatedly threatened her. She testified that they told her she would go mad and that they would kill her, and that "the cell of Hazem 'Id and Mustafa 'Akkawi [detainees who had died in custody] still existed". She said they also threatened to rape her, detain her parents and young sister, and destroy her parents' home. After 17 days she was brought before a judge, having been forced to sign a statement that she alleged she had not read. For 52 days she was kept in solitary confinement and then transferred to Hasharon Prison. In 4/1994 she was sentenced to 17 years and four months' imprisonment. Two days after she was sentenced the Israeli authorities demolished her house. Her mother recounted: "They came in the morning... and said we should empty the house of all the people. They said someone who was wanted was in the house. We swore there was no one. They locked us into a room at our neighbor's... they started hitting the kids. At 12.30 they brought anti-tank rockets and started shooting the house with more than 16 rockets... The house was new. We'd saved for it for 26 years and only lived in it for 27 days. My daughter had never lived in it." The Israeli authorities told Amnesty International that they had investigated 'Abir al-Wahaydi's allegations of ill-treatment and found them to be false. They also said that when questioned about her treatment, she denied having any complaint. However, in the military court system in the Occupied Territories detainees are subjected to numerous improper pressures to plead guilty and enter a plea bargain. Defendants are reluctant to ask for an exclusion of their confessions if they were obtained under duress as their allegations of torture or ill-treatment are almost impossible to prove, and, if an application for such a ruling is unsuccessful, they are likely to receive substantially longer sentences. Palestinian women have also reportedly suffered human rights violations in the areas under the jurisdiction of the newly established Palestinian Authority. Several have alleged that they were ill-treated in custody by Palestinian police officers. The new authorities have failed to conduct prompt, thorough and impartial investigations into their complaints. In south Lebanon, at least seven women remain locked up in the Khiam detention centre, which was set up in 1985 by the South Lebanon Army (SLA) with Israel's assistance and supervision. They are detained outside any legal framework and for years they had no access to the outside world; family visits were resumed in 1/1995 after a gap of eight years. All are believed to be Lebanese citizens; some are suspected of belonging to armed organizations opposing Israel and the SLA inside Lebanon, others may have been arrested to put pressure on their relatives. Among those held in Khiam is Suha Fawwaz Beshara, accused of trying to assassinate the commander of the SLA in 11/1988. She is reported to have been kept in solitary confinement almost continuously since her detention in late 1988. Like the other detainees in Khiam, she has never been charged or tried. Many detainees in Khiam have been tortured or ill-treated. Methods commonly reported include beatings all over the body, sometimes with an electric cable; electric shocks, often applied to the nipple; and threats, including of rape and sexual abuse. In other parts of Lebanon, women activists have been gunned down while peacefully demonstrating or detained and ill-treated. In 9/1993 women were among nine people shot dead when the security forces opened fire on a peaceful demonstration protesting against the peace agreement between Israel and the PLO. The authorities have never revealed the results of the investigation they said they had opened into these killings. In 9/1994, three women—Huda Yamin, Lina Ghurayeband Muna Shkayban— were detained and charged with security offences before a military court for distributing leaflets opposing the Syrian presence in Lebanon. All were allegedly tortured or ill-treated while held in the Ministry of Defence and may have been prisoners of conscience. Amnesty International is not aware of any investigation into the allegations of torture or ill-treatment. The three women were released on bail in 10/1994. Other women in the region have had their basic human rights violated for exercising their rights as trade unionists to peaceful association and expression. In Morocco, for example, Khadija Benameur was sentenced to a year in prison in 3/1995 for joining her fellow workers in a peaceful sit-in at her workplace in Sidi Slimane. They had been on strike since 2/21/1995 and the sit-in was staged to call for Moroccan labour laws and Internationally recognized labour rights to be respected. In the course of the protest, police arrested Khadija Benameur, the Secretary General of her factory's branch of the Moroccan Labour Union, and five others. Three of them, including Khadija Benameur, were charged under Article 288 of the Moroccan Penal Code, which allows for the imprisonment of people who organize or participate in a concerted withdrawal of labour. All three alleged they were ill-treated in police custody; they reportedly still bore marks of bruising on their faces and hands when they appeared in court. Khadija Benameur was also found guilty of offending the person of the King. She was reportedly accused of having said that her employer should be saluted rather than the King. She denied the charge. On 27 April Khadija Benameur was released on bail pending an appeal, which was due to be heard on 5/30/1995, but was postponed. [=] 115 Kurdistan and the Kurds 10191. Amos, John W., II; Darius, Robert G. [editor]; Amos, John W., II [editor]; Magnus, Ralph H. [editor]. Gulf Security Into the 1980s: Perceptual and Strategic Dimensions: Part 4: The Iran-Iraq War: Conflict, Linkage and Spillover in the Middle East. Hoover International Studies, Stanford, Calif.: Hoover Institution Press, 1984. pp. 49-81. [96H-05402] [19840101] The Iran-Iraq War is merely an escalation of the longstanding conflict between the two countries over the territorial dispute over the Shatt al-Arab. During the decades of this conflict, both sides have sought to gain support by the Kurdish, Arab and Shiites minorities across the border. The Iraqi attack on 9/22/1980 was a response to a growing perception that Iran was working to destabilize Iraq; Iraq hoped its attack would gain support among a broad range of other Arab states. Long afraid of encirclement, for Saddam Hussein the threat by Iran to close the Iraqi access to the Gulf was the final threat that led to the war. At the same time, (1) the large Shiite population posed a revolutionary meance, both through the Iranian-backed Dawa (itself based on the husseiniyyah netowrk of Shiite study centers) and the smaller Syria backed network in the Shiite community and even in the Iraqi Baath party, and (2) the Kurdish Peshmerga guerrilla movement continued to fight the annual cycle of military incursions by the Iraqi army. The Iraqi Communist Party, active in both Shiite and Kurdish areas, posed a lesser threat (even with its linkages with Syria, the PLO, Iranian Communists, and the Libyans). These growing problems of encirclement and internal problems led the Iraqi regime to respond to Iranian revolutionary energy with a strategy for a sharp limited warfare: the inadequacies of the Iraqi military led instead to a war of attrition. One result of this conflict was a regional rapproachment between Marxist and Islamic revolutionaries: Baghdad expelled the Popular Democratic Front (PDF) and PFLP for their role in training Khomeini supporters; these groups had also forced ties with the Iraqi Communist Party. In 2/1982, communist parties from Iraq, Iran, North Yemen, Saudi Arabia and Bahrain, with Shiite groups in the Peninsula (coordinated under the National Democratic Forces in the Arabian Peninsula & Gulf), the Popular Front for the Liberation of Oman (PFLO) and the Islamic Republican Party from Iran: these groups combined under the Front for the Liberation of the Gulf, which has ties with the shadowy Islamic Liberation Army, and the Palestinian Revenge Force founded after the Israeli invasion of Lebanon in 1982; as well as the Islamic Liberation Movement of Iraq, Islamic Alliance for the Liberation of Afghanistan, Moroccan National Revolutionary Front, Islamic Revolutionary Organization of the Arabian Peninsula, Islamic Front for the Liberation of Bahrain, and Islamic Organization for the Liberation of Oman. These movements represent a fundamentalspillover of the Iran-Iraq War that threatens all GCC states. Similarly, the Syria-Libya linkage to Iran expanded the scope of the Iran-Iraq War to include Chad, Sudan, Egypt, Nigeria, Tunisia and Morocco; as well as South Yemen and Ethiopia. [Magnus teaches at the Naval Postgraduate School and is executive director of Americares for Afghans; Darius is researcher at the Strategic Studies Institute; Amos teaches at the Naval Postgraduate School] [These papers were first presented at a MESA Conference panel in 1981.] [TXT] 10192. Amr, Wafa. "Reporters Find Death, Destruction In Kirkuk-And Irqai Army In Control", in Arizona Daily Star, April 1, 1991. p. A3. [91H-18766] [19910401] Western reporters were taken on a tour of Kirkuk by Iraqi government officials after the Kurdish guerrillas were forced from the town. Local people claimed hundreds were executed by the refugees, including 500 seen by reporters. Local people stated that the guerrillas systematically executed Baath Party members. The Kurdish forces are now at least 30 miles from the city. 10193. Anonymous. "'Saddam Should Hang: Barbara Bush Calls Iraqi Leader a War Criminal", in Tucson Citizen, April 16, 1991. p. A3. Barbara Bush called for war crimes trials and then the hanging of Saddam Hussein. She stated she would he happy to see him die and compared him with the war criminals executed after WWII. She stated she was awed by George Bush's performance during the Persian Gulf War. She stated that Lee Atwater had nothing to apologize for, and certainly nothing to apologize for in connection with his production of the Willie Horton advertisements. She noted praying frequently, and argued that son Neil Bush was innocent of any wrong doing. She also stated that she was pained by suffering of the Kurds. 10194. Anonymous. "10 PKK Militants Killed", in Turkish Press Review. Directorate General of Press and Information, Turkish Ministry of Foreign Affairs, April 3, 1996. Turkish security forces have killed 10 militants of the PKK terrorist organization in separate clashes in the southeast of the country, security officials said yesterday. The militants were killed in the provinces of Diyarbakir, Bingol, Mardin and Sirnak, the regional governor's office said in a statement. [Hurriyet] [=] 10195. Anonymous. "100 Kurds Treated For Cholera; Three Die [cholera has been reported in refugee areas along the Turkish border]", in Tucson Citizen, May 3, 1991. p. A10. 10196. Anonymous. "10000 Turk Troops Attack Kurds in Iraq [Turkey states it may also send troopps into Syria to fight Kurds; chief of the general staff, Gen. Huseyin Kivrikoglu states Turkey is in 'undeclared war with Syria']", in Seattle Times, October 4, 1998. p. A10. [TXT] 10197. Anonymous. "11 PKK Terrorists Killed", in Turkish Press Review. Directorate General of Press and Information, Turkish Ministry of Foreign Affairs, November 20, 1997. During current operations in the southeast Anatolia region 11 PKK terrorists have been killed and seven members of the Hizbullah terrorist organization had been arrested. According to the regional state of emergency governorship there have been heavy clashes between PKK terrorists and Iraqi Kurdistan Democratic Union (IKDP) peshmerges in Northern Iraq, and the PKK organization has had heavy losses. [Cumhuriyet/Sabah] [=] 10198. Anonymous. "13 PKK Terrorists Killed", in Turkish Press Review. Directorate General of Press and Information, Turkish Ministry of Foreign Affairs, November 13, 1997. During current operations in Beytulssebap, Sirnak, 13 PKK terrorists and one security official were killed. Meanwhile, the radio Voice of the Iraqi Kurdistan Democratic Party (IKDP) announced that 150 Iraqi Patriotic Union of Kurdistan (IPUK) peshmerges had been killed in fighting in northern Iraq and that 500 others had been wounded. [Cumhuriyet] [=] 10199. Anonymous. "13 People Killed In A PKK Attack", in Turkish Press Review. Directorate General of Press and Information, Turkish Ministry of Foreign Affairs, October 14, 1997. Three soldiers and 10 village guards were killed yesterday in a PKK attack staged in Semdinli, Hakkari. Eleven other members of the security forces were wounded in the attack. At the same time, two soldiers died hitting a mine laid down by PKK terrorists in Yuksekova, Hakkari. Security forces have initiated operations backed by Super Kobra helicopters against the terrorists in the southeastern provinces of Diyarbakir and 116 Kurdistan and the Kurds Bingol. [Milliyet] [=] 10200. Anonymous. "14 Kurdish Nationalists Quit Coation Governmentin Turkey", in Seattle Times, March 31, 1992. p. A8. [TXT] 10201. Anonymous. "15 Terrorists Killed", in Turkish Press Review. Directorate General of Press and Information, Turkish Ministry of Foreign Affairs, November 10, 1997. During operations conducted in and around Beytussebap near Sirnak, 15 PKK terrorists have been killed. A group of terrorists attacked villagers who were returning from working in a forest near Dogan township of Pervari, Siirt, killing six and wounding three. Military sources later announced that operations were continuing to seize the terrorists. [Cumhuriyet] [=] 10202. Anonymous. "15000 Turkish Troops Enter Iraq, Hunt Kurdish Rebels [accompanied by 2000 pro-government Village Guards]", in Seattle Times, April 7, 1999. p. A14. [TXT] 10203. Anonymous. "15000 Turks Cross To Iraq [army columns with 100 armored vehicles march into northern Iraq to attack Kurdistan Workers Party (PKK) forces]", in New York Times, September 25, 1997. p. A4. [TXT] 10204. Anonymous. "20 Villagers Killed in Raids By Kurds, Anatolia News Agency Says [Turkish news agency reports that Kurds rebels staged attacks on villages of Akyurek and Ormancik]", in Seattle Times, January 23, 1994. p. A20. [TXT] 10205. Anonymous. "200 Die in Fighting Between Rival Kurdish Groups in Iraq [intense fighting in Erbil has driven many residents to nearby Ain-Kawa; UN has suspended relief aid due to the fighting; similar clashes took place in 5/1994 between Kurdistan Democratic Party and Patriotic Union of Kurdistan forces]", in Seattle Times, December 28, 1994. p. A7. 10206. Anonymous. "2000 US Troops Work On Iraqi Camps [the State Department estimates 500 Kurdish refugees per day are dying]", in New York Times, April 23, 1991. p. A6. [TXT] 10207. Anonymous. "23 Terrorists Killed", in Turkish Press Review. Directorate General of Press and Information, Turkish Ministry of Foreign Affairs, July 4, 1997. In clashes in southeastern Anatolia between the security forces and the outlawed PKK terrorist organization, two terrorists have been killed. Two other terorists have been captured, and six have surrendered to the security forces. [Sabah] [=] 10208. Anonymous. "27 Separatists Killed In The Southeast", in Turkish Press Review. Directorate General of Press and Information, Turkish Ministry of Foreign Affairs, August 15, 1997. Security forces killed 27 separatists from the outlawed Kurdistan Workers' Party (PKK) in an operation in Sirnak province near the village of Beytulsebapin southeast, the Anatolia news agency reported. The Emergency Rule Governor's Office said that during the operations, one soldier from the security forces was killed in the line of duty while another six were injured. Meanwhile, one terrorist was captured in Batman and three others surrendered to the security forces. [All papers] [=] 10209. Anonymous. "296 PKK Terrorists Killed Over The Last Three Months", in Turkish Press Review. Directorate General of Press and Information, Turkey, April 2, 1998. By the end of military operations in the southeast region of Turkey in the first three months of 1998, 296 PKK terrorists have been killed. According to security forces officials, recently there have been serious divisions in the PKK organization. The cross-border operations have extensively damaged the logistic support system of the PKK. [Cumhuriyet] [=] 10210. Anonymous. "35000 Turkish Troops [cross into Iraq in largest offensive to date against Kurdish guerrillas; US approved operation; EU expressed alarm]", in Economist, March 25, 1995. p. 6. [TXT] 10211. Anonymous. "40 Terrorists Killed in Southeast", in Turkish Press Review. Directorate General of Press and Information, Turkish Ministry of Foreign Affairs, July 10, 1997. Security forces have killed 40 terrorists from the out-lawed Kurdistan Workers' Party (PKK) over the last four days in several clashes in the southeastern part of Turkey. The Emergency Rule Regional Governor's office said on Wednesday in a statement that the clashes took place in the eastern provinces of Van and Bitlis, and the southestern provinces of Hakkari, Sirnak, Diyarbakir, Mardin and Tunceli. Operations are still underway to capture terrorists in the region, officials said. [Sabah/Hurriyet] [=] 10212. Anonymous. "44 Kurdish Guerrillas Killed in Massive Air, Land Attack [massive attack follows report that the Kurdistan Workers Party broke its unilateral ceasefire]", in Seattle Times, May 31, 1993. p. A4. [TXT] 10213. Anonymous. "5 Terrorists Killed By Terrorists", in Turkish Press Review. Directorate General of Press and Information, Turkish Ministry of Foreign Affairs, October 6, 1997. Terrorists from the outlawed PKK organization attacked gendarmerie unit on Friday near Catak, Van, the Anatolia news agency reported. During the clashes between the PKK terrorists and security members, five Turkish soldiers were killed, seven more were injured and two PKK members were killed. [=] 10214. Anonymous. "50 Rebel Kurds Killed In Clash With Turkish Troops [in fighting in Diyarbaqkir]", in Seattle Times, September 15, 1995. p. A22. [TXT] 10215. Anonymous. "538 PKK Terrorists Killed", in Turkish Press Review. Directorate General of Press and Information, Turkish Ministry of Foreign Affairs, October 8, 1997. It was reported that since the begining of the "Twilight Operation" conducted by the Turkish Armed Forces in Northern Iraq, 538 PKK terrorists were killed. Military sources said that the operation has been sucessfully continuing as it planned. [Cumhuriyet-Sabah] [=] 10216. Anonymous. "6 Militants Captured", in Turkish Press Review. Directorate General of Press and Information, Turkish Ministry of Foreign Affairs, July 2, 1997. During operations against PKK militants planning to carry out terrorist activities, 5 terrorists have been captured in the Amanos and Toros mountains. Ammunition and documents have also been seized. One PKK militant was killed during the operation. [Sabah] [=] 10217. Anonymous. "65 Kurd Rebels Killed in Clashes, Turks Say [fighting in Van, Hakkari and Bingol provinces]", in Arizona Republic, June 24, 1997. p. A8. [TXT] 10218. Anonymous. "65 PKK Terrorists Killed", in Turkish Press Review. Directorate General of Press and Information, Turkish Ministry of Foreign Affairs, June 24, 1997. In clashes in southeastern Turkey between Turkish security forces and PKK terrorists, 65 117 Kurdistan and the Kurds terrorists have been killed during the last two days. According to official figures, so far more than 3000 separatists have been put out of action by the Turkish Armed Forces in an operation code named "Hammer". Tons of ammunition and food in addition to various weapons have also been seized. [Milliyet] [=] 10219. Anonymous. "80000 At German Rally Call On Turkey to Free Kurd Leader [Bonn rally calls for release of Ocalan]", in Seattle Times, April 18, 1999. p. A17. [TXT] 10220. Anonymous. "82 Reported Dead in Battle Fought By Turks and Kurds [attack by 300 Kurds on Turkish outpost starts battle in Semdinli, Diyarbakir]", in New York Times, September 20, 1992. p. A5. [TXT] 10221. Anonymous. "A Grim Prospect" in The Proliferation of Chemical Warfare: The Holocaust at Halabja. People For A Just Peace, PO Box 32425, Washington, DC 20007. September 1988. p. 14. Includes two photographs of dead. A study by the United States Defense Department in the Spring of 1984 revealed that at least 14 to 16 countries possessed chemical arsenals at the time. This was about 10 more than had been previously estimated. Chemical weapons are weapons of mass destruction and mass annihilation. They are fairly cheap, quite effective, and increasingly available. "Experts believe that any small nation capable of building a pesticide, petrochemical or detergent plant could adapt the facility to manufacture mustard gas or one of the virulently potent nerve gases invented by Nazi Germany."Iraq is believed by western intelligence agencies to have one of the largest stockpiles of chemical weapons, including both poison and nerve gas. Previous to Iraq's widespread use of chemical warfare, violations of the 1925 Geneva Protocol banning the use of such weapons have not exceeded a handful of incidents. Even those incidents have often remained unconfirmed allegations. Never has the world witnessed the deployment of these weapons of mass destructionon such a large scale since 1925. Presently, with the precedent set by Iraq, the world faces the danger of even more appalling incidents of the use of chemical weapons. Not having fully come to grips with the idea of living under the constant threat of a nuclear holocaust, the specter of Halabja is breakin new ground in a dreadful prospectus for the people of the world. Undoubtedly, the lack of a firm global initiative to stop the spread of chemical weapons has been Iraq's number one encouragement to continue their deployment. In light of the carnage at Halabja, it is evident that the danger is far greater than a minor regional conflict. "Still, the biggest thing to do is the toughest thing: to restore the international norm against any use of poisen gas, " writes Ken Adelman. "This means hitting any user, especially a flagrant one such as Iraq, hard. It means orchestrating a universal choorus of condemnation,calling a special UN. (resolution) to blast such behavior, breaking off friendly relations. It means, in short, labeling the users for what they are: international criminals." [=] 10222. Anonymous. "A Modern Pompeii, Part 1" in The Proliferation of Chemical Warfare: The Holocaust at Halabja. People For A Just Peace, PO Box 32425, Washington, DC 20007. September 1988. p. 4. Includesphotographof dead. The town of Halabja; home to over 70000 ethnic Kurds; is situated in northeast Iraq. The Kurds have long been in rebellion against the current regime in Iraq. When the Iragi army was routed from the region in a joint Kurdish-Iranian drive, it was the ill-fated civilian residents of Halabja who found themselves at the receiving end of Iraqi fury. Although the town had escaped the bulk of the fighting which took place in its surrounding mountains, it received a bitter blow in the aftermath. At 5:30 PM on Thrusday, March 17, 1988, only a few hours after the town had fallen to Kurdish and Iranian forces, Iraqi bombers carried out an air raid on the residential areas of Halabja, followed by similar incursions on several nearby townships and villages including Khormal. The next morning, however, Halabja was to be the site of one of the most hideous crimes committed against humanity in the past 40 years. A middle-aged man who lived on the outskirts of Halabja was quoted in the Toronto Star by Patrick Worsnip of the Reuter News Agency: "The Iranians came and we welcomed them. Then, about noontime (on Friday, March 18, 1988), the (Iraqi) bombardment came. Everybody was killed. I saw a cloud. I saw gas." Partly to drive the Iranians out and partly to set an example for other Kurdish foes of the Iraqi regime, inb more than 20 bombing raids on the 18th of March, 1988, a squadron of Iraqi bombers dropped dozens of cluster bombs as well as numerous 100-liter-canister and other types of bombsd containing deadly cyanide, nerve gas, and other toxic agents in the very haart of the residential areas of Halabja. A few minutes before the raids began, an Iraqi artillery barrage had forced the residents out of their homes to where they would be most vulnerable to the instantaneous effects of the poisonous gases. [=] 10223. Anonymous. "A Modern Pompeii, Part 2" in The Proliferation of Chemical Warfare: The Holocaust at Halabja. People For A Just Peace, PO Box 32425, Washington, DC 20007. September 1988. p. 4. That Friday afternoon, the magnitude of this crime became more evident. "Ruined and deserted-an open grave," described Norman Kirkham of the Londan Daily Telegraph. "Bodies lie in the dirt streets or sprawled in rooms and courtyards of the deserted houses, preserved at the moment of death in a modern Middle East version of the disaster which struck Pompeii." Scenes such as the corpses of 20 women and children who were hastily preparing to leave with a van-before the chemical bombardment deprived them of this opportunity-are harrowing reminders of the depths of this man-made debacle. Women, children, and the elderly formed the bulk of the over 5000 killed and 7000 chemically injured at Halabja. Animals, vegetation, soil, groundwater, everthing was affected. Wrties David Hirt, the Middle East correspondent of the Guardian (London): "It is hard to conceive of any explanation for the chemical bombardment of Halabja other than the one which Iranians and Kurds offer-revenge..." Western correspondents visited the area following the chemcial attacks and interviewed many of the residents and Kurdish fighters from Halabja. Their accounts give the picture of a genocidal mass executionofunprecedented proportions, rivaled perhaps only by Hitler's death camps in World War II. In fact, the US State Department recently confirmed Irag's use of hydrogen cyanide, a rapid asphxiant of the type used in Nazi gas chambers. Chemical weapons were used on a large scale for the first time during the First World War. Dichloroethyl sulfide, discovered in the early part of the 19th century was nicknamed 'mustard gas' by the British soldiers who first encountered it as a weapon in 1917. Winston Churchill dubbed it 'hellish poison.' Mustard gas acts as a blistering agent that devours the flesh. As well as progressively affecting the lungs and skin, mustard gas also impairs the bone marrow functions. It often means a lingering and painful death. Introduced in the war by the Germans, it was employed routinely and devastatingly by all sides during World War I. In a particularly large scale use, the Germans virtually wiped out the Belgian city of Ypres in 1917. The deployment of chemical weapons by Iraq in Halbja is believed to be the single biggest use of the lethal gases since Ypres. [=] 118 Kurdistan and the Kurds 10224. Anonymous. "A Modern Pompeii, Part 3" in The Proliferation of Chemical Warfare: The Holocaust at Halabja. People For A Just Peace, PO Box 32425, Washington, DC 20007. September 1988. p. 6. Includes photograph of dead. Nearly 100000 people perished by chemical warfare in World War I. So great was the resultant human suffering that the belligerent sides joined in 1925 in signing the Geneva Protocol, banning forever the use of chemical warfare "justly condemned by the gereral opinion of the civilized world." Iraqis also a signatory to the 1925 Protocol. Later reaffirmation of the ban, extending it to the production and storage of chemical weapons was asserted in the 1972 Geneva Convention and later in the United States resolution No. 37/98. There are currently negotiations underway in Geneva on a new international agreement that would call for the destruction of all existing stockpiles of chemical weapons. Violations of the 1925 Geneva Protocal have been miraculously few and far between until Iraq's large-scale deployment of such weapons. Gruesome memories of World War I prevented even Hitler from actively deploying chemical weapons on a large scale and in combat even though the Germans had developed the still deadlier 'nerve gas.' In fact, the only allegations of the use of the banned weapons since the treaty and before Iraq's use have been leveled against the French in Morocco, the Italians in Ethiopia, and the Japansese in China, all during the 1930's. Later, the Egyptians in Yemen in 1963, the Laotians in internal strife, and the Vietnamese in Kampuchea, both in 1975, and finally the Russians in the ongoing was in Afghanistan, were accused of having used chemical weapons. The scale and magnitude of these alleged deployments were limited to small amounts and often they were not corroborated. [=] 10225. Anonymous. "Abdullah Ocalan In Southern Cyprus", in Turkish Press Review. Directorate General of Press and Information, Turkey, March 12, 1998. It is reported that leader of the PKK terrorist organization, Abdullah Ocalan, went to Southern Cyprus from Syria via Lebanon two weeks ago and met with head of the Southern Cyprus Kurdistan Solidarity Organization, Lazaros Mavros. Some parliamentarians from the PASOK party, which is in power in Greece, and from other parties, also attended the meeting. Officials from US intelligence agencies, who prefer not to reveal their names, have noted that officials from Greek intelligence units also participated in the meeting between Abdullah Ocalan and the Southern CyprusKurdistan organization. [Sabah] [=] 10226. Anonymous. "Abdullah Ocalan Says Cease-Fire Call Will Be Basis fo defense [called for cease-fire in 1998]", in Seattle Times, March 18, 1999. p. A12. [TXT] 10227. Anonymous. "Abdullah Ocalan Warned That His Followers Will Unleash a 'Terror Machine' If a Special Turkish Court Sentences Him to hang", in Wall Street Journal, June 24, 1999. p. A1. [TXT] 10228. Anonymous. "Abdullah Ocalan's Lawyers [object to making him attend his trial in a soundproof glass box]", in Wall Street, May 25, 1999. p. A1. [TXT] 10229. Anonymous. "Aerial Hunt For Saddam Hussein Frustrating [systemaic bombing of Hussein's command posts have failed to kill him; Kurdish guerrilla sources report destruction of Enieshkey and Serseng palaces in Amadaya, and Sare Rush palace in Erbil]", in Tucson Citizen, March 28, 1991. pp. A1, A2. 10230. Anonymous. "After Flight, Iraqi Kurds Languish in Turkey [60000 refugees prohibited from travel, working or setting up schools for their 16000 children; Kurds grateful for asylum from Iraqi chemical attacks, but seek end to 'temporary' conditions: theyr perceive no future; Turkey has spent $35 million on the refugees]", in Christian Science Monitor, August 25, 1989. p. 6. 10231. Anonymous. "Aid Project Director Killed [Vincent Tollet was killed outside of a Kurdish enclave by an unknown gunman; he was director of an aid project which provided artificial limbs to war victims in northern Iraq", in the Manchester Guardian Weekly, March 28, 1993. p. 6. [TXT] 10232. Anonymous. "Aid Project Director Killed [Vincent Tollet was killed outside of a Kurdish enclave by an unknown gunman; he was director of an aid project which provided artificial limbs to war victims in northern Iraq]", in the Manchester Guardian Weekly, March 28, 1993. p. 6. [TXT] 10233. Anonymous. "Aid Workers Attacked [UN relief operations in northern Iraq have sustained a systematic bombing campaign]", in Seattle Times, July 29, 1992. p. A2. [TXT] 10234. Anonymous. "Air Force Investigator: Drop Charges In Iraq Copter Deaths [Air Force pilot was charged in shoot down of two Black Hawk helicopters]", in Seattle Times, November 22, 1994. p. A4. [TXT] 10235. Anonymous. "Allied Troops", in Wall Street Journal, October 11, 1991. p. A1. [TXT] The last Allied troops in southeastern Turkey will be withdrawn. They were stationed there to protect the Kurds in northern Iraq, a mission that has now ended. [TXT] 10236. Anonymous. "Alone Among German Hospitals, Berlin Center Treats the Victims of State-Sponsored Torture", in The Week in Germany, September 15, 1995. p. 6. The end of the Cold War may be seen to have ushered in a new era for much of Europe, but it had little effect on political violence and repressive governments in other parts of the world, nor did it end the torture that is often an integral part of such governments. Given the persistence of torture, the doctors and counselors at Berlin's Treatment Center for Torture Victims (Behandlungszentrum fur Folteropfer) maintain, the time has come for the care of torture survivors to be recognized as a distinct therapeutic specialty. The Treatment Center, located in a part of a Berlin hospital, was opened in early 1992 by a doctors' group established two years earlier by the Berlin Medical Association (Artzekammer Berlin) and with the support of the German Red Cross. Part of the motivation behind the initiative, the Frankfurter Allgemeine Zeitung notes, was the desire to come to terms with the German medical profession's complicity with the Nazi regime and widespread reluctance to treat concentration camp survivors after the war. The only facility of its sort in Germany, the Treatment Center pursues a multidimensional approach to helping torture victims. Internistsand psychiatrists work together with physical therapists, social workers and a variety of medical specialists in tending to the particular needs of the patients. The Treatment Center had 201 patients last year, roughly half of them new admittances and half continuing cases from the previous year. The largest contingent (59) were Kurds from Turkey and Iraq. There were also comparatively large groups of Bosnians (29), Palestinians (19) and Iranians (13). Eleven of the Treatment Center's patients were former prisoners in the German Democratic Republic who, center administrators say, were still suffering the effects of prolonged solitry confinement, sleep deprivation and regular late-night interrogations. 40% of the patients 119 Kurdistan and the Kurds are asylum-seekers awaiting decisions on their asylum applications; the uncertainty of their status frequently complicates their treatment. At present, 70 individuals are on the Treatment Center's waiting list. Funding for the Treatment Center comes from Germany's Federal Ministry of Family, the Elderly, Women and Youth, the Red Cross, the UN and the European Union, as well as donations from individuals. Money is tight and the Treatment Center is hoping for contributions to meet its operating expenses. Just as important as contributions, however, would be the establishment of an endowed professorship in the treatment of torture victims so that doctors and therapists could be trained in the particular difficulties of this area. Professorships already exist in France, Great Britain, and the US. [=] 10237. Anonymous. "Ambassador Kandemir Presents Two Lectures at UVA", in Turkish Times, February 1, 1998. p. 1. Turkish Ambassador Nuzhet Kandemir addressed University of Virginia students and faculty on 1/20/1998 delivering a lecture titled "Defining NATO for the 21st Century: a Turkish Perspective" and also spoke at the Darden Business School on Turkish Economy Prepares for the 21st Century and Beyond. Explaining Turkey's perspective on the NATO enlargement process, the Ambassador outlined the top security priorities on Turkey's foreign policy agenda. The Ambassador noted that although they are NATO allies, Greece and Turkey still had a serious problem in communicating on a number of bilateral issues that need to be discussed. He said that it is imperative for the two countries to enter into a meaningful dialogue to settle these issues. "In this connection, Turkey offered Greece a historic proposal in March of 1996 to settle all outstanding bilateral issues in a comprehensive manner. Greece, however, rejected this," the Ambassador pointed out. Criticizing the frequent verbal attacks against Turkey by Greek politicians, including Foreign Minister Pangalos, Kandemir stated that cheap political posturing intended for domestic consumption do not help to achieve peace in the Aegean. Amb. Kandemir also briefed the audience about Turkey's relations with the Caucasus and the Middle East. He strongly criticized Syria for using "terrorism as a weapon and negotiating tool in the conduct of its foreign policy," and said that Syrian-supported PKK terrorism has cost Turkey thousands of lives and caused a huge economic and social burden in Turkey's southeast. About relations with Iraq, Amb. Kandemir reminded the audience that the overall losses suffered by Turkey in enforcing UN sanctions against Iraq now stand at almost 35 billion dollars. Noting that Iran was important for Turkey as a neighbor directly connecting Turkey to Central Asia, Amb. Kandemir told the audience that Turkey and Iran must find ways of peaceful co-existing without interfering in each other's domestic affairs. After outlining Turkey's foreign policy issues and a brief history of the transformation of NATO throughout the years, Amb. Kandemir stressed that Turkey has no opposition in principle to the NATO enlargement process. "Turkey does not regard the expansion process as an end in itself," he noted and said that Turkey particularly supported candidacies of Romania and Bulgaria. Kandemir also added that a special relationship should be fostered between NATO and Russia within the new European Security and Defense architecture. "However, this does not mean that Russia should have a free hand in re-establishing any spheres of influence in the countries which it describes as its "near abroad," the Ambassador said. "A key concept in building a new Europe is the notion of integration," the Ambassador stressed and drew attention to the broad congruence between the enlargement process of NATO and the EU. "The expansion of NATO cannot be separated from the enlargement process of the EU and its defense arm, the WEU. Being a full member of NATO and an associate member of the EU and the WEU, Turkey should be accorded full membership in the latter organizations as well," the Ambassador concluded. Darden Business School: Addressing the Darden Business School, Amb. Kandemir presented an overview of Turkey's current economic and investment climate as well as the growing opportunities for regional economic partnerships and trade. Describing Turkey as an "economic giant waiting to be awakened, Ambassador stated that high inflation, inefficient state-owned enterprises and an ineffective tax system were the main obstacles in achieving Turkey's full economic potential. He also added that the current government in Turkey was taking the necessary steps to implement a bold plan of action in combating these shortcomings. Emphasizing that the economic overhaul in Turkey is real and substantial, the Ambassador noted that enormous possibilities for investing in Turkey was trying to modernize its telecommunication, healthcare, agricultural and energy sectors and said that they strongly encouraged US investment in the energy sector. Kandemir also pointed out that Turkey spearheaded many regional economic programs including the Black Sea Economic Cooperation and the Economic Cooperation Organization and briefed the audience about its economic relations with Caucasus, Central Asia, the Middle East, the US and the EU. Kandemir also examined the reasons for EU's rejection of Turkey in the enlargement process and that according to some observers, the EU rejected Turkey's membership on economical grounds to which he responded that "it is highly ironic that the rejected country....has the 17th largest economy in the world. Our imports are projected to reach 60 billion dollars by the year 2000. Turkey is listed as one of the ten 'Big Emerging Markets' by the US Commerce Department. We have a GNP of nearly 200 billion dollars. We are the second largest market in Europe after Germany," he stated and asked, "If Turkey is so economically unfit for membership in the EU, how is it that Turkish-EU Customs Union can be so beneficial to the European Union?" [=] 10238. Anonymous. "Americans Still Held Hostage, But Few Know of Cases; The Loved Ones of US Citizens Taken Hostage Abroad in the 1990s Have a Big Complaint: few People Seem To Care Now That Most Cases Are Not Political in Nature", in Seattle Times, June 7, 1996. p. A3. Americans citizens are held by Colombian guerrillas of the Revolutionary Armed Forces (FARC) (taking New Tribes Mission missionaries working with the Kuna Indians in Panama), by the National Liberation Army (Colombia), Al-Faran (Kashmir, India), New Peoples Army (Philippines), the Abu Sayyaf Group (Philippines), and the Kurdistan Workers Party (Turkey). For the Clinton Administration, the 'prime option' is to ignore the problem and hope that there is not much publicity. [TXT] 10239. Anonymous. "Angry Kurds Wage a Day of Rage", in Daily World (Aberdeen), June 25, 1993. p. A11. Waves of coordinated attacks across Europe have left one Kurd dead and dozens under arrest. Police fear the Kurdish secessionist war against Turkey could spread to Germany. On 6/24/1993, there were coordinated bombings against Turkish targets in six nations. The most violent attack was in Bern, Switzerland, where one Kurd was killed and seven people wounded in a shootout: Turks inside the Embassy fired on Kurdish protesters outside. In Munich, 13 Kurds who seized the Turkish Embassy surrendered: the dissidents could face deportation to Turkey. Germany may ban violent Kurdish groups. Other attacks and protests were staged in Denmark, Switzerland and UK and included rock throwing at banks and travel agencies, and protests at embassies. [TXT] 10240. Anonymous. "Ankara Angry Over Greek Call for Anti-Turkish 120 Kurdistan and the Kurds Bloc", in Turkish Press Review. Directorate General of Press and Information, Turkish Ministry of Foreign Affairs, April 3, 1996. Highly controversial remarks by Greek Defence Minister Gerassimos Arsenis that Athens should cooperate with all of Turkey's neighbours for what in effect would amount to an anti-Turkish bloc have elicited angry reactions from Ankara. Despite these remarks, Foreign Minister Emre Gonensay told Parliament on Tuesday that Turkey was still expecting a positive response from Athens to its recently announced peace initiative aimed at Greece. "We retain our hope that a new era can be opened in our relations" Gonensay told deputies when presenting his ministry's budget proposal to the Parliamentary Planning and Budget Commission. Replying to a question regarding Syria, Gonensay said: "We hope Syria will show a political will that would lead to the ending of a confidence crisis caused by its own attitude", and accused Syria of ignoring its international obligations to counter terrorism. "The support given to the terrorism of the outlawed Kurdistan Workers' Party (PKK) by Syria prevents good neighbourly relations between Syria and Turkey" Gonensay said. "Neither do Syria's baseless claims that its water rights are usurped by Turkey and its efforts to bring this non-existent problem to the international platform help to resolve the problem". Gonensay accused Syria of using terrorism as a way to get its way on the Euphrates water question. Turkish Defence Minister Oltan Sungurlu, responding to a claim by Arsenis that landing rights had been secured from Syria for Greek fighter jets, characterized this claim on Tuesday as "very serious". Recalling that Greece was also a NATO member, Sungurlu suggested this prevented Athens from such military accords with non-NATO members. "I hope that this remains just a claim. Greece has nothing to gain by increasing the tension in the Aegean crisis" Sungurlu said. He was talking the reporters on his return from Tirana, Albania, where he attended a meeting of Balkan defence ministers -from which Athens stayed away. A written statement from the Turkish Foreign Ministry on Monday referred to Arsenis' remarks, in which the Greek minister had also claimed that "Kemalism" was expansionist by nature, and call for efforts to ensure that it was defeated from "within". "(Arsenis) has rejected dialogue which is the initial means of trying to solve international disputes" the Foreign Ministry statement said. It added that the remarks by Arsenis and his assistant Nikkos Kouris would make the settlement of disputes between the two countries "more difficult". It also said that the remarks about Kardak, which were out of keeping with the US-mediated decision by the two sides to return to the "status quo ante" concerning the islet, represented "new examples of irresponsibility" on the part of Athens. "As it turned out a Greek citizen landed on the Kardak islet on 3/31/1996 immediately after these remarks (in the Greek parliament) and stayed there for a while, leading to a formal protest on our part" the statement said. "We invite Greece once again to refrain from such statements and to respond positively to the broad proposals for a settlement put forward by Turkish Prime Minister Mesut Yilmaz on 3/24/1996" it added. Meanwhile, Turkish Ambassador to Athens Umit Pamir met with Greek Foreign Minister Teodoros Pangalos yesterday. During the 45-minute meeting held at the invitation of Pangalos, Ambassador Pamir furnished information to Pangalos on Turkish Prime Minister Mesut Yilmaz's view and approach regarding the solution of TurkishGreek disputes and the future of relations between the two countries. Pamir also visited Greek Prime Minister Kostas Simitis last Tuesday for the same reason. [Milliyet-Cumhuriyet-Sabah] [=] 10241. Anonymous. "Ankara Files Demarche Over Observer Story", in Turkish Press Review. Directorate General of Press and Information, Turkish Ministry of Foreign Affairs, September 30, 1997. Turkey has demanded an explanation from Greece over a news report by the leading British daily "Observer" saying Athens sheltered and trained Kurdish separatists in Greece, a claim long-repeated by Ankara. Ankara summoned Greek Ambassador Dimitrios Nezeretis to the Foreign Ministry on Monday for an explanation concerning the Observer's detailed article. Turkish Foreign Ministry Spokesman Omer Akbel told reporters at the weekly press conference on Monday, referring to the report in the Observer's Sunday edition that Turkey took the article seriously as there was a background of alleged support for PKK terrorists activities emanating from Greece. [Milliyet-Hurriyet] [=] 10242. Anonymous. "Ankara To Rome: Cooperate On Immigration Flood", in Turkish Press Review. Directorate General of Press and Information, Turkey, January 5, 1998. As the Turkish and Iraqi Kurds' so-called "flight of hope" to Europe continues to stir international reaction, Ankara is criticizing some Western European countries for sympathizing with terrorist activities while showing sensitivity towards the immigration problem. The illegal immigration problem was referred to in a letter addressed to Italian Foreign Minister Lamberto Dini by his Turkish counterpart, Ismail Cem, responding to Dini's message on the issue sent on sensitivity, Cem proposed to Dini a joint and active approach towards the problem of illegal immigration in his letter. Cem said: "The current problem is a blatant case of illegal trafficking in human beings, an extremely serious form of organized crime. Illegal immigration has always been a source of concern for Turkey. We have consistently sought multilateral cooperation against all forms of organized crime and international terrorism. We have drawn our attention to their interrelation, to the funding of terrorism by organized crime, like the organization of illegal migrations and to crime networks established in Western Europe under various guises. This is largely due to false analysis or to miscalculation prevailing in some Western European countries. Their policies meant in practice a tolerance for terror-related activities. These acts were, in principle, aimed at Turkey and were not considered as a danger to the host country". [All papers] [=] 10243. Anonymous. "Anti-Immigrant Party Scores in Germany", in Seattle Times, April 27, 1998. p. A8. Saxony-Anhalt has seen a breakthrough by the German Peoples Union, which rose from near zero to 13% of the vote. Neither Helmut Kohl's Free Democratic Party or the Green Party won the 5% of the voted to qualify for representation in the state legislature. The Union was funded by Bavarian publisher Gerhard Frey. Much of the support for the party comes from resentment of the 9 million foreigners in Germany (mainly Turks and Kurds) who are seen as a drain on the welfare system. [TXT] 10244. Anonymous. "Anti-PKK Operation In Bodrum", in Turkish Press Review. Directorate General of Press and Information, Turkish Ministry of Foreign Affairs, December 3, 1997. Security forces in the region around the popular holiday resort of Bodrum have been carrying out operations against the PKK terrorist organization. Reports say that weapons and ammunition have been seized by the security forces. Supporters of the PKK have reportedly been taken to Diyabakir for questioning. [Sabah] [=] 10245. Anonymous. "Anti-Regime Iranian Kurd Leader Slain [gunmen in Vienna assassinate Abdul Rahman Qassemlou, and his deputies Abdullah Ghaderi-Azar and Fadel Mala Mahmound Rasoul 121 Kurdistan and the Kurds of pro-Iraq Democratic Party of Kurdistan; Qassemlou was reportedly holding talks with Iran]", in Los Angeles Times, July 15, 1989. p. A9. 10246. Anonymous. "Anti-Saddam Kurdish Faction Closing In On City held By Foes [Patriotic Union of Kurdistan on edge of Erbil]", in Seattle Times, October 16, 1996. p. A12. [TXT] 10247. Anonymous. "Appeal for Enlistment in the Algerian Liberation Army", in Iraqi Review-Weekly English Supplement to Ittihad AlShaab, April 30, 1960. p. 3. The editorial board of Ittihad al-Shaab published the following appeal urging Iraqi citizens to enlist in the Algerian Liberation Army: To the dear Iraqi patriots, whether Arabs, Kurds, Turkomans or other minorities; whether workers, peasants, artisans or intellectuals, regardless of political leanings or creed. Not long ago the Algerian Government declared readiness to welcome volunteers to enroll in the Liberation Army now heroically engaged in fighting for the liberation of Algeria from the slavery of French imperialism aided and supported by the Fascist mercenaries from West Germany together with other NATO countries led by the US. The Algerian Liberation Army has manifested great determination to liberate its homeland. Through six years of sanguinary struggle, during which Algeria was turned into a volcano erupting on the imperialist invaders, the Algerian Liberation Army, undaunted by the loss of hundreds of thousands of martyrs, earned the praise and support of all forces of liberty and peace in the Arab countries and the entire world. This glorious national struggle waged by the Algerian Liberation Army rendered a great service to Arab countries either fighting for liberation or for maintaining and preserving independence and, consequently, to all peoples opposed to imperialism and war. The question of Algerian Liberation is inseparably linked with our own national question in Iraq; the two issues are nothing but a part of a still larger issue, i.e., that of liberating the entirety of the Arab people from the yoke of imperialism and its agents in order to open the road to further development, progress and prosperity. The Iraq people of all classes, nationalities and political leanings and creeds is unanimously agreed on backing the Algerian Revolution, Liberation Army and provisional government; that is why they welcomed and will continue to welcome any step or measures taken by the national government, headed by Abdul Karim Qassim, to serve this end. The joint Algerian-Iraqi communique coming in the wake of the negotiations with the Algerian delegation headed by the brave fighter, Belqasim, came as a good response to the desire and will of the Iraqi people to support morally the Algerian Revolution. The masses of our people are now called upon to undertake a new task towards struggling Algeria; that is to respond to the declaration made by the Algerian government by hastening to enlist in the Algerian Liberation Army and fighting in its ranks particularly those citizens who are already trained or have the technical qualifications. These are asked to put their services at the disposal of the Algerian government and its permanent representative in the Iraqi Republic. Victory is for the heroic Algerian Liberation Army. Long live Algeria, a free and independent republic. Long live the Glorious Arab People. [=] 10248. Anonymous. "Arab, African Refugees Wash Ashore in Waves", in Seattle Times, July 2, 1998. p. A12. More than 350 Kurds and North Africans landed in Italy yesterday, including 184 Turkish Kurds at Riace and 160 North Africans in Sicily: one Tunisian man died off Sicily. Warm weather is expediting the flow of refugees across the sea, while tough immigration rules force them to return to theirhomelands. The Italian Foreign Minister called ambassadors from Morocco and Tunisia to express concern. On Monday, a boat was found drifting with 111 Arabs and Africans from as far as Rwanda, and including people from Lebanon, Iraq, and Sudan, Liberia and Congo. A Ukrainian freighter found two refugees from the ship on a raft seeking landfall on Cyprus. [TXT] 10249. Anonymous. "Armenian Research Center", in Society for the Study of Caucasia Newsletter, April 1977. p. 2. The Armenian Research Center is located on the campus of the University of Michigan-Dearborn. It has a small but significant research library for Armenian Studies, including history, literature, religion, art and architecture, as well as Russia, Eastern European, Transcaucasian, Turkish, and Kurdish materials. The library is catalogued in a computer database, consisting of 36901 records (which include important bvooks and articles located in other collections). The ARC collection includes 3807 books, 21501 newspaper, journal, and manuscript articles (in vertical files accessible through thedatabase); as well as many other kinds of material including personal archives. Researchers are welcome to use the facilities. Tel: (313)-593-5181; fax: (313) 593-5219. Internet: Papazian(a)umich.edu Web: http://www.umd.umich.edu/dept/armenian [=] 10250. Anonymous. "Army Wants Government To Take 'Urgent Action' In Southeast", in Turkish Press Review. Directorate General of Press and Information, Turkish Ministry of Foreign Affairs, November 18, 1997. General Staff officials are urging the government to take immediate economic and social measures as a follow-up to the victory won by the military against the PKK terrorist organization in Turkey's southeastern region. They emphasized that terrorism has been brought to an end in the eastern and southeastern regions by the resolute struggle of the security forces. Yesterday, Maj. Gen. Bekir Ugurlu briefed a group of Turkey's leading journalists in the eastern city of Van, invited by the military to tour the region and observe the situation in the Southeast. [All papers] [=] 10251. Anonymous. "Arrest of Kurdish Rebel Leader Ocalan Sparks Protest", in Financial Times, February 17, 1999. p. 1. Kurdish activists staged violent protests in 20 European cities after the capture of PKK leader Abdullah Ocalan, after a four-month search for political asylum. Ocalan was captured in Nairobi after spending 13 days in the Greek ambassador's residence as a "humanitarian gesture": the circumstances of his capture in Kenya remain obscure. After reports of his capture, Kurdish protesters demonstrated at and seized several of embassies and consulates of Greece and Kenya. There were Kurdish demonstrations in at least ten cities in Germany. In London, a Kurdish woman set herself alight as 100 demonstrators occupied the Greek embassy. In Turkey, celebrated the capture of Ocalan, PM Bulent Ecevit stated: "We vowed we would get him wherever he was in the world. We have carried out our promise." Without being accused of any role in the capture of Ocalan, Israeli officials stated: "Israel wishes to make it absolutely clear that it was not involved in any way in this matter." [TXT] 10252. Anonymous. "Arslan: "Village Guard System Will Remain", in Turkish Press Review. Directorate General of Press and Information, Turkish Ministry of Foreign Affairs, October 17, 1997. Emergency Rule Regional Governor Aydin Arslan said on Thursday that the village guard system would remain even if the emergency rule was lifted. He said so far more than one thousand village guards had lost their lives in the clashes between the sucurity forces and the 122 Kurdistan and the Kurds outlawed PKK terror organization. He noted that the village guard system was regulated according to the Law on Villages and that it was not a system affiliated to the Law on Emergency Rule. [Sabah] [=] 10253. Anonymous. "Article 23, ", in Extracts From The Program of the Kurdistan Democratic Party of Iraq, As Published By The KDP Information Department, June 1973. Articles 23: 'We struggle to (a) guarantee the the rights of Kurdish student and in order to wipe out illiracy and to give anationalist and democratic content while fighting reactionary, fascist and racist tendencies (b) revitalize Kurdish history, literature and art and to enrich them with the humanist elements from other cultures and to protect and preserve historic sites in Kurdistan and to build museums for them (c) to develop the University of Sulaimaniya, protect its independence and to turn it into acenter for academic research and for the revitalization of the kurdish national culture (d) emphasize the teaching of Kurdish language, history, culture during all stages of education, promote the teaching of Kurdish throughout Iraq, establish a Kurdish academy of science, apress and publishing house,and separate radio and television station in Kurdistan, (e) make primary school education compulsory for both sexes, open night schools for workers, farmers and others, and to increase the number of libraries, laboratories and literary clubs in order to raise the cultural and educational standards of the people, (f) promote Kurdish art and culture and to use their potentials to serve humanity in general and the objectives and interests of the Kurdish people in particular, and to encourage the literary and artistic movement by increasing the number of assistantships and scholarships, the building of theatres and opening of clubs, (g) guaranteethe rights of teachers in Kurdistan and to raise their standard in various aspects of their profession. [=] 10254. Anonymous. "Articles 3, 6-8", in Extracts From The Program of the Kurdistan Democratic Party of Iraq, As Published By The KDP Information Department, June 1973. Article 3: 'We struggle for freedom and for the implementation of the March 11th Agreement in both letter and spirit and to enable the people of Kuistan to achieve autonomy and to protect, consolidate and develop that autonomy in Kurdistan and within the Iraqi Republic.' Article 6: 'We struggle for the sake of establishing a popularly, elected revolutionary and democratic form of governmen. We also struggle to achieve far-reaching social and economic changes within all aspects of of the society aand to guarantee for all the citizens the freedom of worship, belief, press, and political association. Article 7: 'We struggle (a) for the strengthening of brotherly relations between the Arab and Kurdish nations, (b) for the consolidation of brotherhood among the arabs, the Kurds and the minorities within Iraq and for the strengthening of national unity, (c) for the strengthening of bonds of friendship between our Kurdish people and all peoples of the world. Article 8: (a) We struggle for peace in the world and for the lessening of international tensions and we are guided by the principles of the united nations, the Bandong Conference resolutins,the principles of peaceful co-existence, peaceful solutions of international disputes,the banning of nuclear weapons and tests on them, (b) we pursue a nationalist anti imperialist policy and we strive to strengthen friendly relations with all peoples of the world based upon the principle of mutual benefit and the support of national liberation movements waged by people for the sake of independence and the right of selfdetermination. [=] 10255. Anonymous. "Articles 9, 12, 16-17 and 22", in Extracts From The Program of the Kurdistan Democratic Party of Iraq, As Published By The KDP Information Department, June 1973. Article 9: 'We endeavour to strengthen bonds of friendship and cooperation between our party and all other Iraqi parties and organizatons which believe in the justice of the Kurdish question and whitch support the common struggle of our party and the other democratic organizations in all parts of of Kurdistan. we also endeavour to strengthen ties of friendship with the democratic parties and organizations throughout the world.' Article 12: 'We struggle to develop our national economy and to raise the standard of living of the people of by following the principle of comprehensive economic and social plannin, taking into cosideration the human and natural resources of the land and hoping to available thebasic needs for developement and encouraging both the public and private sectors of the economy while insuring the leading role of the former . Article 16: 'We support the new land reform law No. 37 of 1970 in the hope of that all farmers of Kurdistan will be able to own some land and so that feudalism in Kurdistan be uprooted.... Article 17: 'We believe in the regulating of domestic and foriegn trade while assisting and stimulating the business community, all this will be taking into consideration the interests of both public and private sectors based upon the national interests of the country and on the principle of combating monopoly and price speculati. we also believe in establishing commercial ties with other countries based upon the principle of reciprocity and the encouragement of exports and the limiting of imports to the basic and necessary commodities Article 22: 'We support women's political, economic, social and cultural rights and we work to see the the necessary law passed which will guarantee rights of women prior, during and after childbirth as well as the rights of mothers and children. [=] 10256. Anonymous. "As We Go to Press: CIA Plot Behind the US Bombing of Iraq", in Revolutionary Worker (RCP), September 15, 1996. p. 3. Several days after the US cruise missile attack in Iraq, it was revealed that Saddam Hussein's attack on the Kurdish city of Erbil had profoundly disrupted a long-standing CIA plot in Iraq to overthrow Hussein. The CIA plot was reported on 9/7/1996 by the New York Times which talked to "senior administration officials." The US accused Hussein of aggression to justify the missile attack. But now it is revealed that it was the US itself that had developed Erbil as a staging area for its aggressive plots! The Iraqi occupation of Erbil was then used as US justification for the cruise missile attack on Iraq. Erbil was reportedly the headquarters of the so-called National Congress - known as a CIA instrument for intrigue within the internal affairs of Iraq. The National Congress has been an "umbrella group" for mutually hostile Iraqi political forces tied to US interests. Another US-funded organization based in Jordan, the Iraqi National Accord, was assigned to recruit potential US agents within the Iraqi military. The Times revealed that President Clinton had expanded these covert operations in 1/1996 by "signing a secret order directing the CIA to provide weapons, organize some military training and install some intelligencegatheringequipment for the factious groups seeking to unseat Mr. Hussein." At the heart of this project was the US plot to encourage a military coup against Hussein to install a more reliably pro-US regime - while keeping the core of the oppressive Iraqi military and state in command and working for US imperialist interests. It is a plan for eliminating Hussein without giving an opening for the masses of people to rise up in a fight for their own antiimperialist interests. With the Iraqi military occupation of Erbil, major components of this CIA operation appear to have been destroyed. Iraqi forces reportedly seized computer records of this CIA operation getting information on the "entire infrastructure" of the National Congress. The US agents on the ground there in southern Kurdistan reportedly fled and left behind their paid networks to be rounded up. 123 Kurdistan and the Kurds The Iraqi secret police reportedly rounded up 1500 people remaining in the Erbil area after Iraqi army units pulled out. According to the Times there are two other glaring signs of the failure of US plots. First, the operations stepped up by Clinton have failed to attract significant military defectors from the Iraqi army. Second, it was Massoud Barzani, a member of the three-member presidential council of the "Iraqi National Congress," who openly urged Saddam Hussein to occupy Erbil. The US has been carrying out typical imperialist tactics. Frustrated by the failures of their CIA plots and intrigues, the US resorted to the direct military track against Hussein - pounding Iraq with a new round of cruise missile attacks, hoping to soften up the Iraqi military for future US plots and intrigues. [=] 10257. Anonymous. "Assassination Attempt Against Bush in Kuwait", in Crossfire, May 10, 1993. Rep. Henry Hyde noted that while the ethnic cleansing in Bosnia is irrelevant, that the US should reemphasize its efforts to overthrow Saddam Hussein since the US has interests there. He did reject assassination as an explicit US policy. Laurie Mylroie, 'Fellow in Arab Politics' at Washington Institute for Near East Policy [note: the founding of the institute by AIPAC, the Israel lobby, and its financing by Israel was concealed], called for assassination of Hussein because he is a 'vengeful' sponsor of 'state terrorism' including assassination; and called for arming the Kurds by the CIA in a march on Baghdad (that she later admitted could not win militarily but which would weaken Iraq). She endorsed the partition of Iraq into ethnic enclaves. She stated that the US should create all the pre-conditions for Hussein's assassination, and then allow a surrogate to do the actual execution, so that the US could deny any role in the murder. She went on to note that a CIA backed coup by the Iraqi National Congress would allow the US to create a 'friendly' oil rich state under complete US control. She advanced an arcane conspiracy theory that an Iraqi used mind control on 'Arab losers' (she engaged in several outbursts attacking the people accused in the bombing as stupid so as to support her murky conspiracy theory) to commit the World Trade Center Bombing. Michael Kinsley called for the assassination of Saddam Hussein and stated that 'all Americans' wanted the destruction of the Iraqi government. 10258. Anonymous. "Assyrians", in Bol'shaya Sovetskaya Entsiklopediya, Vol. 3, 1950. pp. 263-264. Assyrians are described as a people whose language belongs to the Semitic language group and who are Nestorian Christians. Prior to WWI they lived in northern Persia, Turkey, and part of the Caucasus, occupying themselves with agriculture and animal husbandry or trading in towns in a small way. Theynumbered 500000. In WWI British agents instigated hostility between them and their neighbors, Kurds and Turks, and brought about a rising in the course of which half of the Assyrians were killed. The survivors were removed by the British army to Iraq where they were used as an armed force against the Arab national movement. A minority escaped to the USSR. In 1939 they numbered 30000. Whereas formerly most were illiterate, their cultural and educational level is now rising. The old Nestorian alphabet has been replaced by an alphabet based on Russian. [From: "Part V: Iraq: 1945-1954", in A.R.C. Bolton, Soviet Middle East Studies: An Analysis and Bibliography. New York: June 1959. p. 7.] [=] 10259. Anonymous. "Asylum Applications Up in 9/1996, Down for the Year to Date", in Week in Germany, October 18, 1996. p. 2. The number of individuals who petitioned for political asylum in Germany jumped by roughly 1200 from 8/1996 to 9/1996, the Federal Ministry of the interior announced on 10/14/1996. In all, Germany received 10742 asylum applications last month. The largest numbers of applications were received from citizens of the Republic of Yugoslavia (1925), Turkey (1924) and Iraq (approximately 1200). Federal Minister of the Interior Manfred Kanther (CDU) said that the high numbers of asylum-seekers from the Yugoslav successor states was particularly worrisome. He also reported that Germany had received 86000 asylum applications from 1/1996 through 9/1996, 6.3% fewer than during the same period of 1995. [=] 10260. Anonymous. "Athens Supporting PKK Terror", in Turkish Press Review. Directorate General of Press and Information, Turkish Ministry of Foreign Affairs, April 1, 1996. Turkish security organizations have furnished the government with a report which claims that Greece is providing training facilities for PKK terrorists. The reports says that the Greek government views the PKK favourably, and allows its members to train for violence against Turkey in camps attached to isolated farms and premises throughout Greece. The report adds that Greek government agents visit the camps to educate the terrorists in bombs and explosives. Later, leader of the PKK, Abdullah Ocalan is sent reports on the progress of his trainee terrorists. [Milliyet] [=] 10261. Anonymous. "Athens-PKK Relation On The Agenda Of NATO", in Turkish Press Review. Directorate General of Press and Information, Turkish Ministry of Foreign Affairs, October 9, 1997. Foreign Minister Ismail Cem said in a press conference on Wednesday that Greece and PKK relation had been taken into the agenda of NATO. Recalling that the Greek support for the separatist terror organization, PKK, had been issued in the European press with evidences, Cem said Turkish Foreign Ministry decided to voice Athens and PKK relation at NATO circles and that Turkey's permanent representative to NATO extended Turkey's written statement to the General Secretary of NATO. Cem noted that at the statement it was stressed that NATO had the responsibility to protect the stability and territorial integrity of its member countries. [Milliyet-Hurriyet] [=] 10262. Anonymous. "Austrian Support for Turkey", in Turkish Press Review. Directorate General of Press and Information, Turkish Ministry of Foreign Affairs, November 6, 1997. Now in Austria after his successes over the weekend at the Crete summit meeting of Balkan country leaders, Prime Minister Mesut Yilmaz is continuing his talks with leading European figures. Yesterday Yilmaz spoke with Austrian Head of State Thomas Klestil and other top officials who confirmed their support for Turkey's full membership in the European Union (EU). Klestil noted that the EU "should keep an open mind on Turkey's membership." Klestil also said that Austria wanted to see Turkey attend the conference on the future of new candidate countries. But again, Austrian leaders made the point that Turkey has also got to get into position for EU membership by improving its track record in various vital areas. Mesut Yilmaz also stressed that other issues involving the so-called "Kurdish question" would be resolved before the turn of the century. [Milliyet] [=] 10263. Anonymous. "Azerbaijan Nears More United States Deals [Chevron Corp., Exxon Corp., Mobil Corp. in talks with state owned Socar; sixteen firms have signed five deals for development of Caspian Sea oil worth $18 billion]", in Wall Street Journal, June 24, 1997. pp. A18. [TXT] 10264. Anonymous. "Baghdad Agrees to Help Kurds Harvest120000 Tons of Wheat Under US Pressure [agreement was reached between Iraq and the Kurds in talks in Baghdad]", in Wall Street Journal, June 124 Kurdistan and the Kurds 14, 1991. p. A1. [TXT] 10265. Anonymous. "Balkan Leaders Agree To Fight Crime", in Turkish Press Review. Directorate General of Press and Information, Turkey, April 17, 1998. Balkan neighbours Turkey, Romania and Bulgaria signed an agreement yesterday for jointly combatting terrorism, organized crime, money laundering, drug trafficking and human and arms smuggling, as well as other major crimes. The agreement was signed by the presidents of the three countries after a meeting in Turkey's Mediterranean port of Antalya, in which each side's foreign and interior ministers also participated. The general content of the agreement includes intensive judicial and technical cooperation between the police organizations of the signatory countries. Diplomats participating in the meeting said that the agreement was a major blow to the PKK terrorist organization, which has recently been expending efforts to establish itself in Bulgaria and Romania. In another significant move, the three parties agreed to establish a free trade zone between themselves. Turkey and Romania have already established such an area. With the completion of a bilateral free trade agreement with Bulgaria, the trilateral free trade zone is expected to be realized in the years between 2000-2005, and negotiations on the issue are expected to begin before the end of 1998. [All papers] [=] 10266. Anonymous. "Baybasin Brothers To Be Tried In The UK", in Turkish Press Review. Directorate General of Press and Information, Turkey, March 30, 1998. Two brothers of Huseyin Baybasin, alleged drug gang leader who is thought to have good contacts with the Kurdish Med-TV and the Kurdish Parliament in-exile, are being tried by Magistrate Court in the UK. Abdullah Baybasin and Sirin Baybasin who were arrested together with Mehmet Cetin on Friday in London, as part of coordinated police operations against "organized crime" in Europe, were charged on Saturday with possession of firearms and drug-related crimes. [All papers] [=] 10267. Anonymous. "Beirut [pro-Iranian Iraq Kurds announced the kidnapping of Italian engineers in northern Iraq]", in Investors Daily, October 13, 1987. p. 1. [TXT 10268. Anonymous. "Bilican: 'Giant Strides Made Against PKK Separatists'", in Turkish Press Review. Directorate General of Press and Information, Turkish Ministry of Foreign Affairs, July 17, 1997. Emergency Rule Region Governor Necati Bilican said on Wednesday that the Turkish government had taken giant steps in its struggle against separatist terrorism in the Southeast, adding that since the beginning of 1997, 4783 terrorists from the outlawed Kurdistan Workers' Party (PKK) had been killed by security forces. Governors from the provinces where the emergency rule region is being implemented gathered in the eastern town of Van to discuss measures against the separatist PKK, and to seek ways to create jobs in the region. [Milliyet] [=] 10269. Anonymous. "Blair, "Turkey Is A Natural Part Of Europe"", in Turkish Press Review. Directorate General of Press and Information, Turkey, January 9, 1998. British Prime Minister Tony Blair said in london on Thursday that the Britain presidency would apply every diplomatic means to improve relations between Turkey and the European Union (EU) in the coming six months. Speaking together with Jacques Sanders, president of the European Commission, at a press conference organized after the first EU Commission meeting in London. Blair said it was vital both for Turkey and the EU to maintain the good relations. Meanwhile, Santer also said the text agreed to in Luxembourg regarding Turkey had a great significance since it was the first time 15 member-states had agreed on conditions for Turkey to join the EU. Regarding the issue of Kurdish immigration Europe, both Blair and Santer said cooperation was vital for all illegal immigration to be prevented. [Milliyet] [=] 10270. Anonymous. "Bomb Explosion In Hakkari", in Turkish Press Review. Directorate General of Press and Information, Turkish Ministry of Foreign Affairs, October 20, 1997. One person was killed and 15 were injured as a result of a bomb explosion in Hakkari's town of Yuksekova. A car parked between the police station and the post office exploded. Police officials say the bomb was placed by the separatist PKK organization. Strick security measures have been initiated in the town to prevent further similar incidents. [All papers] [=] 10271. Anonymous. "Bomb Injures 9 At Turkish Tourist Site [bomb explodes at ancient cistern site in Istanbul; no group claims responsibility, but police suspect Kurdistan Workers Party (PKK)]", in New York Times, April 11, 1998. p. A6. [TXT] 10272. Anonymous. "Bomb Spurs Fears of More Kurd Violence", in Seattle Times, March 21, 1999. p. A17. A man believed to be a Kurdish rebel detonated a suicide bomb killing himself and two police in Diyarbakir. Police tried to stop the man as he approached a police station in that city. In Sirnak province, police foiled an attack by a woman with two grenades strapped to her wrist. Police fear Kurdish violence during Nowruz celebrations: in Berlin, Stuttgart and other German cities there were large Kurdish gatherings without violence. In Austria, thousands of Kurds marched demanding the release of Ocalan, In Istanbul, police raids detained more than 30 people and the Peoples Democracy Party offices and pro-Kurdish centers in the city. [TXT] 10273. Anonymous. "Bombs Found on Trucks Carrying Food to Iraqi Kurds [on 11/29/92 six trucks were damaged by bombs after food was delivered to Iraqi Kurds]", in Seattle Times, December 8, 1992. p. A6. [TXT] 10274. Anonymous. "Bonn Backs Eu Membership For Turkey", in Turkish Press Review. Directorate General of Press and Information, Turkish Ministry of Foreign Affairs, October 1, 1997. German leaders extended conditional support yesterday to Turkey's bid to become a member of the European Union (EU). Chancellor Helmut Kohl and Foreign Minister Klaus Kinkel told Turkish Prime Minister Mesut Yilmaz, on an official visit to Germany, that Bonn backs eventual membership for Turkey in the EU but first expects Ankara to make progress in resolving key domestic and foreign policy problems. "Kohl declared that he supported the goal of later Turkish membership in the EU" said Kohl's spokesman Peter Hausmann in a statement after a meeting between Yilmaz and Kohl. "In doing so, Kohl assumes that Turkey will follow calls by the EU to make its own contribution toward reaching this goal" said the statement which stressed that Kohl firmly viewed Turkey as a part of Europe. Yilmaz told reporters he was very satisfied with his talks in Bonn and that he was convinced the 15-nation EU would agree at its December Luxembourg summit to intensify contacts aimed at Turkish membership. "This is a turning point in our relations with the EU" he said. Yilmaz said his government was fully aware of the "partly justified" international criticism of Turkey and said Ankara was working to resolve problem areas. He said that Ankara would continue its fight against the PKK terrorist organization. Aside from talks on EU membership, bilateral economic issues were another focus of the visit and Yilmaz met German business 125 Kurdistan and the Kurds leaders in Bonn. Germany is Turkey's biggest trade partner in the world. Turkey and Germany signed an agreement for the establishment of a university in Istanbul, which will teach all its courses in German. The agreement was signed by German Foreign Ministry Undersecretary Peter Hartmann and Turkish Ambassador Volkan Vural, in the presence of Yilmaz and Kohl. Yilmaz also met with Christian Social Union Parliamentary Group Chairman Michael Glos at the Turkish Embassy yesterday. [All papers] [=] 10275. Anonymous. "Bonn Calls for Stop to MED TV", in Turkish Press Review. Directorate General of Press and Information, Turkish Ministry of Foreign Affairs, April 2, 1996. The German government wants to see an end to Kurdish MED TV satellite broadcasts. MED TV broadcasts from a station in London, although there have been reports that the British government has had the stationed closed down. MED TV has reportedly set up an operation in Switzerland. The Bonn government has shown itself to be against the channel which is known to support the PKK. Bonn officials said yesterday that with the support of other countries, "we can achieve concrete results" in this matter. Germany has been in touch with Britain about the issue which Turkey is also following closely. [All papers] [=] 10276. Anonymous. "Bonn Cuts Off Military Aid to Turkey" , in The Week In Germany, March 27, 1992. The Bonn government stopped all military aid to Turkey on Thursday (3/26), reacting to Ankara's refusal to clarify whether weapons recieved from Germany have been used in attacks by the Turkish military against Kurdish civilians. Government Spokesperson Dieter Vogel said that Bonn had "first indications" of the use of German weapons against Kurds; if this should prove true, it would be "a clear violation" of the agreements made between Turkey and Germany on the use of the weapons. The agreements specify that the weaponry may be used only in the case of an attack on Turkey by a non-NATO state. "As long as these questions have not been completely and satisfactorily answered, the federal government will not supply any military material to Turkey," the spokesperson declared. Ankara has received DM 5.5 billion in military aid from Germany since the 1960's. Support from Bonn amounted to DM 1.84 billion in 1991; for the years 1992-94, Turkey was to have received a total of DM 212 million. In addition, Turkey has received material aid in the last years with a value of DM 2.2 billion, particularly in connection with the Gulf war. This included surplus material from the Federal Armed Forces such as tanks, air defense weaponry, and munitions, as well as weaponry from the army of the former German Democratic Republic. [=] 10277. Anonymous. "Bonn Plans Expulsion of Foreigners Who Commit Crimes", in Week in Germany, April 5, 1996. pp. 1-2. Amid threats of anti-German political violence, Bonn has begun preparing legal measures to facilitate the expulsion of foreigners who break the law at demonstrations and otherwise. Leaders of the governing coalition parties (Christian Democratic Union, Christian Social Union, Free Democratic Party) met on 3/26/1996 to discuss sharpening the laws pertaining to Germany's foreign residents following a series of demonstrations by Kurds last month that turned violent and resulted in injuries to several dozen police officers (cf. TWIG 3/22/1996, p. 1). CDU General Secretary Hintze and Guido Westerwelle, his FDP counterpart, told reporters after the meeting that the coalition parties were broadly in agreement that it should be easier for German authorities to deport foreigners who violate German law, but they also indicated that the parties' views on the specifics differed. The CDU and CSU want to be able to deport foreign demonstrators - such as Kurds demonstrating for the independence of their homeland - who can "clearly" be shown to have seriously disturbed the peace (schwerer Landfriedensbruch) without first having to secure a criminal conviction. The FDP rejects doing away with requiring a criminal conviction as a prerequisite for expulsion on the grounds that it would violate the principle of the rule of law. This disagreement notwithstanding, the coalition parties expect to have a legislative proposal ready for cabinet approval in a matter of weeks. The coalition also seeks to sharpen the law regarding expulsion of foreigners who have committed crimes of a non-political nature. If the planned changes are approved, a foreigner who is convicted of any crime and sentenced to a prison term of three years or longer will be expelled from the country. Current laws allow expulsion if the sentence is five years or longer. Shortly after the coalition parties announced these plans, Abdullah Ocalan, leader of the Workers' Party of Kurdistan (PKK), told major German publication that his organization, which was banned in Germany two and a half years ago, would take revenge for German government actions against it. In an interview with the Munich-based Suddeutsche Zeitung, Ocalan, in exile in Lebanon, threatened a massive terror campaign against Germany and suggested German tourists in Turkey could be targets. He elaborated further in an interview with the weekly Die Zeit, holding out the possibility of bomb attacks in Germany itself. Declaring that such attempts at intimidation will not succeed, Foreign Minister Klaus Kinkel called Ocalan's threats "absolutely intolerable." Kinkel can claim a personal as well as a professional interest in the possibility of a PKK terror campaign: a Cologne daily reported on 4/2/1996 that PKK supporters had made death threats against the German foreign minister and Chancellor Helmut Kohl. The Foreign Ministry confirmed that a threat on Kinkel's life had been received but declined to provide details. Two days after the report appeared, the National Kurdistan Liberation Front (ERNK), the military arm of the PKK, announced through the Kurdistan Information Center in Cologne that it had not made death threats against Kohl or Kinkel. The PKK, it said, has no need for "such cheap methods." [=] 10278. Anonymous. "Border Violence Jolts Germans; Four Customs Agents Die in Checkpoint Gunfire", in Arizona Republic, February 11, 1998. p. A13. Fatal shootings on two German borders, with Poland (at Goerlitz) and Switzerland (at Konstanz), shocked German, which is struggling against illegal immigration (especially Kurds) and smuggling (arms and drugs) on an unprecedented scale. The killings on the Swiss border involved an Italian national, smuggling Israeli weapons into Germany. The killing on the Polish border involved a man from Kazakhstan, and the cause was unclear. [TXT] 10279. Anonymous. "Briefs: Turkey: Bus Stop Bomb Kills 8 [8 Kurds killed in Batman, southeast Turkey in Kurdish region.]", in Arizona Daily Star, May 26, 1995. p. A8. [TXT] 10280. Anonymous. "Britain: Kurd Television Station Closed [UK orders Med TV be closed down, condemning it as a mouthpiece for Kurdish separatists]", in New York Times, March 23, 1999. p. A12. [TXT] 10281. Anonymous. "Britian Sends Iraq Charity Work Money", in Tucson Citizen, December 31, 1991. p. A5. The Ministry for Overseas Development will send $1.8 million to Iraq for emergency relief for Kurdish and Shiite minorities. [TXT] 10282. Anonymous. "British Daily Reveals Evidence Linking PKK to 126 Kurdistan and the Kurds Other Terrorist Organizations: Fugitive PKK Member Confesses to Observer that Greeks Shelter PKK and Provide Missiles: Part 1", in Turkish Times, October 15, 1997. p. 1. Observer, one of the most reputable British dailies, gave an extensive coverage [9/28/1997] to the relations of one of the world's most dangerous bombers, confessing from a secret hideout in Greece. Seydo Hazar, a German resident and a PKK member on the run, told Observer that he and his group were protected by the Greek Marxist Revolutionary Organization 17th November and financed by elements close to Greek Security services in their terrorist attacks on European tourists in Turkey. While the Greek government refutes these claims, western intelligence agencies are taking these allegations seriously, Observer writes. Hazar, who said he is disgusted by PKK's targeting of civilians, has offered to trade his information for sanctuary and new life. According to the information provided by Hazar, the PKK is planning to use chemical explosives and poison against civilians. The fugitive bomb maker also claims that PKK has links with the 17th November terror group, German neo-Nazis, the Palestinian Hamas organization and the Tamil Tigers in Sri Lanka, pointing out the collaborationbetweentheinternational terrorist groups. Hazar also claims that Stinger missiles, manufactured under license in Greece, were provided to PKK which were then sold by PKK to the Tamil Tigers and subsequently used to shoot down military transport planes over Sri Lanka. The allegation that Athens has been turning a blind eye to PKK terrorists who are using its territory for training is not something new. One of the most striking cases of Greek involvement in the PKK's activities in Turkey came during 1994 and early in this year. Police in Istanbul and Izmir detained PKK members who were getting ready to attack tourist resorts. It became clear that these terrorists had been trained as urban guerrillas in Greece in a camp near Athens. Also, following a bomb attack in Istanbul's famous Covered Bazaar where several people were killed, three people were arrested and questioned. Sakine Donmez, Atilla Kaya, and Abdurrahman Yoruk confessedthat they received training in Greece on how to handle explosives. PKK militants said that they had gone from Athens to Syria to take part in terrorist operations against Turkey. [=] 10283. Anonymous. "British Daily Reveals Evidence Linking PKK to Other Terrorist Organizations: Fugitive PKK Member Confesses to Observer that Greeks Shelter PKK and Provide Missiles: Part 2: Hazar on the Run", in Turkish Times, October 15, 1997. pp. 1-2. Seydo Hazar, 30, provided detailed descriptions of about 12 powerful bombs disguised in consumer goods products such as nesquick boxes, video cassettes and ketchup containers. He also identified a PKK safe house in the Greek village of Drosia, where he left behind a large cache of explosives including TNT and Amonal, as well as chemical and biological agents. According to the article, Hazar's involvement with the PKK began 18 months ago, however, his sister Meryem is one of the most known members of the PKK group based in Damascus. He was persuaded to leave Germany to go to Athens by an inner elite within the PKK, known as the "home office" (ulke burosu in Turkish). Hazar told the Observer that he was taken to a training camp operated by a Greek named Dimitri and his partner Martha in a farm near Triada. Hazar noted that the Greek authorities were training and equipping Kurdish terrorists for missions in Turkey. "The Greeks are afraid of the Turkish army and would like to see it bogged down in a long war of attrition with the Kurds," he told Observer. According to Hazar, his controllers planned to use his explosives on civilians particularly in the Mediterranean beaches. The most lethal device in preparation was sarin, a deadly nerve agent used in the Tokyo Subway in 1995, intended to be used at the Anitkabir mausoleum of Ataturk. Hazar first came under suspicion from his PKK group when one of his bombs exploded earlier than planned killing the woman who was planting it in Bodrum in 7/1997. A few weeks later, when another bomb he made failed to explode, he was accused of being a saboteur and threatened with execution. Managing to escape from the PKK, Hazar believes that he is being hunted by two deadly enemies other than PKK: ultra-nationalist 17th November Greek terrorists and the Greek Secret Service, the GYP which was allegedly waging a secret war against Turkey by supporting Kurdish terrorists with their bomb-making and weapons training. Hazar told the Observer that a retired Greek naval officer pays all the Kurds' expenses in Greece. [=] 10284. Anonymous. "British Daily Reveals Evidence Linking PKK to Other Terrorist Organizations: Fugitive PKK Member Confesses to Observer that Greeks Shelter PKK and Provide Missiles: Part 3: Does Greece Support State Terrorism", in Turkish Times, October 15, 1997. p. 2. Acting upon the information provided by the Observer, the Greek government stated that "an immediate and thorough justification to substantiate the allegations." The fact that Greek authorities have never came up with any leads to catch any member of the 17th November organization in the last 22 years, raises the question about the Greek government's sincerity in its fight against terrorism. Similar allegations about PKK training camps in Greece resulted in a formal demarche by the then US Ambassador to Greece Thomas Niles. The newly appointed US Ambassador to Athens Nicholas Burns put the fight against terrorism on the top of his agenda during the confirmation hearings before the Congress. Reaffirming US determination against terrorism, Secretary of State Madeleine Albright also reportedly raised the question of Greece's support for PKK during her recent visit to Athens. If the allegations that Greek authorities are helping the PKK and providing them with Stinger missiles, then Athens could be included among the state sponsors of terrorism, being subject to economic and diplomatic sanctions. [=] 10285. Anonymous. "British Daily Reveals Evidence Linking PKK to Other Terrorist Organizations: Fugitive PKK Member Confesses to Observer that Greeks Shelter PKK and Provide Missiles: Part 4: Observer's Call to Beat Terrorism", in Turkish Times, October 15, 1997. p. 2. Evaluating Hazar's story, the Observer noted that the close links among terrorist groups and the terrorist threat to civilians are alarming. The paper continued as follows: "National rivalries have no place in the joint fight against terrorists. This lesson has to be learnedabove all in Greece, where a faction-riven secret service seems to bear some responsibility for exposing citizens to PKK terrorists - its rivalry with Turkey persuading wilder fringes of its secret services to sponsor the cell on the principle that my enemy's enemy is my friend. Our evidence shows its assurances to the US that these activities would stop are not seen as credible. The US has threatened sanctions if Greece does not fulfill its responsibilities. Now Greece's European Union and NATO partners must reinforce the message." [=] 10286. Anonymous. "British ITC Suspends Pro-PKK MED-TV: Part 1", in Turkish Times, April 1, 1999. p. 1. Turks were relieved to learn on 3/23/1999 that MED-TV, the PKK's unofficial television station broadcasting out of Belgium and England with frequent exhortations of revenge against the Turkish state, has been suspended for 21 days by British Independent Television Commission (ITC). The station was also slapped with a penalty of 90000 British pounds. ITC told the station that it is entitled to make representations within 21 days. At the end of that period, the ITC must decide whether or not to revoke MED-TV's license for good. In the past, the PKK chieftain Abdullah Ocalan participated in the station's talk-show programs through 127 Kurdistan and the Kurds telephone link and encouraged his followers to commit acts of terrorism against Turkish targets. Ocalan, who is caught by a Turkish security team in Kenya on 2/16/1999, is awaiting trial on the Marmara island of Imrali. Sukru Sina Gurel, the State Minister and Government Spokesman said "the ITC will ask for a defense from MED TV. If their defense is found inadequate, MED TV broadcasts will be banned permanently." Gurel stated that in its broadcasts MED TV gives orders for terrorist acts. He said it should be closed not for only 21 days but permanently. [=] 10287. Anonymous. "British ITC Suspends Pro-PKK MED-TV: Part 2: Akarcali Takes Credit", in Turkish Times, April 1, 1999. pp. 1-2. Bulent Akarcali, the Chairman of the Turkish Democracy Foundation (TDV) and a Motherland Party (ANAP) deputy from Istanbul that Turkey should follow the issue of the closure of the MED-TV, the television channel of the terrorist PKK organization, not only diplomatically but also from the legal aspect. Issuing a written statement, Akarcali recalled that the TDV, had launched several initiatives for the closure of MED-TV, adding that one of those initiatives had come to fruition at the Independent Television Commission (ITC) in Britain. Akarcali pointed out that the ITC responded to that initiative. Akarcali said: "Besides, Britain also agreed in 1998 that there were new problems with the programs of MED-TV and the ITC warned that it can rescind the broadcast license. However, there is a need for a specific period to rescind the broadcast license of MED-TV could be rescinded by 5/1999." [=] 10288. Anonymous. "British ITC Suspends Pro-PKK MED-TV: Part 3: Minister Aktas: 'We'll Dry Out the Swamp'", in Turkish Times, April 1, 1999. p. 2. Addressing a statement during his visit to Van during election campaign of the Democratic Left Party (DSP), Ziya Aktas, the Minister of Energy and Natural Resources, recalled that for many years MED-TV has been advocating terrorism and separatism. Stating that the terrorist chief Ocalan had been captured and terrorism had been hampered, Aktas said: "We are determined. We will dry the swamp. Nobody can split Turkey. Everybody in this country will live in friendship." [=] 10289. Anonymous. "British ITC Suspends Pro-PKK MED-TV: Part 4: Belgian Campaign Against MED-TV", in Turkish Times, April 1, 1999. p. 2. The residents of Denderleeuw county near Brussels in Belgium have started a campaign to close the studios of MED-TV, the broadcasting organ of the terrorist PKK organization, as reported by the Anatolian News Agency. Denderleeuw residents have reportedly said that they were making efforts and carrying out a campaign to send away the PKK supporters from their county. They stated that idle young girls and children were walking around the studios, and that they had seen strangers strolling the streets at night causing suspicion and uneasiness among the population. They said the supporters of the terrorist organization created serious security problems and staged several political activities, stressing that they are adamant on the closure of MED-TV studios. [=] 10290. Anonymous. "British Marines Clash With Iraqi Troops; 2000 Kurds Riot in Zakhu [2000 Kurds attacked Iraqi police until US troops intervened to protect the Iraqi police]", in Los Angeles Times, May 14, 1991. p. A8. 10291. Anonymous. "Bruce Fein Joins ATAA as Adjunct Scholar: Part 1", in Turkish Times, April 15, 1999. p. 1. Bruce Fein, a Harvard-educated attorney, a well known Washington Times columnist and TV commentator who appears frequently on CNN, has joined ATAA as an Adjunct Scholar to research Turkish-American relations. "We take great delight and pride for a seminal thinker and writer like Mr. Fein to join our organization in this capacity," said ATAA Pres. Tolga Cubukcu. "I'm sure his pen will present an enriched panorama of Turkish-US relations to our membership from a perspective seasoned wit his experience as an attorney and media veteran." [=] 10292. Anonymous. "Bruce Fein Joins ATAA as Adjunct Scholar: Part 2: Solid Background", in Turkish Times, April 15, 1999. pp. 1-2. Mr. Fein summarized his background to Turkish Times as follows: "I graduated with honors from Harvard Law School in 1972, and then toiled in the vineyards of the US Department of Justice for 10 years culminating in service as Associate Deputy Attorney General. Thereafter, I served as General Counsel to the Federal Communications Commission specializing in broadcasting and telecommunications law, and as Research Director to the Congressional Joint Iran-contra committee. For the past 15 years, I have engaged in the private practice of international and constitutional law, and have advised more than a dozen foreign countries on constitutional and political reform. I have concurrently written a weekly column for the Commentary Section of The Washington Times. My motto is awaken with the enthusiasm and energy of a bugle and retire with the dulcet melodies of flutes and harps." How did he become interested in Turkish issues, we asked Mr. Fein. It was clear that the way Ataturk turned Turkey around with his courageous reforms made quite an impression on this ardent student of history. "I have studied the evolution of political developments in countless countries in a quest to discover universal truths regarding democratic dispensations.The Republic of Turkey was intellectually arresting because of Ataturk's jump start into Western democratic laws, customs, and practices without the convulsions of the French Revolution. Moreover, my intellectual passions were aroused by the egregious falsehoods and worse in Western renditions of the Ottoman Empire and Turkey, which may have reached its ugly pinnacle in Cyprus. I am profoundly and sleeplessly committed to discovering and speaking truth in all matters, especially in international relations where missteps are frequently antechambers of calamity. Nothing is so dangerous in this world as ignorance in action." [=] 10293. Anonymous. "Bruce Fein Joins ATAA as Adjunct Scholar: Part 3: ATAA's Role", in Turkish Times, April 15, 1999. p. 2. Fein evaluated ATAA's role as follows: "The ATAA performs yeoman's service in seeking to correct the virtual daily onslaught of tendentious, false, or misleading statements and media reporting on Turkey. I am especially impressed by ATAA's unfailing resistance to propaganda and willingness to acknowledge Turkey's shortcomings. It is a lofty standard which Turkey's detractors generally scorn." [=] 10294. Anonymous. "Bruce Fein Joins ATAA as Adjunct Scholar: Part 4: Turkish-US Relations", in Turkish Times, April 15, 1999. p. 2. "The US should encourage Turkey's steps towards a stainless democracy and renounce human rights criticisms founded on an ignorance of the terrorism and internal security threats that are obstructing those steps," Fein said. "Such pointed but ill-conceived denigration of the Government of Turkey embolden PKK fanatics and their aides and abettors to further extremism in hopes of a response that will trigger US sanctions. If US executive branch and legislative officials knew more US history they would see that measures Turkey has taken to quell terrorism and fight unconstitutional challenges to secularism are virtual carbon copies of what the US has done in comparable circumstances. The US should also button its ears to the Greek lobby and openly acknowledge that international law, morality, and facts are all on the side of the Turkey and Turkish Cypriots on the 128 Kurdistan and the Kurds island of Cyprus." [=] 10295. Anonymous. "Bruce Fein Joins ATAA as Adjunct Scholar: Part 5: Anti-Turkish Ethnic Lobbies", in Turkish Times, April 15, 1999. p. 2. On the influence of anti-Turkish ethnic lobbies on American policy making process, Fein said, "Their influence is bothpronounced and mischievous. They successfully peddle falsehoods about Turkey in the corridors of power and the media that are regularly unchallenged. The buyers are too uninformed to know of the shoddy merchandise and too uninterested to make an independent examination since their Turkish constituency is characteristically tiny. Further, the ATAA and other sources of information lack the resources and access to discredit the mountains of anti-Turkish propaganda.The consequence predisposes policy makers and the American public to believe the worst about Turkey. Enlightened bilateral relations are thus problematic." [=] 10296. Anonymous. "Bush Administration Is Planning To Resume Lending To Iraqis [Bush to lift embargoes on basis of national interest; Congress had voted to suspend $200 million in Export-Import Bank credits after chemical weapon attacks on the Kurdish minority]", in Investor's Daily, December 26, 1989. p. 25. [TXT] 10297. Anonymous . “Business and Politics in Post-Erbakan Turkey”, in Turkish Times, December 15, 1997. p. 13. [99H-16411] [19971215] Policy Watch Washington Institute for Near East Policy: On 11/19/1997, Muharrem Kayhan, Chairman of the Turkish Industrialists’ and Businessmen’s Association addressed the Washington Institute’s Policy Forum regarding prospects for political and economic development in Turkey. The emergence of Refah: The mood in post-Erbakan Turkey is one of calm after a storm. For a comprehensive understanding of Turkey’s problems, a critical, nonideological assessment of the pro-Islamist Refah (Welfare) Party is needed. Despite its existence since 1969, Refah truly emerged as a political force only in 1995. Receiving some 21% of the popular vote, Refah went beyond its natural constituency due to the failures of past secular governments. The lack of movement on the issues of democratization, economic reform, and human rights allowed Refah to become an alternative to the center-right and center-left parties in Turkey. Refah’s success cannot be attributed solely to discontent. However, the victory of 1995 was less an ideological Islamist victory than a statement against a system that seemed incapable of producing a political center to respond to the broad consensus of the country. Corruption, lack of political reform, and the unequal distribution of wealth also raised in many minds questions about the nature of Turkish identity. As a result, many found solace within “a mystifying Islamic Identity.” Reflections on Refah: There are a number of conclusions to be drawn from Refah’s year in government. (1) The Islamist movement in Turkey will not disappear; in fact, it will thrive if there is no drastic change in the country. (2) Refah proved to be more a traditional political party than a committed Islamist movement. It followed the established system of populism and patronage and favored its supporters in the distribution of government resources. (3) The secular public grew increasingly restless as Refah constantly misread the needs of the country. (4) Refah’s main weakness was not its ideology, but its incompetence and lack of preparation for running Turkey. (5) The revelation of various scandals and unholy alliances tarnished Refah’s reputation as a corruption-free party. (6) Refah lacked commitment to democracy or secularism. (7) The perspective of Refah concerning international relations proved dangerous for Turkey’s interests and for the larger Western system of which Turkey is a part. (8) Due to political fragmentation, no party or civilian institution effectively challenged Refah. (9) The role of the Turkish military as defenders of secularism has been “accentuated” as a result of the Refah government. The Turkish Armed Forces used their institutional and constitutional powers with the support of business, trade unions, and a substantial part of the Turkish people to help oust the Refah government. The Turkish political system showed its resilience and inherent stability simply by surviving. Economic Outlook: The current secular government must succeed if its leaders want a successful political future. For that reason, it dropped its initial plan for early elections and act out to develop “a sensible, tough and credible” economic program that will take “at least a couple of years” to show positive results. To combat high inflation, the government has unveiled a program calling for financial sector reform to reduce inflation and for reduction of public sector debt through reform of the social security and tax systems. Turkey has had a strong economy despite years of mismanagement and high inflation. However, the country’s full potential will never be realized until economic rationality prevails in policy-making, including the introduction of much needed structural reforms long neglected by weak politicians. The economy’s fundamental strength has been shown by its experience with customs union with the EU, which began in 1996. The initial result of the customs union was a $5 billion increase in the trade deficit with the EU. Yet, the wave of bankruptcies predicted by many never happened. Statistics from this year suggest a rise in exports and a diminishing trade deficit with the EU. One weak point is the lack of foreign investment, which can be attributed to the absence of political and economic stability. This is another reason why a successful performance by the present government is so important. TUSIAD will support the government as long as it shows political courage and delivers on its promises. Turkey and the EU: The outside world, particularly the EU also should help facilitate the new secular government’s work. The mid-December meeting of the EU Council of Ministers will make important decisions on Turkey’s future relationship with Europe. If there is no “perspective” offered to the Turkish people on eventual membership in the EU, it will be difficult for the government to rebound from the political fallout. Such an omission by the EU could play into the Islamists’ hands and strengthen those that question whether Turkey should integrate into the global market. The EU erred in its decision to become involved in the Cyprus dispute. Linking Turkey’s membership to a resolution of the Cyprus conflict backfired by almost destroying a “growing sense” among the Turkish people that it was time to move to a resolution of the Cyprus issue. Recent events in Iraq remind the Western world of Turkey’s importance as a strategic ally. The US appreciates, more than does Europe, Turkey’s strategic importance and understands the possible negative outcomes should Turkey be denied acceptance into Europe or if the economic system is not modernized to sustain a dynamic market economy. TUSIAD wants Turkey to be a European country. As a supporter of continued democratization and an opponent of human rights abuse, TUSIAD believes a prosperous and democratic Turkey will keep the Islamist challenge at bay, would offer its citizens a better life, and would be an asset to the Western world and the global economy. Energy and Iran: Turkey imports 90% of its fuel. Although Turkey is interested in being a hub for pipelines carrying energy resources from the Caucasus and Central Asia, it also needs this energy for its own consumption. Turkey is sensitive to the US position concerning the proposed Turkmenistan-Iran natural gas pipeline. The bottom line remains that Turkey badly needs these resources. Turkey is open to all alternatives and will evaluate them as they become available according to political and economic circumstances. Kurds: The situation in the Kurdish populated Turkish southeast has seen a marked improvement in the past four years, though significant military operations against separatists groups in the region continue. The best answer to the region’s problems is 129 Kurdistan and the Kurds investment, and the Turkish government and the private sector have invested a considerable amount of money in the area. The government also offers incentives to private investment in the area. TUSIAD, as part of the private sector, encourages investment in the southeast. However, the Kurdish issue still has not been addressed in its dimensions. [=] 10298. Anonymous. "Business Shorts: Turkish Deputy Chairman to Control European TV Channels", in Turkish Times, April 1, 1999. p. 3. Sebnem Bilget was elected to the Deputy Chairmanship of the Permanent Committee of the European Transborder Television Charter for two years. Birget is currently the Director of the International Relations Department of the Higher Board of Radio & Television (RTUK), working hard to suspend MED-TV broadcasts. [=] 10299. Anonymous. "Business: Short Takes: $84 Billion Lost to Terror", in Turkish Times, July 1, 1998. p. 3. Emergency Rule Governor, Aydin Arslan said that Turkey had lost $84 billion during 14 years in the fight against terrorism. He added: "Besides the loss of life, terrorism has caused great economic damage in the southeast regions. It has blocked economic development and investment. According to 1997 surveys there has been a 70% decrease in terrorist activities in the region, which means that terror is now under control." [=] 10300. Anonymous. "CIA and the United States Role in the Perisan Gulf War, Part 3", in CIA Off Campus. First Annual Update. March 12, 1991. Third, on the same day Assistant Secretary of State Kelly killed a planned Voice of America broadcast that would have warned Iraq that the U.S. was "strongly commited" to the defense if its friends in the Gulf, which included Kuwait. Fourth, Assistant Secretary Kelly, two days before the invasion, again testified publicly before "Congesss to the effect that the U.S. had no commitment to defend Kuwait. According tor Senator Boren, who heads the Senate Intelligence Committee and press reports, the "CIA had predicted the invasion some four days before it happened." Fifth, Saddam Hussein was the perfect sacrificial lamb. He had used chemical weapons on Iran and the Kurds. He might have been within two to five years from possessing nuclear weapons. He had an army of one million strong that upset the power balance in the Middle East. He aspired to leadership of the Arab world against Israel, and he threatened all the so called moderate, ie., feudal regimes. With Kuwait's oil he would control 20% of the world's reserves. Why would the U.S. seek a world crisis? To know the full story of how Agee answers this question you will have to read the article, order his video taped speech or bring him to your city to speak. Meanwhile here are some hints: cover up the S&L scandal, prevent cuts in the military budget and reap the largest arms sale in history, avoid the peace dividend, rally people around the flag, divert attention away from the domestic crisis and the oppression of our people, cripple our international competitors, blackmail the royal dictatorships with our military might (they have